THE LIBRARY OF THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA PRESENTED BY PROF. CHARLES A. KOFOID AND MRS. PRUDENCE W. KOFOID Deliverance of the Holy Saiut Nichireu from the Executioner of HOjo {Page 165. THE MIKADO'S EMPIEE, BOOK I. HISTOEY OF JAPAN, From 660 B.C. to 1872 A.D. BOOK II. PERSONAL EXPERIENCES, OBSERVATIONS, AND STUDIES IN JAPAN, 1870-1874. BY WILLIAM ELLIOT GRIFFIS, A.M., I. ATE OF THE IMPERIAL UNIVERSITY OF TOKIO, JAPAN. SIXTH EDITION, WITH SUPPLEMENTARY CHAPTERS: JAPAN IN 1883, 1886, AND 1890. NEW YORK: HARPER & BROTHERS, FRANKLIN SQUARE. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1876, by HARPER & BROTHERS, In the Office of the Librarian of Congress, at Washington. Copyright, 1883, by HARPER & BROTHERS. Copyright, 1886, by HARPER & BROTHERS. Copyright, 1890, by HARPER & BROTHERS. All rights reserved. TO JAPANESE LOVERS OP KNOWLEDGE IN EVERY AGE: THE DEAD, WHO FIRST KINDLED THE SACRED FIRE, WHO PASSED ON THE TORCH; THE MARTYRS, WHO SUFFERED DEATH FOR THEIR LOYALTY, PATRIOTISM, DEVOTION TO NATIONAL UNITY, RESTORATION, AND REGENERATION; THE STUDENTS, WHO, IN NOBLE THIRST FOR TRUTH, FOUND HONORED GRAVES IN ALIEN SOIL ; THE LIVING, WITH WHOM RESTS THE FUTURE OF THEIR BEAUTIFUL LAND, THIS SKETCH OF THEm COUNTRY AND PEOPLE, MADE IN THE INTEREST OF TRUTH, AND SET DOWN WITHOUT EXTENUATION OR MALICE, IS, WITH FRATERNAL REGARD, DEDICATED BY THEIR COMRADE AND FRIEND, THE AUTHOR. 78*30 PREFACE. JAPAN, once in the far-off Orient, is now our nearest Western neigh- bor. Her people walk our streets ; her youth sit, peers and rivals of our students, in the class-room ; her art adorns our homes, and has opened to us a new Gate Beautiful. The wise men from the West are, at this writing, opening their treasures of tea, silk, gold-lacquer, bronzes, and porcelain at the first centennial of our nation's birth. We hail the brightness of the rising of this first among Asiatic na- tions to enter modern life, to win and hold a place among the fore- most peoples of the earth. It is time that a writer treated Japan as something else than an Oriental puzzle, a nation of recluses, a land of fabulous wealth, of universal licentiousness or of Edenic purity, the fastness of a treacherous and fickle crew, a Paradise of guileless chil- dren, a Utopia of artists and poets. It is time to drop the license of exaggeration, and, with the light of common day, yet with sympathy and without prejudice, seek to know what Dai Nippon is and has been. It has been well said by a literary critic and reader of all the books on the subject that to write a good history of Japan. is difficult, not so much from lack of materials, but from the differences in psychology. This I realize. My endeavor, during eight years' living contact with these people, has been, from their language, books, life, and customs, to determine their mental parallax, and find out how they think and feel. I have not made this book in libraries at home, but largely on the soil of the mikado's empire. I have slight obligation to acknowledge to foreign writers, except to those working scholars in Japan who have written during the last decade with knowledge of the language. To them I owe much ; first and most of all to Mr. Ernest Satow, who, in the. special department of historical research, stands leader. To Messrs. W. Dixon, Aston, Mitf ord, Hepburn, Brown, Blakiston, Von Brandt, and Parkes, I am also indebted. I am under many obligations M310477 8 PREFACE. to the editor of The Japan Mail. This scholarly paper, published in Yokohama, is a most valuable mirror of contemporaneous Japanese history, and a rich store-house of facts, especially the papers of the Asiatic Society of Japan. The Japan Herald and The Japan Gazette have also been of great service to me, for which I here thank the proprietors. The constant embarrassment in treating many subjects has been from wealth of material. I have been obliged to leave out several chapters on important subjects, and to treat others with mere passing allusions. In the early summer of 1868, two Higo students, Ise and Numaga- wa, arrived in the United States. They were followed by retainers of the daimios of Satsuma and Echizen, and other feudal princes. I was surprised and delighted to find these earnest youth equals of Ameri- can students in good-breeding, courtesy, and mental acumen. Some of them remained under my instruction two years, others for a short- er time. Among my friends or pupils in New Brunswick, New Jer- sey, are Mr. Yoshida Kiyonari, H. I. J. M. Minister Plenipotentiary at Washington ; Mr. Takagi Samro, H. I. J. M. Vice-consul at San Fran- cisco ; Mr. Tomita Tetsunosuke, H. I. J. M. Consul at New York ; Mr. Hatakeyama Yoshinari, President of the Imperial University of Ja- pan ; Captain Matsumura Junzo, of the Japanese navy. Among oth- ers were the two sons of Iwakura Tomomi, Junior Prime Minister of Japan ; and two young nobles of the Shimadzu family of Satsuma. I also met Prince Adzuma, nephew of the mikado, and many of the prominent men, ex-daimios, Tokugawa retainers, soldiers in the war of 1868, and representatives of every department of service under the old shogunate and new National Government. Six white marble shafts in the cemetery at New Brunswick, New Jersey, mark the resting-place of Kusukabe Taro, of Fukui, and his fellow-countrymen, whose devo- tion to study cost them their lives. I was invited by the Prince of Echizen, while Regent of the University, through the American super- intendent, Rev. G. F. Verbeck, to go out to organize a scientific school on the American principle in Fukui, Echizen, and give instruction in the physical sciences. I arrived in Japan, December 29th, 1870, and remained until July 25th, 1874. During all my residence I enjoyed the society of cultivated scholars, artists, priests, antiquaries, and students, both in the provincial and national capitals. From the living I bore letters of introduction to the prominent men in the Japanese Govern- ment, and thus were given to me opportunities for research and obser- vation not often afforded to foreigners. My facilities for regular and PREFACE. 9 extended travel were limited only by my duties. Nothing Japanese was foreign to me, from palace to beggar's hut. I lived in Dai Nip- pon during four of the most pregnant years of the nation's history. Nearly one year was spent alone in a daimio's capital far in the in- terior, away from Western influence, when feudalism was in its full bloom, and the old life in vogue. In the national capital, in the time well called " the flowering of the nation," as one of the instructors in the Imperial University, having picked students from all parts of the empire, I was a witness of the marvelous development, reforms, dan- gers, pageants, and changes of the epochal years 1872, 1873, and 1874. With pride I may say truly that I have felt the pulse and heart of New Japan. I have studied economy in the matter of Japanese names and titles, risking the charge of monotony for the sake of clearness. The schol- ar will, I trust, pardon me for apparent anachronisms and omissions. For lack of space or literary skill, I have had, in some cases, to con- dense with a brevity painful to a lover of fairness and candor. The title justifies the emphasis of one idea that pervades the book. In the department of illustrations, I claim no originality, except in their selection. Many are from photographs taken for me by natives in Japan. Those of my artist - friend, Ozawa, were nearly all made from life at my suggestion. I have borrowed many fine sketches from native books, through Aime Humbert, whose marvelously beau- tiful and painstaking work, "Japon Illustre," is a mine of illustra- tion. Few artists have excelled in spirit and truth Mr. A. Wirgman, the artist of The London Illustrated News, a painter of real genius, whose works in oil now adorn many home parlors of ex-residents in Japan, and whose gems, fine gold, and dross fill the sprightly pages of The Japan Punch. Many of his sketches adorn Sir Rutherford Al- cock's book on the vicissitudes of diplomatists, commonly called "The Capital of the Tycoon," or " Three Years in Japan." I am indebted both to this gentleman and to Mr. Laurence Oliphant, who wrote the charming volume, " Lord Elgin's Mission to China and Japan," for many illustrations, chiefly from native sketches. Through the liberal- ity of my publishers, I am permitted to use these from their stores of plates. I believe I have in no case reproduced old cuts without new or correct information that will assist the general reader or those who wish to study the various styles of the native artists, five of which are herein presented. Hokusai, the Dickens, and Kano, the Audubon of Japanese art, are well represented. The photographs of the living 10 PREFACE. and of the renowned dead, from temples, statues, or old pictures, from the collections of daimios and nobles, are chiefly by Uchida, a native photographer of rare ability, skill, and enthusiasm, who unfortunately died in 1875, Four vignettes are copied from the steel-plate engrav- ings on the greenbacks printed in New York for the Ono National Banking Company of Tokio, by the Continental Bank-note Company of New York. I gratefully acknowledge the assistance derived from native schol- ars in Fukui and Tokio, especially Messrs. Iwabuchi, Takakashi, and Ideura, my readers and helpers. To the members of the Mei Roku Sha, who have honored me with membership in their honorable body, I return my best thanks. This club of authors and reformers includes such men as Fukuzawa, Arinori Mori, Nakauiura Masanawo, Kato Hi- royuki, Nishi Shiu, the Mitsukuri brothers, Shiuhei and Rinsho, Uchi- da Masawo, Hatakeyama Yoshinari, and others, all names of fame and honor, and earnest workers in the regeneration of their country. To my former students now in New York, who have kindly assisted me in proof-reading, and last and first of all to Mr. Tosui Imadate, my friend and constant companion during the last six years, I return my thanks and obligations. I omit in this place the names of high offi- cers in the Japanese Government, because the responsibility for any opinion advanced in this work rests on no native of Japan. That is all my own. To my sister, the companion, during two years, of sev- eral of my journeys and visits in the homes of the island empire, I owe many an idea and inspiration to research. To the publishers of the North American Review, Appletons 1 Journal, and The Independent ray thanks are due for permission to print part of certain chapters first published in these periodicals. I trust the tone of the work will not seem dogmatic. I submit with modesty what I have written on the Ainos. I am inclined to believe that India is their original home ; that the basic stock of the Japanese people is Aino ; and that in this fact lies the root of the marvelous difference in the psychology of the Japanese and their neighbors, the Chinese. " Can a nation be born at once ?" " With God all things are pos- sible." W. E. G. New Yvrk,May 10th, 1876. PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION. A NEW issue of this work having been called for in a little over four months from the date of its publication, the author has endeav- ored to render the second edition more worthy than the first. This has been done by the addition of valuable matter in the appendix and foot-notes, and the recasting of a few pages, on which original has been substituted for compiled matter. Critics have complained that in Book I. the line between the myth- ical, or legendary, and the historic period has not been clearly drawn. A writer in The Japan Mail of November 25th, 1876, says : "After an introductory chapter on the physical features of the country, the author plunges into the dense mists of the historic and the prehistoric ages, where he completely loses his way for about a millennium and a half, until he at length strikes into the true path, under the guidance of the Nihon Guai Shi." Did the critic read Chapter III. ? The author, before essaying the task, knew only too well the difficulties of the work before him. He made no attempt to do the work of a Niebuhr for Japan. His object was not to give an infallible record of absolute facts, nor has he pre- tended to do so. He merely sketched in outline a picture of what thirty-three millions of Japanese believe to be their ancient history. He relied on the intelligence of his readers, and even on that of the critics (who should not skip Chapter III.), to appreciate the value of the narratives of the Kojiki and the Nihongi the oldest extant books in the Japanese language, and on which all other accounts of the an- cient period are based. He was not even afraid that any school-boy who had been graduated beyond his fairy tales would think the drag- on-born Jimmu a character of equal historic reality with that of CaBsar or Charlemagne. On the o?her hand, the author believes that history begins before writing, and that he who would brand the whole of Japanese tradi- 10* PREFACE TO THE SECOND EDITION. tion before the sixth century A.D. as "all but valueless" must dem- onstrate, and not merely affirm. The author preferred to introduce Jingu and Yamato Date to Occidental readers, and let them take their chances before the light of research. Will this century see the scholar and historian capable of reeling off the thread of pure history, clear and without fracture, from the cocoon of Japanese myth, legend, and language ? The author, even with his profound reverence for Anglo- Japanese scholarship, hopes for, yet doubts it. In one point the author has been misapprehended. He nowhere attempts to explain whence came the dominant (Yamato) tribe or tribes to Japan. He believes the Japanese people are a mixed race, as stated on page 86 ; but where the original seats of that conquering people may have been on whom the light of written, undoubted his- tory dawns in the seventh century, he has not stated. That these were in Mantchuria is probable, since their mythology is in some points but a transfiguration of Mantchu life. The writer left the ques- tion an open one. He is glad to add, without comment, the words of the Mail critic, who is, if he mistakes not, one of the most accom- plished linguists in Japan, and the author of standard grammars of the written and spoken language of Japan : "As regards the position of the Japanese language, it gives no dubious re- sponse. Japanese has all the structural and syntactical peculiarities common to the Alatyan or Ural-Altaic group ; and the evidence of the physiognomical tests points unmistakably to the same origin for the people. The short, round skull, the oblique eyes, the prominent cheek-bones, the dark-brown hair, and the scant beard, all proclaim the Mantchus and Coreans as their nearest congeners. In fact, it is no longer rash to assert as certain that the Japanese are a Tungusic race, and their own traditions and the whole course of their history are incom-. patible with any other conclusion than that Corea is the route by which the im- migrant tribes made their passage into Kiushiu from their ancestral Mantchu- rian seats." The brevity of the chapter on the Ashikaga period, which has been complained of, arose, not from any lack of materials, but because the writer believed that this epoch deserved a special historian. Another reason that explains many omissions, notably, that of any detailed ref- erence to Japanese art, is, that this volume is not an encyclopedia. The author returns his hearty thanks to his Japanese friends, and to the critics whose scrutiny has enabled him in any way to improve the work W. E. G. NEW YOBK, January IQth, 1877. CONTENTS. BOOK I. HISTORY OF JAPAN FROM 660 B.C. TO 1872 A.D. CHAPTER PAGE I. THE BACKGROUND 17 II. THE ABORIGINES 26 III. MATERIALS OF HISTORY 36 IV. JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY 43 V. THE TWILIGHT OF FABLE 54 VI. SUJIN, THE ClVILIZER 60 VII. YAMATO-DAKE, THE CONQUEROR OF THE KUANTO 68 VIII. THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION 75 IX. LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN 86 X. THE ANCIENT RELIGION 96 XI. THE THRONE AND THE NOBLE FAMILIES 101 XII. THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION 115 XIII. YORITOMO AND THE MlNAMOTO FAMILY 134 XIV. CREATION OF THE DUAL SYSTEM OF GOVERNMENT 140 XV. THE GLORY AND THE FALL OF THE HOJO FAMILY 146 XVI. BUDDHISM IN JAPAN 158 XVII. THE INVASION OF THE MONGOL TARTARS 176 XVIII. THE TEMPORARY MIKADOATE 182 XIX. THE WAR OF THE CHRYSANTHEMUMS 187 XX. THE ASHIKAGA PERIOD 193 XXI. LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES 197 XXII. THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM 214 XXIII. NOBUNAGA, THE PERSECUTOR OF THE BUDDHISTS 229 XXIV. HIDEYOSHI'S ENTERPRISES. THE INVASION OF COREA 236 XXV. CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS 247 XXVI. IYEYASU, THE FOUNDER OF YEDO 264 XXVII. THE PERFECTION OF DUARCHY AND FEUDALISM 270 XXVIII. THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN 291 BOOK II. PERSONAL EXPERIENCES, OBSERVATIONS, AND STUDIES LN JAPAN, 1870-1875. I. FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN 327 II. A RIDE ON THE TOKAIDO 353 12 CONTENTS. CHAPTER PAGE III. IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL 363 IV. SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE 378 V. STUDIES IN THE CAPITAL 391 VI. AMONG THE MEN OF NEW JAPAN 399 VII. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN 405 VIII. RECEPTION BY THE DAIMIO. MY STUDENTS 426 IX. LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE 435 X. CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS 452 XI. HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS 466 XII. THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN 477 XIII. FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES 491 XIV. JAPANESE PROVERBS 504 XV. THE LAST YEAR OF FEUDALISM 512 XVI. A TRAMP THROUGH JAPAN 541 XVII. THE POSITION OF WOMAN 551 XVIII. NEW JAPAN... .. 562 SUPPLEMENTARY CHAPTER : I. JAPAN IN 1883 579 II. JAPAN IN 1886 597 III. JAPAN IN 1890... .. 605 NOTES AND APPENDICES. ASSOCIATED IDEAS IN ART AND POETRY 617 THE TESTAMENT or IYEIASU 619 CENSUS OF JAPAN FOR 1872 AND 1873 622 MINES AND MINERAL RESOURCES 624 LAND AND AGRICULTURE 627 MINT AND PUBLIC WORKS 629 SILK CROP OF 1875 630 WEIGHTS AND MEASURES 631 MONEY 632 NOTATION OF TIME 633 FOREIGN TRADE OF JAPAN 636 LEGENDARY AKT AT THE CENTENNIAL EXPOSITION 637 TEA CROP OF 1875 641 THE CERAMIC AKT OF JAPAN 641 DR. J. C. HEPBURN'S METEOROLOGICAL TABLES, FROM OBSERVATIONS MADE FROM 1863 TO 1869, INCLUSIVE 644 INDEX.. .. 645 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. Map of Dai Nippon (the Empire of Japan) faces page 17 1. Nichiren and the Hojo Executioner. (Humbert, from a temple painting) frontispiece. 2. High and Low Type of Face. (Hokusai school) 30 3. An Aino Chief from Yezo. (Photograph by Uchida) 32 4. 1 lis Imperial Majesty, Mutsuhito. (Photograph by Uchida) 37 5. Passage in the Inland Sea. (Alcock) 57 6. Mikado's Method of Travel in very Ancient Times. (Native drawing) 62 7. Imperial or Government Seal. (Native drawing) 66 8. Imperial Crest, or Mikado's Seal. (Native drawing) 67 9. Japan, as known to the Ancient Mikados. (From the series of historical maps in the " Nihon Riyaku Shi ") 69 10. Junk in the Bay of Yedo. (Native drawing) 71 11. Her Imperial Majesty Haruko. (Photograph by Uchida) 81 12. Shinto Wayside Shrine. (Alcock) 89 13. The Peasant of To-day. (Hokusai) 91 14. A Court Noble in Ancient Japan. (Native drawing) 93 15. The Mikado on his Throne. (Native drawing) 102 16. A Samurai in Winter Traveling-dress. (Alcock) 106 17. A Japanese Farmer. (Hokusai) 107 18. View in the Inland Sea. (Alcock) 118 19. View near Hiogo. (Alcock) 120 20. Tametomo defying the Taira Men. (Bank-note vignette) 121 21. The Mountains and Lake of Hakone. (Alcock) 129 22. War-junk of the Twelfth Century. (Bank-note vignette) 136 23. Kojima writing on the Cherry-tree. (Bank-note vignette) 153 24. Nitta Yoshisada casting the Sword into the Sea. (Bank-note vignette) 155 25. Kobo Daishi. (Photograph from a temple statue) 162 26. The Mother's Memorial. (Nankoku Ozawa) 167 27. Belfry of a Buddhist Temple. (Alcock, from a photograph) 1TI 28. Repulse of the Mongol Tartars. (Native painter) 179 20. Ashikaga Takauji. (Photograph from a temple statue) 185 3U. Temple-bell from Kioto. (Humbert) 200 31. Chasing Floral Designs on Copper. (Humbert) 203 32. Picnic Booth. (Humbert) 205 33. Court Lady in Kioto. (Humbert) 209 34. Kusunoki Masatsura. (Native drawing) 220 35. The Challenge. (Hokusai) 223 3(5. Archer on Castle Rampart. (Humbert) 226 37. Symbols of the Carpenter's Guild. (Humbert) 227 38. View of the Castle of Ozaka. (Alcock) 234 39. Nobunaga's Victims : Priest and Monk. (Alcock) 235 40. A Familiar Country Scene. (Hokusai school) 236 41. Camp of Hideyoshi, before Fnkui. (Humbert) 239 42. Image "f Deified Hero. (Native drawing) 241 43. Kar Monument in Kioto. (Photograph) 245 44. " The Tarpeian Rock of Japan." (Oliphant) 258 45. Hollander on Deshima. (Alcock) 260 46. Crest ef the Tokugawa Family. (Native drawing) 271 THE ORTHOGRAPHY AND PRONUNCIATION OF JAPANESE WORDS. IT is impossible to represent Japanese words exactly by any foreign alpha- bet ; but a knowledge of the sounds heard in Japan, and by using letters which have each one invariable value, will enable a foreigner to reproduce Japanese names with tolerable accuracy. When the native authors and grammarians do not agree, absolute unanimity among foreign scholars is not to be expected ; but palpable absurdities, impossible combinations of letters, and mistakes arising out of pure ignorance of the language may be avoided. The system given below, and used throughout this work, is, at least, rational, and is based on the structure and laws of combination in the language itself. This system is substantially (the dif- ferences aiming to secure greater simplicity) that of Hepburn's Japanese-English and English-Japanese, and of Satow's English-Japanese dictionary; the Roman- ized version of the Scriptures, published by the American Bible Society; of the "American Cyclopaedia;" the revised editions of Worcester's, and Webster's, dic- tionary ; in Brown's, Aston's, Satow's, Brinckley's, and Hepburn's grammar and works on the Japanese language; Monteith's, Mitchell's, Cornell's, Warren's, and Harper's (American), and the Student's (English) geography and atlas ; Mitford's " Tales of Old Japan;" Adams's "History of Japan;" the official docu- ments of the Japanese Government, Department of Education, schools, and col- leges ; the British and American Legations and Consulates ; the Anglo- Japanese press, and almost all scholars and writers who make accuracy a matter of con- cern. The standard language (not the local dialect) of Tokio now the literary as well as the political capital of the nation is taken as the basis, and the words are then transliterated from the katagana spelling, as given by the best native scholars. The vowels are sounded as follows : a has the sound of a in father, arm; ai has the sound of ai in aisle, or i in bite ; i has the sound of i in pique, machine ; w has the sound of u in rule, or oo in boot ; ua has the sound of ua in quarantine : e has the sound of e in prey, they ; ei has the sound of ay in saying ; o has the sound of o in bore, so. Long vowels are marked thus, o, u ; short vowels, u, i. The combination uai is sounded as wai; iu as yu; E or e, as e in prey ; but e, as in men ; g is always hard, and s surd, as in sM, sap. C before a vowel, g as in gin, gem; Z, g, s sonant; x, and the digraphs ph and th, are not used. The map facing page 17 is reduced, and the names transliterated from the large copper-plate map of the empire compiled and published by the Japanese War Department in 1872. The numerals refer to the provinces on page 601. Dai Nippon (the Empire of Japan). THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. THE BACKGROUND. IT is manifest that to understand a people and their national life, the physical conditions under which they live must be known. To enjoy the picture, we must study the background. Dai Nippon, as the natives call their beautiful land, occupies a sig- nificant position on the globe. Lying in the Pacific Ocean, in the temperate zone, it bends like a crescent off the continent of Asia. In the extreme north, at the island of Saghalin, the distance from the main-land of Asia is so slight that the straits may be crossed eas- ily in a canoe. From Kiushiu, with the island of Tsushima lying be- tween, the distance from Corea is but one day's sail in a junk. For 4000 miles eastward from the main island stretches the Pacific, shored in by the continent of America. From Yezo to Kamtchatka, the Ku- riles stretch like the ruins of a causeway, prolonged by the Aleutian Islands, to Alaska. The configuration of the land is that resulting from the combined effects of volcanic action and the incessant mo- tion of the corroding waves. The area of the empire is nearly equal to that of our Middle and New England States. Of the 150,000 square miles of surface, two-thirds consist of mountain land. The island of Saghalin (ceded to Russia in May, 18*75) is one mountain chain ; that of Yezo one mountain mass. On the main island,* a solid backbone of mountainous elevations runs continuously from * Dai Nippon, or Nihon, means Great Japan, and is the name of the entire em- pire, not of the main island. The foreign writers on Japan have almost unani- mously blundered in calling the largest island " Niphon." Hondo is the name given to the main island in the Military Geography of Japan (Heiyo Nippon Chiri Yoshi, Tokio, 1872) published by the War Department, and which is used in this work throughout. 18 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Rikuoku to Shinano, whence it branches off into subordinate chains that are prolonged irregularly to Nagato and into Kiushiu and Shiko- ku. Speaking generally, the heights of the mountains gradually in- crease from the extremities to the centre. In Saghalin, they are low ; in Yezo, they are higher : increasing gradually on the north of the main island, they culminate in the centre in the lofty ranges of Shi- nano, and the peaks of Nantaizan, Yatsugadake, Hakuzan (nine thou- sand feet high), and Fuji, whose summit is over twelve thousand feet above the sea. Thence toward the south they gradually decrease in height. There are few high mountains along the sea-coast. The land slopes up gradually into hills, thence into lesser peaks, and final- ly into lofty ranges. As Fuji, with his tall satellites, sweeps up from the land, so Japan itself rises up, peak-like, from the sea. From the shores the land plunges abruptly down into deep water. Japan is but an emerged crest of a submarine mountain perhaps the edge of hard rock left by the submergence of the earth-crust which now floors the Sea of Japan and the Gulf of Tartary. There seems little reason to doubt that Saghalin, Yezo, Hondo, and Kiushiu were in geologic ages united together, forming one island. Surrounded on all sides by swift and variable currents, the islands everywhere on the sea -borders exhibit the effect of their action. At most points the continual detritus is such as to seriously encroach on the land area, and the belief holds among certain native sea -coast dwellers, strengthened by the tradi- tional tales of past ravages, that in process of time the entire country, devoured by successive gnawings of the ocean, will finally sink into its insatiable maw. The geological formations of the country the natural foundations are not as yet accurately determined. Enough, however, is known to give us a fair outline of fact, which future research and a thorough survey must fill up.* Of the soil, more is known. * Baron Richthofen, in a paper read before the Geological Society of Berlin, June 4th, 1873, thus generalizes the geology of Japan : The west and east por- tion of the aggregate body of the Japanese islands is in every way the direct con- tinuation of the mountain system which occupies the south-eastern portion of China, the axial chain of which extends from the frontier of Annam to the island of Chusan, in the direction of W. 30 S., E. 30 N. It is accompanied on either side by a number of parallel chains. The prolongation of this group of linear chains passes through the island of Kiushiu to the great bend of Japan (Suruga and Shinano). Through Kiushiu and the southern part of the main island, the structure of the hills and the rocks of which they are made up (chiefly Silurian THE BACKGROUND. 19 Even in a natural state, without artificial fertilization, most of the tillable land produces good crops of grain or vegetables. On myriads and Devonian strata, accompanied by granite) and the lines of strike are the same as those observed in South-eastern China. This system is intersected at either end by another, which runs S.S.W., N.N.E. On the west it commences in Kiushiu, and extends southward in the direction of the Liu Kiu Islands, while on the east it constitutes the northern branch of the main island, and, with a slight deviation in its course, continues through the islands of Yezo and Saghalin. A third system, which properly does not belong to Japan, is indicated by the S.W. and N.E. line of the Kuriles. The above outline throws light on the distribution of volcanoes. The first system, where it occupies the breadth of the country for itself alone, is as free from volcanoes, or any accumulation of volcanic rocks, as it is in South-eastern China. The second system is accompanied by volcanoes. But the greatest ac- cumulation of volcanic rocks, as well as of the extinct volcanoes, is found in the places of interference, or those regions where the lines of the two systems cross each other, and, besides, in that region where the third system branches off from the second. To the same three regions the volcanoes which have been active in historic times have been confined. In the geological structure of Kiushiu, the longer axis is from N. to S.,but in- tersected by several solid bars made up of very ancient rocks, and following the strike of W. 30 S., E. 30 N. They form high mountain barriers, the most cen- tral of which, south of the provinces of Higo and Bungo, rises to over seven thousand feet, and is extremely wild and rugged. In Satsuma, the various fam- ilies of volcanic rocks have arrived at the surface in exactly the same order of succession as in the case of Hungary, Mexico, and many other volcanic regions, viz., first, propylite, or trachytic greenstone; second, andesite; third, trachyte and rhyolite ; fourth, the basaltic rocks. The third group was not visited by him. Thomas Antisell, M.D., and Professor Benjamin J. Lyman, M.E., and Hen- ry S. Munroe, M.E., American geologists in Yezo, have also elucidated this inter- esting problem. From the first I quote. The mountain systems of Yezo and farther north are similar to those in the northern part of the main island. There are in Yezo two distinct systems of mountains. One, coming down directly from the north, is a continuation of the chain in Karafto (Saghalin), which, after pass- ing down south along the west shore of Yezo, is found in Rihuoku, Ugo, Uzen, and farther south. The second enters Yezo from the Kuriles Islands and Kamt- chatka, running N. 20-25 E. and S. 20-25 W., and crossing in places the first sys- tem. It is from the existence and crossing of these chains that Yezo derives its triangular form. The two systems possess very different mineral contents for their axes. The first has an essentially granitic and feldspathic axis, produced, perhaps, by shrinkage, and is slow of decomposition of its minerals forming the soils. The second has an axis, plutonic or volcanic, yielding basalts, traps, and diorites, decomposing readily, producing deep and rich soils. Hence the different kinds of vegetation on the two chains. Where the two chains cross, also, there is found a form of country closed up in the north and east by hills, the valleys opening to the south and west. This volcanic chain is secondary in the main island of Japan ; but in Yezo and in Kiushiu it attains great prominence. Professor Benjamin S. Lyman, an American geologist, has also made valuable surveys and explorations in Yezo, the results of which are given in the " Reports of Horace Capron and his Foreign Assistants," Tckio, 1875. 20 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. of rice-fields, which have yielded richly for ages, the fertility is easily maintained by irrigation and the ordinary application of manure, the na- tives being proficient in both these branches of practical husbandry. The rivers on such narrow islands, where steep mountains and sharply excavated valleys predominate, are of necessity mainly useless for navigation. Ordinarily they are little more than brooks that flow lazily in narrow and shallow channels to the sea. After a storm, in rainy weather, or in winter, they become swollen torrents, often miles wide, sweeping resistlessly over large tracts of land which they keep perpetually desolate wildernesses of stones and gravel, where fruitful fields ought to be. The area of land kept permanently waste in Ja- pan on this account is enormous. The traveler, who to-day crosses a clear brook on a plank, may to-morrow be terrified at a roaring flood of muddy water in which neither man, beast, nor boat can live a mo- ment. There are, however, some large plains, and in those we must look to find the navigable rivers. In the mountains of Shinano and Kodziike are found the sources of most of the streams useful for nav- igation on the main island. On the plains of the Kuanto (from Suru- ga to Iwaki), Oshiu (Rikuchiu and Eikuzen), Mino, and Echigo, are a few rivers on which one may travel in boats hundreds of miles. One may go by water from Tokio to Niigata by making a few portages, and from Ozaka to the end of Lake Biwa by natural water. In the north- ern part of Hondo are several long rivers, notably the Kitagami and Sakata. In Yezo is the Ishikari. In Shikoku are several fine streams, which are large for the size of the islands. Kiushiu has but one or two of any importance. Almost every one of these rivers abounds in fish, affording, with the surrounding ocean, an inexhaustible and easily attainable supply of food of the best quality. Before their history began, the aboriginal islanders made this brain-nourishing food their chief diet, and through the recorded centuries to the quick-witted Jap- anese proper it has been the daily meat. In the geologic ages volcanic action must have been extremely vio- lent, as in historic time it has been almost continual. Hundreds, at least, of mountains, now quiet, were once blazing furnaces. The ever- greenery that decks them to-day reminds one of the ivy that mantles the ruins, or the flowers that overgrow the neglected cannon on the bat- tle-field. Even within the memory of men now living have the most awful and deadly exhibitions of volcanic desolation been witnessed. The annals of Japan are replete with the records of these flame-and- lava-vomiting mountains, and the most harrowing tales of human life THE BACKGROUND. 21 destroyed and human industry overwhelmed are truthfully portrayed by the pencil of the artist and the pen of the historian in the native literature. Even now the Japanese count over twenty active and hun- dreds of dormant volcanoes. As late as 1874, the volcano of Taromai, in Yezo, whose crater had long since congealed, leaving only a few puffing solfataras, exploded, blowing its rocky cap far up into the air, and scattering a rain of ashes as far as the sea-shore, many miles dis- tant. Even the nearly perfect cone of Shiribeshi, in Yezo, is but one of many of nature's colossal ruins. Asama yama, never quiet, puffs off continual jets of steam, and at this moment of writing is groan- ing and quaking, to the terror of the people around it. Even the superb Fuji, that sits in lordly repose and looks down over the lesser peaks in thirteen provinces, owes its matchless form to volcanic ac- tion, being clothed by a garment of lava on a throne of granite. Ha- kuzan, on the west coast, which uprears its form above the clouds, nine thousand feet from the sea-level, and holds a lakelet of purest water in its bosom, once in fire and smoke belched out rocks and ul- cered its crater jaws with floods of white and black lava. Not a few of these smoking furnaces by day are burning lamps by night to the mariner. Besides the masses and fields of scoria one everywhere meets, other evidences of the fierce unrest of the past are noticed. Beds of sulphur abound. Satsuma, Liu Kiu, and Yezo are noted for the large amount they easily produce. From the sides of Hakuzan huge crystals of sulphur are dug. Solfataras exist in active operation in many places. Sulphur-springs may be found in almost every prov- ince. Hot-springs abound, many of them highly impregnated with mineral salts, and famous for their geyser-like rhythm of ebb and flow. In Shinano and Echigo the people cook their food, and the farmer may work in his fields by night, lighted by the inflammable gas which issues from the ground, and is led through bamboo tubes. Connected with volcanic are the seismic phenomena. The records of Japan from the earliest time make frequent mention of these devas- tating and terrifying visitations of subterranean disorder. Not only have villages, towns, and cities been shaken down or ingulfed, but in many neighborhoods tradition tells of mountains that have disap- peared utterly, or been leveled to earth. The local histories, so nu- merous^ in Japan, relate many such instances, and numerous gullies and depressions produced by the opening and partial closure of the earth-lips are pointed out. One, in the province of Echizen, is over a mile long, and resembles a great trench. 22 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. In addition to a good soil, Japan has been generously endowed by the Creator with mineral riches. Most of the useful varieties of stone are found throughout the empire. Granite and the harder rocks, through various degrees of softness, down to the easily carved or chipped sandstones and secondary formations useful for fortifications, buildings, tombs, walks, or walls, exist in almost every province. Almost all the useful metals long known to man are found in this island empire. Gold and silver in workable quantities are found in many places. The island of Sado is a mass of gold-bearing quartz. Copper is very abundant, and of the purest kind. Lead, tin, antimo- ny, and manganese abound. Of zinc and mercury there is but little. Iron is chiefly in the form of magnetic oxide. It occurs in the dilu- vium of rivers and along the sea-coast, lying in beds, often of great thickness. The first quality of iron may be extracted from it. Iron- stone and many other varieties of ore are also found. Petroleum issues from the ground in Echigo, Suruga, Echizen, Yezo, and in Sag- halin ; the ocean at some portions on the coast of the latter is said to be smeared with a floating scum of oil for miles. The botanical wealth of Japan is very great. A considerable num- ber of vegetable species have doubtless been introduced by human agency into Japan from the Asiatic continent, but the indigenous plants and those imported by natural means are very numerous. The timber of the main island, Kiushiu, and Shikokii is superb in appearance and growth, of great variety, beauty, and adaptability to the uses of man. Yezo is one vast boom and lumber yard. Thirty- six varieties of useful timber-trees, including true oak, are found there. The Kuriles also afford rich supplies, and are capable of becoming to the empire proper what forest-clad Norway is to England. Yamato, on the main-land, is also famous for its forests, ranging from tallest evergreen trees of great size, fineness of grain, and strength of fibre, to the soft and easily whittled pines ; but the incessant demands for fir- ing and carpentry make devastating inroads on the growing timber. Split wood for cooking, and charcoal for warmth, necessitate the sys- tem of forestry long in vogue in some parts of the empire requiring a tree to be planted for every one cut down ; and nurseries of young forest trees are regularly set out, though the custom is not universal. Most of the trees and many of the plants are evergreen, thus keeping the islands clothed in perpetual verdure, and reducing the visual dif- ference between winter and summer, in the southern half of Hondo, at least, to a nearly tropical minimum. THE BACKGROUND. 23 The various varieties of bamboo, graceful in appearance, and by its strength, symmetry, hollowness, and regularity of cleavage, adapted to an almost endless variety of uses, are almost omnipresent, from the scrub undergrowth in Yezo to that cultivated in luxuriant groves in Satsuma so as to be almost colossal in proportion. There is, how- ever, as compared with our own country, a deficiency of fruit-trees and edible vegetables. The first use of most of the bread grains and plants is historic. In very ancient times it is nearly certain that the soil produced very little that could be used for food, except roots, nuts, and berries. This is shown both by tradition and history, and also by the fact that the names of vegetables in Japan are mostly foreign. The geographical position of the Japanese chain would lead us to expect a flora American, Asiatic, and semi-tropical in its character. The rapid variations of temperature, heavy and continuous rains, suc- ceeded by scorching heats and the glare of an almost tropical sun, are accompanied and tempered by strong and constant winds. Hence we find semi-tropical vegetable forms in close contact with Northern tem- perate types. In general the predominant nature of the Japan flora is shrubby rather than herbaceous.* The geographical position of Japan hardly explains the marked re- semblance of its flora to that of Atlantic America,f on the one hand, and that of the Himalaya region, on the other. Such, however, is the * In the "Enumeratio Plantarum," which treats of all the known exogens and conifers in Japan, 1699 species are enumerated, distributed in 643 genera, which are collocated in 122 orders. In other words, an imperfect botanical survey of the Nippon chain of islands shows that in it are represented nearly half the nat- ural orders, ten per cent, of the genera, and nearly three per cent, of the species of dicotyledons known to exist on the surface of the globe. Future research must largely increase the number of species. t Very large and splendidly illustrated works on botany exist in the Japanese language. The native botanists classify according to the Linnaean system. In their "Enumeratio Plantarum" (Paris, 1874), Drs. A. Franchet and L. Savatier have given a resume of all the known dicotyledonous plants in Japan. It is a work of great research and conscientious accuracy. I have seen excellent and volumi- nous native works, richly illustrated, on ichthyology, conchology, zoology, en- tomology, reptilology, and mineralogy. Some of these works are in ninety vol- umes each. Ten thousand dollars were spent by a wealthy scholar in Mino in the publication of one of them. They would not satisfy the requirements of the exact science of this decade, but they constitute an invaluable thesaurus to the botanical investigator. I am indebted for most of the information concerning the Japanese flora to a paper in the Japan Nail of September 25th, 1875, from the pen of a competent reviewer of Dr. Savatier's great work. 24 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. fact : the Japanese flora resembles that of Eastern North America more than that of Western North America or Europe.* The fauna of the island is a very meagre one, and it is also quite probable that the larger domestic animals have been imported. Of wild beasts, the bear, deer, wolf, badger, fox, and monkey, and the smaller ground animals, are most probably indigenous. So far as studied, however, the types approach those of the remote American rather than those of the near Asiatic continent. It is most probable, and nearly certain, that prehistoric Japan did not possess the cow, horse, sheep, or goat. Even in modern Japan, the poverty of the fauna strikes the traveler with surprise. The birds are mostly those of prey. Eagles and hawks are abundant. The crows, with none to molest their ancient multitudinous reign, are now, as always in the past, innumerable. The twittering of a noticeably small number of the smaller birds is occasionally heard ; but bird-song seems to have been omitted from the catalogue of natural glories of this island empire. Two birds, the stork and heron, now, as ancient- ly, tread the fields in stately beauty, or strike admiration in the be- holder as they sail in perfect grace in mid-air. The wild ducks and geese in flocks have, from time immemorial, summered in Yezo and wintered in Hondo. The domestic fowls consist almost entirely of ducks and chickens. The others have, doubtless, been imported. Of sea-birds there are le- gions on the uninhabited coasts, and from the rocks the fishermen gather harvests of eggs. Surrounding their land is the great reservoir of food, the ocean. The seas of Japan are probably unexcelled in the world for the mul- titude and variety of the choicest species of edible fish. The many bays and gulfs indenting the islands have been for ages the happy hunting-grounds of the fisherman. The rivers are well stocked with * The results of Dr. Asa Gray's investigations of the herbarium brought to the United States by the Perry expedition are summed up as follows : 48 per cent, had corresponding European representatives, 37 " " " " Western North American representatives, 61 " " ' " Eastern North American representatives ; while 27 per cent, were identical with European species, 20 " " " " " Western North American species, 23 " " *' " " Eastern North American species, "Dr. Gray's report was drawn up in 1858, when Japanese botany was little known, and considerable alteration might be made in his figures ; but there can be little doubt that the general result would be the same." THE BACKGROUND. 25 many varieties of fresh-water fish. In Yezo the finest salmon exist in Inexhaustible supply, while almost every species of edible shell-fish, mollusca and Crustacea, enlivens the shores of the islands, or fertilizes the soil with its catacombs. So abundant is fish that fish-manure is an article of standard manufacture, sale, and use. The variety and luxuriance of edible sea-weed are remarkable. The aspects of nature in Japan, as in most volcanic countries, com- prise a variety of savage hideousness, appalling destructiveness, and almost heavenly beauty. From the mountains burst volcanic erup- tions; from the land come tremblings; from the ocean rises the tidal wave; over it blows the cyclone. Floods of rain in summer and autumn give rise to inundations and land-slides. During three months of the year the inevitable, dreaded typhoon may be expected, as the invisible agent of hideous ruin. Along the coast the winds and currents are very variable. Sunken and emerging rocks line the shore. All these make the dark side of nature to cloud the imagina- tion of man, and to create the nightmare of superstition. But Nat- ure's glory outshines her temporary gloom, and in presence of her cheering smiles the past terrors are soon forgotten. The pomp of vegetation, the splendor of the landscape, and the heavenly gentleness of air and climate come to soothe and make vivacious the spirits of man. The seasons come and go with well-nigh perfect regularity; the climate at times reaches the perfection of that in a temperate zone not too sultry in summer, nor raw in winter. A majority of the inhabitants rarely see ice over an inch thick, or snow more than twen- ty-four hours old. The average lowest point in cold weather is prob- ably 20 Fahrenheit.* The surrounding ocean and the variable winds temper the climate in summer ; the Euro Shiwo, the Gulf Stream of the Pacific, modifies the cold of winter. A sky such as ever arches over the Mediterra- nean bends above Japan, the ocean walls her in, and ever green and fer- tile land is hers. With healthful air, fertile soil, temperate climate, a land of mountains and valleys, with a coast -line indented with bays and harbors, food in plenty, a country resplendent with natural beau- ty, but liable at any moment to awful desolation and hideous ruin, what influences had Nature in forming the physique and character of the pccple who inhabit Japan ? * For statistics relating to nearly all the subjects treated of in this chapter, see appendices at the end of this volume. 26 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. n. THE ABORIGINES* IN seeking the origin of the Japanese people, we must take into consideration the geographical position of their island chain, with ref- erence to its proximity to the main-land, and its situation in the ocean currents. Japanese traditions and history may have much to tell us concerning the present people of Japan whether they are exclusively an indigenous race, or the composite of several ethnic stocks. From a study, however imperfect, of the language, physiognomy, and bodily characteristics, survivals of ancient culture, historic geology, and the relics of man's struggle with nature in the early ages, and of the act- ual varieties of mankind now included within the mikado's domin- ions,f we may learn much of the ancestors of the present Japanese. The horns of the crescent - shaped chain of Dai Nippon approach the Asiatic continent at the southern end of Corea and at Siberia. Nearly the whole of Saghalin is within easy reach of the continent by canoe. At the point called Norato, a little north of the fifty-sec- ond parallel, the opposite shore, but five miles distant, is easily seen. The water is here so shallow that junks can not cross it at low tide. After long prevalent favorable winds, the ground is left dry, and the * I use the term "aborigines " for the sake of convenience, being by no means absolutely sure that those I so designate were the first people in situ. It has been conjectured and held by some native scholars that there was in Japan a pre- Aino civilization ; though of this there is scarcely a shadow of proof, as there is proof for an ancient Malay civilization higher than the present condition of the Malays. By the tewn "aborigines" I mean the people found on the soil at the dawn of history. t In compiling this chapter I have used, in addition to my own material and that derived from Japanese books, students, and residents in Yezo, the careful notes of the English travelers, Captains Bridgeford and Blakiston, and Mr. Ernest Satow, and the reports and verbal accounts of the American engineers and geolo- gists in the service of the Kai Taku Shi (Department for the Development of Tezo), organized in 1869 by the Imperial Government of Japan. Of these latter, I am especially indebted to Professors B. S. Lyman, Henry S. Munroe, and Thomas Antisell, M.D. THE ABORIGINES. 27 natives can walk dry-shod into Asia. During three or four months in the year it is frozen over, so that, with dog-teams or on foot, com- munication is often a matter of a single hour. In Japanese atlases, on the map of Karafto, a sand -bank covered by very shallow water is figured as occupying the space between the island and the conti- nent. A people even without canoes might make this place a gate of entrance into Saghalin. The people thus entering Japan from the north would have the attraction of richer supplies of food and more genial climate to tempt them southward. As matter of fact, com- munication is continually taking place between the Asiatic main-land and Saghalin. Japan occupies a striking position in the ocean currents which flow up from the Indian Ocean and the Malay peninsula. That branch of the great equatorial current of the Pacific, called the Euro Shiwo, or Black Stream, on account of its color, flows up in a westerly direction past Luzon, Formosa, and the Liu Kiu Islands, striking the south point of Kiushiu, and sometimes, in summer, sending a branch up the Sea of Japan. With great velocity it scours the east coast of Kiushiu, the south of Shikoku ; thence, with diminished rapidity, enveloping both the group of islands south of the Bay of Yedo and Oshima ; and, at a point a little north of the latitude of Tokio, it leaves the coast of Ja- pan, and flows north-east toward the shores of America. With the variable winds, cyclones, and sudden and violent storms continually arising, for which the coasts of Eastern Asia are notorious, it is easily seen that the drifting northward from the Malay Archipelago of boats and men, and sowing of the shores of Kiushiu, Shikoku, and the west- ern shores of Hondo with people from the south and west, must have been a regular and continuous process. This is shown to be the fact in Japanese history, in both ancient and modern times, and is taking place nearly every year of the present century. It seems most probable that the savages descended from the north, tempted south by richer fisheries and a warmer climate, or urged on by successive immigrations from the continent. There is abundant evidence from Japanese history of the habitation of the main island by the Ainos, the savages whose descendants now occupy Yezo. Shi- koku and Kiushiu were evidently peopled by mixed races, sprung oi the waifc from the various shores of Southern Asia. When the con- querors landed in Kiushiu, or, in sacred Japanese phrase, " when our divine ancestors descended from heaven to the earth," they found the land peopled by savages, under tribal organizations, living in villages, 28 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. each governed by a head-man. Conquering first the aborigines oS Kiushiu and Shikoku, they advanced into the main island, fought and tranquilized the Ainos, then called Ebisu, or barbarians, and fixed theiv capital not far from Kioto. The Ainos were not subjugated in a day, however, and continual military operations were necessary to keep them quiet. Only after centuries of fighting were they thoroughly subdued and tranquilized. The traveler to-day in the northern part of the main island may see the barrows of the Ainos' bones slain by Japanese armies more than a millennium ago. One of these mounds, near Morioka, in Rikuchiu, very large, and named " Yezo mori " (Aino mound), is especially famous, containing the bones of the aborigines slaughtered, heaps upon heaps, by the Japanese shogun (general), Ta- mura, who was noted for being six feet high, and for his many bloody victories over the Ebisu. For centuries more, the distinction between conquerors and con- quered, as between Saxon and Norman in England, was kept up ; but at length the fusion of races was complete, and the homogeneous Jap- anese people is the result. The remnants of Ainos in Yezo, shut off. by the straits of Tsugaru from Hondo, have preserved the aboriginal blood in purity. The traditional origin of the Ainos, said to be given by them- selves, though I suspect the story to be an invention of the conquer- ors, or of the Japanese, is as follows: A certain prince, named Kamui, in one of the kingdoms in Asia, had three daughters. One of them having become the object of the incestuous passion of her father, by which her body became covered with hair, quit his palace in the middle of the night, and fled to the sea-shore. There she found a deserted canoe, on board which was only a large dog. The young girl resolutely embarked with her only companion to journey to some place in the East. After many months of travel, the young princess reached an uninhabited place in the mountains, and there gave birth to two children, a boy and a girl. These were the ancestors of the Aino race. Their offspring in turn married, some among each other, others with the bears of the mountains. The fruits of this latter un- ion were men of extraordinary valor, and nimble hunters, who, after a long life spent in the vicinity of their birth, departed to the far north, where they still live on the high and inaccessible table-lands above the mountains ; and, being immortal, they direct, by their mag- ical influences, the actions and the destiny of men, that is, the Ainos. The term "Aino " is a comparatively modern epithet, applied by the THE ABORIGINES. 29 Japanese. Its derivation, as given by several eminent native scholars whom I have consulted, is from inu, a dog. Others assert that it is an abbreviation of ai no ko, " offspring of the middle ;" that is, a breed between man and beast. Or, if the Japanese were believers in a theory called of late years the " Darwinian," an idea by no means unknown in their speculations, the Ainos would constitute the " miss- ing link," or " intermediate " between man and the brutes. In the ancient Japanese literature, and until probably the twelfth century, the Ainos were called Ebisu, or savages. The proofs from language of the Aino ancestry of the Japanese are very strong. So far as studied, the Aino tongue and the Altai dia- lects are said to be very similar. The Aino and Japanese languages differ no more than certain Chinese dialects do from each other. Ainos and Japanese have little difficulty in learning to speak the lan- guage of each other. The most ancient specimens of the Japanese tongue are found to show as great a likenesss to the Aino as to mod- ern Japanese. Further proofs of the general habitation of Hondo by the Ainos appear in the geographical names which linger upon the mountains and rivers. These names, musical in sound, and possessing, in their significance, a rude grandeur, have embalmed the life of a past race, as the sweet names of "Juniata" and "Altamaha," or the sonorous onomatopes of " Niagara," " Katahdin," and " Tuscarora " echo the ancient glories of the well-nigh extinct aborigines of America, who in- deed may be brethren of the Ainos. These names abounding in the north, especially in the provinces north of the thirty-eighth parallel, are rare in the south, and in most cases have lost their exact ancient pronunciation by being for centuries spoken by Japanese tongues. The evidences of an aboriginal race are still to be found in the rel- ics of the Stone Age in Japan. Flint, arrow and spear heads, ham- mers, chisels, scrapers, kitchen refuse, and various other trophies, are frequently excavated, or may be found in the museum or in homes of private persons. Though covered with the soil for centuries, they seem as though freshly brought from an Aino hut in Yezo. In scores of striking instances, the very peculiar ideas, customs, and superstitions, of both Japanese and Aino, are the same, or but slightly modified. Amidst many variations, two distinctly marked types of features are founcl among the Japanese people. Among the upper classes, the fine, long, oval face, with prominent, well-chiseled features, deep-sunk- en eye-sockets, oblique eyes, long, drooping eyelids, elevated and arch- 3 30 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ed eyebrows, high and narrow forehead, rounded nose, bud-like mouth, pointed chin, small hands and feet, contrast strikingly with the round, flattened face, less oblique eyes almost level with the face, and straight noses, expanded and upturned at the roots. The former type prevails among the higher classes the nobility and gentry ; the latter, among the agricultural and laboring classes. The one is the Aino, or north- ern type ; the other, the southern, or Yamato type. In the accom- Tbe High and the Low Type of the Japanese Face Aristocratic and Pleheian. (Lady and Maid-servant. \ panying cut this difference is fairly shown in the strongly contrasting types of the Japanese lady and her servant, or child's nurse. The modern Amos are found inhabiting the islands of Yezo, Saghalin, the Kuriles, and a few of the outlying islands. They number less than twenty thousand in all. As the Aino of to-day is and lives, so Japanese art and traditions depict him in the dawn of history : of low stature, thick - set, full- bearded, bushy hair of a true black, eyes set at nearly right angles with the nose, which is short and thick, and chipped at the end, mus- cular in frame and limbs, with big hands and feet. His language, re- ligion, dress, and general manner of life are the same as of old. He has no alphabet, no writing, no numbers above a thousand. His rice, tobacco, and pipe, cotton garments, and worship of Yoshitsune, are of course later innovations steps in the scale of civilization. Since the Restoration of 1868, a number of Ainos of both sexes have been liv- THE ABORIGINES. 31 ing in Tokio, under instruction of the Kai Taku Shi (Department for the Colonization of Yezo). I have had frequent opportunities of study- ing their physical characteristics, language, and manners. Their dwellings in Yezo are made of poles covered over with thick straw mats, with thatched roofs, the windows and doors being holes covered with the same material. The earth beaten down hard forms the floor, on which a few coarse mattings or rough boards are laid. Many of the huts are divided into two apartments, separated by a mud and wattle partition. The fire-place, with its pot-hooks, occupies the centre. There being no chimney, the interior walls become thick- ly varnished with creosote, densely packed with flakes of carbon, or festooned with masses of soot. They are adorned with the imple- ments of the chase, and the skulls of animals taken in hunting. Scarcely any furniture except cooking-pots is visible. The empyreu- matical odor and the stench of fish do not conspire to make the visit to an Aino hut very pleasant. Raised benches along two walls of the hut afford a sleeping or lounging place, doubtless the original of the tokonoma of the modern Japanese houses. They sit, like the Japanese, on their heels. Their food is mainly fish and sea-weed, with rice, beans, sweet-potatoes, mil- let, and barley, which, in Southern Yezo, they cultivate in small plots. They obtain rice, tobacco, sake, or rice-beer, an exhilarating beverage which they crave as the Indians do " fire-water," and cotton clothing from their masters, the Japanese. The women weave a coarse, strong, and durable cloth, ornamented in various colors, and ropes from the barks of trees. They make excellent dug-out canoes from elm-trees. Their dress consists of an under, and an upper garment having tight sleeves and reaching to the knees, very much like that of the Japanese. The woman's dress is longer, and the sleeves wider. They wear, also, straw leggings and straw shoes. Their hair, which is astonishingly thick, is clipped short in front, and falls in masses down the back and sides to the shoulders. It is of a true black, whereas the hair of the Japanese, when freed from unguents, is of a dark or reddish brown, and I have seen distinctly red hair among the latter. The beard and mustaches of the Ainos are allowed to attain their fullest develop- ment, the former often reaching the length of twelve or fourteen inch- es. Ile^.ce, Ainos take kindly to the " hairy foreigners," Englishmen and Americans, whose bearded faces the normal Japanese despise, while to a Japanese child, as I found out in Fukui, a man with mustaches ap- pears to be only a dragon without wings or tail. Some, not all, of the 32 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. older men, but very few of the younger, have their bodies and limbs covered with thick black hair, about an inch long. The term " hairy Kuriles," applied to them as a characteristic hairy race, is a mythical expression of book-makers, as the excessively hirsute covering supposed to be universal among the Amos is not to be found by the investi- gator on the ground. Their skin is brown, their ejes are horizontal, and their noses low, with the lobes well rounded out. The women are of proportionate stature to the men, but, unlike them, are very ugly. I never met with a handsome Aino fe- male, though I have seen many of the Yezo women. Their mouths seem like those of ogres, and to stretch from ear to ear. This arises from the fact that they tattoo a An Aiuo Chief from Yezo. (From a photograph wide band of dirty blue, like taken in Tokio, 18T2.) T f ,, . , ^ . A the woad of the ancient Brit- ons, around their lips, to the extent of three-quarters of an inch, and still longer at the tapering extremities. The tattooing is so com- pletely done, that many persons mistake it for a daub of blue paint, like the artificial exaggeration of a circus clown's mouth. They in- crease their hideousness by joining their eyebrows over the nose by a fresh band of tattooing. This practice is resorted to in the case of married women and females who are of age, just as that of blacken- ing the teeth and shaving the eyebrows is among the Japanese. They are said to be faithful wives and laborious helpmates, their moral qualities compensating for their lack of physical charms. The women assist in hunting and fishing, often possessing equal skill with the men. They carry their babies pickapack, as the Japanese moth- ers, except that the strap passing under the child is put round the mother's forehead. Polygamy is permitted. Their weapons are of the rudest form. The three-pronged spear is used for the salmon. The single -bladed lance is for the bear, their most terrible enemy, which they regard with superstitious reverence. Their bows are simply peeled boughs, three feet long. The arrows ffflZ ABORIGINES. 33 are one foot shorter, and, like those used by the tribes on the coast of Siberia arid in Formosa, have no feather on the shaft. Their pipes are of the same form as those so common in Japan and China ; and one obtained from an Aino came from Santan, a place in Amurland. The Ainos possess dogs, which they use in hunting, understand the use of charcoal and candles, make excellent baskets and wicker-work of many kinds; and some of their fine bark -cloth and ornamented weapons for their chiefs show a skill and taste that compare very fa- vorably with those exhibited by the North American Indians. Their oars, having handles fixed crosswise, or sculls made in two pieces, are almost exactly like those of the Japanese. Their river-canoes are dug out of a log, usually elm. Two men will fashion one in five days. For the sea-coast, they use a frame of wood, lacing on the sides with bark fibre. They are skillful canoe-men, using either pole or paddle. The language of the Aino is rude and poor, but much like the Jap- anese. It resembles it so closely, allowing for the fact that it is utter- ly unpolished and undeveloped, that it seems highly probable it is the original of the present Japanese tongue. They have no written char- acter, no writing of any sort, no literature. A further study may pos- sibly reveal valuable traditions held among them, which at present they are not known by me to have. In character and morals, the Ainos are stupid, good-natured, brave, honest, faithful, peaceful, and gentle. The American and English trav- elers in Yezo agree in ascribing to them these qualities. Their meth- od of salutation is to raise the hands, with the palms upward, and stroke the beard. They understand the rudiments of politeness, as several of their verbal expressions and gestures indicate. Their religion consists in the worship of kami, or spirits. They do not appear to have any special minister of religion or sacred struct- * Some visitors to the Aino villages in Yezo declare that they have noticed there the presence of the phallic shrines and symbols. It might be interesting if this assertion, and the worship of these sj'inbols by the Ainos, were clearly proved. It would help to settle definitely the question of the origin in Japan of this oldest form of fetich worship, the evidences of which are found all over the Nippon island-chain, including Yezo. I have noticed the prevalence of these shrines and symbols especially in Eastern and Northern Japan, having counted as many a^ a dozen, and these by the roadside, in a trip to Nikko. The barren of both sexes worship them, or offer them ex voto. In Sagami, Kadzusa, and even in Tokio itself, they were visible as late as 1874, cut in stone and wood. Former- ly the toy-shops, porcelain-shops, and itinerant venders of many wares were well supplied with them, made of various materials; they were to be seen in the cor- 34 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. past, and they worship the spirit of Yoshitsune, a Japanese hero, who is supposed to have lived among them in the twelfth century, and who taught them some of the arts of Japanese civilization. The outward symbols of their religion are sticks of wood two or three feet long, which they whittle all around toward the end into shavings, until the smooth wand contains a mass of pendent curls, as seen in the engraving, page 32. They insert several of these in the ground at certain places, which they hold sacred. The Ainos also deify mountains, the sea, which furnishes their daily food, bears, the forests, and other natural objects, which they believe to possess intel- ligence. These wands with the curled shavings are set up in every place of supposed danger or evil omen. The traveler in Yezo sees them on precipices, gorges of mountains, dangerous passes, and river banks. When descending the rapids of a river in Yezo, he will notice that his Aino boatmen from time to time will throw one of these wands into the river at every dangerous point or turning. The Ainos pray raising their hands above their heads. The Buddhist bonzes have in vain attempted to convert them to Buddhism. They have rude songs, which they chant to their kami, or gods, and to the deified sea, forest, mountains, and bears, especially at the close of the hunting and fish- ing season, in all affairs of great importance, and at the end of the year. The following is given as a specimen : "To the sea which nourishes us, to the forest that protects us, we present our grateful thanks. You are two mothers that nourish the same child ; do not be angry if we leave one to go to the other." " The Ainos will always be the pride of the forest and the sea." The inquirer into the origin of the Japanese must regret that as yet we know comparatively little of the Ainos and their language. Any opinion hazarded on the subject may be pronounced rash. Yet, after a study of all the obtainable facts, I believe they unmistakably nucopia-banners at New-year's, paraded in the festivals, and at unexpected times and places disturbed the foreign spectator. It was like a glimpse of life in the antediluvian world, or of ancient India, whence doubtless they came, to see evi- dences of this once widely prevalent form of early religion. Buddhist priests whom I have consulted affirm, with some warmth, that they arose in the " wick- ed time of Ashikaga," though the majority of natives, learned and unlearned, say they are the relics of the ancient people, or aborigines. In 1872 the mikado's Government prohibited the sale or exposure of these emblems in any form or shape, together with the more artistic obscenities, pictures, books, carvings, and photographs, sent out from the studios of Paris and London. THE ABORIGINES. 35 point to the Ainos as the primal ancestors of the Japanese ; that the mass of the Japanese people of to-day are substantially of Amp stock. An infusion of foreign blood, the long effects of the daily hot baths and the warm climate of Southern Japan, of Chinese civilization, of agricultural instead of the hunter's method of life, have wrought the change between the Aino and the Japanese. It seems equally certain that almost all that the Japanese possess which is not of Chinese, Corean, or Tartar origin has descended from the Aino, or has been developed or improved from an Aino model. The Ainos of Yezo hold politically the same relation to the Japanese as the North American Indians do to the white people of the United States ; but ethnically they are, with probability bordering very closely on certainty, as the Saxons to the English.* * I need scarcely, except to relieve, by borrowed humor, the dull weighing of facts, and the construction of an opinion void of all dogmatism, notice the as- sertion elaborated at length by some Americans, Scotchmen, and others too, for aught I know, that the Ainos are the "ten lost tribes of Israel," or that they are the descendants of the sailors and gold-hunters sent out by King Solo- mon to gain spoil for his temple at Jerusalem. Really, this search after the "lost tribes" or have they consolidated into the Wandering Jew ? is becoming absurd. They are the most discovered people known. They have been found in America, Britain, Persia, India, China, Japan, and in Yezo. I know of but one haystack left to find this needle in, and that is Corea. It will undoubtedly be found there. It has been kindly provided that there are more worlds for these Alexanders to conquer. It is now quite necessary for the archaeological respect- ability of a people that they be the " lost tribes." To the inventory of wonders in Japan some would add that of her containing " the dispersed among the Gen- tiles," notwithstanding that the same claim has been made for a dozen other nations. The Aino Arrow-poison. Dr. Stuart Eldredge, who has studied the properties of the Aino arrow-poison, states that it is made by macerating and pounding the roots of one or more of the virulent species of aconite, mixing the mass into a paste, with (perhaps) inert ingredients, and burying it in the ground for some time. The stitf, dark, reddish-brown paste is then mixed with animal fat, and about ten grains' weight of the paste is applied to the bamboo arrow-tips which are used to set the bear-traps. The wounded animals are found dead near the trap, and their flesh is eaten with impunity, though the hunter cuts off the parts immediately near the wound. The Ainos know of no antidote for the poison. (See "Transactions of the Asiatic Society of Japan, 1876.") THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. III. MATERIALS OF HISTORY. BEFORE attempting a brief sketch of Japanese history, it may be interesting to the reader to know something of the sources of such history, and the character and amount of the materials. A dynasty of rulers who ostentatiously boast of twenty-five centuries of unbroken succession should have solid foundation of fact for their boast. The august representatives of the mikado Mutsuhito,* the one hundred and twenty-third of the imperial line of Dai Nippon, who, in the pres- ence of the President and Congress of the United States, and of the sovereigns of Europe, claimed the immemorial antiquity of the Jap- anese imperial rule, should have credentials to satisfy the foreigner and silence the skeptic. In this enlightened age, when all authority is challenged, and a cent- ury after the moss of oblivion has covered the historic grave of the doctrine of divine right, the Japanese still cling to the divinity of the mikado, not only making it the dogma of religion and the engine of government, but accrediting their envoys as representatives of, and asking of foreign diplomatists that they address his imperial Japanese majesty as the King of Heaven (Tenno). A nation that has passed through the successive stages of aboriginal migration, tribal govern- ment, conquest by invaders, pure monarchy, feudalism, anarchy, and modern consolidated empire, should have secreted the material for much interesting history. In the many lulls of peace, scholars would arise, and opportunities would offer, to record the history which pre- vious generations had made. The foreign historian who will bring the * Mutsuhito ("meek man"), the present emperor, is the second son of the mikado Komei (1847-1867), whom he succeeded, and the Empress Fujiwara Asako. He was born November 3d, 1850. He succeeded his father February 3d, 1867 ; was crowned on the 28th day of the Eighth month, 1868 ; and was mar- ried on the 28th of the Twclth month, 1868, to Haruko, daughter of Ichijo Tadaka, a noble of the second degree of the first rank. She was born on the 17th of the Fourth month, 1850. The dowager-empress Asako, mother of the emperor, is of the house of Kujo, and was born on the 14th day of the Twelfth month, 1833. His Imperial Japanese Majesty, Mutsuhito, Emperor of Japan, and the 123d Mikado of the Line. MATERIALS OF HISTORY. 39 necessary qualifications to the task of composing a complete history of Japan, i. e., knowledge of the languages and literature of Japan, Chi- na, Corea, and the dialects of the Malay Archipelago, Siberia, and the other islands of the North Pacific, historical insight, sympathy, and judicial acumen, has before him a virgin field. The body of native Japanese historical writings is rich and solid. It is the largest and most important division of their voluminous liter- ature. It treats very fully the period between the rise of the noble families from about the ninth century until the present time. The real history of the period prior to the eighth century of the Christian era is very meagre. It is nearly certain that the Japanese possessed no writing until the sixth century A.D. Their oldest extant composi- tion is the Kojiki, or " Book of Ancient Traditions." It may be called the Bible of the Japanese. It comprises three volumes, composed A.D. 711, 712. It is said to have been preceded by two similar works, written respectively in A.D. 620 and A.D. 681 ; but neither of these has been preserved. The first volume treats of the creation of the heavens and earth ; the gods and goddesses, called kami ; and the events of the holy age, or mythological period. The second and third give the history of the mikados* from the year 1 (660 B.C.) to the 1288th of the Japanese era. It was first printed during A.D. 1624- 1642. The Nihongi, completed A.D. 720, also contains the Japanese cosmogony, records of the mythological period, and brings down the annals of the mikado to A.D. 699. These are the oldest books in the language. Numerous and very valuable commentaries upon them have been written. They contain so much that is fabulous, mythical, * " The terra 'mikado' is in general adhered to throughout this work. Other titles found in the native literature, and now or formerly in common use, are, Ten- shi (Son of Heaven); Tenno, or Ten O (Heaven-king) ; Kotei (Sovereign Ruler of Nations); Kinri(The Forbidden Interior); Dairi (Imperial Palace); Chotei (Hall of Audience) ; 0-6, or Dai 6 (Great King) ; O Uji (The Great Family) ; Gosho (Palace). In using these titles, the common people add sama, a respectful term, after them. Several of them, as is evident, were used originally to denote places. It was quite common for the people in later time to speak of the mikado as Mia- ko sama, or Uye sama (Superior Lord), in distinction from the shogun, whom they designated as Yedo sama. The Chinese characters employed to express the term 'mikado' mean Honorable Gate, an idea akin to the Turkish Sublime Porte. Sa- tow, however, derives it from mi, great, august, awful ; and to (do in composi- tion), plaj^2; the notion being that the mikado is too far above ordinary mortals to be spoken of directly. Hence the Gate of the Palace is used as a figure for him. So, also, Ren-ka (Base of the Chariot, or Below the Palanquin) ; and Hei- ka (Foot of the Throne, or of the Steps leading to the Dais), are used to denote the imperial person. A term anciently used was Nin O (King of Men)." 40 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. or exaggerated, that their statements, especially in respect of dates, can not be accepted as true history. According to the Kojild, Jinmu Tenno was the first emperor ; yet it is extremely doubtful whether he was a historical personage. The best foreign scholars and critics regard him as a mythical character. The accounts of the first mikados are very meagre. The accession to the throne, marriage and death of the sovereign, with notices of occasional rebellions put down, tours made, and worship celebrated, are recorded, and interesting glimpses of the progress of civilization obtained. A number of works, containing what is evidently good history, illustrate the period between the eighth and eleventh centuries. A still richer collection of both original works and modern compilations treat of the mediaeval period from the eleventh to the sixteenth cent- ury the age of intestine strife and feudal war. The light which the stately prose of history casts upon the past is further heightened by the many poems, popular romances, founded on historic fact, and the classic compositions called monogatari, all of which help to make the perspective of by -gone centuries melt out into living pictures. That portion of the history which treats of the introduction, progress, and expulsion of Christianity in Japan has most interest to ourselves. Concerning it there is much deficiency of material, and that not of a kind to satisfy Occidental tastes. The profound peace which followed the victories of lyeyasii, and which lasted from 1600-1868 the scholastic era of Japan gave the peaceful leisure necessary for the study of ancient history, and the creation of a large library of histor- ical literature, of which the magnificent works called the Dai Nihon Shi (" History of Great Japan "), and Nihon Guai Shi (" Japanese Outer, or Military History "), are the best examples. Under the Tokugawa shoguns (1603-1868) liberty to explore, chron- icle, and analyze the past in history was given ; but the seal of silence, the ban of censorship, and the mandate forbidding all publication were put upon the production of contemporary history. Hence, the peace- ful period, 1600 to 1853, is less known than others in earlier times. Several good native annalists have treated of the post-Perry period (1853-1872), and the events leading to the Restoration. In the department of unwritten history, such as unearthed relics, coins, weapons, museums, memorial stones, tablets, temple records, etc., there is much valuable material. Scarcely a year passes but some rich trover is announced to delight the numerous native archaBologists. The Japanese are intensely proud of their history, and take great MATERIALS OF HISTORY. 41 care in making and preserving records. Memorial - stones, keeping green the memory of some noted scholar, ruler, or benefactor, are among the most striking sights on the highways, or in the towns, vil- lages, or temple-yards, betokening the desire to defy the ravages of oblivion and resist the inevitable tooth of Time. Almost every large city has its published history ; towns and villages have their annals written and preserved by local antiquarians ; family records are faithfully copied from generation to generation ; diaries, notes of journeys or events, dates of the erections of buildings, the names of the officiating priests, and many of the subscribing worship- ers, are religiously kept in most of the large Buddhist temples and monasteries. The bonzes (Jap. bozu) delight to write of the lives of their saintly predecessors and the mundane affairs of their patrons. Almost every province has its encyclopedic history, and every high- road its itineraries and guide-books, in which famous places and events are noted. Almost every neighborhood boasts its Old Mortality, or local antiquary, whose delight and occupation are to know the past. In the large cities professional story-tellers and readers gain a lucrative livelihood by narrating both the classic history and the legendary lore. The theatre, which in Japan draws its subjects for representation al- most exclusively from the actual life, past or present, of the Japanese people, is often the most faithful mirror of actual history. Few peo- ple seem to be more thoroughly informed as to their own history : parents delight to instruct their children in their national lore ; and there are hundreds of child's histories of Japan. Besides the sober volumes of history, the number of books purport- ing to contain truth, but which are worthless for purposes of historical investigation, is legion. In addition to the motives, equally operative in other countries for the corruption or distortion of historical narra- tive, was the perpetual desire of the Buddhist monks, who were in many cases the writers, to glorify their patrons and helpers, and to damn their enemies. Hence their works are of little value. So plentiful are these garbled productions / that the buyer of books always asked for jitsu-roku, or " true records," in order to avoid the " zu-zan" or " editions of Zu," so called from Zu, a noted Chinese forger of history. In the chapters on the history of Japan, I shall occasionally quote from the" text of some of the standard histories in literal translation. I shall feel only too happy if I can imitate the terse, vigorous, and luminous style of the Japanese annalists. The vividness and pictorial 42 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. detail of the classic historians fascinate the reader who can analyze the closely massed syntax. Many of the pages of the Nihon Guai Shi, especially, are models of compression and elegance, and glow with the chastened eloquence that springs from clear discernment and conviction of truth, gained after patient sifting of facts, and groping through difficulties that lead to discovery. Many of its sentences are epigrams. To the student of Japanese it is a narrative of intensest interest. The Kojiki and Nihongi, which give the only records of very an- cient Japan, and on which all other works treating of this period are based, can not be accepted as sober history. Hence, in outlining the events prior to the second century of the Christian era, I head the chapters, not as the " Dawn of History," but the " Twilight of Fable." From these books, and the collections of ancient myths (Koshi Seibun), as well as the critical commentaries and explanations of the Japanese rationalists, which, by the assistance of native scholars, I have been able to consult, the two following chapters have been compiled.* * In the following chapters, I use throughout the modern names of places and provinces, to avoid confusion. The ancient name of Kiushiu was Tsukushi, which was also applied to the then united provinces of Chikuzen and Chikugo. Buzen and Bungo were anciently one province, called Toyo. Higo and Hizen are modern divisions of Hi no kuiii ("The Land of Fire"). Tamba, corrupted from Taniwa, and Tango ("Back of Taniwa") were formerly one. Kadzusa and Shimosa, contracted from Kami-tsu-fusa and Shimo-tsu-fusa (kami, upper ; shimo, lower; tsu, ancient form of no; fusa, a proper name, tassel), were once united. Kodzuke and Shimotsuke, formed like the preceding, were " Upper " and " Low- er" Ke\ All the region north of Echizen, known and unknown, including Echi- zen, Etchiu, Echigo, Kaga, Noto, Uzen, and Ugo, was included under the name Koshi no kuni. Later synonyms for Kiushiu are Saikoku (Western Provinces), or Chinzei in books. Chiugoku (Central Provinces) is applied to the region from Tamba to Nagato. Kamigata is a vague term for the country around and toward Kioto. The Language. The apparatus for the study of the Japanese language and the critical examination of its texts is now, thanks to Anglo- Japanese scholars, both excellent and easily accessible. The following are such : GRAMMARS W. G. As- ton' s "Grammar of the Spoken Language" (Nagasaki, 1869), and "Grammar of the Written Language of Japan, with a short Chrestomathy ;" London, 1872: second edition, 1877. E. Satow's " Kuaiwa Hen, 25 Exercises in the Yedo Colloquial, for the Use of Students, with Notes," 4 vols. ; Yokohama, 1873. J. J. Hoffman, "A Japanese Grammar ;" Leiden, 1868: second edition, 1876. S. R. Brown, " Collo- quial Japanese;" Shanghae, 1863. "Prendergast's Mastery System, adapted to the Study of Japanese or English ;" Yokohama, 1875. DICTIONARIES J. C. Hep- burn, "Japanese-English and English-Japanese;" Shanghae, 1867: second edi- tion, with grammatical introduction ; Shanghae, 1872 : pocket edition, New York, 1873. Satow and Ishibashi, "English- Japanese Dictionary of the Spoken Lan- guage ;" London, 1876. See also valuable papers by Messrs. Satow, Aston, Dallas, Edkius, and Chamberlain, in the "Transactions of the Asiatic Society of Japan." JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 43 IV. JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. IN the beginning all things were in chaos. Heaven and earth were not separated. The world floated in the cosmic mass, like a fish in water, or the yolk in an egg. The ethereal matter sublimed and formed the heavens, the residuum became the present earth, from the warm mold of which a germ sprouted and became a self-animate be- ing, called Kuni-toko-tachi no mikoto.* Two other beings of like gen- esis appeared. After them came four pairs of beings (kami). These were all single (hitori-gami, male, sexless, or self-begotten). * It will be seen at once that the Japanese scheme of creation starts without a Creator, or any First Cause ; and that the idea of space apart from matter is foreign to the Japanese philosophical system. Mikoto (masc.), mikami (fern.), mean " augustness." It is not the same term as mikado. No is the particle of. The opening sentence of the Kojiki is as follows : At the time of the beginning of heaven and earth there existed three hashira-gami (pillar or chief kami, or gods). The name of one kami was Ame-no-naka-nushi-no-kami (Lord of the Mid- dle of Heaven); next, Taka-mi-mmubi-no-kami (High Ineffable Procfeator); next, Kami-mitsubi-no-kami (Ineffable Procreator). These three, existing single, hid their bodies (died, or passed away, or became pure spirit [?]). Next, when the young land floated like oil moving about, there came into existence, sprouting upward like the ashi (rush) shoot, a kami named Umaji-ashikabi-kikoji-no-kami (Delightful Rush - sprout) ; next, Ame-no-toko-tachi-no-kami. These two chief kami, existing single, hid their bodies. Next, came into existence these three, Kuni-no-toko-tachi-no-mikoto, etc., etc. The Nihongi opens as follows : Of old, when heaven and earth were not yet separated, and the in (male, active, or positive principle) and the yo (female, pass- ive, or negative principle) were not yet separated, chaos, enveloping all things, like a fowl's egg, contained within it a germ. The clear and ethereal substance expanding, became heaven ; the heavy and thick substance agglutinating, became earth. The ethereal union of matter was easy, but the thickened substance hard- ened with difficulty. Therefore, heaven existed first; the earth was fixed after- ward. Subsequently deity (kami) was born (umaru). Now, it is said that, "in the beginning of heaven and earth, the soil floated about like a fish floating on the top -or the water," etc. Evidently in the Kojiki we have the purely Japanese theory of creation, and in the Nihongi the same account, with Chinese philosophical ideas and terms added. In both, matter appears before mind, and the deities have no existence before matter. 44 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Proceeding now to the work of creation, the kami separated the primordial substance into the five elements wood, fire, metal, earth, and water and ordained to each its properties and combination. As yet, the division into sexes had not taken place. In [Chinese] philo- sophical language, the male (yo) and female (in) principles that per- vade all things had not yet appeared. The first manifestation of the male essence was Izanagi ; of the female, Izanami. Standing togeth- er on the floating bridge of heaven, the male plunged his jeweled fal- chion, or spear, into the unstable waters beneath them, and withdraw- ing it, the trickling drops formed an island, upon which they descend- ed. The creative pair, or divine man and woman, designing to make this island a pillar for a continent, separated the male to the left, the female to the right to make a journey round the island. At their meeting, the female spirit spoke first, " How joyful to meet a lovely man !" The male spirit, offended that the first use of the tongue had been by a woman, required the circuit to be repeated. On their second meeting, the man cried out, "How joyful to meet a lovely woman !" They were the first couple ; and this was the beginning of the art of love, and of the human race. The island (Awaji), with seven other large, and many thousand small ones, became the Everlast- ing Great Japan.* At Izanami's first conception, the female essence * The various names of Japan which I have found in the native literature, or have heard in colloquial use, are as follows : 1. Nihon, or Nippon, compounded of the words m, nichi, or nitsu (sun, day) and hon (root, origin, beginning); hence Sunrise, Dawn, or Dayspring. Japan is the foreigner's corruption of the Chinese Ji-pun, or Ji-puan. The name may have been given by the Chinese or Coreans to the land lying east of them, whence the sun rose, or by the conquerors com- ing from Manchuria, by way of Corea, eastward. Or, it may have arisen anciently among the natives of the western provinces of Japan. It is found in Chinese books from the time of the Tang dynasty (618-905 A.D.). 2. Dai Nihon Koku (Country of Great Japan). 3. Yashima no Kuni (Country of the Eight Great Islands), created by Izanagi and Izanami. 4. Onogorojima (Island of the Con- gealed Drops), which fell from the jeweled falchion or spear of Izanagi. 5. Shiki Shima (Outspread Islands), a name common in poetry, and referring to their be- ing spread out like stepping-stones in a Japanese garden. 6. Toyohara Akitsu Kuni (Country between Heaven and Earth). 7. Toyoakitsu Kuni (Dragon-fly- shaped Country), from the resemblance to this insect with its wings outspread. 8. Toyo Ashiwara Kuni (Fertile Plain of Sweet Flags). 9. Yamato no Kuni (Land of Great Peace). The same characters are read Wa Koku by the Chinese, and sometimes by the Japanese. 10. Fuso Koku. Fuso is the name of a tree which is fabled to petrify ; hence, an emblem of national stability. 11. On Koku (Honorable Country). 12. Shin Koku (Land of the Holy Spirits). 13. Kami no Kuni (The God - land, or Land of the Gods). 14. Horai no Kuni (Land of the Elixir of Immortality), an allusion to the legend that a Chinese courtier came to JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 45 in being more powerful, a female child was born, greatly to the cha- grin of the father, who wished for male offspring. The child was named Ama-terasii o mikami, or, the Heaven - illuminating Goddess. She shone beautifully, and lighted the heavens and the earth. Her father, therefore, transferred her from earth to heaven, and gave her the ethereal realm to rule over. At this time the earth was close to heaven, and the goddess easily mounted the pillar, on which heaven rested, to her kingdom. The second child was also a female, and was called Tsuki no kami, and became the Goddess of the Moon. The third child, Hiruko (leech), was a male, but not well formed. When three years old, being still unable to stand, his parents made an ark of camphor-wood, and set him adrift at sea. He became the first fisherman, and was the God of the Sea and of Storms. After two girls and a cripple had thus been born, the father was de- lighted with the next fruit of his spouse, a fine boy, whom they named Sosanoo no mikoto. Of him they entertained the highest hopes. He grew up, however, to be a most mischievous fellow, killing people, pulling up their trees, and trampling down their fields. He grew worse as he grew up. He was made ruler over the blue sea ; but he never kept his kingdom in order. He let his beard grow down over his bosom. He cried constantly ; and the land became a desert, the rivers and seas dried up, arid human beings died in great numbers. His father, inquiring the reason of his surly behavior, was told that he wished to go to his mother, who was in the region under the earth. He then made his son ruler over the kingdom of night. The august scape-grace still continued his pranks, unable to refrain from mischief. One day, after his sister, the Sun-goddess, had planted a field with rice, he turned a wild horse loose, which trampled down and spoiled all her work. Again, having built a store-house for the new rice, he defiled it so that it could not be used. At another time, his sister was sitting at her loom, weaving. Sosanoo, having skinned a live horse by draw- ing its skin off from the tail to the head, flung the reeking hide over the loom, and the carcass in the room. The goddess was so frightened that she hurt herself with the shuttle, and, in her wrath, retired to a Japan in &:arch of the elixir of immortality. He brought a troop of young men and maidens with him. Dying in Japan, he was buried in Kii, and the young couples, marrying, colonized Japan. 15. Ko Koku (The Mikado's Empire), Land ruled by a Theocratic Dynasty. 16. Tei Koku Nihon (The Empire ruled by a Theocratic Dynasty, or, Japan, the Empire governed by Divine Rulers). 4 46 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. cave, closing the mouth with a large rock. Heaven, earth, and the four quarters became enshrouded in darkness, and the distinction be- tween day and night ceased. Some of the turbulent and ill-mannered gods took advantage of the darkness to make a noise like the buzzing of flies, and the confusion was dreadful. Then all the gods (eight hundred thousand in number) assembled on the heavenly river-plain of Yasu, to discuss what was to be done to appease the anger of the great goddess. The wisest of the gods was intrusted with the charge of thinking out a stratagem to entice her forth. The main part of the plan was to make an image of the self-imprisoned goddess, which was to be more beautiful than herself, and thus excite at once her curiosity and her jealousy. It was to be a round mirror like the sun. A large rock from near the source of the river was taken to form an anvil. To make the bellows, they took the whole skin of a deer, and, with iron from the mines of heaven, the blacksmith-god made two mirrors, which successively failed to please the gods, being too small. The third was large and beautiful, like the sun. The heavenly artisans now prepared to make the finest clothes and jewelry, and a splendid palace for the Sun-goddess, when she should come out. Two gods planted the paper-mulberry and hemp, and pre- pared bark and fibre ; while three other gods wove them into coarse, striped, and fine cloth, to deck her dainty limbs. Two gods, the first carpenters, dug holes in the ground with a spade, erected posts, and built a palace. Another deity, the first jeweler, made a string of ma- gatama (curved jewels), the material for a necklace, hair-pins, and bracelets. Two other gods held in their hands the sacred wands, called tama-gushi. Two gods were then appointed to find out, by divination, whether the goddess was likely to appear. They caught a buck, tore out a bone from one of its forelegs, and set it free again. The bone was placed in a fire of cherry-bark, and the crack produced by the heat in the blade of the bone was considered a satisfactory omen. A sakaki-tree was then pulled up by the roots. To the upper branches was hung the necklace of jewels, to the middle was attached the mirror, and from the lower branches depended the coarse and fine cloth. This was called a gohei. A large number of perpetually crow- ing cocks was obtained from (what had been) the region of perpetual day. These irrepressible chanticleers were set before the cave, and be- gan to crow lustily in concert. The God of Invincibly Strong Hands JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 47 was placed in concealment near the rocky door, ready to pull the god- dess out at her first peering forth. A goddess with a countenance of heavenly glossiness, named Uzume, was appointed manager of the dance. She first bound up her flowing sleeves close to her body, un- der the armpits, by a creeping plant, called masaki, and donned a head- dress made of long moss. While she blew a bamboo tube, with holes pierced in it between the joints, the other deities kept time to the mu- sic with two flat, hard pieces of wood, which they clapped together. Another kami took six bows, and, from the long moss hanging from the pine-trees on the high hills, she strung the bows, and made the harp called the koto. His son made music on this instrument by drawing across the strings grass and rushes, which he held in both hands. Bonfires were now lighted before the door of the cavern, and the orchestra of fifes, drums, cymbals, and harp began. The goddess Uzume now mounted the circular box, having a baton of twigs of bamboo grass in one hand, with a spear of bamboo twined with grass, on which small bells tinkled. As she danced, the drum-like box pre- pared for her resounded, and she, becoming possessed by a spirit of folly, sung a song in verses of six syllables each, which some inter- pret as the numerals, 1, 2, 3, 4, 5, 6, 7, 8, 9, 10, 100, 1000, 10,000. The goddess, as she danced, loosened her dress, exposing her nude charms. All this was caused by the spirit which possessed her. It so excited the mirth of the gods that they laughed so loudly that heaven shook. The song and its interpretations are : " Hito, futa, miyo One, two, three, four, Itsu, muyu, nana Five, six, seven, Ya, koko-no, tari Eight, nine, ten, Momo, chi, yorodzu Hundred, thousand, ten thousand." " Ye gods, behold the cavern doors ! Majesty appears hurra !. Our hearts are quite satisfied ; Behold my charms." or, "Gods, behold the door! Lo ! the majesty of the goddess ! Shall we not be filled with rapture ? Are not my charms excellent?" The Si.n-goddess within, unable to account for the ill-timed mirth, since heaven and earth were in darkness, rose, and approaching the rocky door, listened to the honeyed words of one of the gods, who was praising her. Impelled further by curiosity, she opened the 48 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE, door slightly, and asked why Uzume danced and the gods laughed? Uzume replied, " I dance because there is an honorable deity who sur- passes your glory." As she said thh, the exceedingly beauteous god Futodaraa showed the mirror. The Sun-goddess within, astonished at her own loveliness, which she now first beheld in the reflection, step- ped out a little further to gratify her curiosity. The God of Inviuci- bly Strong Hands, who stood concealed, pulled the rock door open, caught her by the hand, and dragged her forth. The wisest of the gods, who superintended the whole proceedings, took a rope of twist- ed rice-straw, passed it behind her, and said, " Do not go behind this." They then removed the Sun -goddess to her new palace, and put a straw rope around it to keep off evil gods. Her wicked brother was punished by having each particular hair of his head pulled out, and his finger and toe nails extracted. He was then banished. Izanami's fifth child, the last in whose conception the two gods shared, was a son, called the God of Wild Fire. In bringing him forth the goddess suffered great pain ; and from the matter which she vomited in her agony sprung the God and Goddess of Metal. She aft- erward created the gods of Clay and Fresh Water, who were to pacify the God of Fire when inclined to be turbulent. Izanami had enjoined her consort not to look at her during her retirement, but he disre- garded her wish. She fled from him, and departed to the nether re- gions. Izanagi, incensed at the God of Fire, clove him in three pieces with his sword. From these fragments sprung the gods of Thunder, of Mountains, and of Rain. He then descended into the region of night to induce Izanami to come back to the earth. There he met his consort, who would not return. He found the region to be one of perpetual and indescribable foulness, and, before he left, he saw the body of his wife had become a mass of putrefaction. Escaping into the upper world, he washed himself in the sea, and, in the act of escape and purification, many gods were created. According to one version, Amaterasti was produced out of his left, eye, and Sosanoo out of his nose. Those deities created out of the filth from which he cleansed himself became the wicked gods, who now war against the good gods and trouble mankind. The God of Clay and the Goddess of Fresh Water married. Their offspring was Naka musubi. From his head grew the mulberry and silk-worm, and from his navel sprung the five cereals, rice, wheat, beans, millet, and sorghum. Another legend, changing the sex of Sosanoo, says the Sun-goddess spoke to Sosanoo (the Moon-goddess), who reigned jointly with her JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 49 over the high plain of heaven, and said, " I have heard that there is a food-possessing goddess in the central country of luxuriant reedy moors (Japan). Go and see." Descending from heaven, he came to the august abode of the Goddess of Food, and asked for refreshment. The goddess, creating various forms of food, such as boiled rice from the land, fish from the sea, beasts, with coarse and fine hair, from the hills, set them on a banqueting-table before Sosanoo, who, enraged at the manner of the creation of the food, killed her. Reporting the matter in heaven, Amaterasu was angry at Sosanoo, and degraded her (the Moon-goddess) from joint rule, and condemned her to appear only at night, while she, the Sun-goddess, slept. Ama- terasu then sent a messenger the second time to see whether the Food-goddess was really dead. This was found to be the case. Out of the dead body were growing, millet on the forehead; silk-worms and a mulberry-tree on the eyebrows ; grass on the eyes ; on the belly, rice, barley, and large and small beans. The head finally changed into a cow and horse. The messenger took them all, and presented them to Amaterasu. The Sun -goddess rejoiced, and ordained that these should be the food of human beings, setting apart rice as the seed of the watery fields, and the other cereals as the seed of the dry fields. She appointed lords of the villages of heaven, and began for the first time to plant the rice-seeds. In the autumn the drooping ears ripened in luxuriant abundance. She planted the mulberry-trees on the fragrant hills of heaven, and rearing silk-worms, and chewing cocoons in her mouth, spun thread. Thus began the arts of agricult- ure, silk-worm rearing, and weaving. When Sosanoo was in banishment, there was a huge eight-headed dragon that had devastated the land and eaten up all the fair virgins. Sosanoo enticed the monster to partake of an intoxicating liquor set in eight jars, and then slew him while in stupor. In the tail of the dragon he found a sword of marvelous temper, which he presented to Amaterasu. This sword, called " Cloud-cluster," afterward became one of the three sacred emblems constituting the regalia of the Jap- anese sovereigns. In these last days of commerce, Sosanoo's exploit is pictured on the national paper money. lie is also said to have in- vented poetry. Being as irregularly amorous as the Jupiter of anoth- er mythology, he was the father of many children by various mothers. One of the most illustrious of his offspring was Daikoku, now wor- shiped in every household as the God of Fortune. In the later stages of the mythology, heaven and earth are found peopled with myriads 50 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. of kami, some of whom have inhabited heaven from the beginning, while those on the earth have been ruling or contending together from an indefinite period. Finally, before ushering in the third or final stage of the mythical history, there are general war and confu- sion among the gods on earth, and Amaterasu resolves to bring order out of the troubles, and to subdue and develop the land for herself. She desired to make a son of her own a ruler over the terrestrial world. One had been produced from her necklace, called Oshi-ho- rai no mikoto, who married Tamayori hime no mikoto, one of the granddaughters of Izanagi and Izanami. Their offspring w r as Ninigi no mikoto. After much delay, caused by the dispatch and failure of envoys to the gods of the earth, he prepared to descend from heaven to his realm on earth. The Sun -goddess gave her grandson various treasures, chief of which were the mirror, emblem of her own soul, and now worshiped at Ise, the sword Cloud-cluster, taken by Sosanoo from the dragon's tail, and a stone or seal. Concerning the mirror she said, " Look upon this mirror as my spirit ; keep it in the same house and on the same floor with yourself, and worship it as if you were worshiping my actual presence." Another version of this divine investiture is given in these words : " For centuries upon centuries shall thy followers rule this kingdom. Herewith receive from me the succession and the three crown talis- mans. Should you at any future time desire to see me, look in this mirror. Govern this country with the pure lustre that radiates from its surface. Deal with thy subjects with the gentleness which the smooth rounding of the stone typifies. Combat the enemies of thy kingdom with this sword, and slay them on the edge of it." Accompanied by a number of inferior gods of both sexes, he de- scended on the floating bridge of heaven, on which the first pair had stood when separating the dry land from the water, to the mountain of Kirishima, between Hiuga and Ozumi, in Kiushiu. After his de- scent, the sun and earth, which had already receded from each other to a considerable distance, became further separated, and communica- tion by the floating bridge of heaven ceased. According to the com- mentators on the sacred books, as Japan lay directly opposite to the sun when it separated from the earth, it is clear (to a devout Japanese) that Japan lies on the summit of the globe. As it was created first, it is especially the Land of the Gods, the Holy Land, the Country of the Divine Spirits. All other countries were formed later by the spontaneous consolidation of the foam and mud of the sea. All for- JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 51 eign countries were of course created by the power of the heavenly gods, but they were not begotten by Izanagi and Izanami, nor did they give birth to the Sun-goddess, which is the cause of their in- feriority. Japan is superior to all the world for the reasons given above. The traditions current in other countries as to the origin of the world are of course incorrect, since, being so far from the sources of truth, they can not be accurate, and must be greatly distorted. From the fact of the divine descent of the Japanese people proceeds their immeasurable superiority to the natives of other countries in courage and intelligence. This opinion, long held by Japanese in general, still lingers among the fanatical Shinto scholars, and helps to explain the intense hatred and contempt manifested toward foreigners as late as within the last decade. Ninigi no mikoto descended on Kirishima yama, and was received with due honors by one of the kami of the place. He had a son, who lived five hundred and eighty years. This son married a sea-monster, who appeared to him in the form of a woman, and by her he had a son, who became ruler, and was succeeded by a son born of an aunt. Ninigi, the heavenly descendant, was thus the great-grandfather of Jimmu Tenno, the first emperor of Japan. It is not easy to weave into a continuous and consistent whole the various versions of the Japanese accounts of creation and the acts of the gods, or to be always safe in deciding their origin, sex, or relations to each other ; for these spirits act like Milton's, and " as they please, they limb themselves." These myths arising among the primitive Japanese people of various localities, who never attempted to formulate them, are frequently at hopeless variance with each other ; and the in- genuity and ability of the learned native commentators on the sacred books, especially the Nihongi and Kojiki, are exercised to the highest degree to reconcile them. One author devotes twenty volumes of comment to two of the text of the Kojiki in these earnest efforts, making his works a rich mine to the student of Japanese antiquities. Translated into English, in the spirit of a devout Japanese, an exalted Biblical or Miltonic style should be used. Mr. Aston thus renders a passage from the Nakatomi no harai, one of the most ancient monuments of the language, describing the descent of the god Ninigi to the earth (Japan) : " They caused him to thrust from him heaven's eternal throne, to fling open heaven's eternal doors, to cleave with might his way from out heaven's many- piled clouds, and then to descend from heaven." 52 THE MIKADO'S EMPIEK A literal, or even free, translation into plain English could not, however, be made in a book to be read, unexpurgated, in the family circle. Many physiological details, and not a few references probably, pure to the native pure, would not be suffered by the tastes or moral codes in vogue among the mass of readers in Europe or America. Like the mythology of Greece, that of Japan is full of beauty, pathos, poetic fancy, charming story, and valorous exploit. Like that, it forms the soil of the national art, whether expressed in bronze, porcelain, colors ; or poetry, song, picture, the dance, pantomime, romance, sym- bolism ; or the aesthetics of religion. In spite of Buddhism, rationalism, and skeptical philosophy, it has entered as fully into the life and art and faith of the people of Japan as the mythology of the Aryan nations has entered into the life and art of Europe. Like that of the nations classic to us, the Japanese mythology, when criticised in the light of morals, and as divorced from art, looked at by one of alien clime, race, and faith, contains much that is hideous, absurd, impure, and even revolting. Judged as the growth and creation of the imagination, faith, and intellect of the primitive inhabitants of Japan, influenced by natural surroundings, it is a faithful mirror of their country, and condition and character, before these were greatly modified by outside religion or philoso- phy. Judged as a religious influence upon the descendants of the an- cient Nihonese the Japanese, as we know them it may be fairly held responsible for much of the peculiar moral traits of their charac- ter, both good and evil. The Japanese mythology is the doctrinal ba- sis of their ancient and indigenous religion, called Kami no michi, or Shinto (way or doctrine of the gods, or, by literal rendering, theology). One of the greatest pleasures to a student of Japanese art, antiqui- ties, and the life as seen in the Japan of to-day, is to discover the sur- vivals of primitive culture among the natives, or to trace in their cus- toms the fashions and ceremonies current tens of centuries ago, whose genesis is to be sought in the age of the gods. Beneath the poetic and mythical costume are many beautiful truths. One of the many Japanese rationalistic writers explains the hiding of Amaterasu in the cave as an eclipse of the sun. Ebisu, the third child of the first pair, is now worshiped as the God of Daily Food, fish being the staple of Japanese diet. He is usually represented as a jolly angler, with a red fish (tai) under one fat arm, and a rod and line under the other. One need not go far from Kioto to find the identical spots of common earth which the fertile imagination of JAPANESE MYTHOLOGY. 53 the children of Nippon has transfigured into celestial regions. Thus, the prototype of " the dry bed of the river Arne no yasu " is now to be seen in front of the city of Kioto, where the people still gather for pleasure or public ceremony. The " land of roots," to which Sosanoo was banished, is a region evidently situated a few miles north-west of Kioto. The dancing of Suzume before the cavern is imitated in the pantomimic dance still seen in every Japanese village and city street. The mirror made from iron in the mines of heaven by the Blacksmith*, god was the original of the burnished disks before which the Japanese beauty of to-day, sitting for hours on knee and heels, and nude to the waist, heightens her charms. A mask of Suzume, representing the laughing face of a fat girl, with narrow forehead, having the imperial spots of sable, and with black hair in rifts on her forehead, cheeks puffed out, and dimpled chin, adorns the walls of many a modern Jap- anese house, and notably on certain festival days, and on their many occasions of mirth. The stranger, ignorant of its symbolic import, could, without entering the palace, find its prototype in five minutes, by looking around him, from one of the jolly fat girls at the well or the rice-bucket. The magatama jewels, curved and perforated pieces of soap-stone occasionally dug up in various parts of Japan, show the work of the finger of man, and ancient pictures depict the chiefs of tribes decked with these adornments. In the preparations made to attract forth the Sun-goddess, we see the origin of the arts of music by wind and stringed instruments, dancing, divination, adornment, weav- ing, and carpentry. To this day, when the Japanese female is about to sweep, draw water, or perform household duties, she binds up her sleeves to her armpits, with a string twisted over her shoulders, like the sleeve - binder of the dancing goddess. Before Shinto shrines, trees sacred to the kami, at New-year's-day before gates and doors, and often in children's plays, one sees stretched the twisted ropes of rice-straw. In the month of August especially, but often at the fairs, festivals, and on holidays, the wand of waving jewels, made by sus- pending colored paper and trinkets to a branch of bamboo, and some- thing like a Christmas-tree, is a frequent sight. The gohei is still the characteristic emblem seen on a Shinto shrine. All these relics, triv- ial and void of meaning to the hasty tourist, or the alien, whose only motive for dwelling on the island is purely sordid, are, in the eye of the native, and the intelligent foreigner, ancient, sacred, and productive of innocent joy, and to the latter, sources of fresh surprise and enjoy- ment of a people in themselves intensely interesting. 54 THE MIKADO'S V. THE TWILIGHT OF FABLE. BETWEEN the long night of the unknown ages that preceded the advent of the conquerors, and the morning of what may be called real history, there lies the twilight of mythology and fabulous narration. The mythology of Nippon, though in essence Chinese, is Japanese in form and coloring, and bears the true flavor of the soil from whence it sprung. The patriotic native or the devout Shintoist may accept the statements of the Kojiki as genuine history ; but in the cold, clear eye of an alien they are the inventions of men shaped to ex- alt the imperial family. They are a living and luxurious growth of fancy around the ruins of facts that in the slow decay of time have lost the shape by which recognition is possible. Chinese history does indeed, at certain points, corroborate what the Japanese traditions de- clare, and thus gives us some sure light ; but for a clear understand- ing of the period antedating the second century of the Christian era, the native mythology and the fabulous narrations of the Kojiki are but as moonlight. Jimmu Tenno, the first mikado, was the fifth in descent from the Sun-goddess. His original name was Kan Yamato Iware Hiko no mikoto. The title Jimmu Tenno, meaning " spirit of war," was post- humously applied to him many centuries afterward. When the Ko- jiki was compiled, pure Japanese names only were in use. Hence, in that book we meet with many very long quaint names and titles which, when written in the Chinese equivalents, are greatly abbrevi- ated. The introduction of the written characters of China at a later period enabled the Japanese to express almost all their own words, whether names, objects, or abstract ideas, in Chinese as well as Japa- nese. Thus, in the literature of Japan two languages exist side by side, or imbedded in each other. This applies to the words only. Japanese syntax, being incoercible, has preserved itself almost entirely unchanged. The Kojiki states that Jimmu was fifty years old when he set out THE TWILIGHT OF FABLE. 55 upon his conquests. He was accompanied by his brothers and a few retainers, all of whom are spoken of as kami, or gods. The coun- try of Japan was already populated by an aboriginal people dwelling in villages, each under a head-man, and it is interesting to notice how the inventors of the KojiJci account for their origin. They declare, and the Japanese popularly believe, that these aboriginal savages were the progeny of the same gods (Izanagi and Izanami) from whom Jim- mu sprung ; but they were wicked, while Jimmu was righteous. The interpretation doubtless is, that a band of foreign invaders land- ed in Hiuga, in Kiushiu, or they were perhaps colonists, who had oc- cupied this part of the country for some time previous. The territory of Hiuga could never satisfy a restless, warlike people. It is mount- ainous, volcanic, and one of the least productive parts of Japan. At the foot of the famous mountain of Kirishima, which lies on the boundary between Hiuga and Ozumi, is the spot where Jimmu re- sided, and whence he took his departure. Izanagi and Izanami first, and afterward Ninigi, the fourth ancestor of Jimmu, had descended from this same height to the earth. Every Japanese child who lives within sight of this mountain gazes with reverent wonder upon its summit, far above the sailing clouds and within the blue sky, believing that here the gods came down from heaven. The story of Jimmu's march is detailed in the Kojiki, and the nu- merous popular books based upon it. A great many wonderful creat- ures and men that resembled colossal spiders were encountered and overcome. Even wicked gods had to be fought or circumvented. His path was to Usa, in Buzen ; thence to Okada ; thence by ship through the windings of the Suwo Nada, a part of the Inland Sea,* * The " Inland Sea" (Se"to Uchi) is a name which has been given by foreigners, and adopted by the Japanese, who until modern times had no special name for it as a whole. Indeed, the whole system of Japanese geographical nomenclature proves that the generalizations made by foreigners were absent from their con- ceptions. The large bays have not a name which unifies all their parts and limbs into one body. The long rivers possess each, not one name, but many local ap- pellations along their length. The main island was nameless, so were Shikoku and Kiushiu for many centuries. Yezo, to the native, is a region, not an island. Even for the same street in a city a single name, as a rule, is not in use, each block receiving a name by itself. This was quite a natural proceeding when the universe, or "all beneath heaven," meant Japan. The Se"to Uchi has been in Jap- anese history what the Mediterranean was to the course of empire in Europe, due Allowance being made for proportions, both physical and moral. It extends near- ly east and west two hundred and forty miles, with a breadth varying from ten to 56 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. landing in Aki. Here lie built a palace, and remained seven years. He then went to the region of Bizen, and, after dwelling there eight years, he sailed to the East. The waves were very rough and rapid at the spot near the present site of Ozaka,* where he finally succeeded in landing, and he gave the spot the name Nami Haya (swift waves). This afterward became, in the colloquial, and in poetry, Naniwa. Hitherto the career of the invaders had been one of victory and easy conquest, but they now received their first repulse. After severe fighting, Jimmu was defeated, and one of his brothers was wounded. A council of war was held, and sacred ceremonies celebrated to dis- cover the cause of the defeat. The solemn verdict was that as chil- dren of the Sun -goddess they had acted with irreverence and pre- sumption in journeying in opposition to the course of the sun from west to east, instead of moving, as the sun moves, from east to west. Thereupon they resolved to turn to the south, and advance westward. Leaving the ill-omened shores, they coasted round the southern point thirty miles, with many narrow passages. It has six divisions (nada), taking their names from the provinces whose shores they wash. It contains avast num- ber of islands, but few known dangers, and has a sea-board of seven hundred miles, densely populated, abounding with safe and convenient anchorages, dotted with many large towns and provincial capitals and castled cities, and noted for the active trade of its inhabitants. It communicates with the Pacific by the chan- nels of Kii on the east, Bungo on the south, and by the Straits of Shimonoseki ("the Gibraltar of Japan"), half a mile wide, on the west. It can be navigated safely at all seasons of the year by day, and now, under ordinary circumstances, by night, thanks to the system of light-houses thoroughly equipped with the latest instruments of optical science, including dioptric and catoptric, fixed and revolv- ing, white and colored lights, in earthquake-proof towers, erected by English en- gineers in the service of the mikado's Government. The tides and currents of the Se*to Uchi are not as yet perfectly known, but are found to be regular at the east and west entrances, the tide-waves coming from the Pacific. In many parta they run with great velocity. The cut on page 57 shows one of these narrow passages where the eddying currents rush past a rock in mid-channel, scouring the shores, and leaving just enough room for the passage of a large steamer. A very destructive species of mollusk inhabits the Inland Sea, which perfo- rates timber, making holes one -third of an inch in diameter. Sailing-vessels bound to Nagasaki sometimes find it better in winter to work through the Inland Sea rather than to beat round Cape Chichakoif against the Kuro Shiwo. This lat- ter feat is so difficult that sailors are apt to drop the o from the Japanese name (Satano) of this cape (misaki) and turn it into an English or Hebrew word. Those who are trying to prove that the Japanese are the " lost tribes " might make one of their best arguments from this fact. Kaempfer, it may be stated, derived the Japanese, by rapid transit, from the Tower of Babel, across Siberia to the islands. * The spelling of Ozaka (accent on the 6) is in accordance with the require- ments of Japanese rules of orthography, and the usage of the people in Ozaka and Kioto. THE TWILIGHT OF FABLE. 57 of Kii, and landed at Arasaka. Here a peaceful triumph awaited them, for the chief surrendered, and presented Jimmu with a sword. A representation of this scene, engraved on steel, now adorns the green- back of one of the denominations of the national bank-notes issued in 1872. The steps of the conqueror were now bent toward Yamato. The mountain-passes were difficult, and the way unknown ; but by act of one of the gods, Michi no Omi no mikoto, who interposed for their guidance, a gigantic crow, having wings eight feet long, went before the host, and led the warriors into the rich land of Yamato. Here they were not permitted to rest, for the natives fought stoutly for their soil, A Narrow Passage iu the Inland Sea. On one occasion the clouds lowered, and thick darkness brooded over the battle-field, so that neither of the hosts could discern each other, and the conflict stayed. Suddenly the gloom was cleft by the descent from heaven of a bird like a hawk, which, hovering in a flood of golden effulgence, perched upon the bow of Jimmu. His adver- saries, dazzled to blindness by the awful light, fled in dismay. Jim- mu, being now complete victor, proceeded to make his permanent abode, and fixed the miako, or capital, at Kashiwabara, some miles distant from the present site of Kioto. Here he set up his govern- ment, and began to rule over all the lands which he had conquered. Peace wiis celebrated with rejoicings, and religious ceremonies of im- posing magnificence. He distributed rewards to his soldiers and offi- cers, and chose his chief captains to be rulers over provinces, appor- tioning them lands, to be held in return for military service. It will 58 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. be noticed that this primal form of general government was a species of feudalism. Such a political system was of the most rudimentary kind ; only a little better than the Council of the Six Nations of the Iroquois, or was similar to that of the Aztecs of Mexico. The country being now tranquilized, weapons were laid aside, and attention was given to the arts of peace. Among the first things ac- complished was the solemn deposit of the three sacred emblems mir- ror, sword, and ball in the palace. Sacrifices were offered to the Sun-goddess on Torimino yama. Jimmu married the princess Tatara, the most beautiful woman in Japan, and daughter of one of his captains. During his life-time his chief energies were spent in consolidating his power, and civilizing his subjects. Several rebellions had to be put down. After choosing an heir, he died, leaving three children, at the age of one hundred and twenty-seven years, according to the Nihongi, and of one hundred and thirty-seven, according to the Kojiki. It is by no means certain that Jimmu was a historical character. The only books describing him are but collections of myths and fa- bles, in which exists, perhaps, a mere skeleton of history. Even the Japanese writers, as, for instance, the author of a popular history (Dai Nihon Koku Kai Biaku Yuraii Ki\ interpret the narratives in a rationalistic manner. Thus, the " eight-headed serpents " in the Kojiki are explained to be persistent arch-rebels, or valorous enemies ; the " ground-spiders," to be rebels of lesser note ; and the " spider-pits or holes," the rebels' lurking - places. The gigantic crow, with wings eight feet long, that led the host into Yamato was probably, says the native writer, a famous captain whose name was Karasu (crow), who led the advance-guard into Yamato, with such valor, directness, and rapidity, that it seemed miraculous. The myth of ascribing the guid- ance of the army to a crow was probably invented later. A large number of the incidents related in the Kojiki have all the character- istics of the myth. Chinese tradition ascribes the peopling of Japan to the following causes : The grandfather (Taiko) of the first emperor (Buwo) of the Shu dynasty (thirty-seven emperors, eight hundred and seventy-two years, B.C. 1120-249) in China, having three sons, wished to bequeath his titles and estates to his youngest son, notwithstanding that law and custom required him to endow the eldest. The younger son re- fused to receive the inheritance ; but the elder, knowing that his father Taiko would persist in his determination, and unwilling to cause trour THE TWILIGHT OF FABLE. 59 ble, secretly left his father's house and dominions, and sailed away to the South of China. Thence he is supposed to have gone to Ja- pan and founded a colony in Hiuga. His name was Taihaku Ki. From this legend the Chinese frequently apply the name Kishi Koku, or " country of the Ki family," to Japan. AVhatever may be the actual facts, Jimmu Tennd is popularly be- lieved to have been a real person, and the first emperor of Japan. He is deified in the Shinto religion, and in thousands of shrines ded- icated to him the people worship his spirit. In the official list of mikados, he is named as the first. The reigning emperor refers to him as his ancestor from whom he claims unbroken descent. The 7th day of the Fourth month (April 7th) is fixed as the anniversary of his ascension to the throne, and that day is a national holiday, on which the iron-clad navy of modern Japan fires salutes, from Krupp and Armstrong guns, in his honor, and the military, in French uni forms, from Snider and Remington rifles, burn in memoriam powder. The era of Jimmu is the starting-point of Japanese chronology, and the year 1 of the Japanese era is that upon which he ascended the throne at Kashiwabara.* A large number of Japanese students and educated men who have been abroad, or who, though remaining at home, have shed their old beliefs, and imbibed the modern spirit of nihilism, regard Jimmu as a myth. The majority, however, cling to their old belief that the name Jimmu represents a historical verity, and hold it as the sheet-anchor of their shifting faith. A young Jap- anese, fresh from several years' residence in Europe, was recently ral- lied concerning his belief in the divinity of the mikado and in the truth of the Kojiki. His final answer was, "It is my duty to believe in them." * Dr. J. J. Hoffman, who has written the best Japanese grammar yet published, in expressing the exact date given in the Kojiki, in terms of the Julian style, says the 19th of February (660 B.C.) was the day of Jimmu' s ascension. Pro- fessor F. Kaiser has found out by calculation that at eight A.M. on that clay of the said year there was a new moon at the miako. " Therefore," says this gram- marian, leaping on the wings of his own logic to a tremendous conclusion, and settling down into assured satisfaction, "the correctness of the Japanese chro- nology may not be called in question." (See page 157, and note of "A Japanese Grammar," J. J. Hoffman, Leyden, 1868.) 60 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. VI. SUJIK, THE CIVILIZER. FROM the death of Jimmu Tenno to that of Kimmei, in whose reign Buddhism was introduced (A.D. 571), there were, according to the Dai Nikon Shi, thirty -one mikados. During this period of twelve hundred and thirty-six years, believed to be historic by most Japanese, the most interesting subjects to be noted are the reforms of Sujin Tenno, the military expeditions to Eastern Japan by Yamato Pake, the invasion of Corea by the Empress Jingu Kogo, and the in- troduction of Chinese civilization and of Buddhism. The Nihongi details the history and exploits of these ancient rulers with a minuteness and exactness of circumstance that are very sus- picious. It gives the precise birthdays and ages of the emperors, who in those days attained an incredible longevity. Takenouchi, the Japa- nese Methusaleh, lived to be over three hundred and fifty years old, and served as prime minister to five successive emperors. Twelve mikados lived to be over one hundred years old. One of them ruled one hundred and one years. The reigns of the first seventeen aver- aged over sixty-one years. From the seventeenth to the thirty-first, the average reign is little over twelve years. In the list there are many whose deeds, though exaggerated in the mirage of fable, are, in the main, most probably historic. Sujin, also called Shujin or Sunin (B.C. 97-30), was, according to the Dai Nikon Shi, a man of intense earnestness and piety. The traits of courage and energy which characterized his youth gave him in manhood signal fitness for his chosen task of elevating his people. He mourned over their wickedness, and called upon them to forsake their sins, and turn their minds to the worship of the gods. A great pestilence having broken out, and the people being still unrepentant, the pious monarch rose early in the morning, fasted, and purified his body with water, and called on the kami to stay the plague. After solemn public worship the gods answered him, and the plague abated. A revival of religious feeling and worship followed. In his reign dates the building of special shrines for the adoration of the gods. SUJIN, THE CIVILIZES. 61 Hitherto the sacred ceremonies had been celebrated in the open air. Further, the three holy regalia (mirror, sword, and ball) had hith- erto been kept in the palace of the mikado. It was believed that the efficacy of the spirit was so great that the mikado dwelling with the spirit was, as it were, equal to a god. These three emblems had been placed within the palace, that it might be said that where they were dwelt the divine power. A rebellion having broken out during his reign, he was led to believe that this was a mark of the disfavor of the gods, and in consequence of his keeping the emblems under his own roof. Reverencing the majesty of the divine symbols, and fearing that they might be defiled by too close proximity to his car- nal body, he removed them from his dwelling, and dedicated them in a temple erected for the purpose at Kasanui, a village in Yamato. He appointed his own daughter priestess of the shrine and custodian of the symbols a custom which has continued to the present time. The shrines of TJji, in Ise, which now hold these precious relics of the divine age, are always in charge of a virgin princess of imperial blood. Later, being warned by the goddess Amaterasu to do so, she carried the mirror from province to province, seeking a suitable lo- cality ; but having grown old in their search, Yamato hime* continued it, and finally, after many changes, they were deposited in their pres- ent place A.D. 4. Copies of the mirror and sword were, however, made by Sujin, and placed in a separate building within the palace called the "place of reverence." This was the origin of the chapel still connected with the mikado's imperial palace. From the most early time the dwelling and surroundings of the mi- kado were characterized by the most austere simplicity, quite like the Shinto temples themselves, and the name miya was applied to both. In imagining the imperial palace in Japan, the reader on this side the Pacific must dissolve the view projected on his mind at the mention of the term " palace." Little of the stateliness of architecture or the splendor and magnificence of the interior of a European palace belongs to the Japanese imperial residence. A simple structure, larger than an ordinary first-class dwelling, but quite like a temple in outward appear- ance, and destitute of all meretricious or artistic ornamentation within, marks the presence of royalty, or semi-divinity, in Japan. Even in Ki- oto, for centuries, the palace, except for its size and slightly greater el- * The suffix himt after female proper names means "princess." It is still used by the ladies of the imperial family, and by the daughters of the court nobles. Maye, with wo, was also added to names of ladies of rank. 62 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. evation, could not be distinguished from the residences of the nobles, or from a temple. All this was in keeping with the sacredness of the personage enshrined within. For vain mortals, sprung from inferior or wicked gods, for upstart generals, or low traders bloated with wealth, luxury and display were quite seemly. Divinity needed no material show. The circumstances and attributes of deity were enough. The indulgence in gaudy display was opposed to the attributes and char- acter of the living representative of the Heavenly Line. This rigid simplicity was carried out even after death. In striking contrast with the royal burial customs of the nations of Asia are those of Japan. The Mikado's Method of Travel in very Ancient Times. All over the East, the tombs of dead dynasties are edifices of all oth- ers the most magnificent. The durable splendor of the homes of the departed far exceed that of the palaces of the living. But in Japan, in place of the gorgeous mausoleums and the colossal masterpieces of mortuary architecture of continental Asia, the sepulchres of the mika- dos seem monuments of chaste poverty. Nearly all of the imperial tombs are within the three provinces of Yamato, Yamashiro, and Set- tsu. A simple base of stone, surmounted by a low shaft, set upon a hillock, surrounded by a trench, and inclosed with a neat railing of timber, marks the resting-places of the dead emperors. All this is in accordance with the precepts of Shinto. SVJIN, THE CIVILIZER. 63 The whole life of Sujin was one long effort to civilize his half- savage subjects. He ordained certain days when persons of both sexes must lay aside their regular employment, and give the Govern- ment his or her quantum of labor. The term for the labor of the men means "bow-point," and of the women "hand-point," implying that in the one case military service was the chief requirement, and in the other that of the loom or the field. He endeavored, in or- der to secure just taxation, to inaugurate a regular periodical census, and to reform the methods of dividing and recording time.* He encouraged the building of boats, in order to increase the means of transportation, promote commerce, and to bring the people at the extremities of the country in contact with each other. Communi- cation between Corea and Kiushiu was rendered not only possible, but promised to be regular and profitable. We read that, during his reign, an envoy, bringing presents, arrived from Mimana, in Co- rea, B.C. 33. Six years later, it is recorded that the prince, a chief of Shiraki, in Corea, came to Japan to live. It is evident that these Co- reans would tell much of what they had seen in their own country, and that many useful ideas and appliances would be introduced under the patronage of this enlightened monarch. Sujin may be also called the father of Japanese agriculture, since he encouraged it by edict and example, ordering canals to be dug, water-courses provided, and irriga- tion to be extensively carried on. Water is the first necessity of the rice-farmer of Asia. It is to him as precious a commodity as it is to the miner of California. Rice must be sown, transplanted, and grown under water. Hence, in a country where this cereal is the staple crop, immense areas of irrigated fields are necessary. One of the unique forms of theft in rice-countries, which, in popular judgment, equals in vi The twenty-four divisions of the solar year (according to the lunar calendar), by which the Japanese farmers have for centuries regulated their labors, are as follows : ' Beginning of Spring" February 3. 1 Rain-water " February 19. 'Awakening of the Insects". . .March 8. 1 Middle of the Spring" March 20. * Clear Weather" April 5. ' Seed Rain" April 20. 'Beginning of Summer" May 5. 1 Little Plenty" May 20. 1 Transplanting the Rice" June 5. ' Height of the Summer" June 21. ' Little Heat". . . .'. July 6. "Great Heat" July 23. 4 Beginning of Autumn " August 7. 1 Local Heat" August 23. 1 White Dew " September 8. 1 Middle of Autumn " September 23. 'Cold Dew" October S. 1 Fall of Hoar-frost" October 23. ' Beginning of Winter" November 7. ' Little Snow ". November 22. ' Great Snow" December 7. ' Height of the Winter" December 22. 1 Little Frost". January 6. "Great Frost" January 20. 64 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. iniquity the stealing of ore at the mines, or horses on the prairies, is the drawing off water from a neighbor's field. In those old rude times, the Japanese water-thief, when detected, received but little more mercy than the horse-robber in the West. The immense labor neces- sary to obtain the requisite water-supply can only be appreciated by one who has studied the flumes of California, the tanks of India, or the various appliances in Southern Asia. In Japan, it is very com- mon to terrace, with great labor, the mountain gulches, and utilize the stream in irrigating the platforms, thus changing a noisy, foaming stream into a silent and useful servant. In many cases, the water is led for miles along artificial canals, or ditches, to the fertile soil which needs it. On flat lands, at the base of mountains, huge reservoirs are excavated, and tapped as often as desired. In the bosom of the Ha- kone Mountains, between Sagami and Suruga, is a deep lake of pure cold water, over five thousand feet above the sea-level. On the plain below are few or no natural streams. Centuries ago, but long after Sujin's time, the mountain wall was breached and tunneled by man- ual labor, and now through the rocky sluices flows a flood sufficient to enrich the millions of acres of Suruga province. The work begun by Sujin was followed up vigorously by his successor, as we read that, in the year A.D. 6, a proclamation was issued ordering canals and sluices to be dug in over eight hundred places. The emperor had two sons, whom he loved equally. Unable to de- termine which of them should succeed him, he one day told them to tell him their dreams the next morning, and he should decide the issue by interpretation. The young princes accordingly washed their bodies, changed their garments, and slept. Next day the elder son said, " I dreamed that I climbed up a mountain, and, facing the east, I cut with the sword and thrust with the spear eight times." The younger said, " I climbed the same mountain, and, stretching snares of cords on every side, tried to catch the sparrows that destroy the grain." The emperor then interpreted the dream, " You, my son," said he to the elder, " looked in one direction. You will go to the East, and become its governor." " You, my son," said he to the younger, "looked in every direction. You will govern on all sides. You will become my heir." It happened as the father had said. The younger became emperor, and a peaceful ruler. The elder became the governor of, and a warrior in, the East. The story is interesting as illustrating the method of succession to the throne. Usually it was by primogeniture, but often it depended SUJIN, THE CIVILIZES. 65 upon the will or whim of the father, the councils of his chiefs, or the intrigues of courtiers. The energies of this pious mikado were further exerted in devising and executing a national military system, whereby his peaceably dis- posed subjects could be protected and the extremities of his domin- ions extended. The eastern and northern frontiers were exposed to the assaults of the wild tribes of Ainos who were yet unsubdued. Between the peaceful agricultural inhabitants who owned the sway of the ruler in Yamato, and the untamed savages who gloried in their freedom, a continual border-war existed. The military division of the empire into four departments was made, and a shogun, or general, was appointed over each. These departments were the To, Nan, and Sai kai do, and Hokurokudo, or the East, South, and West-sea Circuits, and the Northern-land Circuit. The strict division of the empire into c?o, or circuits, according with the natural features and partitions of the country, which is still recognized, was of later time ; but already, B.C. 25, it seems to have been foreshadowed by Sujin. One of these shoguns, or generals, named Obiko, who was assigned to the Northern Department, lying north of Yamato and along the west coast, holds a high place of renown among the long list of famous Japanese warriors. It is said that when, just after he had started to join his command, he heard of a conspiracy against the mikado, returning quickly, he killed the traitor, restored order, and then resumed his duties in the camp at the North. His son held com- mand in the East. In the following reign, it is written that military arsenals and magazines were established, so that weapons and rations were ready at any moment for a military expedition to repel incursions from the wild tribes on the border, or to suppress insurrections within the pale of the empire. The half-subdued inhabitants in the extremes of the realm needed constant watching, and seem to have been as restless and treacherous as the Indians on our own frontiers. The whole history of the extension and development of the mikado's em- pire is one of war and blood, rivaling, if not exceeding, that of our own country in its early struggles with the Indians. This constant military action and life in the camp resulted, in the course of time, in the creation of a powerful and numerous military class, who made war professional and hereditary. It developed that military genius and character which so distinguish the modern Japanese, and mark them in such strong contrast with other nations of Eastern Asia. The long- sustained military operations also served to consolidate the empire. 66 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. In these ancient days, however, there was no regular army, no special class of warriors, as in later times. Until the eighth century, the armies were extemporized from the fanners and people generally, as occasion demanded. The war over, they returned to their daily em- ployments. The mikados were military chiefs, and led their armies, or gave to their sons or near relatives only, the charge of expeditions. It is not my purpose to follow in detail the long series of battles, Imperial or Japanese Government Seal for Public Business. The Chrysanthemum. or even court conspiracies and intrigues, which fill the Japanese his- tories, and lead some readers to suppose that war was the normal con- dition of the palace and empire. I prefer to show the condition of the people, their methods of life, customs, ideas, and beliefs. Al- though wars without and intrigues within were frequent, these by no means made up the life of the nation. Peace had its victories, no less renowned than those of war. A study of the life of the people, showing their progress from barbarism to civilization, will, I think, be of more interest to the reader than details concerning imperial rebels, poisoners, or stabbers. In the Japanese histories, and in official language, literature, and eti- quette of later days, there exists the conception of two great spheres of activity and of two kinds of transactions, requiring two methods of SUJIN, THE CIVILIZES. 67 treatment. They are the nai and guai, the inner and the outer, the in- terior and exterior of the palace, or the throne and the empire. Thus the Nikon Guai Shi, by Rai Sanyo, or " External History of Japan," treats of the events, chiefly military, outside the palace. His other work, Nihon Seiki, treats rather of the affairs of the " forbidden in- terior" of the palace. In those early days this conception had not been elaborated. Imperial Crest, or the Mikado's Seal, for Private or Palace Business. Leaf and Blossoms of the Paulownia imperialis (kiri.) The mikado from ancient times has had two crests, answering to the coats of arms in European heraldry. One is a representation of a chrysanthemum (kiku), and is used for government purposes outside the palace. It is embroidered on flags and banners, and printed on official documents. Since the Restoration, in 1868, the soldiers of the imperial army wear it as a frontlet on their caps. The other crest, representing a blossom and leaves of the Paulownia imperialis (kiri), is used in business personal to the mikado and his family. The an- cient golden chrysanthemum has, since 1868, burst into new bloom, like the flowering of the nation itself, and has everywhere displaced the trefoil of the parvenus of later feudalism the Tokugawas, the only military vassals of the mikado who ever assumed the preposter ous title of " Tycoon." 68 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. VII. YAMATO-DAEE, THE CONQUEROR OF THE KUANTd* A NEW hero appears in the second century, whose personality seems so marked that it is impossible to doubt that within the shell of fabu- lous narration is a rich kernel of history. This hero, a son of the twelfth emperor, Keiko (71-130 A.D.), is pictured as of fair mien, manly and graceful carriage. In his youth he led an army to put down a re- bellion in Kiushiu ; and, wishing to enter the enemy's camp, he dis- guised himself as a dancing-girl, and presented himself before the sen- tinel, who, dazed by the beauty and voluptuous figure of the supposed damsel, and hoping for a rich reward from his chief, admitted her to the arch-rebel's tent. After dancing before him and his carousing guests, the delighted voluptuary drew his prize by the hand into his own tent. Instead of a yielding girl, he found more than his match in the heroic youth, who seized him, held him powerless, and took his life. For this valorous effort he received the name Yamato-Dake, or, the Warlike. Thirteen years after this victory, A.D. 110, the tribes in eastern Japan revolted, and Yamato-Dake went to subdue them. He stopped at the shrine of the Sun-goddess in Ise, and, leaving his own sword under a pine-tree, he obtained from the priestess the sacred sword, one of the holy emblems enshrined by Sujin. Armed with this palladium, he penetrated into the wilds of Suruga, to fight the Ainos, who fled before him from the plains into the woods and mount- ain fastnesses. The Aino method of warfare, like that of our North American Indians, was to avoid an encounter in the open field, and to * Kuanto (east of the barrier). The term Kuanto was, probably as early as the ninth century, applied to that part of Japan lying east of the guard-gate, or bar- rier, at Ozaka, a small village on the borders of Yamashiro and Omi. It included thirty-three provinces. The remaining thirty-three provinces were called Kuan- eei (west of the barrier). In modern times and at present, the term Kuanto (writ- ten also Kanto) is applied to the eight provinces (Kuan-hasshiu) east of the Ha- kone" range, consisting of Sagami, Musashi, Kodzuke, Shimotsuke", Kadzusa, Awa, Shimosa, and Hitachi. Sometimes Idzu, Kai, and the provinces of Hondo north of the thirty-eighth parallel, formerly called Mutsu and Dewa, are also included. TAMATO-DAKE, THE CONQUEROR OF THE KUANTO. 69 fight in ambush from behind trees, rocks, or in the rank undergrowth, using every artifice by which, as pursued, they could inflict the great- est damage upon an enemy with the least loss and danger to them- selves. In the lore of the forest they were so well read that they felt at home in the most tangled wilds. They were able to take advan- tage of every sound and sign. They were accustomed to disguise themselves in bear-skins, and thus act as spies and scouts. Fire was one of their chief means of attack. On a certain occasion they kin- Japan, as known to the Ancient Mikados before the Fifth Century. died the underbrush, which is still seen so densely covering the un- cleared portions of the base of Fuji. The flames, urged by the wind, threatened to surround and destroy the Japanese army a sight which the Ain5s beheld with yells of delight. The Sun-goddess then ap- peared to Yamato-Dake, who, drawing the divinely bestowed sword Murakumo, or "Cloud-cluster" cut the grass around him. So invin- cible was the blade that the flames ceased advancing and turned to- ward his enemies, who were consumed, or fled defeated. Yamato-Dake 70 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. then gratefully acknowledging to the gods the victory vouchsafed to him, changed the name of the sword to Kusanagi (Grass-mower). Crossing the Hakone Mountains, he descended into the great plain of the East, in later days called the Kuanto, which stretches from the base of the central ranges and table-land of Hondo to the shores of the Pacific, and from Sagami to Iwaki. On reaching the Bay of Yedo at about Kamizaki, near Uraga, off which Commodore Perry anchored with his steamers in 1853, the hills of the opposite peninsula of Awa seemed so very close at hand, that Yamato-Dake supposed it would be a trifling matter to cross the intervening channel. He did not know what we know so well now, that at these narrows of the bay the winds, tides, currents, and weather are most treacherous. Having embarked with his host, a terrific storm arose, and the waves tossed the boat so helplessly about that death seemed inevitable. Then the frightened monarch understood that the Sea-god, insulted by his dis- paraging remark, had raised the storm to punish him. The only way to appease the wrath of the deity was by the sacrifice of a victim. Who would offer? One was ready. In the boat with her lord was his wife, Tachibana hime. Bidding him farewell, she leaped into the mad waves. The blinding tempest drove on the helpless boat, and the victim and the saved were parted. But the sacrifice was accepted. Soon the storm ceased, the sky cleared, the lovely landscape unveiled in serene repose. Yamato-Dake landed in Kadzusa, and subdued the tribes. At the head of the peninsula, at a site still pointed out within the limits of modern Tokio, he found the perfumed wooden comb of his wife, which had floated ashore. Erecting an altar, he dedicated the precious relic as a votive offering to the gods. A Shinto shrine still occupies the site where her spirit and that of Yamato-Dake are wor- shiped by the fishermen and sailors, whose junks fill the Bay of Yedo with animation and picturesque beauty. As usual, a pine-tree stands near the shrine. The artist has put Mount Fuji in the distance, a beautiful view of which is had from the strand. Yamato-Dake then advanced northward, through Shimosa, sailing along the coast in boats to the border, as the Japanese claimed it to be, between the empire proper and the savages, which lay at or near the thirty-eighth parallel. The two greatest chiefs of the Ainos, apprised of his com- ing, collected a great army to overwhelm the invader. Seeing his fleet approaching, and awed at the sight, they were struck with con- sternation, and said, " These ships must be from the gods. If so, and we draw bow against them, we shall be destroyed." No sooner had YAMATO-DAKE, THE CONQUEROR OF THE KUANTO. 71 Yamato-Dake landed than they came to the strand and surrendered. The hero kept the leaders as hostages, and having tranquilized the tribes, exacting promise of tribute, he set out on the homeward jour- ney. His long absence from the capital in the wilds of the East doubtless disposed him to return gladly. He passed through Hitachi and Shimosa, resting temporarily at Sakura, then through Musashi and Kai. Here he is said to have invented the distich, or thirty-one- syllable poem, so much used at the present day. After his army had been refreshed by their halt, he sent one of his generals into Echizen and Echigo to tranquilize the North-west and meet him in Yamato. Juuk in the Bay of Yedo, near the Sbriue of Tachibana hime". He himself marched into Shinano. Hitherto, since crossing the Hakone range, he had carried on his operations on the plains. Shi- nano is a great table-land averaging twenty-five hundred, and rising in many places over five thousand, feet above the sea-level, surrounded and intersected by the loftiest peaks and mountain ranges in Japan. Ninety-five miles north-west of Tokid is the famous mountain pass of Usui Toge, the ascent of which from Sakamoto, on the high plain be- low, is a toilsome task. At this point, twenty-six hundred feet above Sakamoto, unrolls before the spectator a magnificent view of the Bay of Yedo and the plain below, one of the most beautiful and impress- ive in Japan. Here Yamato stood and gazed at the land and water. 72 THE MIKADOES EMPIRE. draperied in the azure of distance, and, recalling the memory of his beloved wife, who had sacrificed her life for him, he murmured, sadly, "Adzuma, adzuma " (My wife, my wife). The plain of Yedo is still, in poetry, called Adzuma. One of the princes of the blood uses Ad- zuma as his surname; and the ex-Confederate iron-clad ram Stone- wall, now of the Japanese navy, is christened Adzuma-kuan. To cross the then almost unknown mountains of Shinano was a bold undertaking, which only a chief of stout heart would essay.* To travel in the thinly populated mountainous portions of Japan even at the present time, at least to one accustomed to the comfort of the palace-cars of civilization, is not pleasant. In those days, roads in the Kuanto were unknown. The march of an army up the slippery as- cents, through rocky defiles, over lava-beds and river torrents, required as much nerve and caution as muscle and valor. To their superstitious fancies, every mountain was the abode of a god, every cave and defile the lurking-place of spirits. Air and water and solid earth were pop- ulous with the creatures of their imagination. Every calamity was the manifestation of the wrath of the local gods ; every success a proof that the good kami were specially favoring them and their leaders. The clouds and fogs were the discomfiting snares of evil deities to cause them to lose their path. The asphyxiating exhalations from volcanoes, or from the earth, which to this day jet out inflammable gas, were the poisonous breath of the mountain gods, insulted by the daring intrusion into their sacred domain. On one occasion the god of the mountain came to Yamato-Dake, in the form of a white deer, to trouble him. Yamato-Dake, suspecting the animal, threw some wild garlic in its eye, causing it to smart so violently that the deer died. * The cold in winter in the high mountain regions of Shinano is severe, and fires are needed in the depth of summer. Heavy falls of snow in winter make traveling tedious and difficult. I went over this part of Tamato-Dak5's journey in 1873, completing a tour of nine hundred miles. As I have gone on foot over the mountain toges (passes) from Takata, in Echigo, to Tokio, in Musashi, and likewise have been a pedestrian up and over the pass of St. Bernard, I think, all things considered, the achievement of Yamato-Dake fully equal in courage, skill, daring, patience, and romantic interest to that of Napoleon. The tourist to-day who makes the trip over this route is rewarded with the most inspiring views of Fuji, Asama yama, Yatsugadake", and other monarchs in this throne-room of nat- ure in Japan. In the lowlands of Kodzuke" also is the richest silk district in all Japan, the golden cocoons, from which is spun silver thread, covering the floors of almost every house during two summer months, while the deft fingers of Jap- anese maidens, pretty and otherwise, may be seen busily engaged in unraveling the shroud of the worm, illustrating the living proverb, " With time and patience even the mulberry-leaf becomes silk." TAMATO-DAKE, THE CONQUEROR OF THE KUANTO. 73 Immediately the mountain was shrouded in mist and fog, and the path disappeared. In the terror and dismay, a white dog a good kami in disguise appeared, and led the way safely to the plains of Mino. Again the host were stricken by the spirit of the white deer. All the men and animals of the camp were unable to stand, stupefied by the mephitic gas discharged among them by the wicked kami. Hap- pily, some one bethought him of the wild garlic, ate it, and gave to the men and animals, and all recovered. At the present day in Japan, partly in commemoration of this incident, but chiefly for the purpose of warding off infectious or malarious diseases, garlic is hung up be- fore gates and doors in time of epidemic, when an attack of disease is apprehended. Thousands of people believe it to be fully as effica- cious as a horseshoe against witches, or camphor against contagion. Descending to the plains of Mino, and crossing through it, he came to Ibuki yama, a mountain shaped like a truncated sugar-loaf, which rears its colossal flat head in awful majesty above the clouds. Yama- to-Dake attempted to subdue the kami that dwelt on this mountain. Leaving his sword, " Grass-mower," at the foot of the mountain, he advanced unarmed. The god transformed himself into a serpent, and barred his progress. The hero leaped over him. Suddenly the heav- ens darkened. Losing the path, Yamato-Dake swooned and fell. On drinking of a spring by the way, he was able to lift up his head. Henceforward it was called Same no idzurni, or the Fountain of Re- covery. Reaching Otsu, in Ise, though still feeble, he found, under the pine-tree, the sword which he had taken off before, and forthwith composed a poem : " O pine, were you a man, I should give you this sword to wear for your fidelity." He had been absent in the Kuanto three years. He recounted before the gods his adventures, difficulties, and victories, made votive offerings of his weapons and prisoners, and gave solemn thanks for the deliverance vouchsafed him. He then re- ported his transactions to his father, the mikado, and, being weak and nigh to death, he begged to see him. The parent sent a messenger to comfort his son. When he arrived, Yamato-Dake was dead. He was buried at Nobono, in Ise. From his tomb a white bird flew up ; and on opening it, only the chaplet and robes of the dead hero were found. Those who followed the bird saw it alight at Koto-hiki hara (Plain of the Koto-players) in Yamato, which was henceforth called Misazaki Shiratori (Imperial Tomb of the White Bird). His death took place A.D. 113, at the age of thirty-six. Many temples in the Kuanto and in various parts of Japan are dedicated to him. THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. I have given so full an account of Yamato-Dake to show the style and quality of ancient Japanese tradition, and exhibit the state of Eastern Japan at that time, and because under the narration there is good history of one who extended the real boundaries of the early empire.* Yamato-Dake was one of the partly historic and partly ideal heroes that are equally the cause and the effect of the Japanese mili- tary spirit. It may be that the future historians of Japan may con- sider this chapter as literary trash, and put Yamato-Dake and all his deeds in the same limbo with Romulus and his wolf-nurse, William Tell and his apple ; but I consider him to have been a historical per- sonage, and his deeds a part of genuine history. * The names of the various provinces of Japan are given below. Each name of Japanese origin has likewise a synonym compounded of the Chinese word shiu (province), affixed to the pronunciation of the Chinese character with which the first syllable of the native word is written. In some cases the Chinese form is most in use, in which case it is italicized. In a few cases both forms are current. Go Kinai (Five Home Provinces). Yamashiro, or Joshin. Yamato, " Washiu. Kawachi, " Kashiu. Idzumi, " Senshiu. Settsu, " Sesshiu. Tokaido (Eastern-sea Region). Iga, or Ishlu. Ise, " Seishiu. Shima, " Shishiu. OwarL " Bishiu. Mikawa, " Sanshiu. Totomi, Suruga, Idzu, Kai, Sagami, Musashi. Awa, Kadzusa, Shimosa, Hitachi, Enshiu. Sunahiu. Dzushiu. Koshiu. Soshiu. Bmhiu. Boshiu. Soshiu. Soshiu. Joshitu Tozando (Eastern-mountain Region). 5m i, c r Goshiu. Mino, Noshiu. Hida, Hishiu. Shinano, Kodzuke, Shimotsuke, 05 Shinshiu. Joshiu. Yashiu. flwashi, ^ S g Iwashiro, 1 Rikuzen, r a ' * (5shin. g Rikuchiu, 1 'S3 . I Michiuoku | fUzen, il' ' Ushiu. " p Hokurikudo (Northern-land Region). Wakasa, or Jakushiu. Echizen, " Esshiu. Kaga, " Kashiu. Noto, " Noshiu. Etchiu. " Esshiu. Hokurikudo (Continued). Echigo, " Esshiu. Sado (island), " Sashiu. Sanindo (Mountain-back Region). Tamba, or Tanshiu. Tango, Tanshiu. Tajima, Tanshiu. Inaba, Inshiu. Hoki, Haknshiu. Idzunio, dnshiu. Iwami, Sekishiu. Oki (islands). Sanyodo (Mountain-front Region). Harima, or Banshiu. Mimasaka, Bizen, BitcMu, Bingo, Aki, Suivo, Nagato, Sakushiu. Bishiu. Bishiu. Bishiu. Geishiu. Boshiu. Choshiu. Nankaido (Southern-sea Region). Kii, or Kishiu. Awaji (island), " Tanshiu. Awa, " Ashiu. Sanuki, " Sanshiu. 7?/o, " Yoshiu. Tosa, " Toshiu. Saikaido (Western-sea Region). Chikuzen, or Chikushiu. Chikugo, Buzen, Bungo, Hizen, Higo, Hiuga, Ozumi, Satsuma, Chikushim Hoshiu. Hoshiu. Hishiu. Hishin. Nisshiu. Giishin. Sasshiu. The "Two Islands." Tsushima, or Taishiu. Iki. Ishiu. THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. 75 VIII. THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. IP Japan is to Asia what Great Britain is to Europe according to the comparison so often made by the modern Japanese then Corea was to Dai Nippon what Norman France was to Saxon England. Through this peninsula, and not directly from China, flowed the influ- ences whose confluence with the elements of Japanese life produced the civilization which for twelve centuries has run its course in the island empire. The comparison is not perfect, inasmuch as Japan sent the conqueror to Corea, whereas Normandy sent William across the Channel. In the moral and aesthetic conquest of Rome by Greece, though vanquished by Roman arms, we may perhaps find a closer re- semblance to the events of the second triad of the Christian centuries in the history of Japan. Is it true among historic nations that anciently the position of woman was higher than in later times ? It has been pointed out by more than one writer on Greece " that in the former and ruder period women had undoubtedly the higher place, and their type exhibited the highest perfection." This is certainly the case in Japan. The women of the early centuries were, according to Japanese history, possessed of more intellectual and physical vigor, filling the offices of state, religion, and household honors, and approaching more nearly the ideal cherished in those countries in which the relation of the sexes is that of professed or real equality. Certain it is that, whereas there are many instances of ancient Japanese women reaching a high plane of social dignity and public honor, in later ages the virtuous woman dwelt in seclusion; exemplars of ability were rare; and the courtesan became the most splendid type of womanhood. This must be more than the fancy of poets. As in the Greece of Homer and the tragedians, so in early Nippon, woman's abilities and possibilities far surpassed those that were hers in the later days of luxury and civ- ilization. To a woman is awarded the glory of the conquest of Co- rea, whence came letters, religion, and civilization to Japan. 76 THE MIKADO^ EMPIRE. In all Japanese tradition or history, there is no greater female char- acter than the empress Jingu (godlike exploit). Her name was Okina- ga Tarashi hime, but she is better known by her posthumous title of Jingu Kogo, or Jingu, the wife or spouse of the mikado. She was equally renowned for her beauty, piety, intelligence, energy, and mar- tial valor. She was not only very obedient to the gods, but they de- lighted to honor her by their inspiration. She feared neither the waves of the sea, the arrows of the battle-field, nor the difficulties that wait on all great enterprises. Great as she was in her own person, she is greater in the Japanese eyes as the mother of the god of war. In the year 193 a rebellion broke out at Kumaso, in Kiushiu. The mikado Chiuai (191-200) headed his army, and marched to subdue the rebels. Jingu Kogo, or Jingu, the empress, followed him by ship, embarking from Tsuruga, in Echizen a port a few miles north-west of the head of Lake Biwa meeting her husband at Toyo no ura, near the modern Shimonoseki, of indemnity fame. While worshiping on one of the islands of the Inland Sea, the god spoke to her, and said, " Why are you so deeply concerned to conquer Kumaso ? It is but a poor, sparse region, not worth conquering with an army. There is a much larger and richer country, as sweet and lovely as the face of a fair virgin. It is dazzling bright with gold, silver, and fine colors, and every kind of rich treasures is to be found in Shiraki (in Corea). Wor- ship me, and I will give you power to conquer the country without bloodshed ; and by my help, and the glory of your conquest, Kumaso shall be straightway subdued." The emperor, hearing this from his wife, which she declared was the message of the gods, doubted, and, climbing to the summit of a high mountain, looked over the sea, and seeing no land to the westward, answered her : " I looked everywhere and saw water, but no land. Is there a country in the sky ? If not, you deceived me. My ancestors worshiped all the gods : is there any whom they did not worship ?" The gods, answering through the inspired empress, made reply : " If you believe only your doubts, and say there is no country when I have declared there is one, you blaspheme, and you shall not go thither ; but the empress, your wife, has conceived, and the child within her shall conquer the country." Nevertheless, the emperor doubted, and advanced against Kumaso, but was worsted by the rebels. While in camp, he took sick and died suddenly. According to an- other tradition, he was slain in battle by an arrow. His minister, Takenouchi, concealed his death from the soldiers, and carried the THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. 77 corpse back to Toyo no lira, in Nagato. The brave Jingu, with the aid of Takenouchi, suppressed the rebellion, and then longed for con- quest beyond the sea. While in Hizen, in order to obtain a sign from the gods she went down to the sea-shore, and baited a hook with a grain of boiled rice, to catch a fish. " Now," said she, " I shall conquer a rich country if a fish be caught with this grain of rice." The bait took. A fish was caught, and Jingu exultingly accepted the success of her venture as a token of celestial approval of her design. " Medzurashiki mono!" (wonderful thing), exclaimed the royal lady. The place of the omen is still called Matsura, corrupted from the words she used. In further commemoration, the women of that section, every year, in the first part of the Fourth month, go fishing, no males being allowed the priv- ilege on that day. The pious Jingu prepared to invade Corea; but wishing another indication of the will of the kami, she on one occa- sion immersed her hair in water, saying that, if the gods approved of her enterprise, her tresses would become dry, and be parted into two divisions. It was as she desired. Her luxuriant black hair came from the water dry, and parted in two. Her mind was now fixed. She ordered her generals and captains to collect troops, build ships, and be ready to embark. Addressing them, she said: "The safety or destruction of our country depends upon this enterprise. I intrust the details to you. It will be your fault if they are not carried out. I am a woman, and young ; I shall disguise myself as a man, and un- dertake this gallant expedition, trusting to the gods, and to my troops and captains. We shall acquire a wealthy country. The glory is yours, if we succeed ; if we fail, the guilt and disgrace shall be mine." Her captains, with unanimity and enthusiasm, promised to support her and carry out her plans. The enterprise was a colossal one for Japan at that time. Although the recruiting went on in the various provinces, and the ships were built, the army formed slowly. Chaf- ing at the delay, but not discouraged, again she had recourse to the efficacy of worship and an appeal to the gods. Erecting a tabernacle of purification, with prayers and lustrations and sacrifices she prayed the kami to grant her speedy embarkation and success. The gods were propitious. Troops came in. The army soon assembled, and all was ready, A.D. 201. Before starting, Jingu issued orders to her soldiers, as follows : " No loot. " Neither despise a few enemies nor fear many. 6 78 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. " Give mercy to those who yield, but no quarter to the stubborn. " Rewards shall be apportioned to the victors ; punishments shall be meted to the deserters." Then the words of the gods came, saying, " The Spirit of Peace will always guide you and protect your life. The Spirit of War will go before you and lead your ships." Jingu again returned thanks for these fresh exhibitions of divine favor, and made her final preparations to start, when a new impedi- ment threatened to delay hopelessly the expedition, or to rob it of its soul and leader, the Amazonian chief. She discovered that she was pregnant. Again the good favor of the gods enabled her to triumph over the obstacles which nature, or the fate of her sex, might throw in the path of her towering ambition. She found a stone which, being placed in her girdle, delayed her accouchement until her return from Corea. It does not seem to have been perfectly clear in the minds of those ancient filibusters where Corea was, or for what particular point of the horizon they were to steer. They had no chart or compass. The sun, stars, and the flight of birds were their guides. In a storm they would be helpless. One fisherman had been sent to sail westward and report. He came back declaring there was no land to be seen. Another man was dispatched, and returned, having seen the mount- ains on the main-land. The fleet sailed in the Tenth month. Winds, waves, and currents were all favorable. The gods watched over the fleet, and sent shoals of huge fishes to urge on the waves that by their impact lifted the sterns and made the prows leap as though alive. The ships beached safely in Southern Corea, the Japanese army land- ed in the glory of sunlight and the grandeur of war in splendid array. The king of this part of Corea had heard from his messengers of the coming of a strange fleet from the East, and, terrified, exclaimed, "We never knew there was any country outside of us. Have our gods for- saken us ?" The invaders had no fighting to do as they expected. It was a bloodless invasion. The Coreans came, holding white flags, and surrendered, offering to give up their treasures. They took an oath that they would be tributary to Japan, that they would never cause their conquerors to dispatch another expedition, and that they would send hostages to Japan. The rivers might flow backward, or the peb- bles in their beds leap up to the stars, yet would they not break their oath. Jingu set up weapons before the gate of the king in token of peace. By his order eighty ships well laden with gold and silver, ar- THS INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. 79 tides of wealth, silk and precious goods of all kinds, and eighty hos- tages, men of high families, were put on board. The stay of the Japanese army in Corea was very brief, and the troops returned in the Twelfth month. Jingu was, on her arrival, de- livered of a son, who, in the popular estimation of gods and mortals, holds even a higher place of honor than his mother, who is believed to have conquered Southern Corea through the power of her yet un- born illustrious offspring. After leaving her couch, the queen-regent erected in Nagato (Choshiu) a shrine, and in it dedicated the Spirit of War that had guided her army. She then attended to the funeral rites of her deceased husband, and returned to the capital. The conquest of Corea, more correctly a naval raid into one of the southern provinces, took place A.D. 203. The motive which induced the invasion seems to have been the same as that carried out by Hide- yoshi in 1583, and contemplated in 1873 mere love of war and con- quest. The Japanese refer with great pride to this their initial ex- ploit on foreign soil. It was the first time they had ever gone in ships to a foreign country to fight. For the first time it gave them the opportunity of displaying their valor in making "the arms of Ja- pan shine beyond the seas " a pet phrase which occurs in many docu- ments in Japan, even in this 2536th year of the Japanese empire, and of our Lord 1876. Nevertheless, the honor of the exploit is given to the unborn son on whom dwelt the Spirit of War, rather than to the mother who bore him. The queen-mother is worshiped in many temples as Kashii dai mid jin. The son, Ojin, afterward a great warrior, was, at his death, 313 A.D., deified as the god of war; and down through the centuries he has been worshiped by all classes of people, especially by soldiers, who offer their prayers, pay their vows, and raise their votive offerings to him. Many of the troops, before taking steamer for Formosa, in 1874, implored his protection. In his honor some of the most magnificent temples in Japan have been erected, and almost every town and vil- lage, as well as many a rural grove and hill, has its shrine erected to this Japanese Mars. He is usually represented in his images as of frightful, scowling countenance, holding, with arms akimbo, a broad two-edged sword. One of the favorite subjects of Japanese artists of all periods is the group of figures consisting of the snowy-bearded Takenouchi, in civil dress, holding the infant of Jingu Kogo in his arms, the mother standing by in martial robes. Jingu is the heroine and model for boys, not of the girls. In the collection of pictures, 80 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. images, and dolls which in Japanese households on the 5th of May, every year, teach to the children the names and deeds of the national heroes, and instill the lessons taught by their example, this warrior^ woman is placed among the male, and not among the female, groups. Nine empresses in all have sat upon the throne of Japan as rulers, four of whom reigned at the capital, Nara. None have won such mar- tial renown as Jingu. It is not probable, however, that military enter- prise will ever again give the nation another ideal woman like the conqueror of Corea. It is now, in modern days, given to the Empress of Japan to elevate the condition of her female subjects by graciously encouraging the education of the girls, and setting a noble example, not only of womanly character and of active deeds of benevolence, but also in discarding the foolish and barbarous customs of past ages, notably that of blacking the teeth and shaving off the eyebrows. This the present empress, Haruko, has done. Already this chief lady of the empire has accomplished great reforms in social customs and fashions, and, both by the encouragement of her presence and by gifts from her private purse, has greatly stimulated the cause of the education and the elevation of woman in Japan. Haply, it may come to pass that this lady in peaceful life may do more for the good and glory of the em- pire than even the renowned queen-regent, Jingu Kogo. The early centuries of the Christian era, from the third to the eighth, mark that period in Japanese history during which the future development and character of the nation were mightily influenced by the introduction, from the continent of Asia, of the most potent fac- tors in any civilization. They were letters, religion, philosophy, liter- ature, laws, ethics, medicine, science, and art. Heretofore the first un- foldings of the Japanese intellect in the composition of sacred hymns, odes, poems, myths, and tradition had no prop upon which to train, and no shield against oblivion but the unassisted memory. The Jap- anese were now to have records. Heretofore religion was simply the rude offspring of human imagination, fear, and aspiration, without doctrinal systems, moral codes, elaborate temples, or sacerdotal caste. Henceforth the Japanese were to be led, guided, and developed in morals, intellect, and worship by a religion that had already brought the nations of Asia under its sway a strong, overpowering, and ag- gressive faith, that was destined to add Japan to its conquests. Bud- dhism, bringing new and greater sanctions, penalties, motives, and a positive theology and code of morals, was to develop and broaden the whole nature of the individual man, and to lead the entire nation Her Imperial Japanese Majesty, the Empress of Jnpau, Haruko, nee Ichijo Haruko. (From a photograph taken at Tokio, 1874.) THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. 83 forward. Chinese philosophy and Confucian morals were to form the basis of the education and culture of the Japanese statesman, scholar, and noble, to modify Shinto, and with it to create new ideals of government, of codes, laws, personal honor, and household ordering. Under their influence, and that of circumstances, have been shaped the unique ideals of the samurai; and by it a healthy skepticism, amidst dense superstition, has been maintained. The com- ing of many immigrants brought new blood, ideas, opinions, methods, improvements in labor, husbandry, social organization. Japan received from China, through Corea, what she is now receiving from America and Europe a new civilization. For nearly a century after the birth of Ojin, the record of events is blank. In 249 A.D. a Japanese general, Arata, was sent to assist one state of Corea against another. Occasional notices of tribute-bearers arriving from Corea occur. In 283 a number of tailors, in 284 excel- lent horses, were sent over to Japan. In 285, Wani, a Corean schol- ar, came over to Japan, and, residing some time at the court, gave the mikado's son instruction in writing. If the Nihongi the author- ity for the date of Wani's arrival in Japan could be trusted in its chronology, the introduction of Chinese writing, and probably of Buddhism, would date from this time ; but the probabilities are against positive certainty on this point. If it be true, it shows that the first missionary conquest of this nation was the work of four cent- uries, instead of as many decades. Wani died in Japan, and his tomb stands near Ozaka. In A.D. 403 a court annalist was chosen. Envoys and tribute-bearers came, and presents were exchanged. In 462 mulberry-trees were planted evidently brought, together with the silk-worm, for whose sustenance they were intended from China or Corea. Again, tailors in 471, and architects in 493, and learned men in 512, arrived. An envoy from China came in 522. The ar- rival of fresh immigrants and presents from Corea in 543 is noted. In 551, during a famine in Corea, several thousand bushels of barley were dispatched thither by Japan. In 552, a company of doctors, diviners, astronomers, and mathematicians from Corea came to live at the Japanese court. With them came Buddhist missionaries. This may be called the introduction of continental civilization. Begin- ning witk Jingu, there seems to have poured into the island empire a stream of immigrants, skilled artisans, scholars, and teachers, bringing arts, sciences, letters and written literature, and the Buddhist religion. This was the first of three great waves of foreign civilization in Japan. 84 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The first was from China, through Corea in the sixth ; the second from Western Europe, in the fifteenth century ; the third was from America, Europe, and the world, in the decade following the advent of Commodore Perry. These innovations were destined to leaven might- ily the whole Japanese nation as a lump. Of these none was so pow- erful and far-reaching in effects as that in the sixth century, and no one element as Buddhism. This mighty force was destined to exert a re- sistless and unifying influence on the whole people. Nothing, among all the elements that make up Japanese civilization, has been so potent in forming the Japanese character as the religion of Buddha. That the work of these new civilizers may be fully appreciated, let us glance at life in Dai Nippon before their appearance.* * The Empress Jingu, after her return, made a very important change in the divisions of the empire. Seimu Tenno (A.D. 131-190) had divided the empire into provinces, the number of which was thirty-two in all, the land above the thirty- eighth parallel being still unknown, and inhabited by the wild tribes of Ainos. Jingu, imitating the Corean arrangement, divided the empire into five home provinces, and seven do, or circuits, naming them in relation to their direction from the capital. These are analogous to our "Eastern," "Middle," "South- ern," "Western," "Trans-Mississippi," and "Pacific-coast" divisions of States. The "five home provinces" (Go Kinai) are Yamashiro, Yamato, Kawachi, Idzu- mi, and Settsu. The Tokaido, or Eastern-sea Circuit, comprised the provinces skirting the Pacific Ocean from Iga to Hitachi, including Kai. The Tozando, or Eastern-mountain Circuit, included those provinces from Omi to the end of the main island, not on the Sea of Japan, nor included within the Tokaido. The Hokurokudo, or Northern -land Circuit, comprised the provinces from Wakasa to Echigo inclusive, bordering on the Sea of Japan, and Sado Island. The Sanindo, or Mountain -back Circuit, comprised with the Oki group of islands the provinces from Tamba to Iwami, bordering on the Sea of Japan. The Sanyodo, or Mountain-front Circuit, comprised the provinces from Hari- ma to Nagato (or Choshiu) bordering the Inland Sea. The Nankaido, or Southern-sea Circuit, comprises the province of Kii, the four provinces of lyo, Sanuki, Awa, and Tosa, in Shikoku (shi, four ; koku, province), and the Island of Awaji. The Saikaido, or Western -sea Circuit, comprises nine provinces of Kiushiu (kiu, nine; sAm, province). The "two islands" are Iki and Tsushima. This division accords with the physical features of the country, and has ever since been retained, with slight modifications as to provinces. It is very proba- ble that in the time of Jingu, the Japanese did not know that Hondo was an island. A foreigner looking at the map of the empire, or a globe representing the world, could hardly imagine that the Japanese have no special and universal- ly used name for the main island. Yet such is the fact, that neither they nor their books popularly apply any particular name to the main island. It may be even doubted whether the people in general ever think of the main island as be- ing a particular division requiring a name, as the foreigner conceives it, and thus THE INTRODUCTION OF CONTINENTAL CIVILIZATION. 85 feels a name to be a necessity. This necessity has given rise to the error of ap- plying the term "Niphou" (Nihon, Nippon, or Nifon), first done by Kaempfer. The Japanese had no more necessity to apply a special name to the main island than the early American colonists had to give a name to the region beyond the Mississippi. Even now we have no name in general use for that now well-known part of our country. To foreigners, the absence of a name for the largest island seems an anomaly. In the Japanese mind it never existed. He rarely spoke even of Kiushiu or Shikoku as names of islands, always using the names of the do, or circuits, just as an American speaks of the New England or the Eastern States. In modern times, native scholars who have, from their study, compari- sons, and foreign methods of thought, felt the need of a distinctive name, have used Hondo (main continent or division), Honjima (main island), or Honjiu (main country). Of these, Hondo seems to be the best ; and as it is used in the official geography recently issued by the War Department, I have made use of it. Nippon is not, nor ever was, the name of the main island, as Kaempfer first asserted. Nippon, or Dai Nippon, is the name of the whole empire. The word is Chinese, and must have been applied in very ancient times, as the Nihongi con- tains the three characters with which the name is written. The very name of the book, Nippongi, or, more elegantly, Nihongi, shows that the use of the term Nip- pon antedates the eighth century. Tenchi Teuno, in A.D. 670, first officially de- clared Nippon to be the name of Japan. It has been asserted that the use of Dai (Great) before Nippon is quite recent, and that the motive of the modern natives of Japan in thus designating their empire is "from a desire to imitate what they mistake for the pride or vainglory of Great Britain, not knowing that the term Great was used there to distinguish it from a smaller French province of the same name." To this remarkable statement it is sufficient to answer, that one of the most ancient names of Japan is O Yamato, the word 6 meaning great, and the Japanese equivalent of the Chinese word tai or dai. When Chinese writing was introduced, the Japanese, in seeking an equivalent for O Yamato, found it in Dai Nippon, as may be seen in the Nihongi. The Chinese have always been in the habit of prefixing dai or tai to whatever relates to their country, govern- ment, or any thing which they in their pride consider very superior. Anciently they called China Dai To, and they now call it Dai Tsin (or Dai Chin), Great China. The Japanese have done the same analogous thing for at least twelve, probably for fifteen, centuries. That the use of Dai (Great) before Nippon is not the fashion of the present century is proved by the fact that the Japanese ency- clopedia San Sai Dzu Ye, finished in 1712, contains the name with the pronuncia- tion as now used, and that it is found in the very name Dai Nihon Shi, a book completed in 1715. The use of Nippon (or Niphon, or Nipon), applied to the main island, is altogether unwarrantable and confusing. The Japanese have very properly protested against this improper naming of their chief island, and, notwithstanding the long use of the name in Europe and America, I believe it should be expunged. The Japanese have some geographical rights which we are bound to respect. Map of Japan. The best map of Japan is that by Mr. R. Henry Brunton, C.E., F.R.G.S., late Eugineer-in-chief of the Light-house Department of the Japanese Government. It is five feet by four, and drawn to a scale of twenty miles to the inch. It is .veil engraved, and gives also rules of pronunciation, explanation of terms, Japanese lineal measures, railwa3's, highways, by-roads, telegraph lines, light-houses, depths of water along the coast, steamer routes, lists of principal mountains, rivers, islands, promontories, lakes, open ports, classes of population, provinces, fa, ken, and a comparative scale of English miles and Japanese ri. 86 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. IX. LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN. THE comparatively profound peace from the era of Sujin Tenno to the introduction of Chinese civilization was occasionally interrupted by insurrections in the southern and western parts of the empire, or by the incursions of the unsubdued aborigines in the North and East. During these centuries there continued that welding of races the Aino, Malay, Nigrito, Corean, and Yamato into one ethnic compos- ite the Japanese and the development of the national temperament, molded by nature, circumstances, and original bent, which have pro- duced the unique Japanese character. Although, in later centuries, Japan borrowed largely from China, blood, language, religion, letters, education, laws, politics, science, art, and the accumulated treasures of Chinese civilization, her children are to-day, as they have ever been, a people distinct from the Chinese, ethnologically, physically, and morally. Though frequent fighting was necessary, and many of the aborigi- nes were slaughtered, the great mass of them were tranquilized. To rude men, in a state of savagery whose existence is mainly animal, it matters little who are their masters, so long as they are not treated with intolerable cruelty. The aborigines attached to the land roamed over it to hunt, or remained upon it to till it, and, along the water- courses and sea-coast, to fish. With a soil that repaid generously the rude agriculture of that day, an ample food-supply in the sea, without severe labor, or exorbitant tribute to pay, the conquered tribes, when once quieted, lived in happiness, content, and peace. The govern- ment of them was the easiest possible. The invaders from the very beginning practiced that system of concubinage which is practical polygamy, and filled their harems with the most attractive of the young native females. The daughter of the former chief shared the couch of the conqueror, and the peasant became the wife of the sol- dier, securing that admixture of races that the merest tyro in ethnol- ogy notices in modern Japan. In certain portions, as in the extreme north of Hondo, the Aino type of face and head, and the general physical characteristics of skin, hair, eyes, and form, have suffered the LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN. 87 least modification, owing to later conquest and less mixture of foreign blood. In Southern and Central Japan, where the fusion of the races was more perfect, the oval face, oblique eyes, aquiline nose, prominent features, and light skin prevail. Yet even here are found compara- tively pure specimens of the Malay and even Nigrito races, besides the Aino and Corean types. The clod-hopper, with his flat, round face, up- turned nose, expanded at the roots and wide and sunken at the bridge, nostrils round, and gaping like the muzzle of a proboscidian, bears in his veins the nearly pure blood of his aboriginal ancestors. Intellectu- ally and physically, he is the developed and improved Aino the re- sultant of the action upon the original stock of the soil, food, climate, and agricultural life, prolonged for more than twenty centuries. In the imperial family, and among the kuge, or court-nobles, are to be oftener found the nearest approach to the ideal Japanese of high birth. Yet even among these, who claim twenty -five centuries of semi-divine succession, and notably among the daimios, or territorial nobles the parvenus of feudalism the grossly sensual cast, the ani- mal features, the beastly expression, the low type, the plebeian face of some peasant ancestor re-appear to plague the descendant, and to imbitter his cup of power and luxury. This phenomenon is made abundant capital of by the native fiction - writers, caricaturists, and dramatists. The diversity of the two types is shown, especially by the artists, in strongly marked contrast. In the pictures illustrative of legendary or historic lore, and notably on the Japanese fans, now so fashionably common among us, the noble hero, the chivalrous knight, or the doughty warrior, is delineated with oblique eyes, high eyebrows, rounded nose, oval face, and smooth skin ; while the peas- ant, boor, vanquished ruffian, or general scape-goat, is invariably a man of round, flat face, upturned and depressed nose, gaping nostrils, hori- zontal eyes, and low eyebrows. In painting the faces of actors, sing- ing-girls, and those public characters who, though the popular idols, are of low birth and blood, the fan-artist exaggerates the marks of beauty to the delight of his native, and to the disgust of his foreign, patrons. What depreciates the value of his wares in the eyes of the latter enhances it in those of the natives. All savages worship heroes, and look upon their conquerors, who have been able apparently to overcome not only themselves, but even the gods in whom they trusted, if not as gods themselves, at least as imbued with divine power. The Ainos of Yezo to this day adore the warrior Yoshitsune. Their fathers doubtless considered Jimmu and 88 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. his followers as gods or men divinely assisted. The conquerors were not slow in cultivating such a belief for their own benefit, and thus what was once the fancy of savages became the dogma of religion and the tool of the magistrate. The reverence and obedience of the people were still further secured by making the government pure- ly theocratic, and its general procedure and ceremonial identical with those of worship. The forms of local authority among the once independent tribes were but little interfered with, and the govern- ment exercised over them consisted at first chiefly in the exaction of tribute. The floating legends, local traditions, and religious ideas of the aborigines, gathered up, amplified by the dominant race, trans- formed and made coherent by the dogmatics of a theocracy, became the basis of Shinto, upon which a modified Chinese cosmogony and abstract philosophical ideas were afterward grafted. It was this back- ground that has made the resultant form of Shinto different from what is most probably its prototype, the ante-Confucian Chinese re- ligion. In its origin, Shinto is from the main -land of Asia. In growth and development it is " a genuine product of Japanese soil." As yet, before the advent of Buddhism and Chinese philosophy, there were no moral codes, no systems of abstract doctrines, no priestly caste. These were all later developments. There were then no colossal temples with their great belfries and immense bells whose notes quivered the air into leagues of liquid melody ; no sacred court- yards decked with palm-trees; no costly shrines decked out in the gaudy magnificence characteristic of Buddhism, or impure Shinto. No extensive monasteries, from which floated on the breeze the chant- ing of priests or the droning hum of students, were then built. No crimson pagodas peeped out from camphor groves, or cordons of fire- warding firs and keyaki-trees. No splendid vestments, gorgeous ritual, waves of incense, blazing lights, antiphonal responses, were seen or heard in the thatched huts which served as shrines of the kami. No idols decked the altars. No wayside images dotted the mountain or the meadow paths. No huge portals (torii) of stone or red-lacquered timber stood fronting or opening the path to holy edifices. On the hill-top, or river-side, or forest grove, the people assembled when invocations were offered and thanksgiving rendered to the gods. Confession of sin was made, and the wrath of the kami, therefore, was deprecated. The priest, after fasting and lustrations, purified himself and, robed in white, made offerings of the fruits of the earth or the trophies of the net and the chase. LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN. 89 At the court, a shrine of the Sun-goddess had been set up and sac- rifices offered. Gradually in the towns and villages similar shrines were erected, and temples built ; but for long centuries among the mountains, along the rivers and sea-coasts, the child of the soil set up his fetich, made the water-worn stone, the gnarled tree, or the storm- cloud his god. Wherever evil was supposed to lurk, or malignity re- side, there were the emblems of the Aino religion. On precipice, in gorge, in that primeval landscape, stood the plume of curled shavings to ward off the evil influences. In agony of terror in presence of the Shinto Wayside Shrine in Modem Japan. awful phenomenon of nature, earthquake, typhoon, flood, or tidal wave, the savage could but supplicate deified Nature to cease from wrath and tumult, and restore her face in peace of sunshine and calm. The houses of the ancient Japanese were oblong huts, made by placing poles of young trees, with the bark on, upright in the ground, with transverse poles to make the frame, and fastened together with ropes mLde of rushes or vines. The walls were of matted grass, boughs, or rushes, the rafters of bamboo, and the sloping roof of grass-thatch, fastened down by heavy ridge-poles. The two larger rafters at each end projected and crossed each other, like two bayonets 90 THE MIKADO'S EXLP1RE. in a stack of guns. Across the ridge-pole, and beneath it and anoth- er heavy tree laid lengthwise on top of the thatch, projected at right angles on either side short, heavy logs, which by their weight, and from being firmly bound by withes running under the ridge-pole, kept the thatch firmly in its place. This primeval hut is the model of the architecture of a pure Shinto temple. A short study of one easily reveals the fact. The floor, of hardened earth, had the fire in the centre ; the doors and windows were holes covered at times with mats in short, the Aino hut of to-day. The modern Japanese dwell- ing is simply an improvement upon that ancient model. The clothing of that period consisted of skins of animals, coarsely woven stuff of straw, grass, bark, palm-fibre, and in some cases of asbestos. Silk and cotton fabrics were of later invention and use. It is evident, even from modern proof, as exhibited in the normal Japanese of to-day, that the wearing of many garments was not con- genial to the ancient people. As for straw and grass, these materials are even now universally used in town and country for hats, rain-coats, leggings, sandals, and a great variety of wearing apparel. A long loose garment, with the breech, or loin-cloth, and girdle, leggings, and sandals of straw, comprised a suit of ancient Japanese clothing. The food of the people consisted chiefly of fish, roots, and the flesh of ani- mals. They ate venison, bear-meat, and other flesh, with untroubled consciences, until Buddhism came with its injunctions. The conquer- ors evidently brought cereals with them, and taught their cultivation ; but the main reliance of the masses was upon the spoils of the rivers and sea. Even now the great centres and lines of the population are rivers and the sea-coast. Roots, sea-weed, and edible wild vegetables were, as at present, an important portion of native diet. The landscape of modern Japan is one of minute prettiness. It is one continued succession of mountains and valleys. The irregularities of the surface render it picturesque, and the labors of centuries have brought almost every inch of the cultivable soil in the populous dis- tricts into a state of high agricultural finish. The peasant of to-day is in many cases the direct descendant of the man who first plunged mattock and hoe into the rooty soil, and led the water from a distance of miles to his new-made fields. The gullies, gorges, and valleys are everywhere terraced for the growth of rice. Millions of irrigated fields without fences or live-stock, bounded by water-courses, and ani- mate with unharmed and harmless wild -fowl, the snowy heron, and the crane, and whose fertility astonishes the stranger, and the elaborate LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN. 91 system of reservoirs, ditches, and flumes, are the harvest of twenty centuries of toil. The face of nature has been smoothed ; the unkempt lux- uriance of forest and undergrowth has been sobered; the courses of rivers have been bridled ; the once inaccess- ible sides of mountains graded, and their summits crossed by the paths of the traveler or pilgrim. The earth has been honey-combed by miners in quest of its metallic wealth. In the primeval landscape of Japan there were no meadows, hedges, cat- tle, horses, prairies of ripening rice, irrigated fields, and terraced gulches. Then also, as now, the landscape was nude of domestic animal life. Instead Of Castled cities, fortified hills, gar- The Peasant of To-day. (Carrying Home the Sh eaves of Rice. ) Hokueai. dens, and hedges, were only thatched villages, or semi-subterranean huts. There were no roads, no dikes. No water -courses had been altered, no slopes or hills denuded of timber. The plethora of nature was unpruned; the scrub bamboo, wild flowers, or grass covered the hills. The great plains of the East and North were luxuriant moors, covered with grass, reeds, or bamboo, populous with wild animal life. No laden junks moved up the rivers. The mulberry and tea plantations had not yet been set out. The conquerors found a virgin soil and a land of enrapturing beauty. They brought with them, doubtless, a knowledge of agricul- ture and metals. Gradually the face of nature changed. The hunter became a farmer. The women learned to spin and weave cotton and hemp. Division of labor began. The artisan and merchant appear- ed. Arts, sciences, skilled agriculture, changed the face of the land. Society emerged from its savage state, and civilization began. As yet there was no writing. All communications were oral, all teachings handed down from father to son. Memory was the only treasury of thought. There is, indeed, shown in Japan at the present day a so-called ancient Japanese alphabet the kami, or god, letters which it is asserted the ancient Japanese used. This assertion is voided of truth by the testimony of the best native scholars to the contrary. No books or ancient inscriptions exist in this character. I 92 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. have myself sought in vain, in the grave-yards of Kioto and other an- cient places, to discover any of these characters upon the old tombs. The best authorities, scholars who have investigated the subject, pro- nounce the so-called god-letters a forgery, that reveals their artificial and modern character upon a slight examination. They consist al- most entirely of a system of straight lines and circles, which has, doubt- less, either been borrowed from Corea, or invented by some person in modern times. Yet the morning of literature had dawned before writing was known. Poems, odes to the gods, prayers, fragments of the Shinto liturgy, which still exist in the Kojiki and Nihongi, had been composed. From these fragments we may presume that a much larger unwritten literature existed, which was enjoyed by the men who, in those early days, by thought and reflection, attained to a certain de- gree of culture above their fellows. The early sovereigns worshiped the gods in person, and prayed that their people might enjoy a suf- ficiency of food, clothing, and shelter from the elements; and twice a year, in the Sixth and Twelfth months, the people assembled at the river-side, and, by washings and prayer, celebrated the festival of General Purification, by which the whole nation was purged of of- fenses and pollutions. This was the most characteristic of Shinto festivals, and the liturgy used in celebrating it is still in vogue at the present day. Time was measured by the phases of the moon, and the summer and winter solstices. The division of months and years was in use. The ancient laws and punishments were exceedingly se- vere. Besides the wager of battle to decide a quarrel, the ordeal still in use among the Ainos was then availed of. The persons involved immersed their hands in boiling water. He whose hand was scald- ed most was the guilty one. The wholly innocent escaped without scath, or was so slightly injured that his hand rapidly healed. Japanese art had its birth in mercy, about the time of Christ's ad- vent on earth. A custom long adhered to among the noble classes was the burial of the living with the dead (jun-shi, dying with the master). The wife, and one or more servants, of the deceased lord committed suicide, and were inhumed with him. The mikado Suinm, son of Sujin, attempted (B.C. 2) to abolish the cruel rite by imperial edict. Yet the old fashion was not immediately abandoned. In A.D. 3, the empress died. Nomi no Tsukune, a courtier, having made some clay images, succeeded in having these substituted for the living victims. This was the birth of Japanese art. Henceforth these first products of man's unfolding genius stood vicarious for the breathing LIFE IX ANCIENT JAPAN. 93 beings they simulated. For this reform, the originator was given the honorable designation, Haji (Aa, clay ; ski, ji, teacher = clay - image teacher, or artist). The domestic life and morals of those days deserve notice. There were no family names. The institution of marriage, if such it may be called, was upon the same basis as that among the modern Amos or North American Indians. Polygamy was common. Marriage be- tween those whom we consider brothers and sisters was frequent, and a thing not to be condemned. Children of the same fathers by dif- ferent mothers were not considered fraternally related to each other, and hence could marry ; but marriage between a brother and sister born of the same mother was prohibited as immoral. The annexed illustration is taken from a native work, and represents a chief or nobleman in ancient Japan. It will be noticed that beards and mustaches were worn in those days. The art- ist has depicted his subject with a well - wrinkled face to make him appear venerable, and with protruding cheeks to show his lusty physique, recall- ing the ideals of Chinese art, in which the men are always portly and massive, while the women are invariably frail and slender. His pose, expression, folded arms, and dress of fig- ured material (consisting of one long loose robe with flowing sleeves, and a second garment, like very wide trousers, girded at the waist with straps of the same material) are all to be seen, though in modified forms, in modern Japan. The fash- A Court Noble in Ancient Japan. (From a Na ions of twenty centuries have tive Drawiug ' ) changed but slightly. Suspended from his girdle may be seen the magatama chatelaine, evidently symbolizing his rank. The magaiama are perforated and polished pieces of soap-stone or cornelian, of various colors, shaped something like a curved seed-pod. They were strung 7 91 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. together like beads. Other ornaments of this age were the kudatama, jewels of gold, silver, or iron. The ancient sword was a straight, double-edged blade, about three feet long. Buddhists and Confucianists assert that there existed no words in their language for benevolence, justice, propriety, sagacity, and truth. Doubtless these virtues existed, though not as necessary principles, to be taught, formulated, and incorporated into daily life. Chastity and restraint among the unmarried were not reckoned as necessary virtues ; and the most ancient Japanese literature, to say nothing of their mythology, proves that marriage was a flimsy bar against the excursions of irregular passion. Great feasts and drinking-bouts, in which ex- cessive eating was practiced, were common. They were fond of the chase, and hunting-parties were frequent from the most ancient times. Among the commendable features of their life were the habit of daily bathing and other methods of cleanliness. They treated their wom- en with comparative kindness and respect. They loved the beautiful in Nature, and seemed to have been ever susceptible to her charms. In brief, they had neither the virtues nor vices of high civilization. The arts were in the rudest state. Painting, carving, and sculpture were scarcely known. No theatre existed. Sacred dancing with masks, at the holy festivals, was practiced as part of the public worship, with music from both wind and stringed instruments. Until the seventh century of our era, when the Chinese centralized system was adopted, the government of the Japanese empire was a species of feudalism. The invaders, on conquering the land, divided it into fiefs that were held sometimes by direct followers of Jimmu, ; or by the original Aino chiefs, or nobles of mixed blood, on their rendition of homage or tribute to the conqueror. The frequent de- fection of these native or semi-Japanese chiefs was the cause of the numerous rebellions, the accounts of which enter so largely into the history of the first centuries of the empire. The mikado himself ruled -over what is now called the Kinai, or Five Home Provinces, a space of country included between Lake Biwa and the bays of Ozaka and Owari. The provinces in Shikoku, Kiushiu, and the circuits west, north, and east, were ruled by tributary chiefs who paid homage to the mikado as their suzerain, but most probably allowed him to interfere to a slight extent in the details of the administration of their lands. In cases of dispute between them, the mikado doubtless acted as umpire, his geographical position, superior power, and the sacredness of person insuring his supremacy at all times, even in the height of turbulence and riot so often prevailing. LIFE IN ANCIENT JAPAN. 95 In the ancient mikadoate, called by the Japanese the Osei era, or the government of monarchs, there were several features tending to increase the power of the suzerain, or central chief. The first was the essentially theocratic form of the government. The sovereign was the centre of that superstitious awe, as well as of loyalty and personal reverence, which still exists. There grew into being that prestige, that sense of hedging divinity and super-mortal supremacy of the mikado that still forms the most striking trait of the Japanese char- acter, and the mightiest political, as it is a great religious and moral, force in Japan, overshadowing even the tremendous power of Bud- dhism, which is, as Shinto is not, armed with the terrors of eternity. In both a theological and political sense, in him dwelt the fullness of the gods bodily. He was their hypostasis. He was not only their chosen servant, but was himself a god, and the vicegerent of all the gods. His celestial fathers had created the very ground on which they dwelt. His wrath could destroy, his favor appease, celestial an- ger, and bring them fortune and prosperity. He was their preserver and benefactor. In his custody were the three sacred symbols. It was by superior intellect and the dogmatism of religion, as well as with superior valor, weapons, and skill, that a handful of invaders con- quered and kept a land populated by millions of savages. To the eye of a foreigner and a native of Japan, this imperfect pict- ure of primitive Japan which I have given appears in very different lights. The native who looks at this far-off morning of Great Japan, the Holy Country, sees his ancestors only through the atmosphere in which he has lived and breathed. The dim religious light of reverent teaching of mother, nurse, father, or book falls on every object to re- veal beauty and conceal defects. The rose-tints which innocent child- hood casts upon every object here makes all things lovely. Heaven lies about his country's infancy. The precepts of his religion make the story sacred, and forbid the prying eye and the sandaled foot. The native loves, with passionate devotion, the land that nursed his holy ancestors, and thrills at the oft-told story of their prowess and their holy lives. He makes them his model of conduct. The foreigner, in cold blood and with critical eye, patiently seeks the truth beneath, and, regarding not the dogma which claims to rest upon it, looks through dry light. To the one Nippon is the Land of the Gods, and the piiimal ages were holy. To the other, Japan is merely a geographical division of the earth, and its beginnings were from barbarism. 96 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. X. THE ANCIENT RELIGION. THE ancient religion of the Japanese is called Kami no michi (way or doctrine of the gods ; i. e., theology). The Chinese form of the same is Shinto. Foreigners call it Shintoism, or Sintooism. Almost all the foreign writers* who have professed to treat of Shinto have described only the impure form which has resulted from the contact with it of Buddhism and Chinese philosophy, and as known to them since the sixteenth century. My purpose in this chapter is to give a mere outline of ancient Shinto in its purity. A sketch of its tradi- tional and doctrinal basis has been given. Only a very few Shinto temples, called miya, have preserved the ancient purity of the rites and dogmas during the overshadowing influences of Buddhism. In Japanese mythology the universe is Japan, the legends relating to Japan exclusively. All the deities, with perhaps a few exceptions, are historical personages ; and the conclusion of the whole matter of cosmogony and celestial genealogy is that the mikado is the descend- ant and representative of the gods who created the heavens and earth (Japan). Hence, the imperative duty of all Japanese is to obey him. Its principles, as summed up by the Department of Religion, and pro- mulgated throughout the empire so late as 1872, are expressed in the following commandments : 1. " Thou shalt honor the Gods, and love thy country. 2. "Thou shalt clearly understand the principles of Heaven and the duty of man. 3. " Thou shalt revere the Mikado as thy sovereign, and obey the will of his court." * By far the best writing on Shinto, based on profound researches, is the long article of Mr. Ernest Satow, entitled " The Revival of Pure Shinto," in the Japan Mail, 1874, and contained in the "Proceedings of the Asiatic Society of Japan" for the same year. Also on "The Shinto Temples of*Ise," by the same writer. A scholarly article, by Mr. P. Kemperman, secretary to the German legation in Japan T was published in the Japan Mail of August 26th, 1874. THE ANCIENT RELIGION. 97 The chief characteristic, which is preserved in various manifesta- tions, is the worship of ancestors, and the deification of emperors, he- roes, and scholars. The adoration of the personified forces of nature enters largely into it. It employs no idols, images, or effigies in its worship. Its symbols are the mirror and the gohei strips of notched white paper depending from a wand of wood. It teaches no doctrine of the immortality of the soul, though it is easy to see that such a dogma may be developed from it, since all men (Japanese) are de- scended from the immortal gods. The native derivation of the term for man is hito (" light- bearer ") ; and the ancient title of the mi- kado's heir-apparent was " light-inheritor." Fire and light (sun) have from earliest ages been the objects of veneration. Shinto has no moral code, no accurately defined system of ethics or belief. The leading principle of its adherents is imitation of the illustrious deeds of their ancestors, and they are to prove themselves worthy of their descent by the purity of their lives. A number of salient points in their mythology are recognized as maxims for their guidance. It expresses great detestation of all forms of uncleanness, and is remarkable for the fullness of its ceremonies for bodily purifi- cation. Birth and death are especially polluting. Anciently, the corpse and the lying-in woman were assigned to buildings set apart, which were afterward burned. The priest must bathe and don clean garments before officiating, and bind a slip of paper over his mouth, lest his breath should pollute the offerings. Many special festivals were observed for purification, the ground dedicated for the purpose being first sprinkled with salt. The house and ground were defiled by death, and those who attended a funeral must also free themselves from contamination by the use of salt. The ancient emperors and priests in the provinces performed the actual ablution of the people, or made public lustrations. Later on, twice a year, at the festivals of purification, paper figures representing the people were thrown into the river, allegorical of the cleansing of the nation from the sins of the past six months. Still later, the mikado deputized the chief min- ister of religion at Kioto to perform the symbolical act for the peo- ple of the whole country. After death, the members of a family in which death had occurred must exclude themselves from all intercourse with the world, attend no religious services, and, if in official position, do no work for a specified number of days. Thanksgiving, supplication, penance, and praise are all represented 98 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. in the prayers to the gods, which are offered by both sexes. The em- peror and nobles often met in the temple gardens to compose hymns or sacred poems to the gods. Usually in prayer the hands are clap- ped twice, the head or the knees bowed, and the petition made in silence. The worshiper does not enter the temple, but stands before it, and first pulls a rope dangling down over a double gong, like a huge sleigh-bell, with which he calls the attention of the deity. The kami are believed to hear the prayer when as yet but in thought, be- fore it rises to the lips. Not being intended for human ears, elo- quence is not needed. The mikado in his palace daily offers up peti- tions for all his people, which are more effectual than those of his sub- jects. Washing the hands and rinsing out the mouth, the worshiper repeats prayers, of which the following is an example : " O God, that dwellest in the high plain of heaven, who art divine in substance and in intellect, and able to give protection from guilt and its penalties, to banish impurity, and to cleanse us from uncleanness hosts of gods, give ear and listen to these our petitions." Or this : " I say with awe, deign to bless me by correcting the unwitting faults which, seen and heard by you, I have committed; by blowing off and clearing away the calamities which evil gods might inflict ; by causing me to live long, like the hard and lasting rock ; and by repeating to the gods of heavenly origin, and to the gods of earthly origin, the peti- tions which I present every day, along with your breath, that they may hear with the sharp-earedness of the forth-galloping colt." The offerings, most commonly laid with great ceremony by the priest, in white robes, before the gods, were fruit and vegetables in season, fish and venison. At night they were removed, and became the property of the priest. Game and fowls were offered up as an act of worship, but with the peculiarity that their lives were not sacri- ficed. They were hung up by the legs before the temple for some time, and then permitted to escape, and, being regarded as sacred to the gods, were exempt from harm. The new rice and the products furnished by the silk-worm and the cotton-plant were also dedicated. Before each temple stood a fora, or bird-rest. This was made of two upright tree-trunks. On the top of these rested a smoother tree, with ends slightly projecting, and underneath this a smaller horizontal beam. On this perched the fowls offered up to the gods, not as food, but as chanticleers to give notice of day-break. In later centuries the meaning of the fora was forgotten, and it was supposed to be a gate- way. The Buddhists attached tablets to its cross-beam, painted or THE ANCIENT RELIGION. 99 coppered its posts, curved its top-piece, made it tf stone or bronze, and otherwise altered its character. Resembling two crosses with their ends joined, the torii is a conspicuous object in the landscape, and a purely original work of Japanese architecture. All the miyas were characterized by rigid simplicity, constructed of pure wood, and thatched. No paint, lacquer, gild'ing, or any mer- etricious ornaments were ever allowed to adorn or defile the sacred structure, and the use of metal was avoided. Within, only the gohei and the daily offerings were visible. Within a closet of purest wood is a case of wood containing the "august spirit-substitute," or "gods'- seed," in which the deity enshrined in the particular temple is be lievecl to reside. This spirit-substitute is usually a mirror, which in some temples is exposed to view. The principal Shinto temples are at Ise, in which the mirror given by Amaterasii to Ninigi, and brought down from heaven, was enshrined. Some native writers assert that the mirror was the goddess herself ; others, that it merely represented her. All others in Japan are imitations or copies of this original. The priests of Shinto are designated according to their rank. They are called Jcannushi (shrine-keepers). Sometimes they receive titles from the emperor, and the higher ranks of the priesthood are court nobles. They are, in the strictest sense of the word, Government offi- cials. The office of chief minister of religion was hereditary in the Nakatomi family. Ordinarily they dress like other people, but are robed in white when officiating, or in court -dress when at court. They marry, rear families, and do not shave their heads. The office is usually hereditary. Virgin priestesses also minister at the shrines. After all the research of foreign scholars who have examined the claims of Shinto on the soil, and by the aid of the language, and the sacred books and commentators, many hesitate to decide whether Shinto is " a genuine product of Japanese soil," or whether it is not closely allied with the ancient religion of China, which existed before the period of Confucius. The weight of opinion inclines to the latter belief. Certain it is that many of the Japanese myths are almost ex- actly like those of China, while many parts of the cosmogony can be found unaltered in older Chinese works. The Kojiki (the Bible of the Japanese believers in Shinto) is full of narrations; but it lays down no precepts, teaches no morals or doctrines, prescribes no ritual. Shinto has very few of the characteristics of a religion, as understood by us. The most learned native commentators and exponents of Shin- to expressly maintain the view, that Shinto has no moral code. Mo- 100 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. toori, the great modern revivalist of Shinto, teaches, with polemic em- phasis, that morals were invented by the Chinese because they were an immoral people ; but in Japan there was no necessity for any sys- tem of morals, as every Japanese acted aright if he only consulted his own heart. The duty of a good Japanese consists in obeying the commands of the mikado without questioning whether these com- mands are right or wrong. It was only immoral people, like the Chinese, who presumed to discuss the character of their sovereigns. Among the ancient Japanese, government and religion were the same.* * In this chapter, I have carefully endeavored to exclude mere opinions and conjectures, and to give the facts only. I append below the views held by gen- tlemen of cosmopolitan culture, and earnest students of Shinto on the soil, whose researches and candor entitle them to be heard. "Shinto, as expounded by Motoori, is nothing else than an engine for reducing the people to a condition of mental slavery." ERNEST SATOW, English, the fore- most living Japanese scholar, and a special student of Shinto. " There is good evidence that Shinto resembles very closely the ancient religion of the Chinese." "A distinction should be drawn between the Shinto of ancient times and the doctrine as developed by writers at the court of the mikado in modern times." "The sword and dragon, the thyrsus staff' and ivy, the staff of ^Esculapius and snakes, most probably had the same significance as the Japanese gohei; and, as Sieboldhas remarked, it symbolized the union of the two elements, male and female. The history of the creation of the world, as given by the Japa- nese, bore the closest resemblance to the myths of China and India; while little doubt existed that these (symbol and myth) were imported from the West, the difficulty being to fix the date. Little was known of Shinto that might give it the character of a religion as understood by Western nations." J. A. VON BRANDT, German, late minister of the German empire to Japan, and now to Peking, a student of Japanese archaeology, and founder of the German Asiatic Society of Japan. " Japanese, in general, are at a loss to describe what Shinto is ; but this cir- cumstance is intelligible if what was once an indigenous faith had been turned, in later days, into a political engine." " Infallibility on the part of the head of the state, which was naturally attributed to rulers claiming divine descent, was a convenient doctrine for political purposes in China or Japan, as elsewhere." "We must look to early times for the meaning of Shinto." " Its origin is close- ly allied to the early religion of the Chinese." "The practice of putting up sticks with shavings or paper attached, in order to attract the attention of the spirits, is observable among certain hill tribes of India, as well as among the Ainos of Yexo. The Hindoos, Burmese, and Chinese have converted these sticks into flags, or streamers." "If Shinto had ever worked great results, or had taken deep hold on the Japanese people, it would scarcely have been superseded so completely as it had been by Buddhism." Sir HARRY S. PARKES, British minister plenipotentiary in Japan, a fine scholar, and long resident in both China and Japan. " The leading idea of Shinto is a reverential feeling toward the dead." " As to the political use of it, the state is quite right in turning it to account in support of the absolute government which exists in Japan." "The early records of Ja- pan are by no means reliable." ARINORI MORI, Japanese, formerly charge d'af- faires of Japan at Washington, U. S. A., now Vice-Minister of Foreign Affairs in Japan. THE THRONE AND THE NOBLE FAMILIES. 101 XL THE THRONE AND THE NOBLE FAMILIES. FROM the beginning of the Japanese empire, until the century aft- er the introduction of Buddhism, the mikados were the real rulers of their people, having no hedge of division between them and their subjects. The palace was not secluded from the outer world. No screen hid the face of the monarch from the gaze of his subjects. No bureauocracy rose, like a wall of division, between ruler and ruled. No hedge or net of officialdom hindered free passage of remonstrance or petition. The mikado, active in word and deed, was a real ruler, leading his armies, directing his Government. Those early days of comparative national poverty when the mikado was the warrior-chief of a conquering tribe ; and, later, when he ruled a little kingdom in Central Japan, holding the distant portions of his quasi -empire in tribute ; and, still later, when he was the head of an undivided em- pire mark the era of his personal importance and energy. Then, in the mikado dwelt a manly soul, and a strong mind in a strong body. This era was the golden age of the imperial power. He was the true executive of the nation, initiating and carrying out the enterprises of peace or war. As yet, no military class had arisen to make themselves the arbiters of the throne ; as yet, that throne was under no proprie- torship ; as yet, there was but one capital and centre of authority. Gradually, however, there arose families of nobility who shared and dictated the power, and developed the two official castes of civilian and military officials, widening the distance between the sovereign and his subjects, and rendering him more and more inaccessible to his people. Then followed in succession the decay of his power, the cre- ation of a dual system of government, with two capitals and centres of authority ; the domination of the military classes ; the centuries of anarchy ; the progress of feudalism ; the rending of the empire into hundreds* of petty provinces, baronies, and feudal tenures. Within the time of European knowledge of Japan, true national unity has scarcely been known. The political system has been ever in a state 102 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. of unstable equilibrium, and the nation but a conglomeration of units, in which the forces of repulsion ever threatened to overcome the forces of cohesion. Two rulers in two capitals gave to foreigners the im- pression that there were two " emperors " in Japan an idea that has been incorporated into most of the text -books and cyclopedias of Christendom. Let it be clearly understood, however, that there never was but one emperor in Japan, the mikado, who is and always was The Mikado on his Throne. Time, from the Seventh to the Twelfth Century. the only sovereign, though his measure of power has been very dif- ferent at various times. Until the rise and domination of the milita- ry classes, he was in fact, as well as by law, supreme. How the mi- kado's actual power ebbed away shall form the subject of this and the following chapter. From the death of Nintoku Tenno, the last of the long-lived mika- dos, to Kirnmei (540-571), in whose time continental civilization was introduced, a period of one hundred and forty-one years, fourteen em- perors ruled, averaging a little over ten years each. From Kimmei THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. 103 to Gotoba (A.D. 1198) fifty-three emperors reigned, averaging eleven years each. (See list of emperors, p. 123.) In A.D. 603, the first attempt to create orders of nobility for the nobles, already numerously existing, was made by the Empress Suiko. Twelve orders were instituted, with symbolic names, after the Chinese custom such as Virtue, Humanity, Propriety, etc. distinguished by the colors of the caps worn. In 649, this system was changed for that having nine ranks, with two divisions. In each of the last six were two subdivisions, thus in reality making thirty grades. The first grade was a posthumous reward, given only to those who in life had held the second. Every officer, from the prime minister to the offi- cial clerks, had a rank attached to his office, which was independent of birth or age. All officers were presented, and all questions of pre- cedence were settled, in accordance with this rank. The court officials, at first, had been very few, as might be imagined in this simple state of society without writing. The Jin Gi Kuan, which had existed from very ancient times, supervised the ceremonies of religion, the positions being chiefly held by members of the Naka- tomi family. This was the highest division of the Government. In A.D. 603, with the introduction of orders of nobility, the form of gov- ernment was changed from simple feudalism to centralized monarchy, with eight ministries, or departments of state, as follows : 1. Xakatsukasa no Sho (Department of the Imperial Palace). 2. Shiki bu Sho (Department of Civil Office and Education). 3. Ji bu Sho (Department of Etiquette and Ceremonies). 4. Mini bu Sho (Department of Revenue and Census). 5. Hio bu Sho (Department of War). 6. Gio bu Sho (Department of Justice). 7. O kura Sho (Department of Treasury). 8. Ku nai Sho (Department of Imperial Household). The Jin Gi Kuan (Council of Religion ; literally, Council of the Gods of Heaven and Earth), though anciently outranking the Dai Jo Kuan (Great Government Council), lost its prestige after the introduction of Buddhism. The Dai Jo Kuan, created A.D. 786, superintended the eight boards and ruled the empire by means of local governors ap- pointed from the capital. In it were four ministers : 1. Dai Jo Dai Jin (Great Minister of the Great Government). 2. Sa Dai Jin (Great Minister of the Left). 3. U Dai Jin (Great Minister of the Right). 4. Nai Dai Jin (Inner Great Minister). 104 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Of the eight departments, that of War ultimately became the most important. A special department was necessary to attend to the pub- lic manners and forms of society, etiquette being more than morals, and equal to literary education. The foreign relations of the empire were then of so little importance that they were assigned to a bureau of the above department. The treasury consisted of imperial store- houses and granaries, as money was not then in general use. Rice was the standard of value, and all taxes were paid in this grain. The introduction of these orders of nobility and departments of state from China brought about the change from the species of feu- dalism hitherto existing to centralized monarchy, the rise of the noble families, and the fixing of official castes composed, not, as in most ancient countries, of the priestly and warrior classes, but, as in China, of the civilian and military. The seeds of the mediaeval and modern complex feudalism, which lasted until 1872, were planted about this time. A division of all the able-bodied males into three classes was now made, one of which was to consist of regular soldiers permanently in service. This was the " military class," from which the legions kept as garrisons in the remote provinces were recruited. The unit of combination was the go, consisting of five men. Two go formed a kua, five kua a tai, two tai a rid, ten rid a dan. These terms may be translated " file," " squad," " company," " battalion," " regiment." The dan, or regi- ment, could also be regularly divided into four detachments. The generals who commanded the army in the field were in many cases civil officials, who were more or less conversant with the rude military science of the day. In their time, success in war depended more on disciplined numbers and personal valor, and was not so much a prob- lem of weight, mathematics, machinery, and money as in our day. The expeditions were led by a shogun, or general, who, if he com- manded three regiments, was called a tai -shogun, or generalissimo. The vice-commanders were called fuku-shogun. Thus it will be seen that the term " shogun " is merely the Japanese word for " general." All generals were shoguns, and even the effete figure-head of the great usurpation at Yedo, with whom Commodore Perry and those who fol- lowed him made treaties, supposing him to be the " secular emperor," was nothing more. Muster-rolls were kept of the number of men in the two remaining classes that could be sent in the field on an emergency ; and whenever an insurrection broke out, and a military expedition was determined THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. 105 upon, orders were sent to the provinces along the line of march to be ready to obey the imperial command, and compare the quota required with the local muster-rolls. An army would thus be quickly assem- bled at the capital, or, starting thence, could be re-enforced on the route to the rebellious province. All that was necessary were the or- ders of the emperor. When war was over, the army was dissolved, and the army corps, regiments, and companies were mustered out of service into their units of combination, go of five men. The general, doffing helmet, made his votive offering to the gods, and returned to garrison duty. Until about the twelfth century, the Japanese empire, like the old Roman, was a ,centre of civilization surrounded by barbarism, or, rath- er, like a wave advancing ever farther northward. The numerous re- volts in Kiushiu, Shikoku, and even in the North and East of Hondo, show that the subjugation of these provinces was by no means com- plete on their first pacification. The Kuanto needed continual mili- tary care, as well as civil government ; while the northern provinces were in a chronic state of riot and disorder, being now peaceful and loyally obedient, and anon in rebellion against the mikado. To keep the remote provinces in order, to defend their boundaries, and to col- lect tribute, military occupation became a necessity ; and, accordingly, in each of the distant provinces, especially those next to the frontier, beyond which were the still unconquered savages, an army was per- manently encamped. This, in the remote provinces, was the perma- nent military force. Throughout the country was a reserve militia, or latent army ; and in the capital was the regular army, consisting of the generals and " the Six Guards," or household troops, who form- ed the regular garrison of Kioto in peace, and in war became the nu- cleus of the army of chastisement. This system worked well at first, but time showed its defects, and wherein it could be improved. Among that third of the population classed as soldiers, some naturally proved themselves brave, apt, and skillful ; others were worthless in war, while in the remaining two- thirds many who were able and willing could not enter the army. About the end of the eighth century a reform was instituted, and a new division of the people made. The court decided that all those among the^ rich peasants who had capacity, and were skilled in arch- ery and horsemanship, should compose the military class, and that the remainder, the weak and feeble, should continue to till the soil and apply themselves to agriculture. The above was one of the most sig- 106 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. nificant of all the changes in the history of Japan. Its fruits are seen to-day in the social constitution of the Japanese people. Though there are many classes, there are but two great divisions of the Japa- nese, the military and the agricultural. It wrought the complete sev- erance of the soldier and the farmer. It lifted up one part of the peo- ple to a plane of life on which travel, adventure, the profession and the pursuit of arms, letters, and the cultivation of honor and chivalry were possible, and by which that brightest type of the Japanese man, the samurai, was produced. This is the class which for centuries has monopolized arms, polite learn- ing, patriotism, and intellect of Japan. They are the men whose minds have been ever open to learn, from whom sprung the ideas that once made, and which later over- threw, the feudal system,which wrought the mighty reforms that swept away the shogunate in 1868, restored the mikado to ancient power, who intro- duced those ideas that now rule Japan, and sent their sons abroad to study the civilization A Samurai, in Winter Traveling-dress. o f tne West. To the samurai Japan looks to-day for safety in war, and progress in peace. The samurai is the soul of the nation. In other lands the priestly and the military castes were formed. In Japan one and the same class held the sword and the pen liberal learning and secular culture. The other class the agricultural remained unchanged. Left to the soil to till it, to live and die upon it, the Japanese farmer has remained the same to-day as he was then. Like the wheat that for successive ages is planted as wheat, sprouts, beards, and fills as wheat, the peas- ant, with his horizon bounded by his rice-fields, his water-courses, or the timbered hills, his intellect laid away for safe -keeping in the priests' hands, is the son of the soil ; caring little who rules him, un- less he is taxed beyond the power of flesh and blood to bear, or an THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. 10' A. Japanese Farmer. (Seed-beds of rice protected from the birds by strings and slips of wood.)* overmeddlesome officialdom touches his land to transfer, sell, or re- divide it: then he rises as a rebel. In time of war, he is a disinter- ested and a passive spectator, and he does not fight. He changes masters with apparent unconcern. Amidst all the ferment of ideas induced by the contact of Western civilization with Asiatic within the last two decades, the farmer stolidly remains conservative : he knows not, nor cares to hear, of it, and hates it because of the heavier taxes it imposes upon him. * In the above sketch by Hokusai, the farmer, well advanced in life, bent and bald, is looking: dubiously over a piece of newly tilled land, perhaps just reclaim- ed, which he defends from the birds by the device of strings holding strips of thin wood and bamboo stretched from a pole. With his ever-present bath-towel and hcadkerchief on his shoulders, his pipe held behind him, he stands in medi- tative attitude, in his old rice-straw sandals, run down and out at the heels, his well-worn cotton coat, darned crosswise for durability and economy, wondering whether he will see a full crop before he dies, or whether he can pay his taxes, and fill his children's mouths with rice. The writing at side is a proverb which has two meanings: it may be read, "A new field gives a small crop," or ''Hu- man life is but fifty years." In either case, it has pregnant significance to the farmer. The pathos and humor are irresistible to one who knows the life of these sons of toil. 108 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. To support the military, a certain portion of rice was set apart per- manently as revenue, and given as wages to the soldiers. This is the origin of the pensions still enjoyed by the samurai, and the burden of the Government and people, which in 1876, after repeated reductions, amounts to nearly $18,000,000. Let us notice how the noble families originated. To this hour these same families, numbering one hundred and fifty -five in all, dwell in Tokio or Kioto, intensely proud of their high descent from "the mikados and the heavenly gods, glorying in their pedigree more than the autochthons of Greece gloried in their native soil. The ex- istence of this feeling of superiority to all mankind among some of the highest officials under the present mikado's government has been the cause of bitter quarrels, leading almost to civil war. Under the altered circumstances of the national life since 1868, the officials of ancient lineage, either unable to conceal, or desirous of manifesting their pride of birth, have on various occasions stung to rage the ris- ing young men who have reached power by sheer force of merit. Between these self-made men, whose minds have been expanded by contact with the outer world, and the high nobles nursed in the at- mosphere of immemorial antiquity, and claiming descent from the gods, an estrangement that at times seems irreconcilable has grown. As the chasm between the forms and spirit of the past and the pres- ent widens, as the modern claims jostle the ancient traditions, as vig- orous parvenuism challenges effete antiquity, the difficulty of harmo- nizing these tendencies becomes apparent, adding another to the cat- alogue of problems awaiting solution in Japan. I have heard even high officers under the Government make the complaint I have indi- cated against their superiors; but I doubt not that native patience and patriotism will heal the wound, though the body politic must suffer long. The kuge, or court nobles, sprung from mikados. From the first, polygamy was common among both aborigines and conquerors. The emperor had his harem of many beauties who shared his couch. In very ancient times, as early as Jimmu, it was the custom to choose one woman, called kogo, who was wife or empress in the sense of re- ceiving special honor, and of having her offspring most likely to suc- ceed to the throne. In addition to the wife, the mikado had twelve concubines, whose offspring might fill the throne in case of failure of issue by the wife. To guard still further against desinence, four fam- ilies of imperial descent were afterward set apart, from which an heir THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. 109 to the throne or a husband of the mikado's daughter might he sought. In either case the chosen one became mikado. Only those sons, brothers, or grandsons of the sovereign, to whom the title was spe- cially granted by patent, were called princes of the blood. There were five grades of these. Surnames were anciently unknown in Ja- pan ; individuals only having distinguishing appellatives. In 415, families were first distinguished by special names, usually after those of places. Younger sons of mikados took surnames and founded ca- det families. The most famous in the Japanese peerage are given below. By long custom it came to pass that each particular family held the monopoly of some one high office as its prerogative. The Nakatomi family was formerly charged with the ceremonies of Shinto, and religious offices became hereditary in that family. The Fujiwara (Wistaria meadow) family is the most illustrious in all Japan. It was founded by Kamatari, who was regent of the empire (A.D. 645-649), who was said to have been descended from Ame no ko yane no mikoto, the servant of the grandfather of Jimmu. The influence of this family on the destinies of Japan, and the prominent part it has played in history, will be fully seen. At present ninety-five of the one hundred and fifty-five families of kuge are of Fujiwara name and descent. The office of Kuambaku, or Regent, the highest to which a subject could attain, was held by members of this family exclusively. The Sugawara family, of which six families of kuge are descendants, is nearly as old as the Fujiwara. Its members have been noted for scholarship and learning, and as teachers and lecturers on religion. The Taira family was founded by Takamochi, great grandson of the Emperor Kuammu (A.D. 782-805), and became prominent as the great military vassals of the mikado. But five kuge families claim descent from the survivors. The Minamoto family was founded by Tsunemoto, grandson of the Emperor Seiwa (839-880). They were the rivals of the Taira. Seventeen families of kuge are descended from this old stock. The office of Sei-i Tai Shogun, or Barbarian-chastising Great General, was monopolized by the Minamoto, and, later, by other branches of the stock, named Ashikaga and Tokugawa. Though so many offices were created in the seventh century, the kuge were sufficiently numerous to fill them. The members of the .Fujiwara family gradually absorbed the majority, until almost all of the important ones at court, and the governorships of many provinces, were filled by them. When vacancies occurred, no question was 8 110 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. raised as to this or that man's fitness for the position : it was simply one of high descent, and a man of Fujiwara blood was sure to get the appointment, whether he had abilities or not. This family, in spite of its illustrious name and deeds, are to be credited with the forma- tion of a " ring " around the mikado, which his people could not break, and with the creation of one of the most accursed systems of nepotism ever seen in any country. Proceeding step by step, with craft and signal ability, they gradually obtained the administration of the government in the mikado's name. Formerly it had been the privilege of every subject to petition the sovereign. The Fujiwara ministers gradually assumed the right to open all such petitions, and decide upon them. They also secured the appointment of younger sons, brothers, nephews, and kinsmen to all the important positions. They based their hold on the throne itself by marrying their daugh- ters to the mikado, whose will was thus bent to their own designs. For centuries the empresses were chiefly of Fujiwara blood. In this way, having completely isolated the sovere?gn, they became the virtual rulers of the country and the proprietors of the throne, and dictated as to who should be made emperor. Every new office, as fast as cre- ated, was filled by them. In the year 888, the title of Kuambaku (literally, "the bolt inside the gate," but meaning "to represent to the mikado ") was first used and bestowed on a Fujiwara noble. The Kuambaku was the highest subject in the empire. He was regent during the minority of the emperor, or when an empress filled the throne. The office of Kuambaku, first filled by Fujiwara Mototsune, became hereditary in the family, thus making them all powerful. In time the Fujiwaras, who had increased to the proportions of a great clan, were divided into five branches called the Sekke, or Regent fam- ilies, named Konoye, Kujo, Nijo, Ichijo, and Takadzukasa. So long as the succession to the throne was so indefinite, and on such a wide basis, it was easy for this powerful family to choose the heir whenever the throne was empty, as it was in their power to make it empty when it so suited them, by compelling the mikado to abdicate. In A.D.' 794 the capital was removed to Kioto, seven miles from Lake Biwa, and there permanently located. Before that time it was at Kashiwabara, at Nara,* or at some place in the Home Provinces * The ancient town of Nara, one of the most interesting in all Japan, lies about twenty miles due east of Ozaka, in Yamato. The town and neighborhood abound with antiquities, mikado's tombs, grand old temples, and colossal images of Buddha. Seven sovereigns, of whom four were females, ruled at Nara from A.D. THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. HI (kinai) of Yamato, Yamashiro, or Settsu. So long as the course of empire was identified with that of a central military chief, who was the ruler of a few provinces and suzerain of tributaries, requiring him to be often in camp or on the march, government was by the sword rather than by the sceptre, and the permanent location of a capi- tal was unnecessary. As the area of dominion increased and became more settled the government business grew apace, in amount and complexity, and division of labor was imperative, and a permanent capital was of prime importance. The choice was most felicitous. The ancient city of Heianjo, seven miles south-west of the southern end of Lake Biwa, was chosen. The Japanese word meaning capital, or large city, is miako, of which kid or kid to is the Chinese equiva- lent. The name Heianjo soon fell into disuse, the people speaking of the city as the miako. Even this term gave way in popular usage to Kioto. Miako is now chiefly used in poetry, while the name most generally applied has been and is Kioto, the miako by excellence. Kioto remained the capital of Japan until 1868, when the miako was removed to Yedo, which city having become the kid, was re-named Tokio, or Eastern capital. The name Yedo is no longer in use among the Japanese. No more eligible site could have been chosen for the purpose. Kioto lies not mathematically, but geographically and prac- tically in respect of the distribution of population and habitable area, in the centre of Japan. It is nearly in the middle of the narrowest neck of land between the Sea of Japan and the Pacific Ocean. It lies at the foot, and stands like a gate between the great mountain ranges, diverging north and south, or east and west. Its situation at the base of the great central lake of Biwa, or Omi, forty miles from whose northern point is the harbor and sea-port of Tsuruga, makes it 708-782. Their reigns were prosperous and glorious, and were distinguished for the cultivation of the arts, literature, and religion. Here, in 711, the Kojiki was written, and in 713, by orders of the imperial court, sent to all the governors of provinces ; a book, in sixty-six volumes, descriptive of the provinces, cities, mount- ains, rivers, valleys, and plains, plants, trees, birds, and quadrupeds, was begun, and finished in 1634. Only fragments of this fine work are now extant. In the period 708-715 copper was discovered. In 739, the colossal gilded copper image of Buddha, fifty-three feet high, was cast and set up. Many envoys from China, and Buddhist priests from Siam, India, and China, visited Nara, one of the lat- ter bringing a library of five thousand volumes of Buddhist literature. In 749 it was forbidden by imperial edict to slaughter animals in Japan. A large col- lection of the personal and household articles in the possession of the mikados of the eighth century was exhibited at Nara in June, 1875, the inventories made at that ancient period being accessible for comparison. 112 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. acccessible to the ships coming from the entire west coast and from Yezo. On the west and east the natural mountain roads and passes slope down and open toward it. Forty miles to the south are the great harbors lining the bay of Ozaka, the haven of all ships from northern or southern points of the eastern coast. Easy river com- munications connect Ozaka with Kioto. The miako is beautiful for situation, the joy of the whole empire of Japan. The tone of reverential tenderness, of exulting joy, the sparkling of the eyes with which Japanese invariably speak of Kioto, witness to the fact of its natural beauty, its sacred and classic associa- tions, and its place in the affections of the people. The city stands on an elliptical plain walled in on all sides by evergreen hills and mountains, like the floor of a huge flattened crater no longer choked with lava, but mantled with flowers. On the south the river Kamo, and on the north, east, and west, flowing in crystal clearness, the afflu- ents, of Kamo curve around the city, nearly encircle it, uniting at the south-west to form the Yodo River. Through the centre and in sev- eral of the streets the branches of the river flow, giving a feeling of grateful coolness in the heats of summer, and is the source of the cleanliness characteristic of Kioto. The streets run parallel and cross at right angles, and the whole plan of the city is excellent. The mikado's palace is situated in the north-eastern quarter. Art and nature are wedded in beauty. The monotony of the clean squares is broken- by numerous groves, temples, monasteries, and cemeteries. On the mountain overlooking the city peep out pagodas and shrines. The hill-slopes blossom with gardens. The suburbs are places of de- light and loveliness. The blue Lake of Biwa, the tea-plantations of Uji, the thousand chosen resorts of picnic groups in the adjacent shady hills, the resorts for ramblers, the leafy walks for the poet, the groves for the meditative student or the pious monk, the thousand historical and holy associations invest Kioto with an interest attaching to no other place in Japan. Here, or in its vicinity, have dwelt for seventeen centuries the mikados of Japan. As the children and descendants of the mikados increased at the capital there was formed the material for classes of nobility. It was to the interest of these nobles to cherish with pride their traditions of divine descent. Their studied exaltation of the mikado as their head was the natural consequence. The respect and deference of dis- tant tributary princes wishing to obtain and preserve favor at court served only to increase the honor of these nobles of the capital. The THE THRONE AND THE NOBLES. 113 fealty of the distant princes was measured not only by their trib- ute and military assistance, but by their close conformity to the cus- toms of the miako, which naturally became the centre of learning and civilization. Previous to the era of Sujin, the observance of the time of begin- ning the new year, as well as the celebration of the sacred festivals to the gods, was not the same throughout the provinces. The acceptance of a uniform calendar promulgated from the capital was then, as now, a sign of loyalty of far greater significance than would appear to us at first sight. This was forcibly shown in Yokohama, as late as 1872, after the mikado had abolished the lunar, and ordered the use of the solar, or Gregorian, calendar in his dominions. The resident Chi- nese, in an incendiary document, which was audaciously posted on the gates of the Japanese magistrate's office, denounced the Japanese for having thus signified, by the adoption of the barbarians' time, that they had yielded themselves up to be the slaves of the " foreign devils." The mikado has no family name. He needs none, because his dynasty never changes. Being above ordinary mortals, no name is necessary to distinguish him from men. He need be personally dis- tinguished only from the gods. When he dies, he will enter the company of the gods. He is deified under some name, with Tenno (son, or king, of heaven) affixed. It was not proper (until 1872, when the custom was abrogated) for ordinary people to pronounce the name of the living mikado aloud, or to write it in full : a stroke should be left out of each of the characters. Previous to the general use of Chinese writing, the mikados, about fifty in all, had long names ending in " mikoto," a term of respect equiv- alent to " augustness," and quite similar to those applied to the gods. These extremely long names, now so unmanageable to foreign, and even to modern native, tongues, gave place in popular use to the great- ly abbreviated Chinese equivalents. A complete calendar of the names of the gods and goddesses, mikados and empresses and heroes, was made out in Chinese characters. It is so much more convenient to use these, that I have inserted them in the text, even though to do so seems in many an instance an anachronism. The difference in learned length and thundering sound of the Japanese and the Chinese form of some of these names will be easily seen and fully appreciated after a glance, by the Occidental reader who is terrified at the uncouthness of both, or who fears to trust his vocal organs to attempt their pro- 114 THE NIK AD ' S EMPIRE. nunciation. Amaterasii 6 mikami becomes Ten Sho Dai Jin ; Oki- naga Tarashi Hime becomes Jingu Kogo. After the Chinese writing became fashionable, the term mikoto was dropped. The mikados after death received a different name from that used when living : thus Kan Yamato Iware hiko no mikoto became, posthumously, Jimmu Tenno. The Golden Age of the mikado's power ceased after the introduc- tion of Buddhism and the Chinese system of officialdom. The de- cadence of his personal power began, and steadily continued. Many of the high ministers at court became Buddhists, as well as the mi- kados. It now began to be a custom for the emperors to abdicate after short reigns, shave off their hair in token of renunciation of the world, become monks, and retire from active life, taking the title Ho-6 (Ao, law of Buddha; o, mikado = cloistered emperor). During the eighth century, while priests were multiplying, and monasteries were everywhere being established, the court was the chief propaganda. The courtiers vied with each other in holy zeal and study of the sacred books of India, while the minds of the empresses and boy-emperors were occupied with schemes for the advancement of Buddhism. In 741, the erection of two great temples, and of a seven-storied pagoda in each province, was ordered. The abdication after short reigns made the mikados mere puppets of the ministers and courtiers. In- stead of warriors braving discomforts of the camp, leading armies in battle, or fighting savages, the chief rulers of the empire abdicated, after short reigns, to retire into monasteries, or give themselves up to license. This evil state of affairs continued, until, in later centuries, effeminate men, steeped in sensual delights, or silly boys, who droned away their lives in empty pomp and idle luxury, or became the tools of monks, filled the throne. Meanwhile the administration of the empire from the capital declined, while the influence of the military classes increased. As the mikado's actual power grew weaker, his nominal importance increased. He was surrounded by a hedge of etiquette that secluded him from the outer world. He never appeared in public. His subjects, except his wife and concubines and highest ministers, never saw his face. He sat on a throne of mats behind a curtain. His feet were never allowed to touch the earth. When he went abroad in the city, he rode in a car closely curtained, and drawn by bullocks. The relation of emperor and subject thus grew mythic- al, and the way was paved for some bold usurper to seize the actual- ity of power, while the name remained sacred and inviolate. THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION. 115 XII. THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION. WITH rank, place, and power as the prizes, there were not want- ing rival contestants to dispute the monopoly of the Fujiwara. The prosperity and domineering pride of the scions of this ancient house, instead of overawing those of younger families that were forming in the capital, served only as spurs to their pride and determination to share the highest gifts of the sovereign. It may be easily supposed that the Fujiwara did not attain the summit of their power without the sacrifice of many a rival aspirant. The looseness of the marriage tie, the intensity of ambition, the greatness of the prize the throne itself made the court ever the fruitful soil of intrigue, jealousies, proscription, and even the use of poison and the dagger. The fate of many a noble victim thus sacrificed on the altars of jealousy and revenge forms the subject of the most pathetic passages of the Jap- anese historians, and the tear-compelling scenes of the romance and the drama. The increase of families was the increase of feuds. Ar- rogance and pride were matched by craft and subtlety that finally led to quarrels which rent the nation, to civil war, and to the almost utter extinction of one of the great families. The Sugawara were the most ancient rivals of the Fujiwara. The most illustrious victim of court intrigue bearing this name was Suga- wara Michizane. This polished courtier, the Beauclerc of his age, had, by the force of his talents and learning, risen to the position of inner great minister. As a scholar, he ranked among the highest of his age. At different periods of his life he wrote, or compiled, from the oldest records various histories, some of which are still extant. His industry and ability did not, however r exempt him from the jeal- ous annoyances of the Fujiwara courtiers, who imbittered his life by poi sorting the minds of the emperor and courtiers against him. One of them, Tokihira, secured an edict banishing him to Kiushiu. Here, in the horrors of poverty and exile, he endeavored to get a petition to the mikado, but failed to do so, and starved to death, on the 25th 116 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. day of the Second month, 903. Michizane is now known by his posthumous name of Tenjin. Many temples have been erected in his honor, and students worship his spirit, as the patron god of letters and literature. Children at school pray to him that they may become good writers, and win success in study. Some of his descendants are still living. When Michizane died, the Sugawara were no longer to be dreaded as a rival family. Another brood were springing up, who were des- tined to become the most formidable rivals of the Fujiwara. More than a century before, one of the concubines, or extra wives, of the Emperor Kuammu had borne a son, who, having talents as well as im- perial blood, rose to be head of the Board of Civil Office, and master of court ceremonies an office similar to the lord high chamberlain of England.* To his grandson Takamochi was given the surname of Taira in 889 one hundred and one years before the banishment of Michizane. The civil offices being already monopolized by the Fujiwara, the members of the family of Taira early showed a fondness and special fitness for military life, which, with their experience, made them most eligible to the commands of military expeditions. The Fujiwara had become wholly wedded to palace life, and preferred the ease and lux- ury of the court to the discomforts of the camp and the dangers of the battle-field. Hence the shoguns, or generals, were invariably ap- pointed among sons of the Taira or the Minamoto, both of which families became the military vassals of the crown. While the men led the armies, fought the foe, and returned in triumph, the mothers at home fired the minds of their sons with the recital of the deeds of their fathers. Thus bred to arms, inured to war, and living chiefly in the camp, a hardy race of warriors grew up and formed the military caste. So long as the Taira or Minamoto leaders were content with war and its glory, there was no reason for the Fujiwara to fear dan- ger from them as rivals at court. But in times of peace and inaction, the minds of these men of war longed to share in the spoils of peace ; or, having no more enemies to conquer, their energies were turned against their fellows. The peculiar basis of the imperial succession opened an equally wide field for the play of female ambition ; and * Princes of the blood were eligible to the following offices : Minister of the imperial household, lord high chamberlain, minister of war, president of the censorate, and the governorships of Kodzuke, Kadzusa, and Hitachi. The act- ual duties of the office were, however, performed by inferior officials. THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION. 117 while Taira and Minamoto generals lusted after the high offices held by Fujiwara courtiers, Taira and Minamoto ladies aspired to become empresses, or at least imperial concubines, where they might, for the glory of their family, beard the dragon of power in his own den. They had so far increased in influence at court, that in 1008, the wife of the boy-emperor, Ichijo, was chosen from the house of Mi- namoto. The Minamoto family, or, as the Chinese characters express the name, Genji, was founded by Tsunemoto, the grandson of Seiwa (859-880) and son of the minister of war. His great-grandson Yori- yoshi became a shogun, and was sent to fight the Ainos; and the half-breeds, or rebels of mixed Aino and Japanese blood, in the east and extreme north of Hondo. Yoriyoshi's son, Yoshiiye, followed his father in arms, and was likewise made a shogun. So terrible was Yoshiiye in battle that he was called Hachiman taro. The name Taro is given to the first-born son. Hachiman is the Buddhist form of Ojin, the deified son of Jingu Kogo, and the patron of warriors, or god of war. After long years of fighting, he completely tranquilized the provinces of the Kuanto. His great-grandson Yoshitomo* became * The family name (uji) precedes the personal, or what we call the baptismal or Christian name. Thus the full name of the boy Kotaro, son of Mr. Ota, would be Ota Kotaro. Family names nearly always have a topographical mean- ing, having been taken from names of streets, villages, districts, rivers, mount- ains, etc. The following are specimens, taken from the register of my students in the Imperial College in Tokio, many of whom are descendants of the illustri- ous personages mentioned in this book, or in Japanese history. The great bulk of the Samurai claim descent from less than a hundred original families: Plain- village, Crane-slope, Hill-village, Middle -mountain, Mountain -foot, Grove-en- trance, High-bridge, East-river, River-point, Garden-mountain, River-meadow, Pine-village, Great-tree, Pine-well, Shrine-promontory, Cherry-well, Cedar-bay, Lower-field, Stone-pine, Front-field, Bamboo-bridge, Large-island, Happy-field, Shrine-plain, Temple-island, Hand-island, North-village, etc., etc. It Avas not the custom to have godparents, or namesakes, in our sense of these words. Mid- dle names were not given or used, each person having but a family and a person- al name. Neither could there be a senior and junior of exactly the same name in the same family, as with us. The father usually bestowed on his son half of his name ; that is, he gave him one Of the Chinese characters with which his own was written. Thus, Yoriyoshi named his first-born son Yoshiiye', i. e. t Yoshi (good) and iye (house or family). Yoshiiye had six sons, named, respectively, Yoshimune', Yoshichika, Yoshikuni, Yoshitada, Yoshitoki, and Yoshitaka. The Taira nobles retained the mori in Tadamori, in their own personal names. Fe- male names were borrowed from those of beautiful and attractive objects or of auspicious omens, and were usually not changed at marriage or throughout life. Males made use during life of a number of appellations given them, or assumed on the occasions of birth, reaching adult age, official promotion, change of life; 118 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the greatest rival of the Taira, and the father of Yoritomo, one of the ablest men in Japanese history. The star of Minamoto was in the ascendant. Meanwhile the Taira shoguns, who had the military oversight of the South and West, achieved a succession of brilliant victories. As a reward for his services, the court bestowed the island of Tsushima on Tadamori, the head of the house. It being a time of peace, Ta- damori came to Kioto to live, and while at court had a liaison with one of the palace lady attendants, whom he afterward married. The fruit of this union was a son, who grew to be a man of stout physique, In boyhood he gave equal indications of his future greatness and his View in the Inland Sea. future arrogance. He wore unusually high clogs the Japanese equiv- alent for " riding a high horse." His fellows gave the strutting roist- erer the nickname of Jcoheda ("high clogs"). Being the son of a soldier, he had abundant opportunity to display his valor. At this or on account of special events, entering a monastery, and after death. This cus- tom as a police measure, as well as for other reasons, was abolished in 1872. Oft- en a superior rewarded an inferior by bestowing upon him a new name, or by al- lowing him to incorporate one of the syllables expressed vividly to the eye by a Chinese character, of the superior's name. It was never the custom to name children after great men, as we do after our national heroes. Formerly the gen- itive particle no (of) was used; as Minamoto no Yoritomo means Yoritomo of the Minamoto family. In 1872, the peasantry were allowed to have family as well as individual names. THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION, 119 time the seas swarmed with pirates, who ravaged the coasts and were the scourge of Corea as well as Japan. Kiyomori, a boy full of fire and energy, thirsting for fame, asked to be sent against the pirates. At the age of eighteen he cruised in the Sea of lyo, or the Suwo Nada, which is part of the Inland Sea, a sheet of water extremely beautiful in itself, and worthy, in a high degree, to be called the Mediterranean of Japan. While on shipboard, he made himself a name by attacking and capturing a ship full of the most desperate villains, and by destroying their lurking-place. His early manhood was spent alternately in the capital and in service in the South. In 1153, at the age of thirty-six, he succeeded his father as minister of justice. The two families of Minamoto and Taira, who had together emerged from comparative obscurity to fame, place, and honor, had dwelt peacefully together in Kioto, or had been friendly rivals as sol- diers in a common cause on distant battle-fields, until the year 1156, from which time they became implacable enemies. In that year the first battle was fought between the adherents of two rival claimants of the throne. The Taira party was successful, and obtained posses- sion of the imperial palace, which gave them the supreme advantage and prestige which have ever since been possessed by the leader or party in whose hands the mikado is. The whole administration of the empire was now at Kiyomori's disposal. The emperor, who thus owed his elevation to the Taira, made them the executors of his poli- cy. This was the beginning of the domination of the military classes that lasted until 1868. The ambition of Kiyomori was now not only to advance himself to the highest position possible for a subject to occupy, but also to raise the influence and power of his family to the highest pitch. He further determined to exterminate the only rivals whom he feared the Minamoto. Not content with exercising the military power, he filled the offices at court with his own relatives, carrying the policy of nepotism to a point equal to that of his rivals, the Fujiwara. In 1167, at the age of fifty years, having, by his ener- gy and cunning, made himself the military chief of the empire, hav- ing crushed not only the enemies of the imperial court, but also his own, and having tremendous influence with the emperor and court, he received the appointment of Dai Jo Dai Jin. Kiyomori was thus, virtually, the ruler of Japan. In all his meas- ures he was assisted, if not often instigated to originate them by the ex-emperor, Go - Shirakawa, who ascended the throne in 1156, and abdicated in 1159, but was the chief manager of affairs during the 120 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. reigns of his son and two grandsons. This mikado was a very im- moral man, and the evident reason of his resigning was that he might abandon himself to debauchery, and wield even more actual power than when on the throne. In 1169, he abdicated, shaved off his hair, and took the title of Ho-o, or " cloistered emperor," and became a Buddhist monk, professing to retire from the world. In industrious seclusion, he granted the ranks and titles created by his predecessor in lavish profusion. He thus exercised, as a monk, even more influ- ence than when in actual office. The head of the Taira hesitated not to use all these rewards for his own and his family's private ends. In him several offices were held by one person. He argued that as View near II logo, from near the Site of the Taira Palace. others who had done no great services for court or emperor had held high offices, he who had done so much should get all he could. Finally, neither court nor emperor could control him, and he banished Icuge, and even moved the capital and court at his pleasure. In 1168, the power of the Taira family was paramount. Sixty men of the house held high offices at court, and the lands from which they enjoyed revenue extended over thirty provinces. They had splendid palaces in Kioto and at Fukuwara, where the modern treaty-port of Hiogo now stands overlooking the splendid scenery of the Inland Sea. Hesitating at nothing that would add to his glory or power, Kiyo- mori, in 1171, imitating his predecessors, made his daughter the con- THE BEGINNING OF MILITAR Y D OMINA TION. 121 cubine, and afterward the wife, of the Emperor Takakura, a boy eleven years old. Of his children one was now empress, and his two sons were generals of highest rank. His cup of power was full. The fortunes of the Fujiwara and Minamoto were under hopeless eclipse, the former having no military power, the latter being scat- tered in exile. Yoshitomo, his rival, had been killed, while in his bath, by Osada, his own traitorous retainer, who was bribed by Kiyomori to do the deed. The head of Yoshitomo's eldest son had fallen under the sword at Kioto, and his younger sons the last of the Minamoto, as he supposed were in banishment, or imrnured in monasteries. Tametomo defying the Taira men, after sinking their Ship. (From the vignette OP the greenback national-bank notes, drawn by a native artist.) The most famous archer, Minamoto Tametomo, took part in many of the struggles of the two rival families. His great strength, equal to that of many men (fifty, according to the legends), and the fact that his right arm was shorter than his left, enabled him to draw a bow which four ordinary warriors could not bend, and send a shaft five feet long, with enormous bolt -head. The court, influenced by the Taira, banished him, in a cage, to Idzu (after cutting the muscles of his arm), under a guard. He escaped, and fled to the islands of Oshima^and Hachijo, and the chain south of the Bay of Yedo. His arm having healed, he ruled over the people, ordering them not to send tribute to Idzu or Kioto. A fleet of boats was sent against him. Tametomo, on the strand of Oshima, sped a shaft at one of the 122 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. approaching vessels that pierced the thin gunwale and sunk it. He then, after a shout of defiance, shut himself up, set the house on fire, and killed himself. Another account declares that he fled to the Liu Kiu Islands, ruled over them, and founded the family of Liu Kiu kings, being the father of Sunten, the first historical ruler of this group of islands. A picture of this doughty warrior has been chosen to adorn the greenback currency of the banks of modern Japan. " Woe unto thee, O land, when thy king is a child !" The mika- dos* during the Taira period were nearly all children. Toba began to reign at six, abdicating at seventeen in behalf of his son Shiutoku, four years old ; who at twenty-four resigned in favor of Konoye, then four years old. The latter died at the age of sixteen, and was suc- ceeded by Go-Shirakawa, who abdicated after three years in favor of Nijo, sixteen years old, who died after six years, when Rokujo, one year old, succeeded. After three years, Takakura, eight years old, ruled thirteen years, resigning to Antoku, then three years of age. It is easily seen that the real power lay not with these boys and ba- bies, but with the august wire-pullers behind the throne. The Heike Monogatari, or the " Historic Romance of the Taira," is one of the most popular of the many classic works of fiction read by all classes of people in Japan. In this book the chief events in the lives, and even the manners and personal appearance, of the principal actors of the times of the Taira are seen, so that they become more than shadows of names, and seem to live before us, men of yesterday. The terms Heike and Genji, though Chinese forms of the names Taira and Minamoto, were, from their brevity, popularly used in preference to the pure native, but longer, forms of Taira and Minamoto. * For convenience of reference, the following chronological list of the sover- eigns of Japan is here appended. It is based on the list given in the Nihon Riya- ku Shi (Abridgment of Japanese History), Tokio, 1874 a book from which I have drawn freely in this work. The dates of their reigns, in terms of the Gregorian calendar, are obtained chiefly from a comparative almanac of Chinese, Japanese, and Western dates, compiled by a learned native scholar, who brings down this invaluable chronological harmony to the third day of the Twelfth month of Meiji (January 1st, 1874), when the solar or Gregorian calendar was adopted in Japan. The year dates approximate to within a few weeks of exactness. The names in italics denote female sovereigns. In two instances (37 and 39, 48 and 50), one em- press reigned twice, and has two posthumous titles. I have put the name of Jingu Kogo in the list, though the Dai Nihon Shi does not admit it, she having never been crowned or formally declared empress by investiture with the regalia of sovereignty. In several cases the duration of the reign was less than a year. The five "false emperors," printed in black spaces, are omitted from this list. Only the posthumous titles under which the mikados were apotheosized are here THE BEGINNING OF MILITARY DOMINATION. 123 given, though their living names, and those of their parents, are printed in the Nikon liiyaku Shi. Including Jingu, there were 123 sovereigns. The average length of the reigns of 122 was nearly twenty-one years. There has been but one dynasty in Japan. In comparison, the present emperor of China is the 273d, and the dynasty the 23d or 24th. CHRONOLOGICAL LIST OF JAPANESE EMPERORS. 1 Posthumous Title. Age at Death. Date of Reign. 1 Posthumous Title. Age at Death. Date of Reign. 1. Jimrau Suisei 127 84 660-585 B.C. 581-549 " 63. 64 Murakami Reizei 42 62 947- 967 A.D. 968 969 " Annei 57 548-511 " 65 Eniiiu 33 970 984 " Itokn 77 510-477 " 66 Kuasan 41 985- 986 " Kdshd 114 475-393 " 67 Ichijo 32 987 1011 " Koan 137 392 291 " 68 Sanjo 43 1012 1016 " 1 Kdrei 128 290 215 " 69 Go-Ichijd 29 1017 1036 " 8 116 214-158 " 70. Go-Shnjaku 37 1037 1046 " 9. 10. 11 Kuaika Sri.jin 115 119 141 157- 98 " 97- 30 " 29 B O tO 70 A D 71. 72. 73 Go-Reizei Go-Sanjo Shirakawa .... 44 40 77 1047-1068 " 1069-1072 " 1073 1086 " 12. 13 Keiko 143 108 71-130 " 131 191 " 74. 75 Horikawa Toba 29 55 1087-1107 " 1108-1123 " 14 China! 52 192 200 " 76 Shiutokn 46 11 9 4-1141 " 15 100 201 269 " 77 Konoye 17 1142 1155 " 16 Ojiu 111 270-310 " 78. Go-Shi rakawa 66 1156-1158 " IT. 18 Nintoku.... 110 77 313-399 " 400-405 " 79. 80 Nijo Rokujd 23 13 1159-1165 " 1166-1168 " 19 Hausho 60 406-411 " 81 Takakura 21 1169 1180 " 20 SO 412-453 " 82 Antoku 8 1181 1185 " 21 Anko 56 454^456 " 83. Gotoba 60 1184-1198 " 22. 23 Yuriyaku.. . Seinei ... 62 41 457-479 " 480-484 " 84. 85 Tsuchimikado Juntoku. .... 37 46 1199-1210 " 1211 1221 " 9-1 Kenso 38 485-487 " 86. Chiukid 17 1222-1222 " 25. 26 Ninkeu 51 57 488-498 " 499 506 " 87. 88. Go-Horikawa Shijo 23 12 1222-1232 " 1233 1242 " 27 Keitai ... . 82 507-531 " 89. Go-Saga 53 1243 1246 " 28 70 534-535 " 90. Go-Fnkakusa 62 1247 1259 " Qq Senkna 73 536-539 " 91. Kameyama 57 1260 1274 <; 30 63 540 571 " 92. Go-Uda 58 1275-1287 " 31. Bidatsu .... 48 572-585 " 93. Fnshimi 58 1288 1298 ' 32 Yomei 69 5S6-587 " 94. Go-Fnshimi 49 1299 1301 * tt Sujun 73 588-592 " 95. Go-Nijd 24 1302 1307 ' 34 Suiko 75 593-628 " 96. Hauazono . 52 1308-1318 ' ***> Jomei 49 629-641 " 97. Go-Daigo 52 1319 1338 ' 36. 37 Koqioku Kotoku 68 59 642-644 " 645-654 " 98. 99. Go-Murakami Chdkei :.. 41 1339-1367 ' 1368-1383 ' 38 Saimei . . . 655-661 " 100. Go-Kameyama. .... 78 1383 1392 ' 39 Tenchi 58 668 672 " 101 Go-Komatsu 57 1393 1412 ' 40 Kobun 25 672-672 " 102 Shdkd 28 1413-14 ( >8 ' 41. 42. 43. 44 Temmn Jito Momma Gemmid .... C5 58 25 61 673-686 ' 690-696 " 697-707 " 708-714 " 103. 104. 105. 106. Go-Han azono Go-Tsuchimikado.. Go-Kashiwara Go-Nara. . , 52 59 63 62 1429-1464 ' 1465-1500 1501-1526 1527 1557 ' 45 Gensho . . . 69 715-723 " 107 Okimachi 75 155S-1586 ' 46 Shomu 56 724-748 " 108. Goyozei 47 1587-1611 ' 47 Koken 53 749 758 " 109 85 1612 1629 ' 4S Juniiin 33 759 764 " 110. Miojo . . . 74 1630 1643 ' 49 SliotnkU 765-769 " 111. Go-Kdmio 22 1644-1(554 " f>0 KfMiin 73 770-781 " 112. Gosai 49 1655 1662 " 51 Knamma. . . 70 782-805 " 113. Reigen 79 1663-1686 " 52. 53. 54. RS Heijd *aga Jnnwa Niminio 51 57 55 41 806-809 " 810-823 824-833 834-850 114. 115. 116. 117. Hirashiyama Nakanomikado Sakuramachi Momozono 35 37 31 22 1687-1709 " 1710-1735 " 1736-1746 " 1747-1762 " 56. 57. 58 Moniokn ... Seiwa Yozei 32 31 82 851-858 ' 859-876 877-884 ' 118. 119. 120. Go-Snkuramachi . . . Go-Mom ozono Kokaku 74 22 70 1763-1770 " 1771-1779 " 1780-1816 " 59. Kdko 58 885-887 121. Ninkd 47 1817-1846 " 60 Ucla 65 88S-S97 ' 122 Kumei 37 1847-1 866 " 61 Dai^o 46 898-930 ' 123. Mutsnhito 1867 " 62. Shujakn .... 30 931-946 ' 124 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XIII. TORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. NEXT to portraying the beauties of nature, there is no class of sub- jects in which the native artists delight more than in the historical events related in their classics. Among these there are none treated with more frequency and spirit than the flight of Yoshitomo's concu- bine, Toldwa, after the death of her lord at the hands of bribed trai- tors. After the fight with the Taira in Kioto, in 1159, he fled east- ward, and was killed in a bath-room by three hired assassins at Ut- sumi, in Owari. Tokiwa was a young peasant-girl of surpassing beau- ty, whom Yoshitomo had made his concubine, and who bore him three children. She fled, to escape the minions of Taira. Her flight was in winter, and snow lay on the ground. She knew neither where to go nor how t to subsist ; but, clasping her babe to her bosom, her two little sons on her right, one holding his mother's hand, the other car- rying his father's sword, trudged on. That babe at her breast was Yoshitsune a name that awakens in the breast of a Japanese youth emotions that kindle his enthusiasm to emulate a character that was the mirror of chivalrous valor and knightly conduct, and that saddens him at the thought of one who suffered cruel death at the hands of a jealous brother. Yoshitsune, the youngest son of Yoshitomo, lives, and will live, immortal in the minds of Japanese youth as the Bayard of Japan. Kiyomori. intoxicated with success, conceived the plan of extermi- nating the Minamoto family root and branch. Not knowing where Tokiwa and her children had fled, he seized her mother, and had her brought to Kioto. In Japan, as in China, filial piety is the highest duty of man, filial affection the strongest tie. Kiyomori well knew that Tokiwa's sense of a daughter's duty would prevail over that of a mother's love or womanly fear. He expected Tokiwa to come to Kioto to save her mother. Meanwhile the daughter, nearly frozen and half starved, was met in her flight by a Taira soldier, who, pitying her and her children, gave YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 125 her shelter, and fed her with his own rations. Tokiwa heard of her mother's durance at Kioto. Then came the struggle between mater- nal and filial love. To enter the palace would be the salvation of her mother, but the death of her children. What should she do ? Her wit showed her the way of escape. Her resolution was taken to go to the capital, and trust to her beauty to melt the heart of Kiyomori. Thus she would save her mother and the lives of her sons. Her success was complete. Appearing in the presence of the dreaded enemy of her children, Kiyomori was dazed by her beauty, and wished to make her his concubine. At first she utterly refused ; but her mother, weeping floods of tears, represented to her the mis- ery of disobedience, and the happiness in store for her, and Tokiwa was obliged to yield. She consented on condition of his sparing her offspring. Kiyomori's retainers insisted that these young Minamotos should be put to death ; but by the pleadings of the beautiful mother, backed by the intercession of Kiyomori's aunt, their lives were spared. The babe grew to be a healthy, rosy-cheeked boy, small in stature, with a ruddy face and slightly protruding teeth. In spirit he was fiery and impetuous. All three of the boys, when grown, were sent to a monas- tery near Kioto, to be made priests : their fine black hair was shaved, and they put on the robes of Buddhist neophytes. Two of them re- mained so, but Yoshitsune gave little promise of becoming a grave and reverend bonze, who would honor his crape, and inspire respect by his bald crown and embroidered collar. He refused to have his hair shaved off, and in the monastery was irrepressibly merry, lively, and self-willed. The task of managing this young ox (Ushi-waka, he was then called) gave the holy brethren much trouble, and greatly scandalized their reverences. Yoshitsune, chafing at his dull life, and longing to take part in a more active one, and especially in the wars in the North, of which he could not but hear, determined to es- cape. How to do it was the question. Among the outside lay-folk who visited the monastery for trade or business was an iron-merchant, who made frequent journeys from Kioto to the north of Hondo. In those days, as now, the mines of Oshiu were celebrated for yielding the best iron for swords and other cutting^unplements. This iron, being smelted from the magnetic ox- ide and reduced by the use of charcoal as fuel, gave a steel of singular purity and temper which has never been rivaled in modern times. Yoshitsune begged the merchant to take him to Mutsu. He, be- 9 126 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ing afraid of offending the priest, would not at first consent. Yoshi- tsune persuaded him by saying that the priests would be only too glad to be rid of such a troublesome boy. The point was won, and Yoshitsune went off. The boy's surmises were correct. The priest thought it excellent riddance to very bad rubbish. While in the East, they stopped some time in Kadzusa, then infest- ed with robbers. Here Yoshitsune gave signal proof of his mettle. Among other exploits, he, on one occasion, single-handed and un- armed, seized a bold robber, and, on another, assisted a rich man to defend his house, killing five of the ruffians with his own hand. Yorishige, his companion and bosom-friend, begged him not to in- dulge in any unnecessary displays of courage, lest the Taira would surely hear of him, and know he was a Minamoto, and so destroy him. They finally reached their destination, and Yoshitsune was taken to live with Hidehira, a nobleman of the Fujiwara, who was prince of Mutsu. Here he grew to manhood, spending his time most conge- nially, in the chase, in manly sports, and in military exercises. At the age of twenty-one, he had won a reputation as a soldier of peerless valor and consummate skill, and the exponent of the loftiest code of Japanese chivalry. He became to Yoritomo, his brother, as Ney to Napoleon. Nor can the splendor of the marshal's courage outshine that of the young Japanese shogun's. Yoritomo, the third son of Yoshitomo, was born in the year 1146, and consequently was twelve years old when his brother Yoshitsune was a baby. After the defeat of his father, he, in the retreat, was separated from his companions, and finally fell into the hands of a Taira officer. On his way through a village called Awohaka, in Omi, a girl, the child of the daughter of the head-man whom Yoshitomo had once loved, hearing this, said, " I will follow my brother and die with him." Her people stopped her as she was about to follow Yoshitomo, but she afterward went out alone and drowned herself. The Taira officer brought his prize to Kioto, where his execution was ordered, and the day fixed ; but there, again, woman's tender heart and suppli- cations saved the life of one destined for greater things. The boy's captor had asked him if he would like to live. He answered, " Yes ; both my father and brother are dead; who but I can pray for their happiness in/ the next world ?" Struck by this filial answer, the officer went to Kiyomori's step-mother, who was a Buddhist nun, having be- come so after the death of her husband, Tadamori. Becoming inter- ested in him, her heart was deeply touched ; the chambers of her YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 127 memory were unlocked when the officer said, " Yoritomo resembles Prince Uma." She had borne one son of great promise, on whom she had lavished her affection, and who had been named Uma. The mother's bosom heaved under the robes of the nun, and, pitying Yori- tomo, she resolved to entreat Kiyomori to spare him. After import- unate pleadings, the reluctant son yielded to his mother's prayer, but condemned the youth to distant exile a punishment one degree less than death, and Yoritomo was banished to the province of Idzu. He was advised by his former retainers to shave off his hair, enter a mon- astery, and become a priest ; but Morinaga, one of his faithful serv- ants, advised him to keep his hair, and with a brave heart await the future. Even the few that still called themselves vassals of Minamoto did not dare to hold any communication with him, as he was under the charge of two officers who were responsible to the Taira for the care of their ward. Yoritomo was a shrewd, self-reliant boy, gifted with high self-control, restraining his feelings so as to express neither joy nor grief nor anger in his face, patient, and capable of great en- durance, winning the love and respect of all. He was as "Prince Hal." He afterward became as " bluff King Harry," barring the lat- ter's bad eminence as a marrier of many wives. Such was the condition of the Minamoto family. No longer in power and place, with an empress and ministers at court, but scat- tered, in poverty and exile, their lives scarcely their own. Yoritomo was fortunate in his courtship and marriage, the story of which is one of great romantic interest.* His wife, Masago, is one of the many fe- * Yoritomo had inquired which of the daughters of Hojo Tokimasa was most beautiful. He was told the eldest was most noted for personal charms, but the second, the child of a second wife, was homely. Yoritomo, afraid of a step-moth- er's jealousy (though fearing neither spear nor sword), deemed it prudent to pay his addresses to the homely daughter, and thus win the mother's favor also. He sent her a letter by the hand of Morinaga, his retainer, who, however, thought his master's affection for the plain girl would not last; so he destroyed his mas- ter's letter, and, writing another one to Masago, the eldest, sent it to her. It so happened that on the previous night the homely daughter dreamed that a pigeon came to her, carrying a golden box in her beak. On awaking, she told her dream to her sister, who was so interested in it that, after eager consideration, she re- solved " to buy her sister's dream," and, as a price, gave her toilet mirror to her sister, saying, as the Japanese always do on similar occasions, " The price I pay is little.',; The homely sister, perhaps thinking some of Masago's beauty might be reflected to hers, gladly bartered her unsubstantial happiness. Scarcely had she done this, than Yoritomo' s ( Morinaga' s) letter came, asking her to be his bride. It turned out to be a true love-match. Masago was then twenty-one years of age it being no ungallantry to state the age of a Japanese lady, living 128 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. male characters famous in Japanese history. She contributed not a little to the success of her husband and the splendor of the Kamakura court, during her life, as wife and widow. She outlived her husband many years. Her father, Hojo Toldmasa, an able man, in whose veins ran imperial blood, made and fulfilled a solemn oath to assist Yori- tomo, and the Hojo family subsequently rose to be a leading one in Japan. The tyranny and insolence of Kiyomori at Kioto had by this time (1180), one year before his death, become so galling and outrageous that one of the royal princes, determining to kill the usurper, con- spired with the Minamoto men to overthrow him. Letters were sent to the clansmen, and especially to Yoritomo, who wrote to Yoshitsune and to his friends to join him and take up arms. Among the for- mer retainers of his father and grandfather were many members of the Miura family. Morinaga personally secured the fealty of many men of mark in the Kuanto ; but among those who refused to rise against the Taira was one, Tsunetoshi, who laughed scornfully, and said, "For an exile to plot against the Heishi [Taira] is like a mouse plotting against a cat." At the head of the peninsula of Idzti is a range of mountains, the outjutting spurs of the chain that trends upward to the table-lands of Shinano, and thus divides Eastern from Western Japan. This range is called Hakone, and is famous not only as classic ground in history", but also as a casket enshrining the choicest gems of nature. It is well known to the foreign residents, who resort hither in summer to enjoy the pure air of its altitudes. Its inspiring scenery embraces a lake of intensely cold pure water, and of great depth and elevation above the sea-level, groves of aromatic pines of colossal size, savage gorges, sublime mountain heights, overcrowned by cloud-excelling Fuji, foaming cataracts, and boiling springs of intermittent and rhythmic flow, surrounded by infernal vistas of melted sulphur enveloped in clouds of poisonous steam, or incrusted with myriad glistening crys- tals of the same mineral. Over these mountains there is a narrow pass, which is the key of the Kuanto. Near the pass, above the vil- or dead. Masago's father, on his way home from Kioto, not knowing of the be- trothal of the young couple, promised Masago to Kanetaka, a Taira officer. On coming home, he would not break his word, and so married her to Kane'taka. But early on the wedding night Masago eloped with Yoritomo, who was at hand. Kanetaka searched in vain for the pair. Toldmasa outwardly professed to be \very angry with Yoritomo, but really loved him. YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 131 lage of Yumoto, is Ishi Bashi Yama (Stone-bridge Mountain), and here Yoritomo's second battle was fought, and his first defeat experi- enced. " Every time his bowstring twanged an enemy fell," but final- ly he was obliged to flee. He barely escaped with his life, and fort- unately eluded pursuit, secreting himself in a hollow log, having first sent his father-in-law to call out all his retainers and meet again. He afterward hid in the priest's wardrobe, in one of the rooms of a tem- ple. Finally, reaching the sea-shore, he took ship and sailed across the bay to Awa. "At this time the sea and land were covered with his enemies." Fortune favored the brave. Yoritoino, defeated, but not discouraged, while on the water met a company of soldiers, all equipped, belonging to the Miura clan, who became his friends, and offered to assist him. Landing in Awa, he sent out letters to all the Minamoto adherents to bring soldiers and join him. He met with encouraging and substantial response, for many hated Kiyomori and the Taira ; and as Yoritomo's father and grandfather had given pro- tection and secured quiet in the Kuanto, the prestige of the Minamoto party still remained. The local military chieftains had fought under Yoritomo's father, and were now glad to join the son of their old leader. He chose Kamakura as a place of retreat and permanent resi- dence, it having been an old seat of the Minamoto family. Yoriyoshi had, in 1063, built the shrine of Hachiman at Tsurugaoka, near the village, in gratitude for his victories. Yoritomo now organized his troops, appointed his officers, and made arrangements to establish a fixed commissariat. The latter was a comparatively easy thing to do in a fertile country covered with irrigated rice-fields and girdled with teeming seas, and where the daily food of soldier, as of laborer, was rice and fish. Marching up around the country at the head of the Bay of Yedo through Kadzusa, Shimosa, Musashi, and Sagami, cross- ing, on his way, the Sumida River, which flows through the modern Tokio, many men of rank, with their followers and horses, joined him. His father-in-law also brought an army from Kai. In a few months he had raised large forces, with many noted generals. He awakened new life in the Minamoto clan, and completely turned the tide of success. Many courtiers from Kioto, disappointed in their schemes at court, or in any way chagrined at the Taira, flocked to Yoritemo as his power rose, and thus brought to him a fund of expe- rience and ability which he was not slow to utilize for his own bene- fit. Meanwhile the Taira had not been idle. A large army was dis- patched to the East, reaching the Fuji River, in Suruga, about the 132 THE MIKADOES EMPIRE. same time that the Minamoto, headed by Yoritomo, appeared on the other side. The Taira were surprised to see such a host in arms. Both armies encamped on opposite banks, and glared at each other, eager for the fight, but neither attempting to cross the torrent. This is not to be wondered at. The Fujikawa bears the just reputation of being the swiftest stream in Japan. It rises in the northern part of Kai, on the precipitous side of the group of mountains called Yatsu dake, or "eight peaks," and, winding around the western base of the lordly Fuji, collecting into its own volume a host of impetuous tributaries born from the snows of lofty summits, it traverses the rich province of Suruga in steep gradient, plunging across the Tokaido, in arrowy celerity and volcanic force, into the sea near the lordly mount- ain which it encircles. To cross it at any time in good boats is a feat requiring coolness and skill ; in a flood, impossibility ; in the face of a hostile attack, sure annihilation. Though supremely eager to measure swords, neither party cared to cross to the attack, and the wager of battle was postponed. Both armies retired, the Taira retreating first. It is said that one of the Taira men, foreseeing that the tide would turn in favor of Yoritomo, went to the river flats at night, and scared up the flocks of wild fowl ; and the Taira, hearing the great noise, im- agined the Minamoto host was attacking them, and fled, panic-stricken. Yoritomo returned to Kamakura, and began in earnest to found a city that ultimately rivaled Kioto in magnificence, as it excelled it in pow- er. He gathered together and set to work an army of laborers, car- penters, and armorers. In a few months a city sprung up where once had been only timbered hills and valleys, matted with the perennial luxuriance of reeds or scrub bamboo, starred and fragrant with the tall lilies that still abound. The town lay in a valley surrounded by hills on every side, opening only on the glorious sea. The wall of hills was soon breached by cuttings which served as gate-ways, giving easy access to friends, and safe defense against enemies. While the laborers delved and graded, the carpenters plied axe,- hooked adze, and chisel, and the sword-makers and armorers sounded a war chorus on their anvils by day, and lighted up the hills by their forges at night. The streets marked out were soon lined with shops; and merchants came to sell, bringing gold, copper, and iron, silk, cotton, and hemp, and raw material for food and clothing, war and display. Store- houses of rice were built and filled ; boats were constructed and launched ; temples were erected. In process of time, the wealth of the Kuanto centred at Kamakura. While the old Taira chief lay dy- YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 133 ing in Kioto, praying for Yoritomo's head to be laid on his new tomb, this same head, safely settled on vigorous shoulders, was devising the schemes, and seeing them executed, of fixing the Minamoto power permanently at Kamakura, and of wiping the name of Taira from the earth. The long night of exile, of defeat, and defensive waiting of the Minamoto had broken, and their day had dawned with sudden and unexpected splendor. Henceforward they took the initiative. While Yoritomo carried on the enterprises of peace and the operations of war from his sustained stronghold, his uncle, Yukiiye, his cousin, Yoshinaka, and his brother, Yoshitsune, led the armies in the field. Meanwhile, in 1181, Kiyomori fell sick at Kioto. He had been a monk, as well as a prime minister. His death was not that of a saint. He did not pray for his enemies. The Nikon Guai Shi thus describes the scene in the chamber where the chief of the Taira lay dying : In the Second leap-month, his sickness having increased, his family and high officers assembled round his bedside, and asked him what he would say. Sighing deeply, he said, " He that is born must necessa- rily die, and not I alone. Since the period of Heiji (1159), I have served the imperial house. I have ruled under heaven (the empire) absolutely. I have attained the highest rank possible to a subject. I am the grandfather of the emperor on his mother's side. Is there still a regret ? My regret is only that I am dying, and have not yet seen the head of Yoritomo of the Minamoto. After my decease, do not make offerings to Buddha on my behalf ; do not read the sacred books. Only cut off the head of Yoritomo of the Minamoto, and hang it on my tomb. Let all my sons and grandsons, retainers and servants, each and every one, follow out my commands, and on no ac- count neglect them." So saying, Kiyomori died at the age of sixty- four. His tomb, near Hiogo, is marked by an upright monolith and railing of granite. Munemori, his son, became head of the Taira house. Strange words from a death-bed; yet such as these were more than once used by dying Japanese warriors. Yoritomo's head was on his body when, eighteen years afterward, in 1199, he died peacefully in his bed. Nevertheless, while in Kamakura, his bed-chamber was nightly guard- ed by hosen warriors, lest treachery might cut off the hopes of the Minamoto. The flames of war were now lighted throughout the whole empire. From Kamakura forces were sent into the provinces of Hitachi, in the East, and of Echizen and Kaga, North and West, 134 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. lestroying the authority of the Kioto bureaucracy. Victory and in- crease made the army of the rising clan invincible. After numerous bloody skirmishes, the victors advanced through Omi, and swooped on the chief prize, and Kioto, the coveted capital, was in their hands. The captors of the city were Yukiiye and Yoshinaka, the uncle and cousin of Yoritomo respectively. The Taira, with the young mikado, Antoku, and his wife, Kiyomori's daughter, fled. Gotoba, his broth- er, was proclaimed mikado in his stead, and the estates and treasures of the Taira were confiscated, and divided among the victors. Yoshinaka was called the Asahi shogun (Morning-sun General), on account of the suddenness and brilliancy of his rising. Being now in command of a victorious army at the capital, swollen with pride, and intoxicated with sudden success, and with the actual power then in his hands, he seems to have lost his head. He was elevated to high rank, and given the title and office of governor of Echigo ; but hav- ing been bred in the country, he could not endure the cap and dress of ceremony, and was the subject of ridicule to the people of Kioto. He became jealous of his superior, Yoritomo, who was in Kamakura, two hundred miles away. He acted in such an arbitrary and over- bearing spirit that the wrath of the cloistered emperor Goshirakawa was roused against him. Being able to command no military forces, he incited the monks of the immense monasteries of Hiyeizan and Miidera, near the city, to obstruct his authority. Before they could execute any schemes, Yoshinaka, with a military force, seized them, put the ex-mikado in prison, beheaded the abbots, and deprived the high officers of state of their honors and titles. He then wrested from the court the title of Sei-i Shogun (Barbarian-subjugating Gen- eral). His exercise of power was of brief duration, for Yoshitsune was invested with the command of the forces in the West, and, sent against him, he was defeated and killed,* and the ex-mikado was re- * The details of this struggle are graphically portrayed in the Nihon Gnai SM. Yoshinaka had married the lady Fujiwara, daughter of the court noble, Motofusa. When the Kamakura army was approaching Kioto, and quite near the city, he left his troops, and called at the palace to take leave of his wife. A long while having elapsed before he appeared, and every moment being critical, two of his samurai, grieved at his unseasonable delay, remonstrated with him, and then committed suicide. This hastened his movements. He attempted to carry off the cloistered emperor, but was repulsed by Yoshitsune" in person, and fled. His horse, falling into a quagmire in a rice-field, fell, and he, turning around to look at Kane"hira, his faithful vassal, was hit by an arrow in the forehead and fell dead. He was thirty-one years old. Kane"hira, having but eight arrows left in his quiver, shot down eight of the enemy's horsemen; and then, hearing a cry YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 135 leased, and the reigning emperor set free from the terrorism undei which he had been put. Meanwhile the Taira men, in their fortified palace at Fukuwara, were planning to recover their lost power, and assembling a great army in the South and West. The Minamoto, on the other hand, were expending all their energies to destroy them. The bitter ani- mosity of the two great families had reached such a pitch that the extermination of one or the other seemed inevitable. In 1184, Yoshi- tsune laid siege to the Fukuwara palace, and, after a short time, set it on fire. The son of Kiyomori and his chief followers fled to Sanuki, in Shikoku. Thither, as with the winged feet of an avenger, YoshU tsune followed, besieged them at the castle of Yashima, burned it, and drove his enemies, like scattered sheep, to the Straits of Shimo- noseki. Both armies now prepared a fleet of junks, for the contest was to be upon the water. In the Fourth month of the year 1185, all was ready for the struggle. The battle was fought at Dan no ura, near the modern town of Shimonoseki, where, in 1863, the combined squadrons of England, France, Holland, and the United States bom- barded the batteries of the Choshiu clansmen. In the latter instance the foreigner demonstrated the superiority of his artillery and disci- pline, and, for the sake of trade and gain, wreaked his vengeance as savage and unjust as any that stains the record of native war. In 1185, nearly seven centuries before, the contest was between men of a common country. It was the slaughter of brother by broth- er. The guerdon of ambition was supremacy. The Taira clan were at bay, driven, pursued, and hunted to the sea-shore. Like a wound- ed stag that turns upon its pursuers, the clan were about to give final battle ; by its wager they were to decide their future destiny a grave in a bloody sea, or peace under victory. They had collected five hun- among the enemy that his lord was dead, said, " My business is done," and, put- ting his sword in his mouth, fell skillfully from his horse so that the blade should pierce him, and died. His beautiful sister, Tomoye, was a concubine of Yoshi- naka; and being of great personal strength, constantly followed her lord in bat- tle, sheathed in armor and riding a swift horse. In this last battle she fought in the van, and, among other exploits, cut off the head of lyeyoshi, one of Yoshi- tsune-s best men. When her lord fled, she asked to be allowed to die with him. He refused to allow her, and, in spite of her tears, persisted in his refusal. Doff- ing her armor, she reached Shinano by private paths, and thence retired into Echigo, shaved off her hair, became a nun, and spent the remainder of her life praying for the eternal happiness of Yoshinaka. 136 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. dred vessels. They hurried on board their aged fathers and mothers, their wives and children. Among them were gentle ladies from the palace, whose silken robes seemed sadly out of place in the crowded junks. There were mothers, with babes at breast, and little children, too young to know the awful passions that kindle man against man. Among the crowd were the widow and daughter of Kiyomori, the former a nun, the latter the empress-dowager, with the dethroned mi- kado, a child six years old. With them were the sacred insignia of imperial power, the sword and ball. The Minamoto host was almost entirely composed of men, unin- cumbered with women or families. They had seven hundred junks. Both fleets were gayly fluttering with flags and streamers. The Taira pen- nant was red, the Minamo- to white, with two black bars near the top. The junks, though clumsy, were excellent vessels for fighting purposes fully equal to the old war-gal- leys of Actium. On one side were brave men flushed with victory, with passions kindled by hate and the memory of awful wrongs. On the other side were brave men nerved with the cour- age of despair, resolved to die only in honor, scorning life and country, wounds and death. The battle began. With impetuosity and despair, the Taira drove their junks hard against the Minamoto, and gained a temporary ad- vantage by the suddenness of their onset. Seeing this, Yoshitsune, ever fearless, cried out and encouraged his soldiers. Then came a lull in the combat. Wada, a noted archer of the Minamoto, shot an arrow, and struck the junk of a Taira leader. " Shoot it back !" cried the chief. An archer immediately plucked it out of the gunwale, and, fitting it to his bow before the gaze of the crews of the hostile fleet, let fly. The arrow sped. It grazed the helmet of one, and pierced A Japanese War-junk of the Twelfth Century. (Vignette illustration on the national bank-notes.) YORITOMO AND THE MINAMOTO FAMILY. 137 another warrior. The Minamoto were ashamed. " Shoot it back !" thundered Yoshitsune. The archer, plucking it out and coolly ex- amining it, said, " It is short and weak." Drawing from his quiver an arrow of fourteen fists' length, and fitting it to the string, he shot it. The five-feet length of shaft leaped through the air, and, piercing the armor and flesh of the Taira bowman who reshot the first arrow, fell, spent, into the sea beyond. Elated with the lucky stroke, Yoshitsune emptied his quiver, shooting with such celerity and skill that many Taira fell. The Minamoto, encouraged, and roused to the highest pitch of enthusiasm, redoubled their exertions with oar and arrow, and the tide of victory turned. The white flag triumphed. Yet the Taira might have won the day had not treachery aided the foe. The pages of Japanese history teem with instances of the destruction of friends by traitors. Perhaps the annals of no other country are richer in the recitals of results gained by treachery. The Arnold of the Taira army was Shigeyoshi, friend to Yoshitsune. He had agreed upon $ signal, by which the prize could be seen, and when seen could be sur- rounded and captured. Yoshitsune, eagerly scanning the Taira fleet, finally caught sight of the preconcerted signal, and ordered the cap- tains of a number of his junks to surround the particular one of the Taira. In a trice the junks of the white pennant shot along-side the devoted ship, and her decks were boarded by armed men. Seeing this, a Taira man leaped from his own boat to kill Yoshitsune in close combat. Yoshitsune jumped into another junk. His enemy, thus foiled, drowned himself. In the hand-to-hand fight with swords, To- momori and six other Taira leaders were slain. Seeing the hopeless state of affairs, and resolving not to be capt- ured alive, the nun, Kiyomori's widow, holding her grandson, the child emperor, in her arms, leaped into the sea. Taigo, the emperor's mother, vainly tried to save her child. Both were drowned. Mune- mori, head of the Taira house, and many nobles, gentlemen, and ladies, were made prisoners. The combat deepened. The Minamoto loved fighting. The Taira scorned to surrender. Revenge lent its maddening intoxication. Life, robbed of all its charms, gladly welcomed glorious death. The whizzing of arrows, the clash of two-handed swords, the clanging of armoiy the sweep of churning oars, the crash of colliding junks, the wild song of the rowers, the shouts of the warriors, made the storm- chorus of battle. One after another the Taira ships, crushed by the prows of their opponents, or scuttled by the iron bolt-heads of the 138 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Minamoto archers, sunk beneath the bubbling waters, leaving red whirl- pools of blood. Those that were boarded were swept with sword and spear of their human freight. The dead bodies clogged the decks, on which the mimic tides of blood ebbed and flowed and splashed with the motion of the waves, while the scuppers ran red like the spouts of an abattoir. The warriors who leaped into the sea became tar- gets for the avenger's arrows. Noble and peasant, woman and babe, rower and archer, lifting imploring arms, or sullenly spurning mercy, perished by hundreds. That May morning looked upon a blue sea laughing with unnum- bered ripples, and glinting with the steel of warriors decked in all the glory of battle-array, and flaunting with the gay pennants of the fleet which it seemed proud to bear. At night, heaving crimson like the vat of a dyer, defiled by floating corpses, and spewing its foul cor- ruption for miles along the strand, it bore awful though transient witness to the hate of man. The Taira, driven off the face of the earth, were buried with war's red burial beneath the sea, that soon forgot its stain, and laughed again in purity of golden gleam and deep-blue wave. The humble fisherman casting his nets, or trudging along the shore, in astonish- ment saw the delicate corpses of the court lady and the tiny babe, and the sun-bronzed bodies of rowers, cast upon the shore. The child who waded in the surf to pick up shells was frightened at the wave- rolled carcass of the dead warrior, from whose breast the feathered ar- row or the broken spear-stock protruded. The peasant, for many a day after, burned or consigned to the burial flames many a fair child whose silken dress and light skin told of higher birth and gentler blood than their own rude brood. Among a superstitious people dwelling by and on the sea, such an awful ingulfing of human life made a profound impression. The presence of so many thousand souls of dead heroes was overpowering. For years, nay, for centuries afterward, the ghosts of the Taira found naught but unrest in the sea in which their mortal bodies sunk. The sailor by day hurried with bated breath past the scene of slaughter and unsubstantial life. The mariner by night, unable to anchor, and driven by wind, spent the hours of darkness in prayer, while his vivid imagination converted the dancing phosphorescence into the white hosts of the Taira dead. Even to-day the Choshiu peasant fancies he sees the ghostly armies baling out the sea with bottomless dippers, condemned thus to cleanse the ocean of the stain of centuries ago. TORITOMO AND THE M1NAMOTO FAMILY. 139 A few of the Taira escaped and fled to Kiushiu. There, secluded in the fastnesses of deep valleys and high mountains, their descend- ants, who have kept themselves apart from their countrymen for near- ly seven hundred years, a few hundred in number, still live in poverty and pride. Their lurking-place was discovered only within the last century. Of the women spared from the massacre, some married their conquerors, some killed themselves, and others kept life in their defiled bodies by plying the trade in which beauty ever finds ready customers. At the present day, in Shimonoseki,* the courtesans de- scended from the Taira ladies claim, and are accorded, special privi- leges. The vengeance of the Minamoto did not stop at the sea. They searched every hill and valley to exterminate every male of the doom- ed clan. In Kioto many boys and infant sons of the Taira family were living. All that were found were put to death. The Herod of Kamakura sent his father-in-law to attend to the bloody business. In the Fourth month the army of Kamakura returned to Kioto, en- joying a public triumph, with their spoils and prisoners, retainers of the Taira. They had also recovered the sacred emblems. For days the streets of the capital were gay with processions and festivals, and the coffers of the temples were enriched with the pious offerings of the victors, and their walls with votive tablets of gratitude. Munemori was sent to Kamakura, where he saw the man whose head his father had charged him on his death-bed to cut off and hang on his tomb. His own head was shortly afterward severed from his body by the guards who were conducting him to Kioto. * Shimonoseki is a town of great commercial importance, from its position at the entrance of the Inland Sea. It consists chiefly of one long street of two miles, at the base of a range of low steep hills. It lies four miles from the west- ern entrance of Hayato no seto, or strait of Shimonose'ki. The strait is from two thousand to five thousand feet wide, and about seven miles long. Mutsure" Island (incorrectly printed as "Rockuren" on foreign charts) lies near the en- trance. On Hiku Island, and at the eastern end of the strait, are light-houses equipped according to modern scientific requirements. Four beacons, also, light the passage at night. The current is very strong. A submarine telegraphic ca- ble now connects the electric wires of Nagasaki, from Siberia to St. Petersburg; and of Shanghae (China) to London and New York, with those of Tokio and Ha- kodate". On a ledge of rocks in the channel is a monument in honor of Antoku, the your 3 emperor who perished here in the arms of his grandmother, Tokiko, the Nil no ama, a title composed of Nil, noble of the second rank, and ama, nun, equal to " the noble nun of the second rank." 140 TEE MIKADO'S EMPIZK XIV. CREATION OF THE DUAL SYSTEM OF GOVERNMENT. MEANWHILE Yoritomo was strengthening his power at Kamakura. and initiating that dual system of government which has puzzled sc many modern writers on Japan, and has given rise to the supposition that Japan had " two emperors, one temporal, the other spiritual." The country at this time was distracted with the disturbances of the past few years; robbers were numerous, and the Buddhist mon- asteries were often nests of soldiers. Possessed of wealth, arms, and military equipments, the bonzes were ever ready to side with the par- ty that pleased them. The presence of such men and institutions rendered it difficult for any one ruler to preserve tranquillity, since it was never known at what moment these professedly peaceful men would turn out as trained bands of military warriors. To restore or- der, prosperity, revenue, and firm government was now the professed wish of Yoritomo. He left the name and honor of government at Kioto. He kept the reality in Kamakura in his own hands, and for his own family. In 1184, while his capital was rapidly becoming a magnificent city, he created the Mandokoro, or Council of State, at which all the gov- ernment affairs of the Kuanto were discussed, and through which the administration of the government was carried on. The officers of the Internal Revenue Department in Kioto, seeing which way the tide of power was flowing, had previously come to Kamakura bringing the records of the department, and became subject to Yoritomo's orders. Thus the first necessity, revenue, was obtained. A criminal tribunal was also established, especially for the trial of the numerous robbers, as well as for ordinary cases. He permitted all who had objections to make or improvements to suggest to send in their petitions. He requested permission of the mikado to reward all who had performed meritorious actions, and to disarm the priests, and to confiscate their war materials. These requests, urged on the emperor in the interest of good government, were no sooner granted, and the plans executed, CREATION OF THE DUAL SYSTEM OF GOVERNMENT. 141 than the news of the destruction of the Taira family at Dan no ura was received. Then Yoritomo prayed the mikado that five men of his family name might be made governors of provinces. The peti- tion was granted, and Yoshitsune was made governor of lyo by spe- cial decree. Here may be distinctly seen the first great step toward the military government that lasted nearly seven centuries. The name of the shogun's government, and used especially by its opposers, was bakufu literally, curtain government, because anciently in China, as in Japan, a curtain (baku) surrounded the tent or head- quarters of the commanding general. Bakufu, like most technical military terms in Japan, is a Chinese word. The appointing of five military men as governors of provinces was a profound innovation in Japanese governmental affairs. Hitherto it had been the custom to appoint only civilians from the court to those offices. It does not appear, however, that Yoritomo at first intended to seize the military control of the whole empire ; but his chief min- ister, Oye no Hiromoto, president of the Council of State, conceived another plan which, when earned out, as it afterward was, threw all real power in Yoritomo's hands. As the Kuanto was tranquil and prosperous under vigorous government, and as the Kuanto troops were used to put down rebels elsewhere, he proposed that in all the circuits and provinces of the empire a special tax should be levied for the support of troops in those places. By this means a permanent force could be kept, by which the peace of the empire could be main- tained without the expense and trouble of calling out the Eastern army. Also and here was another step to military government and feudalism that a shiugo a military chief, should be placed in each province, dividing the authority with the kokushiu, or civil governor, and ajito, to be appointed from Kamakura, should rule jointly with rulers of small districts, called shoyen. Still further another step in feudalism he proposed that his own relations who had perform- ed meritorious service in battle should fill these offices, and that they should all be under his control from Kamakura. This was done, and Yoritomo thus acquired the governing power of all Japan. It seems, at first sight, strange that the mikado and his court should grant these propositions ; yet they did so. They saw the Kuanto half the empire tranquil under the strong military government of Yoritomo. Hojo, his father-in-law, was commanding the garrison at Kioto. The mikado, Gotoba, may be said to have owed his throne to 10 142 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Yoritomo, whose ancestors had conquered, almost added to the realm, all the extreme Northern and Eastern parts of Japan. This portion, merely tributary before, was now actually settled and governed like the older parts of the empire. In 1180, Yoritomo made a campaign in that part of Japan north of the thirty- seventh parallel, then called Mutsu and Dewa. On his re- turn, being now all - victorious, he visited the court at Kioto. The quondam exile was now the foremost subject in the empire. His re- ception and treatment by the reigning and cloistered emperors were in the highest possible scale of magnificence. The splendor of his own retinue astonished even the old courtiers, accustomed to the gay pag- eants of the capital. They could scarcely believe that such wealth ex- isted and such knowledge of the art of display was cultivated in the Kuanto. Military shows, athletic games, and banquets were held for many days, and the costliest presents exchanged, many of which are still shown at Kamakura and Kioto. Yoritomo returned, clothed with the highest honor, and with vastly greater jurisdiction than had ever been intrusted to. a subject. With all the civil functions ever held by the once rival Fujiwara, he united in himself more military power than a Taira had ever wielded. In 1192, he attained to the climax of honor, when the mikado ap- pointed him Sei-i Tai Shogun (Barbarian-subjugating Great General), a title and office that existed until 1868. Henceforth the term shogun came to have a new significance. Anciently all generals were called shoguns ; but, with new emphasis added to the name, the shogun ac- quired more and more power, until foreigners supposed him to be a sovereign. Yet this subordinate from first to last from 1194 until 1868 was a general only, and a military vassal of the emperor. Though he governed the country with a strong military hand, he did it as a vassal, in the name and for the sake of the mikado at Kioto. Peace now reigned in Japan. The soldier-ruler at Kamakura spent the prime of his life in consolidating his power, expecting to found a family that should rule for many generations. He encouraged hunt- ing on Mount Fuji, and sports calculated to foster a martial spirit in the enervating times of peace. In 1195, he made another visit to Kioto, staying four months. Toward the end of 1198, he had a fall from his horse, and died early in 1199. He was fifty-three years old, and had ruled fifteen years. Yoritomo is looked upon as one of the ablest rulers and greatest generals that ever lived in Japan. Yet, while all acknowledge his CREATION OF THE DUAL FORM OF GOVERNMENT. 143 consummate ability, many regard him as a cruel tyrant, and a heart- less and selfish man. His treatment of his two brothers, Noriyon and Yoshitsune, are evidences that this opinion is too well founded. Certain it is that the splendor of Yoritomo's career has never blinded the minds of posterity to his selfishness and cruelty ; and though, like Napoleon, he has had his eulogists, yet the example held up for the imitation of youth is that of Yoshitsune, and not Yoritomo. Mori says of the latter : " He encouraged each of his followers to believe himself the sole confidant of his leader's schemes, and in this cunning manner separated their interests, and made them his own. Nearly all of those around him who became possible rivals in power or populari- ty were cruelly handled when he had exhausted the benefit of their service." His simple tomb stands at the top of a knoll on the slope of hills a few hundred yards distant from the great temple at Kama- kura, overlooking the fields on which a mighty city once rose, when called into being by his genius and energy, which flourished for cent- uries, and disappeared, to allow luxuriant Nature to again assert her sway. The rice-swamps and the millet-fields now cover the former sites of his proudest palaces. Where metropolitan splendor and lux- ury once predominated, the irreverent tourist bandies his jests, or the toiling farmer stands knee-deep in the fertile ooze, to win from classic soil his taxes and his daily food. The victory over the Taira was even greater than Yoritomo had supposed possible. Though exulting in the results, he burned with jealousy that Yoshitsune had the real claim to the honor of victory. While in this mood, there were not wanting men to poison his mind, and fan the suspicions into fires of hate. There was one Kajiwara, who had been a military adviser to the expedition to destroy the Taira. On one occasion, Yoshitsune advised a night attack in full force on the enemy. Kajiwara opposed the project, and hindered it. Yoshi- tsune, with only fifty men, carried out his plan, and, to the chagrin and disgrace of Kajiwara, he won a brilliant victory. This man, in- censed at his rival, and consuming with wrath, hied to Yoritomo with tales and slanders, which the jealous brother too willingly believed. Yoshitsune, returning as a victor, and with the spoils for his brother, received peremptory orders not to enter Kamakura, but to remain in the ^village of Koshigoye, opposite the isle of Enoshima. While there, he wrote a touching letter, recounting all his toils and dangers while pursuing the Taira, and appealing for clearance of his name from slander and suspicion. It was sent to Oye no Hiromoto, chief 144 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. councilor of Yoritomo, whom Yoshitsune begged to intercede to his brother for him. This letter, still extant, and considered a model of filial and fraternal affection, is taught by parents to their children. It is among the most pathetic writings in Japanese literature, and is found in one of the many popular collections of famous letters. Wearying of waiting in the suburbs of the city, Yoshitsune went to Kioto. Yoritomo's troops, obeying orders, attacked his house to kill him. He fled, with sixteen retainers, into Yamato. There he was again attacked, but escaped and fled. He now determined to go to Oshiu, to his old friend Hidehira. He took the route along the west coast, through Echizen, Kaga, and Echigo, and found a refuge, as he supposed, with Hidehira. The spies of his brother soon discovered his lurking-place, and ordered him to be put to death. The son of Hidehira attacked him. According to popular belief, Yoshitsune, aft- er killing his wife and children with his own hands, committed hara- kiri. His head, preserved in sake, was sent to Kamakura. The exact truth concerning the death of Yoshitsune is by no means yet ascertained. It is declared by some that he escaped and fled to Yezo, where he lived among the Ainos for many years, and died among them, either naturally or by hara-kiri. The Ainos have a great reverence for his deeds, and to this day worship his spirit, and over his grave in Hitaka they have erected a shrine. Others assert that he fled to Asia, and became the great conqueror, Genghis Khan.* Concerning this last, a Japanese student once remarked, "Nothing but the extraordinary vanity of the Japanese people could originate such a report." * In a Chinese book called Seppn, a collection of legends and historical mis- cellanies, published in China, it is stated that Genghis Khan was one Yoshitsu- ne, who came from Japan. The Chinese form of Minamoto Yoshitsune is Gen Gike. He was also called, after his reputed death, Temujin (or Tenjin). As is well known, the Mongol conqueror's name was originally, on his first appear- ance, Temujin. The Japanese Ainos have also apotheosized Yoshitsune under the title Hanguan Dai Mio Jin Great Illustrious Lawgiver. Yoshitsune was born in 1159 ; he was thirty years old at the time of his reputed death. Genghis Khan was born, according to the usually received data, in 1160, and died 1227. If Gen Gike" and Genghis Khan, or Gengis Kan, were identical, the hero had thirty- eight years for his achievements. Genghis Khan was born, it is said, with his hand full of blood. Obeying the words of a shaman (inspired seer), he took the name Genghis (greatest), and called his people Mongols (bold). The conquest of the whole earth was promised him. He and his sons subjugated China and Co- rea, overthrew the caliphate of Bagdad, and extended the Mongolian empire as far as the Oder and the Danube. They attempted to conquer Japan, as we shall see in the chapter headed " The Invasion of the Mongol Tartars." CREATION OF THE DUAL FORM OF GOVERNMENT. 145 Nevertheless, the immortality of Yoshitsune is secured. Worshiped as a god by the Ainos, honored and beloved by every Japanese youth as an ideal hero of chivalry, his features pictured on boys' kites, his mien and form represented in household effigies displayed annually at the boys' great festival of flags, glorified in art, song, and story, Yoshitsune, the hero warrior and martyr, will live in unfading memo- ry so long as the ideals of the warlike Japanese stand unshattered or their traditions are preserved.* * The struggles of the rival houses of Gen and Hei form an inexhaustible mine of incidents to the playwright, author, poet, and artist. I can not resist the temptation of giving one of these in this place. The artist's representation of it adorns many a Japanese house. At the siege of Ichinotani, a famous captain, named Naozane, who fought under the white flag, while in camp one day invest- ing the Taira forces, saw a boat approach the beach fronting the fort. Shortly after, a Taira soldier rode out of the castle-gate into the waves to embark. Nao- zane' saw, by the splendid crimson armor and golden helmet of the rider, that he was a Taira noble. Here was a prize indeed, the capture of which would make the Kuanto captain a general. Naozane" thundered out the challenge: "Do my eyes deceive me? Is he a Taira leader ; and is he such a coward that he shows his back to the eye of his enemy? Come back and fight!" The rider was in- deed a Taira noble, young Atsumori, only sixteen years of age, of high and gen- tle birth, and had been reared in the palace. Naozane was a bronzed veteran of forty years. Both charged each other on horseback, with swords drawn. After a few passes, Naozane flung away his sword, and, unarmed, rushed to grasp his foe. Not yet to be outdone in gallantry, Atsumori did the same. Both clinched while in the saddle, and fell to the sand, the old campaigner uppermost. He tore off the golden helmet, and, to his amazement, saw the pale, smooth face and noble mien of a noble boy that looked just like his own beloved son of the same age. The father was more than the soldier. The victor trembled with emotion. '' How wretched the life of a warrior to have to kill such a lovely boy ! How miserable will those parents be who find their darling is in an enemy's hand ! Wretched me, that I thought to destroy this life for the sake of reward !" He then resolved to let his enerny go secretly away, and make his escape. At that moment a loud voice shouted angrily, " Naozane is double-hearted: he captures an enemy, and then thinks to let him escape." Thus compelled, Naozane steeled his heart, took up his sword, and cut off Atsumori' s head. He carried the bloody trophy to Yoshitsune", and, while all stood admiring and ready to applaud, Nao- zane refused all reward, and, to the amazement of his chief and the whole camp, begged leave to resign. Doffing helmet, armor, and sword, he shaved off his hair, and became a disciple of the holy bonze Honen, learned the doctrines of Buddha, and, becoming profoundly versed in the sacred lore, he resolved to spend the remnant of his days in a monastery. He set out for the Kuanto, riding Avith his face to the tail of the animal, but in the direction of paradise. Some one asked him why he rode thus. He replied, "In the Clear Land, perchance they're me reputing A warrior brave, Because I turn my back, refusing Fame, once so dear." 146 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XV. THE GLORY AND THE FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. THOUGH there may be some slight justification of Yoritomo's set- ting up a dual system of government to control and check the in- trigues of courtiers at Kioto, yet at best it was a usurpation of the power belonging only to the mikado. The creation of a duarchy was the swift and sure result of Japan having no foreign enemies. So long as the peace or existence of the empire was threatened by the savages on the frontier, or by invading fleets on the sea-coast, there was an impelling cause to bind together the throne and people ; but when the barbarians were tranquilized, China and Corea gave no signs of war ; and especially when the nobility were divided into the civil and military classes, and the mikado was no longer a man of physical and mental vigor, a division of the governing power natural- ly arose. From the opening of the thirteenth century, the course of Japanese history flows in two streams. There were now two capitals, Kioto and Kamakura, and two centres of authority : one, the lawful but overawed emperor and the imperial court ; the other, the military vas- sal, and a government based on the power of arms. It must never be forgotten, however, that the fountain of authority was in Kioto, the ultimate seat of power in the ancient constitution. Throughout the centuries the prestige of the mikado's person never declined. The only conditions under which it was possible for this division of po- litical power to exist was the absence of foreigners from the soil of Japan. So soon as Japan entered into political relations with outside nations, which would naturally seek the real source of power, the du- archy was doomed. When Yoritomo died, all men wondered whether the power would remain at Kamakura, the country rest peaceful, and his successors reign with ability. The Japanese have a proverb conveying a bitter truth, learned from oft-repeated experience, "Taisho ni tane ga nashi" (The general has no child, or, There is no seed to a great man). The THE GLORY AND FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. 147 spectacle of a great house decaying through the inanity or supineness of sons is constantly repeated in their history. The theme also forms the basis of their standard novels. Yoritomo's sons, not inheriting their father's ability, failed to wield his personal power of administra- tion. From the day of his death, it may be said that the glory of the Minamoto family declined, while that of the Ho jo began. Yet it seemed strange that the proverb should be verified in thk case. Yoritomo had married no ordinary female. His wife, Masago, was a woman of uncommon intellectual ability, who had borne him a son, Yoriiye. This young man, who was eighteen years old at his father's death, was immediately appointed chief of all the military officers in the empire, and it was expected he would equal his father in military prowess and administrative skill. His mother, Masago, though a shorn nun, who had professed retirement from the world, continued to take a very active part in the government. The parental authority and influence in Japan, as in China, is often far greater than that of any other. Not even death or the marriage relation weakens, to any great extent, the hold of a father on a child. With affection on the one hand, and cunning on the other, an un- scrupulous father may do what he will. We have seen how the Fuji- wara and Taira families controlled court, throne, and emperor, by mar- rying their daughters to infant or boy mikados. We shall now find the Hojo dispensing the power at Kamakura by means of a crafty woman willing to minister to her father's rather than to her son's aggrandizement. Hojo Tokimasa was the father of Masago, wife of Yoritomo. The latter always had great confidence in and respect for the abilities of his father-in-law. At his death, Tokimasa became chief of the coun- cil of state. Instead of assisting and training Yoriiye in government affairs, giving him the benefit of his experience, and thus enabling the son to tread in his father's footsteps, he would not allow Yori iye to hear cases in person, or to take active share in public business. When the youth plunged into dissipation and idleness, which termi- nated in a vicious course of life, his mother often reproved him, while Tokimasa, doubtless rejoicing over the fact, pretended to know nothing of the matter. All this time, however, he was filling the of- fices QJ.' government, not with the Minamoto adherents, but with his own kindred and partisans. Nepotism in Japan is a science; but cursed as the Japanese have been, probably none exceeded in this subtle craft the master, Tokimasa ; though Yoriiye, receiving his fa- 148 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ther's office, had been appointed Sei-i Tai Shogun, with the rank ju- ni-i (second division of the second rank), his grandfather still kept the real power. When twenty-two years of age, while he was suffer- ing from sickness probably the result of his manner of life his mother and Tokimasa, who instigated her, attempted to compel him to resign his office, and to give the superintendency of the provincial governors to his infant son, and set over the Kuansei, or Western Japan, his younger brother, aged twelve years. This was the old trick of setting up boys and babies on the nominal seat of power, in order that crafty subordinates might rule. Yoriiye heard of this plan, and resolved to avert its execution. He failed, and, as is usual in such cases, was compelled to shave off his hair, as a sign that his interest in political affairs had ceased. He was exiled to a temple in Idzu. There he was strangled, while in his bath, by the hired assassins sent by Tokimasa. Sanetomo, brother of Yoriiye, succeeded in office. The boy was but twelve years old, and very unlike his father. He cared nothing for hunting or military exercises. His chief occupation was in play- ing foot-ball a very mild game, compared with that played in this country and composing poetry. His time was spent with fair girls and women, of whom he had as many as he wished. All this was in accordance with the desire and plans of the Hojo family, who mean- while wielded all power. Sanetomo lived his luxuriant life in the harem, the bath, and the garden, until twenty-eight years old. Mean- while, Kugio, the son of Yoriiye, who had been made a priest, grew up, and had always looked upon Sanetomo, instead of Tokimasa, as his father's murderer. One night as Sanetomo was returning from worship at the famous shrine of Tsurugaoka the unusual hour of nine having been chosen by the diviners Kugio leaped out from be- hind a staircase, cut off Sanetomo's head, and made off with it, but was himself beheaded by a soldier sent after him. The main line of the Minamoto family was now extinct. Thus, in the very origin and foundation of the line of shoguns, the same fate befell them as in the case of the emperors the power wielded by an illustrious ances- tor, when transferred to descendants, was lost. A nominal ruler sat on the throne, while a wire-puller behind directed every movement. This is the history of every line of shoguns that ruled from the first, in 1196, until the last, in 1868. The usurpation of the Hojo was a double usurpation. Properly, they were vassals of the shogun, who was himself a vassal of the mi THE GLORY AND FALL OF THE HOJO FAMILY. 149 kado. It must not be supposed that the emperor at Kioto calmly looked on, caring for none of these things at Kamakura. The meshes of the Minamoto had been woven completely round the imperial au- thority. Now the Hojo, like a new spider, was spinning a more fatal thread, sucking from the emperor, as from a helpless fly, the life- blood of power. The Hojo family traced their descent from the mikado Kuammu (782-805) through Sadamori, a Taira noble, from whom Tokimasa was the seventh in descent. Their ancestors had settled at Hojo, in Idzu, whence they took their name. While the Minamoto rose to power, the Hojo assisted them, and, by intermarriage, the two clans had become closely attached to each other. The names of the twelve rulers, usually reckoned as seven genera- tions, were : Tokirnasa, Yoshitoki, Yasutoki, Tsunetoki, Tokiyori, Masa- toki, Tokimun6, Sadatoki, Morotoki, Hirotoki, Takatoki, and Moritoki. Of these, the third, fourth, and fifth were the ablest, and most de- voted to public business. It was on the strength of their merit and fame that their successors were so long able to hold power. Yasu- toki established two councils, the one with legislative and executive, and the other with judicial powers. Both were representative of the wishes of the people. He promulgated sixty regulations in respect to the method of judicature. This judicial record is of great value to the historian; and long afterward, in 1534, an edition of Yasuto- ki's laws, in one volume, with a commentary, was published. In later times it has been in popular use as a copy-book for children. He also took an oath before the assembly to maintain the same with equity, swearing by the gods of Japan, saying, " We stand as judges of the whole country ; if we be partial in our judgments, may the Heavenly Gods punish us." In his private life he was self-abnegative and benevolent, a polite and accomplished scholar, loving the society of the learned. Tsunetoki faithfully executed the laws, and carried out the policy of his predecessor. Tokiyori, before he became regent, traveled, usually in disguise, all over the empire, to examine into the details of local administration, and to pick out able men, so as to put them in office when he should need their services. In his choice he made no distinction of rank. Among the upright men he elevated to the judges' bench was the Awodo, who, for conscientious reasons, never wore silk garments, nor a lacquered scabbard to his sword, nor ever held a bribe in his hand. He was the terror of venal officials, injustice and bribery being known to him as if by sorcery ; while every detected 150 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. culprit was sure to be disgracefully cashiered. Ho jo Akitoki estab- lished a library, consisting of Chinese, Confucian, Buddhistic, and na- tive literature, at Kanazawa, in Sagami. Here scholars gathered, and students flocked, to hear their lectures and to study the classics, or the tenets of the faith, nearly all the learned men of this period being priests. While the writer of the Guai Shi attacks the Hojo for their usurpations, he applauds them for their abilities and excellent administration. The line of shoguns who nominally ruled from 1199 to 1333 were merely their creatures; and that period of one hundred and forty years, including seven generations, may be called the period of the Hojo. The political history of these years is but that of a monoto- nous recurrence of the exaltation of boys and babies of noble blood, to whom was given the semblance of power, who were sprinkled with titles, and deposed as soon as they were old enough to be trouble- some. None of the Hojo ever seized the office of Shogun, but in reality they wielded all and more of the power attaching to the office, under the title of shikken. It was an august game of state-craft, in which little children with colossal names were set up like nine-pins, and bowled down as suited the playful fancies of subordinates who declined name and titles, and kept the reality of power. The count- ers were neglected, while the prize was won. After the line of Yoritomo became extinct, Yoritomo's widow, Ma- sago, requested of the imperial court at Kioto that Yoritsune, a Fuji- wara baby two years old, should be made shogun. The Fujiwara no- bles were glad to have even a child of their blood elevated to a posi- tion in which, when grown, he might have power. The baby came to Kamakura. He cast the shadow of authority twenty-five years, when he was made to resign, in 1244, in favor of his own baby boy, Yoshitsugu, six years old. This boy-shogun when fourteen years old, in 1252, was deposed by Hojo Tokiyori, and sent back to Kioto. Tired of the Fujiwara scions, the latter then obtained as shogun a more august victim, the boy Munetaka, a son of the emperor Go-Saga, who after fourteen years fell ill, in 1266, with that very common Jap- anese disease official illness. He was probably compelled to feign disease. His infant son, three years of age, was then set up, and, when twenty-three years of age (1289), was bowled down by Hojo Sadatoki, who sent him in disgrace, heels upward, in a palanquin to Kioto. Hisaakira, the third son of the emperor Go-Fukakusa, was set up as shogun in 1289. The Hojo bowled down this fresh dum- THE GLORY AND FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. 151 my in 1308, and put up Morikuni, his eldest son. This was the last sho- gun of imperial blood. The game of the players was now nearly over. The ex-emperor, Gotoba, made a desperate effort to drive the usurp- ing Hojo from power. A small and gallant army was raised ; righting took place ; but the handful of imperial troops was defeated by the overwhelming hosts sent from Kamakura. Their victory riveted the chains upon the imperial family. To the arrogant insolence of the usurper was now added the cruelty of the conscious tyrant. Never before had such outrageous deeds been committed, or such insults been heaped upon the sovereigns as were done by these up- starts at Kamakura. Drunk with blood and exultation, the Hojo wreaked their vengeance on sovereign and subject alike. Banish- ment and confiscation were the order of their day. The ex-emperor was compelled to shave off his hair, and was exiled to the island of Oki. The reigning mikado was deposed, and sent to Sado. Two princes of the blood were banished to Tajima and Bizen. The ex-em- peror Tsuchimikado there were now three living emperors not willing to dwell in palace luxury while his brethren were in exile, ex- pressed a wish to share their fate. He was sent to Awa. To com- plete the victory and the theft of power, the Hojo chief Yasutoki confiscated the estates of all who had fought on the emperor's side, and distributed them among his own minions. Over three thousand fiefs were thus disposed of. No camp-followers ever stripped a dead hero's body worse than these human vultures tore from the lawful sovereign the last fragment of authority. All over Japan the patriots heard, with groans of despair, the slaughter of the loyal army, and the pitiful fate of their emperors. The imperial exile died in Sado of a broken heart. A nominal mikado at Kioto, and a nominal shogun at Kamakura, were set up, but the Hojo were the keepers of both. The later days of the Hojo present a spectacle of tyranny and mis- government such as would disgrace the worst Asiatic bureaucracy. The distinguished and able men such as at first shed lustre on the name of this family were no more. The last of them were given to luxury and carousal, and the neglect of public business. A horde of rapacious officials sucked the life-blood and paralyzed the energies of the people. To obtain means to support themselves in luxury, they increased 'the weight of taxes, that ever crushes the spirit of the Asi- atic peasant. Their triple oppression, of mikado, shogun, and people, became intolerable. The handwriting was on the wall. Their day? were numbered. 152 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. In 1327, Moriyoshi, son of the Emperor Go-Daigo, began to mature plans for the recovery of imperial power. By means of the ubiqui- tous spies, and through treachery, his schemes were revealed, and he was only saved from punishment from Ho jo by being ordered by his father to retire into a Buddhist monastery. This was ostensibly to show that he had given up all interest in worldly affairs. In reality, however, he assisted his father in planning the destruction of Hojo. He lived at Oto, and was called, by the people, Oto no miya. The Emperor Go-Daigo, though himself put on the throne by the king- makers at Kamakura, chafed under the galling dictatorship of those who were by right his vassals. He resolved to risk life, and all that was dear to him, to overthrow the dual system, and establish the orig- inal splendor and prestige of the mikadoate. He knew the reverence of the people for the throne would sustain him, could he but raise suf- ficient military force to reduce the Hojo. He secured the aid of the Buddhist priests and, in, 1330, fortified Kasagi, in Yamato. Kusunoki Masashige about the same time arose in Kawachi, making it the aim of his life to restore the mikadoate. The next year Hojo sent an army against Kasagi, attacked and burned it. The emperor was taken prisoner, and banished to Oki. Ku- sunoki, though twice besieged, escaped, and lived to win immortal fame. Connected with this mikado's sad fate is one incident of great dramatic interest, which has been enshrined in Japanese art, besides finding worthy record in history. While Go-Daigo was on his way to banishment, borne in a palanquin, under guard of the soldiers of Hojo, Kojima Takanori attempted to rescue his sovereign. This young nobleman was the third son of the lord of Bingo, who occupied his hereditary possessions in Bizen. Setting out with a band of re- tainers to intercept the convoy and to release the imperial prisoner, at the hill of Funasaka he waited patiently for the train to approach, finding, when too late, that he had occupied the wrong pass. Has- tening to the rear range of hills, they learned that the objects of their search had already gone by. Kojima's followers, being now disheart- ened, returned, leaving him alone. He, however, cautious, followed on, and for several days attempted in vain to approach the palanquin and whisper a word of hope in the ear of the imperial exile. The vigilance of the Hojo vassals rendering all succor hopeless, Kojima hit upon a plan that baffled his enemies and lighted hope in the bosom of the captive. Secretly entering the garden of the inn at which the THE GLORY AXD FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. 153 party was resting at night, Kojima scraped off the bark of a cherry- tree, and wrote in ink, on the inner white membrane, this poetic stanza, "Ten Kosen wo horobosu nakare Toki ni Hanrei nakl ni shimo aradzu. (O Heaven ! destroy not Kosen, While Hanrei still lives.) The allusion, couched in delicate phrase, is to Kosen, an ancient king in China, who was dethroned and made prisoner, but was afterward restored to honor and power by the faithfulness and valor of his re- tainer, Hanrei. Kojima Writing on the Cherry-tree. (Vignette upon the greenback national-bauk notes.) The next morning, the attention of the soldiers was excited by the fresh handwriting on the tree. As none of them were able to read, they showed it to the Emperor Go-Daigo, who read the writing, and its significance, in a moment. Concealing his joy, he went to banish- ment, keeping hope alive during his loneliness. He knew that he was not forgotten by his faithful vassals. Kojima afterward fought to restore the mikado, and perished on the battle-field. The illustration given above is borrowed from a picture by a native artist, which now adorns the national-bank notes issued under the reign of the present mikado. 154 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. This darkest hour of the mikado's fortune preceded the dawn. Already a hero was emerging from obscurity who was destined to be the destroyer of Kamakura and the Hojo. This was Nitta Yoshisada. The third son of Minamoto Yoshi-iye, born A.D. 1057, had two sons. The elder son succeeded his father to the fief of Nitta, in the province of Kodzuke. The second inherited from his adopted father Tawara, the fief of Ashikaga, in Shimotsuke. Both these sons found- ed families which took their name from their place of hereditary pos- session. At this period, four hundred years later, their illustrious de- scendants became conspicuous. Nitta Yoshisada, a captain in the army of Hojo, had been sent to besiege Kusunoki, one of the mika- do's faithful vassals ; but, refusing to fight against the imperial forces, Nitta deserted with his command. He sent his retainer to Oto no miya, son of the emperor, then hiding in the mountains, who gave him a commission in the name of his exiled father. Nitta immediate- ly returned to his native place, collected all his retainers, and before the shrine of the village raised the standard of revolt against Hojo. His banner was a long white pennant, crossed near the top by two black bars, beneath which was a circle bisected with a black zone. Adopting the plan of attack proposed by his brother, and marching down into Sagami, he appeared at Inamura Saki, on the outskirts of Kamakura, in thirteen days after raising his banner as the mikado's vassal. At this point, where the road from Kamakura to Enoshima strikes the beach, a splendid panorama breaks upon the vision of the be- holder. In front is the ocean, with its rolling waves and refreshing gait breeze. To the south, in imposing proportions, and clothed in the blue of distance, is the island of Oshima; and farther on are the mountains of the peninsula of Idzu. To the right emerges, fair and lovely, in perpetual green, the island of Enoshima. Landward is the peak of Oyama, with its satellites ; but, above all, in full magnificence of proportion, stands Fuji, the lordly mountain. Here Nitta perform- ed an act that has become immortal in song and poem, and the artist's colors. On the eve before the attack, Nitta, assembling his host at the edge of the strand, and removing his helmet, thus addressed his war- riors : " Our heavenly son (mikado) has been deposed by. his traitor- ous subject, and is now in distant exile in the Western Sea. I, Yoshi- sada, being unable to look upon this act unmoved, have raised an army to punish the thieves yonder. I humbly pray thee, God of THE GLORY AND FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. 155 the Sea, to look into my loyal heart ; command the tide to ebb and open a path." Thus saying, he bowed reverently, and then, as Rai says, with his head bare (though the artist has overlooked the state- ment), and in the sight of heaven cast his sword into the waves as a prayer-offering to the gods that the waves might recede, in token of their righteous favor. The golden hilt gleamed for a moment in the air, and the sword sunk from sight. The next morning the tide had ebbed, the strand was dry, and the army, headed by the chief whom the soldiers now looked upon as the chosen favorite of Heaven, marched Nitta Yoshisada casting the Sword into the Sea. (Vignette from the national - bank notes.) resistlessly on. Kamakura was attacked from three sides. The fight- ing was severe and bloody, but victory everywhere deserted the ban- ners of the traitors, and rested upon the pennons of the loyal. Nitta, after performing great feats of valor in person, finally set the city on fire, and in a few hours Kamakura was a waste of ashes. Just before the final destruction of the city, a noble named Ando, vassal of the house of Hojo, on seeing the ruin around him, the sol- diers plaughtered, and the palaces burned, remarking that for a hun- dred years no instance of a retainer dying for his lord had been known, resolved to commit hara-kiri. The wife of Nitta was his niece. Just as he was about to plunge his dirk into his body, a serv- 156 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ant handed him a letter from her, begging him to surrender. The old man indignantly exclaimed : " My niece is the daughter of a samurai house. Why did she make so shameless a request ? And Nitta, her husband, is a samurai. Why did he allow her to do so ?" He then took the letter, wrapped it round his sword, which he plunged into his body, and died. A great number of vassals of Hojo did likewise. While Nitta was fighting at Kamakura, and thus overthrowing the Hojo power in the East, Ashikaga Takauji had drawn sword in Kioto, and with Kusunoki re-established the imperial rule in the West. The number of the doomed clan who were slain in battle, or who commit- ted hara-kiri, as defeated soldiers, in accordance with the code of honor already established, is set down at six thousand eight hundred. All over the empire the people rose up against their oppressors and massacred them. The Hojo domination, which had been paramount for nearly one hundred and fifty years, was utterly broken. From A.D. 1219 until 1333, the mikados at Kioto were: Juntoku 1211-1221 Chiukio (reigned four months) 1222 Go-Horikawa 1222-1232 Shijo : 1233-1242 Go-Saga 1243-1246 Go-Fukakusa , 1247-1259 Kameyama 1260-1274 Go-Uda 1275-1287 Fushimi 1288-1298 Go-Fushimi 1299-1301 Go-Nijo 1302-1307 Hanazono 1308-1318 Go-Daigo 1319-1338 From the establishment of Kamakura as military capital, the she guns were : MINAMOTO. Toritomo 1185-1199 Yori-iye 1201-1203 Sanetomo 1203-1219 FUJI WAR A. Yoritsune' 1220-1243 Yoritsugu 1244-1251 EMPEROR'S SONS. Mune"taka 1252-1265 Koreyasu 1266-1289 Hisaakira 1289-1307 Morikuni... . 1308-1333 THE GLORY AND FALL OF THE HO JO FAMILY. 157 The Hojo have never been forgiven for their arbitrary treatment of the mikados. The author of the Nikon Guai Shi terms them " serpents, fiends, beasts," etc. To this day, historian, dramatist, novel- ist, and story-teller delight to load them with vilest obloquy. Even the peasants keep alive the memory of the past. One of the most voracious and destructive insects is still called the " Hojo bug." A great annual ceremony of extermination of these pests keeps alive the hated recollection of their human namesakes. The memory of the wrongs suffered by the imperial family goaded on the soldiers in the revolution of 1868, who wreaked their vengeance on the Tokugawas, as successors of the Hojo. In fighting to abolish forever the hated usurpation of six hundred years, and to restore the mikado to his an- cient rightful and supreme authority, they remembered well the deeds of the Hojo, which the Nikon Guai Shi so eloquently told. In 1873, envoys sent out from the imperial court in Tokio, proceeded to the island of Sado, and solemnly removing the remains of the banished emperor, who had died of a broken heart, buried them, with due pomp, in the sacred soil of Yamato, where sleep so many of the dead mikados. I have given a picture of the Hojo rule and rulers, which is but the reflection of the Japanese popular sentiment, and the opinion of na- tive scholars. There is, however, another side to the story. It must be conceded that the Hojo were able rulers, and kept order and peace in the empire for over a century. They encouraged literature, and the cultivation of the arts and sciences. During their period, the re- sources of the country were developed, and some branches of useful handicraft and fine arts were brought to a perfection never since sur- passed. To this time belong the famous image-carver, sculptor, and architect, Unkei, and the lacquer-artists, who are the " old masters " in this branch of art. The military spirit of the people was kep* alive, tactics were improved, and the methods of governmental admin- istration simplified. During this period of splendid temples, monaster- ies, pagodas, colossal images, and other monuments of holy zeal, Hojo Sadatoki erected a monument over the grave of Kiyomori at Hiogo. Hojo Tokimune raised and kept in readiness a permanent war-fund, so that the military expenses might not interfere with the revenue reserved for ordinary government expenses. To his invincible cour- age, patriotic pride, and indomitable energy are due the vindication of the national honor and the repulse of the Tartar invasion. 11 158 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XVI. BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. THE religion founded by Buddha, which is older by six centuries than that founded by Christ, which is professed by nearly one-third of the human race, which has a literature perhaps larger than all other religious literatures combined, I shall not attempt to treat of except in the broadest terms. My object in this chapter is to portray the en- trance and development of Buddhism in Japan, to outline its rise and progress, and to show its status in that now fermenting nation in which its latest fruits are found. Christians must surely be interested in knowing of the faith they are endeavoring to destroy, or, at least, to displace. When it is con- sidered that Buddhist temples are already erected upon American soil, that a new development of this ancient faith may yet set itself up as a rival of Christianity in the Western part of our country, that it has already won admirers, if not professors, in Boston, London, and Ber- lin, the subject will be seen to possess an immediate interest. Buddhism originated as a pure atheistic humanitarianism, with a lofty philosophy and a code of morals higher, perhaps, than any heathen religion had reached before, or has since attained. Its three great distinguishing characteristics are atheism, metempsychosis, and absence of caste. First preached in a land accursed by secular and spiritual oppression, it acknowledged no caste, and declared all men equally sinful and miserable, and all equally capable of being freed from sin and misery through knowledge. It taught that the souls of all men had lived in a previous state of existence, and that all the sor- rows of this life are punishments for sins committed in a previous state. Each human soul has whirled through countless eddies of ex- istence, and has still to pass through a long succession of birth, pain, and death. All is fleeting. Nothing is real. This life is all a de- lusion. After death, the soul must migrate for ages through stages of life, inferior or superior, until, perchance, it arrives at last in Nir- vana, or absorption in Buddha. BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 159 The total extinction of being, personality, and consciousness is the aspiration of the vast majority of true believers, as it should be of every suffering soul, i. e., of all mankind. The true estate of the hu- man soul, according to the Buddhist of the Buddhists, is blissful an- nihilation. The morals of Buddhism are superior to its metaphysics. Its commandments are the dictates of the most refined morality. Besides the cardinal prohibitions against murder, stealing, adultery, lying, drunkenness, and unchastity, " every shade of vice, hypocrisy, anger, pride, suspicion, greediness, gossiping, cruelty to animals, is guarded against by special precepts. Among the virtues recommend- ed, we find not only reverence of parents, care of children, submission to authority, gratitude, moderation in time of prosperity, submission in time of trial, equanimity at all times ; but virtues such as the duty of forgiving insults, and not rewarding evil with evil." Whatever the practice of the people may be, they are taught, as laid down in their sacred books, the rules thus summarized above. Such, we may glean, was Buddhism in its early purity. Besides its moral code and philosophical doctrines, it had almost nothing. An " ecclesiastical system " it was not in any sense. Its progress was rapid and remarkable. Though finally driven out of India, it swept through Burmah, Siam, China, Thibet, Manchuria, Corea, Siberia, and finally, after twelve centuries, entered Japan. By this time the bare and bald original doctrines of Shaka (Buddha) were glorious in the apparel with which Asiatic imagination and priestly necessity had clothed and adorned them. The ideas of Shaka had been expanded into a complete theological system, with all the appurtenances of a stock religion. It had a vast and complicated ecclesiastical and mo- nastic machinery, a geographical and sensuous paradise, definitely lo- cated hells and purgatories, populated with a hierarchy of titled de- mons, and furnished after the most approved theological fashion. Of these the priests kept the keys, regulated the thermometers, and timed or graded the torture or bliss. The system had, even thus early, a minutely catalogued hagiology. Its eschatology was well outlined, and the hierarchs claimed to be as expert in questions of casuistry as they were at their commercial system of masses still in vogue. Gen- eral councils had been held, decrees had been issued, dogmas defined or abolished ; Buddhism had emerged from philosophy into religion. The Buddhist missionaries entered Japan having a mechanism perfect- ly fitted to play upon the fears and hopes of an ignorant people, and to bring them into obedience to the new and aggressive faith. 160 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. If there was one country in which the success of Buddhism as a popular religion seemed foreordained, that country was Japan. It was virgin soil for any thing that could be called a religion. Before Buddhism came, very little worthy of the name existed. Day by day, each new ray of the light of research that now falls upon that gray dawn of Japanese history shows that Shinto was a pale and sjiadowy cult, that consisted essentially of sacrificing to the spirits of departed heroes and ancestors, with ceremonies of bodily purification, and that the coming of Buddhism quickened it, by the force of oppo- sition, into something approaching a religious system. Swarms of petty deities, who have human passions, and are but apotheosized his- torical heroes, fill the pantheon of Shinto. The end and aim of even its most sincere adherents and teachers is political. Strike out the dogma of the divinity of the mikado and the duty of all Japanese to obey him implicity, and almost nothing is left of modern Shinto but Chinese cosmogony, local myth, and Confucian morals.* If the heart of the ancient Japanese longed after a solution of the questions whence? whither? why? if it yearned for religious truth, as the hearts of all men doubtless do it must have been ready to wel- come something more certain, tangible, and dogmatic than the bland emptiness of Shinto. Buddhism came to touch the heart, to fire the imagination, to feed the intellect, to offer a code of lofty morals, to point out a pure life through self-denial, to awe the ignorant, and to terrify the doubting. A well fed and clothed Anglo-Saxon, to whom * " I have long endeavored to find out what there is in Shinto, but have long given it up, unable to find any thing to reward my labor, excepting a small book of Shinto prayers, in which man was recognized as guilty of the commission of sin, and in need of cleansing." J. C. HEPBURN, M.D., LL.D., American, seventeen years resident in Japan, author of the " Japanese- English and English- Japanese Dic- tionary." " Shinto is in no proper sense of the term a religion." " It is difficult to see how it could ever have been denominated a religion." "It has rather the look of an original Japanese invention." Rev. S. R. BROWN, D.D., American, author of" A Grammar of Colloquial Japanese," seventeen years resident in Japan. My own impressions of Shinto, given in an article in The Independent in 1871, remain unaltered after five years' further study and comparison of opinions, pro and con: "In its higher forms, Shinto is simply a cultured and intellectual athe- ism. In its lower forms, it is blind obedience to governmental and priestly dic- tates." The united verdict given me by native scholars, and even Shinto officials, in Fukui and Tokio, was, " Shinto is not a religion : it is a system of government regulations, very good to keep alive patriotism among the people." The effect- ual, and quite justifiable, use made of this tremendous political engine will be seen in the last chapter of Book I., entitled " The Recent Revolutions in Japan." BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 161 conscious existence seems the very rapture of joy, and whose sou] yearns for an eternity of life, may not understand how a human soul could ever long for utter absorption of being and personality, even in God, much less for total annihilation. But, among the Asiatic poor, where ceaseless drudgery is often the lot for life, where a vegetable diet keeps the vital force low, where the tax-gatherer is the chief representative of government, where the earthquake and the typhoon are so frequent and dreadful, and where the forces of nature are feared as malignant intelligences, life does not wear such charms as to lead the human soul to long for an eterni- ty of it. No normal Japanese would thrill when he heard the unex- plained announcement, " The gift of God is eternal life," or, " Whoso- ever believeth on me, though he were dead, yet shall he live." Such words would be painful to him, announcing only a fateful fact. To him life is to be dreaded ; not because death lies at the end of it, but because birth and life again follow death, and both are but links in an almost endless chain. Herein lies the power of Buddhist preaching : " Believe in the true doctrine, and live the true believer's life," says the bonze, " and you will be born again into higher states of existence, thence into higher and higher heavens, until from paradise you rise as a purified and saintly soul, to be absorbed in the bosom of holy Buddha. Reject the truth, or believe false doctrine (e. g., Christiani- ty), and you will be born again thousands of times, only to suffer sickness and pain and grief, to die or be killed a thousand times, and, finally, to sink into lower and lower hells, before you can regain the opportunity to rise higher." This is really the popular form of Shaka's doctrine of metempsychosis. The popular Buddhism of Ja- pan, at least, is not the bare scheme of philosophy which foreign writers seem to think it is. It is a genuine religion in its hold on man. It is a vinculum that binds him to the gods of his fathers. This form of Buddhism commended itself to both the Japanese sage and the ignorant boor, to whom thought is misery, by reason of its definiteness, its morals, its rewards, and its punishments. Buddhism has a cosmogony and a theory of both the microcosm and the macrocosm. It has fully as much, if not more, " science " in it than our mediaeval theologians found in the Bible. Its high intel- lectuality made noble souls yearn to win its secrets, and to attain the conquests over their lusts and passions, by knowledge. Among the various sects of Buddhism, however, the understanding of the doctrine of Nirvana varies greatly. Some believe in the total 162 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. nonentity of the human soul, the utter annihilation of consciousness ; while others, on the contrary, hold that, as part of the divine whole, the human soul enjoys a measure of conscious personality. Persecution and opposition at first united together the adherents of the new faith, but success and prosperity gave rise to schisms. New sects were founded in Japan, while many priests traveled abroad to Corea and China, and came back as new lights and reformers, to found new schools of thought and worship. Of these the most illustrious was Kobo, famed not only as a scholar in Pali, Sanskrit, and Chinese, Kobo Daishi, Inventor of the Japanese Syllabary. (From a photograph, taken from a wooden statue in a temple at Kioto.) but as an eminently holy bonze, and the compiler of the Japanese al- phabet, or syllabary, i, ro, ha, ni, ho, he, to, etc., in all forty-seven char- acters, which, with diacritical points, may be increased to the number of seventy. The katagana is the square, the hiragana is the script form. Kobo was born A.D. 774 ; and died A.D. 835. He founded a temple, and the sect called Shin Gon (True Words). Eight sects were in existence in his time, of which only two now survive. The thirteenth of the Christian era is the golden century of Japa- nese Buddhism ; for then were developed those phases of thought peculiar to it, and sects were founded, most of them in Kioto, which are still the most flourishing in Japan. Among these were, in 1202, the Zen (Contemplation); in 1211, the Jodo (Heavenly Road); in 1262, the Shin (New) ; in 1282, the Nichiren. In various decades of BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 163 the same century several other important sects originated, and the number of brilliant intellects that adorned the priesthood at this pe- riod is remarkable. Of these, only two can be noticed, for lack of space. In A.D. 1222, there was born, in a suburb of the town of Kominato, in Awa, a child who was destined to influence the faith of millions, and to leave the impress of his character and intellect indelibly upon the minds of his countrymen. He was to found a new sect of Buddhism, which should grow to be one of the largest, wealthiest, and most influential in Japan, and to excel them all in proselyting zeal, polemic bitterness, sectarian bigotry, and intolerant arrogance. The Nichiren- sect of Buddhists, in its six centuries of history, has probably furnished a greater number of brilliant intellects, uncompro- mising zealots, un quailing martyrs, and relentless persecutors than any other in Japan. No other sect is so fond of controversy. The bonzes of none other can excel those of the Nichiren shiu (sect) in proselyting zeal, in the bitterness of their theological arguments, in the venom of their revilings, or the force with which they hurl their epithets at those who differ in opinion or practice from them. In their view, all other sects than theirs are useless. According to their vocabulary, the adherents of Shin Gon are " not patriots ;" those of Ritsu are "thieves and rascals;" of Zen, are "furies;" while those of certain other sects are sure and without doubt to go to hell. Among the Nichirenites are to be found more prayer-books, drums, and other noisy accompaniments of revivals, than in any other sect. They ex- cel in the number of pilgrims, and in the use of charms, spells, and amulets. Their priests are celibates, and must abstain from wine, fish, and all flesh. They are the Ranters of Buddhism. To this day, a re- vival-meeting in one of their temples is a scene that often beggars de- scription, and may deafen weak ears. What with prayers incessantly repeated, drums beaten unceasingly, the shouting of devotees who work themselves into an excitement that often ends in insanity, and sometimes in death, and the frantic exhortation of the priests, the wildest excesses that seek the mantle of religion in other lands are by them equaled, if not excelled. To this sect belonged Kato Kiyomasa, the bloody persecutor of the Christians in the sixteenth century, the " vir ier execrandus " of the Jesuits, but who is now a holy saint in the calendar of canonized Buddhists. Nichiren (sun-lotus) was so named by his mother, who at concep- tion had dreamed that the sun (nichi) had entered her body. This 164 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. story is also told of other mothers of Japanese great men, and seems to be a favorite stock-belief concerning the women who bear children that afterward become men of renown or exalted holiness. The boy grew up surrounded by the glorious scenery of mountain, wave, shore, and with the infinity of the Pacific Ocean before him. He was a dreamy, meditative child. He was early put under the care of a holy bonze, but when grown to manhood discarded many of the old doc- trines, and, being dissatisfied with the other sects, resolved to found one, the followers of which should be the holders and exemplars of the pure truth. Nichiren was a profound student of the Buddhist classics, or sutras, brought from India, and written in Sanskrit and Chinese, for the en- tire canon of Buddhist holy books has at various times been brought from India or China, and translated into Chinese in Japan. Here- tofore, the common prayer of all the Japanese Buddhists had been "Namu, Amida Butsu " (Hail, Amida Buddha ! or, Save us, Eternal Buddha!). Nichiren taught that the true invocation was "Namu mid ho ren ge kid " (Glory to the salvation-bringing book of the law ; or, literally, Hail, the true way of salvation, the blossom of doctrine). This is still the distinctive prayer of the Nichiren sect. It is inscribed on the temple curtains, on their tombstones and wayside shrines, and was emblazoned on the banners carried aloft by the great warriors on sea and land who belonged to the sect. The words are the Chinese translation of Mamah Saddharma-pundarika-sutra, one of the chief canonical books of the Buddhist Scriptures, and in use by all the sects. Nichiren professed to find in it the true and only way of salvation, which the other expounders of Shaka's doctrine had not properly taught. He declared that the way as taught by him was the true and only one. Nichiren founded numerous temples, and was busy during the whole of his life, when not in exile, in teaching, preaching, and itin- erating. He published a book called Ankoku Ron ("An Argument to tranquilize the Country "). The bitterness with which he attacked oth- er sects roused up a host of enemies against him, who complained to Hojo Tokiyori, the shikken, or holder of the power, at Kamakura, and prayed to have him silenced, as a destroyer of the public peace, as in- deed the holy man was. The title of his book was by no means an exponent of its tone or style. Nichiren was banished to Cape Ito, in Idzu, where he remained three years. On his release, instead of holding his tongue, he allowed BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 165 it to run more violently than ever against other sects, especially de- crying the great and learned priests of previous generations. Ho jo Tokiyori again arrested him, confined him in a dungeon below ground, and condemned him to death. The following story is told, and devoutly believed, by his followers : On a certain day he was taken out to a village on the strand of the bay beyond Kamakura, and in front of the lovely island of Enoshima. This village is called Koshigoye. At this time Nichiren was forty- three years old. Kneeling down upon the strand, the saintly bonze calmly uttered his prayers, and repeated "Namu mid ho ren ge kid " upon his rosary. The swordsman lifted his blade, and, with all his might, made the downward stroke. Suddenly a flood of blinding light burst from the sky, and smote upon the executioner and the offi- cial inspector deputed to witness the severed head. The sword-blade was broken in pieces, while the holy man was unharmed. At the same moment, Ho jo, the Lord of Kamakura, was startled at his revels in the palace by the sound of rattling thunder and the flash of light- ning, though there was not a cloud in the sky. Dazed by the awful signs of Heaven's displeasure, Hojo Tokiyori, divining that it was on account of the holy victim, instantly dispatched a fleet messenger to stay the executioner's hand and reprieve the victim. Simultaneously the official inspector at the still unstained blood-pit sent a courier to beg reprieve for the saint whom the sword could not touch. The two men, coming from opposite directions, met at the small stream which the tourist still crosses on the way from Kamakura to Enoshi- ma, and it was thereafter called Yukiai (meeting on the way) River, a name which it retains to this day. Through the pitiful clemency and intercession of Hojo Tokimune, son of the Lord of Kamakura, Nichi- ren was sent to Sado Island. He was afterward released by his bene- factor in a general amnesty. Nichiren founded his sect at Kioto, and it greatly flourished under the care of his disciple, his reverence Ni- chizo. After a busy and holy life, the great saint died at Ikegami, a little to north-west of the Kawasaki railroad station, between Yokoha- ma and Tokio, where the scream of the locomotive and the rumble of the railway car are but faintly heard in its solemn shades. There are to be seen gorgeous temples, pagodas, shrines, magnificent groves and cemeteries. The dying presence of Nichiren has lent this place pecul- iar sanctity ; but his bones rest on Mount Minobu, in the province of Kai, where was one of his homes when in the flesh. See Frontispiece. While in Japan, I made special visits to many of the places rendered 166 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. most famous by Nichiren, of his birth, labors, triumph, and death, and there formed the impressions of his work and followers which I have in this chapter set forth. So far as I am able to judge, none of the native theologians has stamped his impress more deeply on the relig- ious intellect of Japan than has Nichiren. It may be vain prophecy, but I believe that Christianity in Japan will find its most vigorous and persistent opposers among this sect, and that it will be the last to yield to the now triumphing faith that seems clasping the girdle of world-victory in Japan. Their astonishing success and tremendous power, and their intoler- ance and bigotry, are to be ascribed to the same cause the precision, distinctness, and exclusiveness of the teachings of their master. In their sacred books, and in the sermons of their bonzes, the Nichirenites are exhorted to reflect diligently upon the peculiar blessings vouch- safed to them as a chosen sect, and to understand that they are fa- vored above all others in privilege, that their doctrines are the only true ones, and that perfect salvation is attainable by no other method or system. It is next to impossible for them to fraternize with other Buddhists, and they themselves declare that, though all the other sects may combine into one, yet they must remain apart, unless their tenets be adopted. The proscription of other sects, and the employment of reviling and abuse as a means of propagation introduced by Nichiren, was a comparatively new thing in Japan. It stirred up persecution against the new faith and its followers ; and this, coupled with the in- vincible fortitude and zeal of the latter, were together as soil and seed. The era and developments of Nichiren may be called the second revival of Buddhism in Japan, since it infused into that great religion, which had, at the opening of the thirteenth century, reached a stage of passive quiescence, the spirit of proselytism which was necessary to keep it from stagnant impurity and heartless formality. Though the success of Nichiren inaugurated an era of zeal and big- otry, it also awoke fresh life into that power which is the best repre- sentative of the religious life of the nation. Whether we call Bud- dhism a false or a true religion, even the most shallow student of the Japanese people must acknowledge that the pure religious, as well as the superstitious, character of the masses of the Japanese people has been fostered and developed more by Buddhism than by any and all other influences. Some of the superstitions of the Nichirenites are gross and revolt- ing, but among their beliefs and customs is the nagare kanjo (flowing BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 169 invocation). I shall call it " the mother's memorial." It is practiced chiefly by the followers of Nichiren, though it is sometimes employed by other sects. A sight not often met with in the cities, but in the suburbs and country places frequent as the cause of it requires, is the nagare kanjo (flowing invocation). A piece of cotton cloth is suspended by its four corners to stakes set in the ground near a brook, rivulet, or, if in the city, at the side of the water-course which fronts the houses of the better classes. Behind it rises a higher, lath-like board, notched several times near the top, and inscribed with a brief legend. Rest- ing on the cloth at the brookside, or, if in the city, in a pail of water, is a wooden dipper. Perhaps upon the four corners, in the upright bamboo, may be set bouquets of flowers. A careless stranger may not notice the odd thing, but a little study of its parts reveals the symbolism of death. The tall lath tablet is the same as that set be- hind graves and tombs. The ominous Sanskrit letters betoken death. Even the flowers in their bloom call to mind the tributes of affection- ate remembrance which loving survivors set in the sockets of the mon uments in the grave-yards. On the cloth is written a name such as is given to persons after death, and the prayer, "Namu mid ho ren ge Jcio " (Glory to the salvation-bringing Scriptures). Waiting long enough, perchance but a few minutes, there may be seen a passer-by who pauses, and, devoutly offering a prayer with the aid of his rosary, reverently dips a ladleful of water, pours it upon the cloth, and waits patiently until it has strained through, before moving on. All this, when the significance is understood, is very touching. It is the story of vicarious suffering, of sorrow from the brink of joy, of one dying that another may live. It tells of mother-love and mother- woe. It is a mute appeal to every passer-by, by the love of Heaven, to shorten the penalties of a soul in pain. The Japanese (Buddhists) believe that all calamity is the result of sin either in this or a previous state of existence. The mother who dies in childbed suffers, by such a death, for some awful transgression, it may be in a cycle of existence long since passed. For it she must leave her new-born infant, in the full raptures of mother-joy, and sink into the darkness of Hades, to wallow in a lake of blood. There must ne groan and suffer until the " flowing invocation " ceases, by the wearing-out of the symbolic cloth. When this is so utterly worn that the water no longer drains, but falls through at once, the freed spirit of the mother, purged of her sin, rises to resurrection among 170 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the exalted beings of a higher cycle of existence. Devout men, as they pass by, reverently pour a ladleful of water. Women, especial- ly those who have felt mother-pains, and who rejoice in life and lov- ing offspring, repeat the expiatory act with deeper feeling ; but the depths of sympathy are fathomed only by those who, being mothers, are yet bereaved. Yet, as in presence of nature's awful glories the reverent gazer is shocked by the noisy importunity of the beggar, so before this sad and touching memorial the proofs of sordid priest- craft chill the warm sympathy which the sight even from the heart of an alien might evoke. The cotton cloth inscribed with the prayer and the name of the de- ceased, to be efficacious, can be purchased only at the temples. I have been told, and it is no secret, that rich people are able to secure a napkin which, when stretched but a few days, will rupture, and let the water pass through at once. The poor man can get only the stout- est and most closely woven fabric. The limit of purgatorial penance is thus fixed by warp and woof, and warp and woof are gauged by money. The rich man's napkin is scraped thin in the middle. Nev- ertheless, the poor mother secures a richer tribute of sympathy from her humble people ; for in Japan, as in other lands, poverty has many children, while wealth mourns for heirs ; and in the lowly walks of life are more pitiful women who have felt the woe and the joy of motherhood than in the mansions of the rich. In Echizen, especially in the country towns and villages, the custom is rigidly observed; but though I often looked for the nagare kanjo in Tokio, I never saw one. I am told, however, that they may be seen in the outskirts of the city. The drawing of one seen near Ta- kefu, in Echizen, was made for me by my artist-friend Ozawa, a num- ber of whose sketches appear in this work. The Protestants of Japanese Buddhism are the followers of Shin shiu, founded by his reverence Shinran, in 1262. Shinran was a pupil of Honen, who founded the Jodo shiu, and was of noble de- scent. While in Kioto, at thirty years of age, he married a lady of noble blood, named Tamayori hime, the daughter of the Kuambaku. He thus taught by example, as well as by precept, that marriage was honorable, and that celibacy was an invention of the priests, not war- ranted by pure Buddhism. Penance, fasting, prescribed diet, pil- grimages, isolation from society, whether as hermits or in the cloister, and generally amulets and charms, are all tabooed by this sect. Nun- neries and monasteries are unknown within its pale. The family Belfry of a Buddhist Temple iu Ozaka. BUDDHISM IN JAPAN. 173 takes the place of monkish seclusion. Devout prayer, purity, and earnestness of life, and trust in Buddha himself as the only worker of perfect righteousness, are insisted upon. Other sects teach the doc- trine of salvation by works. Shinran taught that it is faith in Buddha that accomplishes the salvation of the believer. Buddhism seems to most foreigners who have studied it but Roman Catholicism without Christ, and in Asiatic form. The Shin sect hold a form of the Protestant doctrine of justification by faith, believing in Buddha instead of Jesus. Singleness of purpose characterizes this sect. Outsiders call it Ikko, from the initial word of a text in their chief book, Murioju Kid (" Book of Constant Life "). By others it is spoken of as Monto (gate-followers), in reference to their unity of organization. The Scriptures of other sects are written in Sanskrit and Chinese, which only the learned are able to read. Those of Monto are in the vernacular Japanese writing and idiom. Other sects build temples in sequestered places among the hills. The Shin - shiuists erect theirs in the heart of cities, on main streets, in the centres of population. They endeavor, by every means in their power, to induce the people to come to them. In Fukui their twin temples stood in the most frequented thoroughfares. In Tokio, Osa- ka, Kioto, Nagasaki, and other cities, the same system of having twin temples in the heart of the city is pursued, and the largest and finest ecclesiastical structures are the duplicates of this sect. The altars are on a scale of imposing magnificence, and gorgeous in detail. A com- mon saying is, " As handsome as a Monto altar." The priests marry, rear families, and their sons succeed them to the care of the temples. In default of male issue, the husband of the daughter of the priest, should he have one, takes the office of his father-in-law. Many mem- bers of the priesthood and their families are highly educated, perhaps more so than the bonzes of any other sect. Personal acquaintance with several of the Monto priests enables me to substantiate this fact asserted of them. The followers of Shinran have ever held a high position, and have wielded vast influence in the religious development of the people. Both for good and evil they have been among the foremost of active workers in the cause of religion. In time of war the Monto bonzes put on- armor, and, with their families and adherents, have in numer- ous instances formed themselves into military battalions. We shall hear more of their martial performances in succeeding chapters. After the death of Shinran, Rennio, who died in 1500, became the 12 174 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. revivalist of Monto, and wrote the Ofumi, or sacred writings, which are now daily read by the disciples of this denomination. With the characteristic object of reaching the masses, they are written in the common script hiragana writing, which all the people of both sexes can read. Though greatly persecuted by other sectaries, they have continually increased in numbers, wealth, and power, and now lead all in intelligence and influence. To the charges of uncleanness which others bring against them, because they marry wives, eat and drink and live so much like unclerical men, they calmly answer, the bright rays of the sun shine on all things alike, and that it is not for them to call things unclean which have evidently been created for man's use ; that righteousness consists neither in eating nor drinking, nor in absti- nence from the blessings vouchsafed to mortals in this vale of woe ; and that the maxims and narrow-minded doctrines, with the neglect of which they are reproached, can only have proceeded from the folly or vanity of men. They claim that priests with families are purer men than celibates in monasteries, and that the purity of society is best maintained by a married priesthood. Within the last two decades they were the first to organize their theological schools on the model of foreign countries, that their young men might be trained to resist Shinto or Christianity, or to measure the truth in either. The last new charge urged against them by their rivals is that they are so much like Christians, that they might as well be such out and out. Liberty of thought and action, an incoercible desire to be free from governmental, traditional, ultra-ecclesiastical, or Shinto influence in a word, Protestantism in its pure sense, is characteristic of the great sect founded by Shinran. To treat of the doctrinal difference and various customs of the dif- ferent denominations would require a volume. Japanese Buddhism richly deserves thorough study, and a scholarly treatise by itself.* The * It is a question worthy the deepest research and fullest inquiry, as to the time occupied in converting the Japanese people to the Buddhist faith. It is not probable, as some foreigners believe, that Wani (see page 76) brought the knowledge of the Indian religion to Japan. The Nihongi gives the year 552 as that in which Buddhist books, imnges, rosaries, altar furniture, vestments, etc., were bestowed as presents at the imperial palace, and deposited in the court of ceremony. The imported books were diligently studied by a few court nobles, and in 584 several of them openly professed the new faith. In 585, a frightful pes- tilence that broke out was ascribed by the patriotic opponents of the foreign faith to the anger of the gods against the new religion. A long and bitter dispute fol- lowed, and some of the new temples and idols were destroyed. In spite of patri- otism and conservative zeal, the worship and ritual were established in the pal- B UD DEISM IN JAPAN. 175 part played by the great Buddhist sects in the national drama of histo- ry in later centuries will be seen as we proceed in our narrative. ace, new missionaries were invited from Corea, and in 634 two bonzes were given official rank, as primate and vice-primate. Temples were erected, and, at the death of a bonze, in 700, his body was disposed of by cremation a new thing in Japan. In 741, an imperial decree, ordering the erection of two temples and a aeven-storied pagoda in each province, was promulgated. In 765, a priest became Dai Jo Dai Jin. In 827, a precious relic one of Shaka's (Buddha's) bones was deposited in the palace. The masterstroke of theological dexterity was made early in the ninth century, when Kobo, who had studied three years in China, achieved the reconciliation of the native belief and the foreign religion, made patriotism and piety one, and laid the foundation of the permanent and univer- sal success of Buddhism in Japan. This Japanese Philo taught that the Shinto deities, or gods, of Japan were manifestations, or transmigrations, of Buddha in that country, and, by his scheme of dogmatic theology, secured the ascendency of Buddhism over Shinto and Confucianism. Until near the fourteenth century, however, Buddhism continued to be the religion of the official, military, and edu- cated classes, but not of the people at large. Its adoption by all classes may be ascribed to the missionary labors of Shinran and Nichiren, whose banishment to the North and East made them itinerant apostles. Shinran traveled on foot through every one of the provinces north and east of Kioto, glorying in his exile, everywhere preaching, teaching, and making new disciples. It may be safely said that it required nine hundred years to convert the Japanese people from fetichism and Shinto to Buddhism. It is extremely difficult to get accurate statistics relating to Japanese Bud- dhism. The following table was compiled for me by a learned bonze of the Shin denomination, in the temple of Nishi Honguanji, in Tsukiji, Tokio. I have com- pared it with data furnished by an ex-priest in Fukui, and various laymen. The ecclesiastical centre of Japan has always been at Kioto. The chief temples and monasteries of each sect were located there. TABULAR LIST OF BUDDHIST SECTS IN JAPAH. I. Tendai. Founded by Chiaha, in China : 3 sub-sects .................. 6,391 IT. Shingou. Founded by Kobo, in Japan, A.D. 813 : 3 sub-sects ......... 15,503 IIL Zen. Founded by Darraa, in Japan : 6 sub-sects ..................... 21,547 IV. Jodo. Founded by Honen, in Japan, 1173 : 2 sub-sects ............... 9,819 V. Shin. Founded by Shiuran, in Japan, 1213 : 5 sub-sects .............. 13,718 VI. Nichiren. Founded by Nichiren, in Japan, 1262: 2 sub-sects ......... VII. Ji. Founded by Ippen, in Japan, 1288 ................................ 586 Besides the above, there are twenty-one "irregular," "local," or "independ- ent" sects, which act apart from the others, and in some cases have no temples or monasteries. A number of other sects have originated in Japan, flourished for a time, decayed, and passed out of existence. According to the census of 1872, there were in Japan 211,846 Buddhist rdigieux of both sexes and all grades and orders. Of these, 75,925 were priests, abbots, or monks, 9 abbesses; 37,327 were reckoned as novices or students, and 98,585 were in monasteries or families (mostly of Shin sect) ; 151,677 were males, 60,159 were females, and 9,621 were nuns. By the census of 1875, the returns gave 207,669 Buddhist religieux, of whom 148,807 were males, and 58,862 females. 176 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XVII. THE INVASION OF THE MONGOL TARTARS. DURING the early centuries of the Christian era, friendly intercourse was regularly kept up between Japan and China. Embassies were dispatched to and fro on various missions, but chiefly with the mutual object of bearing the congratulations to an emperor upon his accession to the throne. It is mentioned in the " Gazetteer of Echizen " (Echi- zen KoJcu Mei Seiki Ko] that embassadors from China, with a retinue and crew of one hundred and seventy-eight persons, came to Japan A.D. 776, to bear congratulations to the mikado, Konin Tenno. The vessel was wrecked in a typhoon off the coast of Echizen, and but forty-six of the company were saved. They were fed and sheltered in Echizen. In A.D. 779, the Japanese embassy, returning from China, landed at Mikuni, the sea -port of Fukui. In 883, orders were sent from Kioto to the provinces north of the capital to repair the bridges and roads, bury the dead bodies, and remove all obstacles, because the envoys of China were coming that way. The civil disorders in both countries interrupted these friendly relations in the twelfth century, and communications ceased until they were renewed again in the time of the Hojo, in the manner now to be described. In China, the Mongol Tartars had overthrown the Sung dynasty, and had conquered the adjacent countries. Through the Coreans, the Mongol emperor, Kublai Khan, at whose court Marco Polo and his uncles were then residing, sent letters demanding tribute and hom- age from Japan. Chinese envoys came to Kamakura, but Hojo Toki- mune, enraged at the insolent demands, dismissed them in disgrace. Six embassies were sent, and six times rejected. An expedition from China, consisting of ten thousand men, was sent against Japan. They landed at Tsushima and Iki. They were bravely attacked, and their commander slain. All Kiushiu having roused to arms, the expedition returned, having accomplished nothing. The Chinese emperor now sent nine envoys, who announced their pur- pose to remain until a definite answer was returned to their master. They were called to Kamakura, and the Japanese reply was given by THE INVASION OF THE MONGOL TARTARS. 177 cutting off their heads at the village of Tatsu no kuchi (Mouth of the Dragon), near the city. The Japanese now girded themselves for the war they knew was imminent. Troops from the East were sent to guard Kioto. Munitions of war were prepared, magazines stored, cas- tles repaired, and new armies levied and drilled. Boats and junks were built to meet the enemy on the sea. Once more Chinese en- voys came to demand tribute. Again the sword gave the answer, and their heads fell at Daizaifu, in Kiushiu, in 1279. Meanwhile the armada was preparing. Great China was coming to crush the little strip of land that refused homage to the invincible con- queror. The army numbered one hundred thousand Chinese and Tar- tars, and seven thousand Coreans, in ships that whitened the sea as the snowy herons whiten the islands of Lake Biwa. They numbered thirty-five hundred in all. In the Seventh month of the year 1281, the tasseled prows and fluted sails of the Chinese junks greeted the straining eyes of watchers on the hills of Daizaifu. The armada sailed gallantly up, and ranged itself off the castled city. Many of the junks were of immense proportions, larger than the natives of Japan had ever seen, and armed with the engines of European war- fare, which their Venetian guests had taught the Mongols to con struct and work. The Japanese had small chance of success on the water ; as, although their boats, being swifter and lighter, were more easily managed, yet many of them were sunk by the darts and huge stones hurled by the catapults mounted on their enemy's decks. In personal prowess the natives of Nippon were superior. Swimming out to the fleet, a party of thirty boarded a junk, and cut off the heads of the crew ; but another company attempting to do so, were all killed by the now wary Tartars. One captain, Kusanojiro, with a picked crew, in broad daylight, sculled rapidly out to an outlying junk, and, in spite of a shower of darts, one of which took off his left arm, ran his boat along-side a Chinese junk, and, letting down the masts, boarded the decks. A hand-to-hand fight ensued, and, before the ene- my's fleet could assist, the daring assailants set the ship on fire and were off, carrying away twenty-one heads. The fleet now ranged it- self in a cordon, linking each vessel to the other with an iron chain. They hoped thus to foil the cutting-out parties. Besides the cata- pults^ immense bow-guns shooting heavy darts were mounted on their decks, so as to sink all attacking boats. By these means many of the latter were destroyed, and more than one company of Japanese who expected victory lost their lives. Still, the enemy could not effect a 178 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. landing in force. Their small detachments were cut off or driven into the sea as soon as they reached the shore, and over two thousand heads were among the trophies of the defenders in the skirmishes. A line of fortifications many miles long, consisting of earth -works and heavy palisading of planks, was now erected along-shore. Behind these the defenders watched the invaders, and challenged them to land. There was a Japanese captain, Michiari, who had long hoped for this invasion. He had prayed often to the gods that he might have opportunity to fight the Mongols. He had written his prayers on pa- per, and, learning them, had solemnly swallowed the ashes. He was now overjoyed at the prospect of a combat. Sallying out from be- hind the breastwork, he defied the enemy to fight. Shortly after, he filled two boats with brave fellows and pushed out, apparently un armed, to the fleet. " He is mad," cried the spectators on shore. " How bold," said the men on the fleet, " for two little boats to attack thousands of great ships ! Surely he is coming to surrender himself." Supposing this to be his object, they refrained from shooting. When within a few oars-lengths, the Japanese, flinging out ropes with grap- pling-hooks, leaped on the Tartar junk. The bows and spears of the latter were no match for the two-handed razor-like swords of the Jap- anese. The issue, though for a while doubtful, was a swift and com- plete victory for the men who were fighting for their native land. Burning the junk, the surviving victors left before the surrounding ships could cut them off. Among the captured was one of the high- est officers in the Mongol fleet. The whole nation was now roused. Re - enforcements poured in from all quarters to swell the host of defenders. From the monas- teries and temples all over the country went up unceasing prayer to the gods to ruin their enemies and save the land of Japan. The em- peror and ex-emperor went in solemn state to the chief priest of Shin- to, and, writing out their petitions to the gods, sent him as a messen- ger to the shrines at Ise. It is recorded, as a miraculous fact, that at the hour of noon, as the sacred envoy arrived at the shrine and offered the prayer the day being perfectly clear a streak of cloud appeared in the sky, which soon overspread the heavens, until the dense masses portended a storm of awful violence. One of those cyclones, called by the Japanese tai-fu, or okaze, of appalling velocity and resistless force, such as whirl along the coasts of Japan and China during late summer and early fall of every year, THE INVASION OF THE MONGOL TARTARS. 181 burst upon the Chinese fleet. Nothing can withstand these maelstroms of the air. We call them typhoons ; the Japanese say tai-fu, or okaze ((Treat wind). Iron steamships of thousands of horse -power are al- most unmanageable in them. Junks are helpless : the Chinese ships were these only. They were butted together like mad bulls. They were impaled on the rocks, dashed against the cliffs, or tossed on land like corks from the spray. They were blown over till they careened and filled. Heavily freighted with human beings, they sunk by hun- dreds. The corpses were piled on the shore, or floating on the water so thickly that it seemed almost possible to walk thereon. Those driven out to sea may have reached the main-land, but were probably overwhelmed. The vessels of the survivors, in large numbers, drifted to or were wrecked upon Taka Island, where they established themselves, and, cutting down trees, began building boats to reach Corea. Here they were attacked by the Japanese, and, after a bloody struggle, all the fiercer for the despair on the one side and the exultation on the other, were all slain or driven into the sea to be drowned, except three, who were sent back to tell their emperor how the gods of Japan had de- stroyed their armada. The Japanese exult in the boast that their gods and their heaven prevailed over the gods and the heaven of the Chinese. This was the last time that China ever attempted to conquer Japan, whose people boast that their land has never been defiled by an invad- ing army. They have ever ascribed the glory of the destruction of the Tartar fleet to the interposition of the gods at Ise, who thereafter received special and grateful adoration as the guardian of the seas and winds. Great credit and praise were given to the lord of Kamakura, Hojo Tokimune, for his energy, ability, and valor. The author of the Guai Shi says, " The repulse of the Tartar barbarians by Toki- mune, and his preserving the dominions of our Son of Heaven, were sufficient to atone for the crimes of his ancestors." Nearly six centuries afterward, when " the barbarian " Perry anchor- ed his fleet in the Bay of Yedo, in the words of the native annalist, " Orders were sent by the imperial court to the Shinto priests at Ise to offer up prayers for the sweeping-away of the barbarians." Mill- ions of earnest hearts put up the same prayers as their fathers had offered, fully expecting the same result. To_ this day the Japanese mother in Kiushiu hushes her fretful in- fant by the question, "Do you think the Mogu (Mongols) are com- ing ?" This is the only serious attempt at invasion ever made by any nation upon the shores of Japan. 182 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XVIII. THE TEMPORARY MIR ADO ATE. THE first step taken after the overthrow of the military usurpation at Kamakura was to recall the mikado Go-Daigo from exile. With the sovereign again in full power, it seemed as though the ancient and rightful government was to be permanently restored. The military or dual system had lasted about one hundred and fifty years, and patriots now hoped to see the country rightly governed, without intervention between the throne and the people. The rewarding of the victors who had fought for him was the first duty awaiting the restored exile. The methods and procedure of feudalism were now so fixed in the general policy of the Government, that Go-Daigo, falling into the ways of the Minamoto and Hojo, apportioned military fiefs as guer- dons to his vassals. Among them was Ashikaga Takauji, to whom was awarded the greatest prize, consisting of the rich provinces of Hitachi, Musashi, and Shimosa. To Kusunoki Masashige were given Settsu and Kawachi; and to Nitta, Kodzuke and Harima, besides smaller fiefs to many others. This unfair distribution of spoils astounded the patriots, who ex- pected to see high rank and power conferred upon Nitta and Kusuno- ki, the chief leaders in the war for the restoration, and both very able men. It would have been well had the emperor seen the importance of disregarding the claims and privileges of caste, and exalted to high- est rank the faithful men who were desirous of maintaining the dig- nity of the throne, and whose chief fear was that the duarchy would again arise. Such a fear was by no means groundless, for Ashikaga, elated at such unexpected favor, became inflamed with a still higher ambition, and already meditated refounding the shogunate at Kama- kura, and placing his own family upon the military throne. Being x of Minamoto stock, he knew that he had prestige and popularity in his favor, should he attempt the re-erection of the shogunate. Most of the common soldiers had fought rather against Hojo than against du- archy. The emperor was warned against this man by his ministers; THE TEMPORARY MIKADO ATE. 183 but in this case a woman's smiles and caresses and importunate words were more powerful than the advice of sages. Ashikaga had bribed the mikado's concubine Kadoko, and had so won her favor that she persuaded her imperial lord to bestow excessive and undeserved honor on the traitor. The distribution of spoils excited discontent among the soldiers, who now began to lose all interest in the cause for which they had fought, and to murmur privately among themselves. " Should such an unjust government continue," said they, " then are we all servants of concubines and dancing - girls and singing -boys. Rather than be the puppets of the mikado's amusers, we would prefer a shogun again, and become his vassals." Many of the captains and smaller clan-leaders were also in bad humor over their own small shares. Ashikaga Taka- uji took advantage of this feeling to make himself popular among the disaffected, especially those who clung to arms as a profession and wished to remain soldiers, preferring war to peace. Of such inflamma- ble material the latent traitor was not slow to avail himself when it suited him to light the flames of war. Had the mikado listened to his wise counselor, and also placed Ku- sunoki in an office commensurate with his commanding abilities, and rewarded Nitta as he deserved, the century of anarchy and bloodshed which followed might have been spared to Japan. Go-Daigo, who in the early years of his former reign had been a man of indomitable courage and energy, seems to have lost the best traits of his character in his exile, retaining only his imperious will and susceptibility to flattery. To this degenerate Samson a Delilah was not wanting. He fell an easy victim to the wiles of one man, though the shears by which his strength was shorn were held by a woman. Ashikaga was a consummate master of the arts of adulation and political craft. He was now to further prove his skill, and to verify the warnings of Nitta and the ministers. The emperor made Moriyoshi, his own son, shogun. Ashikaga, jealous of the appoint- ment, and having too ready access to the infatuated father's ear, told him that his son was plotting to get possession of the throne. Mori- yoshi, hating the flatterer, and stung to rage by the base slander, marched against him. Ashikaga now succeeded by means of his ally in theMmperial bed in making himself, in the eyes of the mikado, the first victim to the conspiracies of the prince. So great was his power over the emperor that he obtained from the imperial hand a decree to punish his enemy Moriyoshi as a choteki, or rebel, against the mikado. 184 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Here we have a striking instance of what, in the game of Japanese state-craft, may be called the checkmate move, or, in the native idiom, Ote, " king's hand." It is difficult for a foreigner to fully appreciate the prestige attaching to the mikado's person a prestige never dimin- ishing. No matter how low his actual measure of power, the meanness of his character, or the insignificance of his personal abilities, he was the Son of Heaven, his word was law, his command omnipotent. He was the fountain of all rank and authority. No military leader, how- ever great his resources or ability, could win the popular heart or hope for ultimate success unless appointed by the emperor. He who held the Son of Heaven in his power was master. Hence it was the constant aim of all the military leaders, even down to 1868, to obtain control of the imperial person. However wicked or villainous the keeper of the mikado, he was master of the situation. His enemie,', were choteki, or rebels against the Son of Heaven ; his own soldiers were the Jcuan-gun, or loyal army. Even might could not make right. Possession of the divine person was more than nine-tenths it was the whole of the law. Moriyoshi, then, being choteki, was doomed. Ashikaga, having the imperial order, had the kuan-gun, and was destined to win. The sad fate of the emperor's son awakens the saddest feelings, and brings tears to the eyes of the Japanese reader even at the present day. He was seized, deposed, sent to Kamakura, and murdered in a subter- ranean dungeon in the Seventh month of the year 1335. His child in exile, the heart of the emperor relented. The scales fell from his eyes. He saw that he had wrongly suspected his son, and that the real traitor was Ashikaga. The latter, noticing the change that had come over his master, left Kioto secretly, followed by thousands of the disaffected soldiery, and fled to Kamakura, which he had rebuilt, and began to consolidate his forces with a view of again erecting the Eastern capital, and seizing the power formerly held by the Ho jo. Nitta had also been accused by Ashikaga, but, having cleared himself in a petition to the mikado, he received the imperial commission to chastise his rival. In the campaign which followed, the imperial forces were so hopelessly defeated that the quondam im- perial exile now became a fugitive. With his loyal followers he left Kioto, carrying with him the sacred emblems of authority. Ashikaga, though a triumphant victor, occupied a critical position. He was a choteki. As such he could never win final success. He had power and resources, but, unlike others equally usurpers, was not THE TEMPORARY MIKADO ATE. 185 clothed with authority. He was, in popular estimation, a rebel of the deepest dye. In such a predicament he could not safely remain a day. The people would take the side of the emperor. What should he do \ His vigor, acuteness, and villainy were equal. The Ho jo had deposed and set up emperors. It was Ashikaga who divided the alle- giance of the people, gave Japan a War of the Roses (or Chrysanthe- mums), tilled the soil for feudalism, and lighted the flames of war that made Kioto a cock-pit, abandoned the land for nearly two cent- uries and a half to slaughter, ignorance, and paralysis of national prog- ress. To clothe his acts with right, he made a new Son of Heaven. He declared Kogen, who was of the royal family, emperor. In 1336, this new Son of Heaven gave Ashikaga the title of Sei-i Tai Shogun. Kamakura again became the military capital. The duarchy was re- stored, and the War of the Northern and the Southern Dynasties be- gan, which lasted fifty-six years. Ashiknga Takanji, Sei-i Tai Shognn. (From a photograph taken from a wooden statne in a temple in Kioto.) The period 1333-1336, though including little more than two years of time, is of great significance as marking the existence of a temporary mikadoate. The fact that it lasted so short a time, and that the duarchy was again set up on its ruins, has furnished both na- tives and foreigners with the absurd and specious, but strongly urged, argument that the Government of Japan, by a single ruler from a sin- gle centre, is an impossibility, and that the creation of a dual sys- tem with a " spiritual " or nominal sovereign in one part of the em- pire, and a military or "secular" ruler in another, is a necessity. 186 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. During the agitation of the question concerning the abolition of the dual system, and the restoration of the mikado in 1860-1868, one of the chief arguments of the adherents of the shogunate against the scheme of the agitators, was the assertion that the events of the period 1333-1336 proved that the mikado could not alone govern the coun- try, and that it must have duarchy. Even after the overthrow of the "Tycoon" in 1868, foreigners, as well as natives, who had studied Japanese history, fully believed and expected that in a year or two the present mikado's Government would be overthrown, and the " Ty- coon " return to power, basing their belief on the fact that the mika- doate of 1333-1336 did not last. Whatever force such an argu- ment might have had when Japan had no foreign relations, and no aliens on her soil to disturb the balance between Kioto and Kama- kura, it is certain that it counts for naught when, under altered condi- tions, more than the united front of the whole empire* is now re- quired to cope with the political pressure from without. * Certain writers, and one as late as 1873, dispute the right of Japan to be called an "empire," and the mikados to be styled "emperor," "inasmuch as they [the mikados] sent tribute to the Emperor of China." As matter of fact, none of the mikados ever did this, though one shogun (Ashikaga Yoshimitsu, page 195) did. Chjnpse books, and even the official gazettes of Peking, speak of all nations even- England, France, and the United States as "paying tribute" to China, and their envoys as "tribute-bearers." Japan has always remained in total polit- ical independence of the Middle Kingdom and her Hwang Ti. That Japan is an "empire," the absolutism of the mikado, the diversity of her forms of govern- mental administration, differing in Liu Kiu (having its lord, or feudal vassal), Yezo (territory governed by a special department), and in the main body of the empire, besides its varied nationalities Japanese, Liu Kiuaus, and Ainos. This expression of sovereignty is, graphically conveyed in the two Chinese characters, pronounced, in Japanese, Eo tel (page 39, note), and Hwang Ti in Chinese. The Japanese rulers, borrowing their notions of government and imperialism from China, as those of modern Europe have from Rome, adopted the title for the mikado, who has ever ruled, not only over his own subjects of like blood, but over ebisu, or barbarians, and tributary people. When the character Ko is joined to Koku (country), we get Ko Koku, (which is stamped on the outside of this volume), or "The Mikado's Empire," the idea, emphasized being personal, or that of the mikado as government personified. When Tei is joined to Koku (Tei Koku Nihon, the blazon, or distinctive tablet, inscribed. w,ith four Chinese char- acters over the Japanese section at the Centennial Exposition at Philadelphia), we have the idea of an empire ruled by deity, or divine government theocracy. The fact that Japan, though so much smaller than China, has always claimed equal dignity, power, and glory with her mighty neighbor, and the fact that there can not be two suns in the same heaven, helps to explain the deep-seated rivalry, mutual jealousy, and even contempt, which " the decayed old gentle- man" and "the conceited young upstart" feel toward esch other. THE WAR OF THE CHRYSANTHEMUMS. 187 XIX. THE WAR OF THE CHRYSANTHEMUMS. THE dynasty of the imperial rulers of Japan is the oldest in the world. No other family line extends so far back into the remote ages as the nameless family of mikados. Disdaining to have a fami- ly name, claiming descent, not from mortals, but from the heavenly gods, the imperial house of the Kingdom of the Rising Sun occupies a throne which no plebeian has ever attempted to usurp. Through- out all the vicissitudes of the imperial line, in plenitude of power or abasement of poverty, its members deposed or set up at the pleasure of the upstart or the political robber, the throne itself has remained unshaken. Unclean hands have not been laid upon the ark itself. As in the procession of life on the globe the individual perishes, the species lives on, so, though individual mikados have been dethroned, insulted, or exiled, the prestige of the line has never suffered. The loyalty or allegiance of the people has never swerved. The soldier who would begin revolution, or who lusted for power, would make the mikado his tool ; but, however transcendent his genius and abili- ties, he never attempted to write himself mikado. No Japanese Caesar ever had his Brutus, nor Charles his Cromwell, nor George his Wash- ington. Not even, as in China, did one dynasty of alien blood over- throw another, and reign in the stead of a destroyed family. Such events are unknown in Japanese annals. The student of this people and their unique history can never understand them or their national life unless he measures the mightiness of the force, and recognizes the place of the throne and the mikado in the minds and hearts of its people. There are on record instances in which the true heirship was de- clared^only after bitter intrigue, quarrels, or even bloodshed. In the tenth century, Taira no Masakado, disappointed in not being appoint- ed Dai Jo Dai Jin, left Kioto, went to Shimosa in the Kuanto, and set himself up as Shinno, or cadet of the imperial line, and temporarily 188 THE MIKAD ' S EMPIRE. ruled the eight provinces of the East as a pseudo-mikado.* In 1139, the military families of Taira and Minamoto came to blows in Kioto over the question of succession between the rival heirs, Shutoku and Go-Shirakawa. The Taira being victors, their candidate became mikado. During the decay of the Taira, they fled from Kioto, carrying with them, as true emperor, with his suite and the sacred insignia, Antoku, the child, five years old, who was drowned in the sea when the Taira were destroyed. The Minamoto at the same time recognized Gotoba. It may be more analogical to call the wars of the Gen and Hei, with their white and red flags, the Japanese Wars of the Roses. Theirs was the struggle of rival houses. Now, we are to speak of rival dynasties, each with the imperial crysanthemum. In the time of the early Ashikagas (1336-1390) there were two mikados ruling, or attempting to rule, in Japan. The Emperor Go- Daigo had chosen his son Kuniyoshi as his heir, but the latter died in 1326. Kogen, son of the mikado Go-Fushimi (1299-1301), was * Taira no Masakado, or, as we should say, Masakado Taira, was a man of great energy and of unscrupulous character. He was at first governor of Shimosa, but aspired to rule over all the East. He built a palace on the same model as that of the mikado, at Sajima, in Shimotsuke, and appointed officers similar to those at the imperial court. He killed his uncle, who stood in the way of his ambition. To revenge his father's death, Sadamori, cousin to Masakado, headed two thou- sand men, attacked the false mikado, and shot him to death with an arrow, car- rying his head as trophy and evidence to Kioto, where it was exposed on the pil- lory. Shortly after his decease, the people of Musashi, living on the site of mod- ern Tokio, being greatly afflicted by the troubled and angry spirit of their late ruler, erected a temple on the site within the second castle enceinte near Kanda Bridge, and in that part of the city district of Kanda (God's Field) now occupied by the Imperial Treasury Department. This had the effect of soothing the un- quiet ghost, and the land had rest; and later generations, mindful of the power of a spirit that in life ruled all the Kuanto, and in death could afflict or give peace to millions at will, worshiped Masakado under the posthumous name of Kanda Mio Jin (Illustrious Deity of Kanda), his history having been forgotten, or trans- figured into the form of a narrative, which to doubt was sin. When lyeyasu, in the latter end of the sixteenth century, made Tedo his capital, he removed the shrine to a more eligible location on the hill in the rear of the Kanda River and the Suido, where, later, the university stood, and erected an edifice of great splen- dor, surrounded by groves and grounds of surpassing loveliness. This was per- haps only policy, to gain the popular favor by honoring the local gods ; but it stirred up some jealousy among the " mikado-reverencers " and students of his- tory who knew the facts. Some accused him of treasonable designs like those of Masakado. In 1868, when the mikado's troops arrived in Yedo, they rushed to the temple of Kanda Mio Jin, and, pulling out the idol or image of the deified Masakado, hacked it to pieces with their swords, wishing the same fate to all traitors. Thus, after nine centuries, the traitor received a traitor's reward, a clear instance of historic justice in the eyes of native patriots. THE WAR OF THE CHRYSANTHEMUMS. 189 then made heir. Go-Daigo's third son Moriyoshi, however, as he grew up, showed great talent, and his father regretted that he had consented to the choice of Kogen, and wished his own son to succeed him. He referred the matter to Ho jo at Kamakura, who disapproved of the plan. Those who hated Hojo called Kogen the " false emper- or," refusing to acknowledge him. When Nitta destroyed Kamakura, and Go-Daigo was restored, Kogen retired to obscurity. No one for a moment thought of or acknowledged any one but Go-Daigo as true and only mikado. When, however, Ashikaga by his treachery had alienated the emperor from him, and was without imperial favor, and liable to punishment as a rebel, he found out and set up Kogen as mikado, and proclaimed him sovereign. Civil war then broke out. Into the details of the war between the adherents of the North- ern emperor, Ashikaga, with his followers, on the one side, and Go- Daigo, who held the insignia of authority, backed by a brilliant array of names famous among the Japanese, on the other, I do not propose to enter. It is a confused and sickening story of loyalty and treach- ery, battle, murder, pillage, fire, famine, poverty, and misery, such as make up the picture of civil wars in every country. Occasionally in this period a noble deed or typical character shines forth for the ad- miration or example of succeeding generations. Among these none have exhibited more nobly man's possible greatness in the hour of death than Nitta Yoshisada and Kusunoki Masashige. On one occasion the army of Nitta, who was fighting under the flag of Go-Daigo, the true emperor, was encamped before that of Ashika- ga. To save further slaughter, Nitta sallied out alone, and, approach- ing his enemy's camp, cried out : " The war in the country continues long. Although this has arisen from the rivalry of two emperors, yet its issue depends solely upon you and me. Rather than millions of the people should be involved in distress, let us determine the ques- tion by single combat." The retainers of Ashikaga prevailed on their commander not to accept the challenge. In 1338, on the second day of the Seventh month, while marching with about fifty followers to assist in investing a fortress in Echizen, he was suddenly attacked in a narrow path in a rice-field near Fukui by about three thousand of the enemy, and exposed without shields to a shower of arrows. Some one begged Nitta, as he was mounted, to escape. " It is not my de- sire to survive my companions slain," was his response. Whipping up his horse, he rode forward to engage with his sword, making him- self the target for a hundred archers. His horse, struck when at full 13 190 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. speed by an arrow, fell. Nitta, on clearing himself and rising, was hit between the eyes with a white-feathered shaft, and mortally wounded. Drawing his sword, he cut off his own head a feat which the war- riors of that time were trained to perform so that his enemies might not recognize him. He was thirty-eight years old. His brave little band were slain by arrows, or killed themselves with their own hand, that they might die with their master. The enemy could not recog- nize Nitta, until they found, beneath a pile of corpses of men who had committed hara-kiri, a body on which, inclosed in a damask bag, was a letter containing the imperial commission in Go-Daigo's hand- writing, " I invest you with all power to subjugate the rebels." Then they knew the corpse to be that of Nitta. His head was carried to Kioto, then in possession of Ashikaga, and exposed in public on a pillory. The tomb of this brave man stands, carefully watched and tended, near Fukui, in Echizen, hard by the very spot where he fell. I often passed it in my walks, when living in Fukui in 1871, and no- ticed that fresh blooming flowers were almost daily laid upon it the tribute of an admiring people. A shrine and monument in memoriam were erected in his native place during the year 1875. The brave Kusunoki, after a lost battle at Minatogawa, near Hiogo, having suffered continual defeat, his counsels having been set at naught, and his advice rejected, felt that life was no longer honorable, and solemnly resolved to die in unsullied reputation and with a sol- dier's honor. Sorrowfully bidding his wife and infant children good- bye, he calmly committed hara-kiri, an example which his comrades, numbering one hundred and fifty, bravely followed. Kusunoki Masashige was one of an honorable family who dwelt in Kawachi, and traced their descent to the great-grandson of the thirty- second mikado, Bidatsu (A.D. 572-585). The family name, Kusunoki (" Camphor "), was given his people from the fact that a grove of camphor-trees adorned the ancestral gardens of the mansion. The twelfth in descent was the Vice-governor of lyo. The father of Masa- shige held land assessed at two thousand koku. His mother, desiring a child, prayed to the god Bishamon for one hundred days, and Ma- sashige was born after a pregnancy of fourteen months. The mother, in devout gratitude, named the boy Tarn on (the Sanskrit name of Bish- amon), after the god who had heard her prayers. The man-child was very strong, and at seven could throw boys of fifteen at wrestling. He received his education in the Chinese classics from the priests in the temple, and exercised himself in all manly and warlike arts. In THE WAR OF THE CHRYSANTHEMUMS. 191 his twelfth year he cnt off the head of an enemy, and at fifteen stud- ied the Chinese military art, and made it the solemn purpose of his life to overthrow the Kamakura usurpation, and restore the mikado to power. In 1330, he took up arms for Go-Daigo. He was several times besieged by the Hojo armies, but was finally victorious with Nitta and Ashikaga. When the latter became a rebel, defeated Nitta, and entered Kioto in force, Kusunoki joined Nitta, and thrice drove out the troops of Ashikaga from the capital. The latter then fled to the West, and Kusunoki advised the imperialist generals to follow them up and annihilate the rebellion. His superiors, with criminal levity, neglecting to do this, the rebels collected together, and again advanced, with increased strength by land and water, against Kioto, having, it is said, two hundred thousand men. Kusunoki's plan of operations was rejected, and his advice ignored. With Nitta he was compelled to bear the brunt of battle against overwhelming forces at Minato gawa, near Hiogo, and was there hopelessly defeated. Kusu- noki, now feeling that he had done all that was possible to a subordi- nate, and that life was no longer honorable, retired to a farmer's house at the village of Sakurai, and there, giving him the sword bestowed on himself by the mikado, admonished his son Masatsura to follow the soldier's calling, cherish his father's memory, and avenge his fa- ther's death. Sixteen of his relatives, with unquailing courage, like- wise followed their master in death. Of all the characters in Japanese history, that of Kusunoki Masa- shige stands pre-eminent for pureness of patriotism, unselfishness of devotion to duty, and calmness of courage. The people speak of him in tones of reverential tenderness, and, with an admiration that lacks fitting words, behold in him the mirror of stainless loyalty. I have more than once asked my Japanese students and friends whom they considered the noblest character in their history. Their unanimous answer was " Kusunoki Masashige." Every relic of this brave man is treasured up with religious care ; and fans inscribed with poems writ- ten by him, in fac-simile of his handwriting, are sold in the shops and used by those who burn to imitate his exalted patriotism.* His son Masatsura lived to become a gallant soldier. * I make no attempt to conceal my own admiration of a man who acted ac- cording to his light, and faced his soldierly ideal of honor, when conscience and all his previous education told him that his hour had come, and that to flinch from the suicidal thrust was dishonor and sin. No enlightened Japanese of to- day would show himself brave by committing hara-kiri, as the most earnest writers, 192 THE M1KAD ' S EMPIRE. The war, which at first was waged with the clearly defined object of settling the question of the supremacy of the rival mikados, gradual' ly lost its true character, and finally degenerated into a melee and free fight on a national scale. Before peace was finally declared, all the original leaders had died, and the prime object had been, in a great measure, forgotten in the lust for land and war. Even the rival env perors lost much of their interest, as they had no concern in brawls by which petty chieftains sought to exalt their own name, and increase their territory by robbing their neighbors. In 1392, an envoy from Ashikaga persuaded Go-Kameyama to come to Kioto and hand over the regalia to Go-Komatsu, the Northern emperor. The basis of peace was that Go-Kameyama should receive the title of Dai Jo Tenno (ex-emperor), Go-Komatsu be declared emperor, and the throne be occupied alternately by the rival branches of the imperial family. The ceremony of abdication and surrender of regalia, on the one hand, and of investiture, on the other, were celebrated with due pomp and solemnity in one of the great temples in the capital, and the war of fifty-six years' duration ceased. All this redounded to the glory and power of the Ashikaga. The period 1336-1392 is of great interest in the eyes of all native students of Japanese history. In the Dai Nihon Shi, the Southern dynasty are defended as the legitimate sovereigns, and the true de- scendants of Ten Sho Dai Jin, the sun -goddess; and the Northern dynasty are condemned as mere usurpers. The same view was taken by Kitabatake Chikafusa, who was the author of the Japanese Red- book, who warned the emperor Go-Daigo against Ashikaga, and in 1339 w^ote a book to prove that Go-Daigo was mikado, and the Ashikaga's nominee a usurper. This is the view now held in modern Japan, and only those historians of the period who award legitimacy to the Southern dynasty are considered authoritative. The Northern branch of the imperial family after a few generations became extinct.* thinkers, and even soldiers admit. Fukuzawa, the learned reformer and peda- gogue, and a chaste and eloquent writer, in one of his works condemns the act of Kusunoki, not mentioning him by name, however, as lacking the element of true courage, according to the enlightened view. He explains and defends the Christian ideas on the subject of suicide. His book created great excitement and intense indignation in the minds of the samurai at first; but now he car- ries with him the approbation of the leading minds in Japan, especially of the students. * The names of the "Northern," or "False," emperors are Kogen, Komio, Shinko, Go-Kogon, Go-Enyiu, and Go-Komatsu. THE ASHIKAGA PERIOD. 193 XX. THE ASHIKAGA PERIOD. THE internal history of Japan during the period of time covered by the actual or nominal rule of the thirteen shoguns of the Ashikaga family, from 1336 until 1573, except that portion after the year 1542, is not very attractive to a foreign reader. It is a confused picture of intestine war. Ashikaga Takauji, the founder of the line, was a descendant of the Minamoto Yoshikuni, who had settled at Ashikaga, a village in Shi- motsuke, in the eleventh century. He died in 1356. His grandson Yoshimitsu, called the Great Ashikaga, was made shogun when ten years old, and became a famous warrior in the South and West. Aft- er the union of the two dynasties, he built a luxurious palace at Kio- to, and was made Dai Jo Dai Jin. He enjoyed his honors for one year. He then retired from the world to become a shaven monk in a Buddhist monastery. Under the Ho jo, the office of shogun was filled by appointment of the imperial court ; but under the Ashikaga the office became heredi- tary in this family. As usual, the man with the title was, in nearly every case, but a mere figure-head, wielding little more personal power than that of the painted and gilded simulacrum of the admiral that formerly adorned the prow of our old seventy-four-gun ships. During this period the term Kubo sama, applied to the shoguns, and used so frequently by the Jesuit fathers, came into use. The actual work of government was done by able men of inferior rank. The most noted of these was Hosokawa Yoriyuki, who was a fine scholar as well as a warrior. It was through his ordering that the young shogun Yoshi- mitsu was well trained, and had for his companions noble youths who excelled in literary and military skill. This was vastly different from Hojo -Tokimasa's treatment of the sons of Yoritomo. He attempted the reform of manners and administration. He issued five mottoes for the conduct of the military and civil officers. They were : 1. Thou shalt not be partial in amity or enmity. 2. Thou shalt return neither 194 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. favor nor vengeance. 3. Thou shalt not deceive, either with a right or a wrong [motive]. 4. Thou shalt not hope dishonestly [for a bribe]. 5. Thou shalt not deceive thyself. The pendulum of power during this period oscillated between Kio- to and Kamakura ; a tai (or " great ") shogun ruling at the former, and a shogun at the latter place. An officer called the shiJcken was the real ruler of the capital and the central provinces ; and another called the kuan-rei (Governor of the Kuanto), of Kamakura and the East. War was the rule, peace the exception. Feudal fights ; border brawls; the seizure of lands; the rise of great clans; the building, the siege, and the destruction of castles, were the staple events. Every monastery was now a stronghold, an arsenal, or a camp. The issue of a combat or a campaign was often decided by the support which the bonzes gave to one or the other party. The most horrible ex. cesses were committed, the ground about Kioto and Kamakura, both of which were captured and recaptured many times, became like the chitama (blood-pits) of the execution-ground. Villages, cities, temples, monasteries, and libraries were burned. The fertile fields lay waste, blackened by fire, or covered from sight, as with a cloth, by dense thickets of tall weeds, which, even in one summer's time, spring with astonishing fecundity from the plethoric soil of Japan. The people driven from their homes by war returned to find a new wilderness, re- sounding with the din of devouring insects. The people of gentle birth fled to mountain caves. Education was neglected. The com- mon herd grew up in ignorance and misery. Reading and writing, except among the priests and nobles, were unknown arts which the warriors scorned. War was the only lucrative trade, except that of the armorers or sword-makers. Famine followed on the footsteps of war, and with pestilence slew her tens of thousands. Pirates on the seas ravaged not only the coasts of Japan, but those of China and Corea, adding pillage and rapine to the destruction of commerce. The Chinese mothers at Ningpo even now are heard to frighten their children by mentioning the names of the Japanese pirates. On land the peasantry were impressed in military service to build castles or in- trenched camps; or, the most daring, becoming robbers, made their nests in the mountains and plundered the traveler, or descended upon the merchant's store-house. Japan was then the paradise of thieves. To all these local terrors were added those gendered in the mind of man by the convulsions of nature. Earthquakes, volcanic eruptions, floods, tidal waves, typhoons, and storms seem to have been abnormal- THE ASHIKAQA PERIOD. 195 ly frequent during this period. The public morals became frightfully corrupted, religion debased. All kinds of strange and uncouth doc- trines came into vogue. Prostitution was never more rampant. It was the Golden Age of crime and anarchy. The condition of the emperors was deplorable. With no revenues, and dwelling in a capital alternately in the possession of one or the other hostile army ; in frequent danger from thieves, fire, or starva- tion ; exposed to the weather or the dangers of war, the narrative of their sufferings excites pity in the mind of even a foreign reader, and from the native draws the tribute of tears. One was so poor that he depended upon the bounty of a noble for his food and clothing ; an- other died in such poverty that his body lay unburied for several days, for lack of money to have him interred. The remembrance of the wrongs and sufferings of these poor emperors fired the hearts and nerved the arms of the men who in 1868 fought to sweep away for- ever the hated system by which such treatment of their sovereign be- came possible. So utterly demoralized is the national, political, and social life of this period believed to have been, that the Japanese people make it the limbo of all vanities. Dramatists and romancers use it as the convenient ground whereon to locate every novel or play, the plot of which violates all present probability. The chosen time of the bulk of Japanese dramas and novels written during the last century or two is that of the late Ashikagas. The satirist or writer aiming at contem- porary folly, or at blunders and oppression of the Government, yet wishing to avoid punishment and elude the censor, clothes his charac- ters in the garb and manners of this period. It is the potter's field where all the outcasts and Judases of moralists are buried. By com- , mon consent, it has become the limbo of playwright and romancer, and the scape-goat of chronology. The act by which, more than any other, the Ashikagas have earned the curses of posterity was the sending of an embassy to China in 1401, bearing presents acknowledging, in a measure, the authority of China, and accepting in return the title of Nippon 0, or King of Ja- pan. This, which was done by Ashikaga Yoshimitsu, the third of the line, was an insult to the national dignity for which he has never been iorgiven. It was a needless humiliation of Japan to her arro- gant neighbor, and done only to exalt the vanity and glory of the usurper Ashikaga, who, not content with adopting the style and equi- page of the mikado, wished to be made or called a king, and yet dared 196 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. not usurp the imperial throne.* The punishment of Ashikaga is the curse of posterity. In 1853, when the treaty with the United States was made, a similar insult to the sovereign and the nation, as well as a contemptible deception of the American envoy and foreigners, was practiced by the shogun calling himself "Tycoon" (Great King, or Sovereign of Japan). In this latter instance, as we know, came not the distant anathema of future generations, but the swift vengeance of war, the permanent humiliation, the exile to obscurity, of the Tokugawa family, and the abolition of the shogunate and the dual system forever. It was during the first of the last three decades of the Ashikaga period that Japan became known to the nations of Europe; while fire-arms, gunpowder, and a new and mighty faith were made known to the Japanese nation. * The Ashikaga line of shoguns comprised the following : 1. Takanji 1335-1357 2. Yoshinori 1358-13G7 3. Yoshmitsu 1368-1393 4. Yoshimochi 1394-1422 5. Yoshikadzu 1423-1425 6. Yoshinori 1428-1440 7. Yoshikatsu 1441-1448 8. Yoshimasa 1449-1471 9. Yoshihisa 1472-1489 10. Yoshitan6 1490-1493 11. Yoslmumi 1494-1507 12. Yoshitane (same as the 10th) 1508-1520 13. Yoshiharu 1521-1545 14. Yoshiteru 1546-1567 15. Yoshiaki... .. 1568-1573 The term Kubo sama, so often used by the Jesuit and Dutch writers, was not an official title of the shogun, but was applied to him by the common people. When at first anciently used, it referred to the mikado, or, rather, the mikado who had abdicated, or preceded the ruling sovereign ; but later, when the people saw in the Kamakura court and its master so close an imitation of the imperial style and capital, they began gradually to speak of the shogun as the Kubo, with, however, only the general meaning of "the governing power," or the nobleman who enjoyed the right of riding to the court in a car, and entering the imperial palace. The term was in use until 1868, but was never inherent in any office, be- ing rather the exponent of certain forms of etiquette, privilege, and display, than of official duties. The Jesuit fathers nearly always speak of the mikado as the Dairi (see page 39), and at first erroneously termed the daimios " kings." Later on, they seemed to have gained a clear understanding of the various titles and official relations. In some works the Kuambaku (with efowo, lord, attached) is spoken of as "emperor." Nobunaga, who became Nai Dai Jin, is also called "emperor." During the supremacy of the military rulers at Kamakura and Yedo, the offices and titles, though purely civil, once exclusively given to no- bles at the mikado's court, were held by the officials of the shogunate. In later chapters, the writer of this work has fallen into the careless and er- roneous practice of calling daimios "princes." The term "prince" should be employed only in speaking of the sons of the mikado, or members of the imperi- al family. "Collectively, the daimios were lords or barons, and all ranks of the peerage were represented among them, from the kokushi, or dukes, down to the hatamoto, or knights." LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 197 XXI. LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. HISTORY, as usually written, gives the impression that the normal condition of mankind is that of war. Japanese students who take up the history of England to read, lay it down convinced that the En- glish people are a blood -loving race that are perpetually fighting. They contrast their own peaceful country with the countries of Eu- rope, to the detriment of the latter. They turn most gladly from the monotonous story of battle, murder, and sieges, to Buckle, Guizot, or Lecky, that they may learn of the victories no less renowned than those of war which mark as mile-stones the progress of the race. I greatly fear that from lack of literary skill my readers will say that my story of Japan thus far is a story of bloody war; but such, in- deed, it is as told in their own histories. Permanent, universal peace was unknown in Japan until, by the genius of lyeyasu in the six- teenth century, two centuries and a half of this blessing were secured. Nevertheless, in the eight centuries included between the eighth and the sixteenth of our era were many, and often lengthened, intervals of peace. In many sequestered places the sandal of the warrior and the hoof of the war-horse never printed the soil. Peace in the palace, in the city, in the village, allowed the development of manners, arts, manufactures, and agriculture. In this period were developed the characteristic growths of the Japanese intellect, imagination, social economy, and manual skill that have made the hermit nation unique in the earth and Japanese art productions the wonder of the world. In this chapter, I shall simply glance at some of the salient features of life in Japan during the Middle Ages. The introduction of continental or Chinese civilization into Japan was not a simple act of adoption. It was rather a work of selection and assimilation. As in this nineteenth century, the Japanese is no blind copyist, he improves on what he borrows. Although the travel- er from China entering Japan can see in a moment whence the Japa- nese have borrowed their civilization, and though he may believe the 198 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Japanese to be an inferior type to that of the Chinese, he will ac- knowledge that the Japanese have improved upon their borrowed ele- ments fully as much as the French have improved upon those of Roman civilization. Many reflecting foreigners in Japan have asked the question why the Japanese are so unlike the Chinese, and why their art, literature, laws, customs, dress, workmanship, all bear a stamp peculiar to themselves, though they received so much from them ? The reason is to be found in the strength and persistence of the primal Japanese type of character, as influenced by nature, enabling it to resist serious alteration and radical change. The greatest con- quests made by any of the imparted elements of continental civiliza- tion was that of Buddhism, which became within ten centuries the universally popular religion. Yet even its conquests were but partial. Its triumph was secured only by its adulteration. Japanese Buddhism is a distinct product among the many forms of that Asiatic religion. Buddhism secured life and growth on Japanese soil only by being Japanized, by being grafted on the original stock of ideas in the Japa- nese mind. Thus, in order to popularize the Indian religion, the an- cient native heroes and the local gods were all included within the Buddhist pantheon, and declared to be the incarnations of Buddha in his various forms. A class of deities exist in Japan who are worship- ed by the Buddhists under the general name of gongen. They are all deified Japanese heroes, warriors, or famous men. Furthermore, many of the old rites and ceremonies of Shinto were altered and made use of by the bonzes. It may be doubted whether Buddhism could have ever been popular in Japan, had it not become thoroughly Japanized. Some of the first-fruits of the success of the new religion was the erection of temples, pagodas, idols, wayside shrines, monasteries, and nunneries ; the adoption of the practice of cremation, until then un- known ; and the cessation of the slaughter of animals for food. The largest and richest of the ecclesiastical structures were in or near Kioto. The priests acted as teachers, advisers, counselors, and scribes, besides officiating at the altars, shriving the sick, and attending the sepulture of the dead. Among the orders and sects which grew and multiplied were many similar to those in papal Europe mendicants, sellers of indulgences, builders of shrines and images, and openers of mountain paths. The monasteries became asylums for the distressed, afflicted, and perse- cuted. In them the 'defeated soldier, the penniless and the dissatisfied, the refugee from the vendetta, could find inviolate shelter. To them LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 199 the warrior after war, the prince and the minister leaving the palace, the honors and pomp of the world, could retire to spend the remnant of their days in prayer, worship, and the offices of piety. Often the murderer, struck with remorse, or the soldier before his bloody victim, would resolve to turn monk. Not rarely did men crossed in love, or the offspring of the concubine displaced by the birth of the legitimate son, or the grief-stricken father, devote himself to the priestly life. In general, however, the ranks of the bonzes were recruited from orphans or piously inclined youth, or from overstocked families. To the nun- neries, the fertile soil of bereavement, remorse, unrequited love, wid- owhood furnished the greater number of sincere and devout nuns. In many cases, the deliberate choice of wealthy ladies, or the necessity of escaping an uncongenial marriage planned by relatives, undesirable attentions, or the lusts of rude men in unsettled times, gave many an inmate to the convents. In general, however, natural indolence, a desire to avoid the round of drudgery at the well, the hoe, or in the kitchen, or as nurse, sent the majority of applicants to knock at the convent doors. Occasion- ally a noble lady was won to recluse life from the very apartments of the emperor, or his ministers, by the eloquence of a bonze who was more zealous than loyal. In a few of the convents, only ladies of wealth could enter. The monk and nun, in Japanese as in Eu- ropean history, romance, and drama, and art, are staple characters. The rules of these monastic institutions forbade the eating of fish or flesh, the drinking of sake, the wearing of the hair or of fine clothes, indulgence in certain sensuous pleasures, or the reading of certain books. Fastings, vigils, reflection, continual prayer by book, bell, candle, and beads, were enjoined. Pious pilgrimages were undertaken. The erection of a shrine, image, belfry, or lantern by begging contri- butions was a frequent and meritorious enterprise. There stand to- day thousands of these monuments of the piety, zeal, and industry of the medieval monks and nuns. Those at Nara and Kamakura are the most famous. The Kamakura Dai Butsu (Great Buddha) has been frequently described before. It is a mass of copper 44 feet high, and a work of high art. The image at Nara was first erected in the eighth century, destroyed during the civil wars, and recast about seven hun- dred yjfcars ago. Its total height is 53-J- feet ; its face is 16 feet long, and 9-J feet wide. The width of its shoulders is 28 T V feet. Nine hundred and sixty-six curls adorn its head, around which is a halo 78 feet in diameter, on which are sixteen images, each 8 feet long. The 200 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. casting of the idol is said to have been tried seven times before it was successfully accomplished, and 3000 tons of charcoal were used in the operation. The metal, said to weigh 450 tons, is a bronze composed of gold (500 pounds), mercury (1954 pounds), tin (16,827 pounds), and copper (986,080 pounds). Many millions of tons of copper were mined and melted to make these idols. Equally renowned were the great temple-bells of Kioto, and of Miidera, and various other monas- teries. Some of these were ten feet high, and adorned with sacred Temple -bell from Kioto, with Dragon -bow, Inscriptions, Representation of Ten-nin (angel), and of Buddha in Nirvana on the Lotus. texts from the Buddhist Scriptures, and images of heavenly beings, or Buddha on the sacred lotus in Nirvana, in high relief. As usual, the nimbus, or halo, surrounds his head. Two dragon-heads formed the summit, and ear, by which it was hung to its beam by an iron Jink. The bell was struck on a raised round spot, by a hammer of wood a small tree-trunk swung loosely on two ropes. After impact, the bellman held the beam on its rebound, until the quivering mono- tone began to die away. Few sounds are more solemnly sweet than LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 201 the mellow music of a Japanese temple-bell. On a still night, a cir cumference of twenty miles was flooded by the melody of the great bell of Zozoji. The people learned to love their temple-bell as a dear friend, as its note changed with the years and moods of life. The casting of a bell was ever the occasion of rejoicing and public festival. When the chief priest of the city announced that one was to be made, the people brought contributions in money, or offerings of bronze gold, pure tin, or copper vessels. Ladies gave with their own hands the mirrors which had been the envy of lovers, young girls laid their silver hair-pins and bijouterie on the heap. When metal enough and in due proportion had been amassed, crucibles were made, earth- furnaces dug, the molds fashioned, and huge bellows, worked by stand- ing men at each end, like a seesaw, were mounted; and, after due prayers and consultation, the auspicious day was appointed. The place selected was usually on a hill or commanding place. The peo- ple, in their gayest dress, assembled in picnic parties, and with song and dance and feast waited while the workmen, in festal uniform, toiled, and the priests, in canonical robes, watched. The fires were lighted, the bellows oscillated, the blast roared, and the crucibles were brought to the proper heat and the contents to fiery fluidity, the joy of the crowd increasing as each stage in the process was announced. When the molten flood was finally poured into the mold, the excite- ment of the spectators reached a height of uncontrollable enthusiasm. Another pecuniary harvest was reaped by the priests before the crowds dispersed, by the sale of stamped kerchiefs or paper containing a holy text, or certifying to the presence of the purchaser at the ceremony, and the blessing of the gods upon him therefor. Such a token be- came an heir-loom ; and the child who ever afterward heard the sol- emn boom of the bell at matin or evening was constrained, by filial as well as holy motives, to obey and reverence its admonitory call. The belfry was usually a separate building apart from the temple, with elaborate cornices and roof. (See page 172.) In addition to the offices of religion, many of the priests were use- ful men, and real civilizers. They were not all lazy monks or idle bonzes. By the Buddhist priests many streams were spanned with bridges, paths and roads made, shade or fruit trees planted, ponds and ditches, for purposes of irrigation dug, aqueducts built, unwholesome localities drained, and mountain passes discovered or explored. Many were the school-masters, and, as learned men, were consulted on sub- jects beyond the ken of their parishioners. Some of them, having a 202 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. knowledge of medicine, acted as physicians. The sciences and arts in Japan all owe much to the bonzes who from Corea personally intro- duced many useful appliances or articles of food. Several edible veg- etables are still named after the priests, who first taught their use. The exact sciences, astronomy and mathematics, as well as the human- ities, owe much of their cultivation and development to clerical schol- ars. In the monasteries, the brethren exercised their varied gifts in preaching, study, calligraphy, carving, sculpture, or on objects of ec- clesiastical art. The monuments by which the memory of many a saintly bonze is still kept green exist to-day as treasures on the altars, or in the tem- ple or its shady precincts, in winged words or material substance. A copy of the Buddhist Scriptures, a sacred classic, in roll or bound vol- ume, might occupy a holy penman before his brush and ink-stone for years. The manuscript texts which I have often seen in the hall of worship on silky paper bound in damask, in Japanese monasteries, could not be improved in elegance and accuracy by the printer's art. The transcription of a sutra on silk, made to adorn the wall of a shrine, 'ji many cases performed its mission for centuries. Another monk excelled in improvisation of sacred stanzas, another painted the pictures and scrolls by which the multitude were taught by the priest, with his pointer in hand, the mysteries of theology, the symbols of worship, the terrors of the graded hells and purgato- ries, and the felicities of Nirvana. Another of the fraternity, with cunning hand, compelled the wonder of his brethren by his skill in carving. He could, from a log which to-day had its bark on, bring forth in time the serene countenance of Buddha, the ravishing beauty of Kuanon, the Goddess of Mercy, the scowling terrors of the God of War, the frightful visage of Fudo, or the hideous face of the Lord of Hell. Another was famous for molding the clay for the carver, the sculptor, or the bronze-smith. Many articles of altar furniture, even to the incense-sticks and flowers, were often made entirely by clerical hands. During the Middle Ages, the arts of pottery, lacquering, gilding, bronze-casting, engraving and chasing, chisel and punch work, sword- making, goldsmith's work, were brought to a perfection never since excelled, if indeed it has been equaled. In enameled and inlaid metal work the hand of the Japanese artisan has undoubtedly lost its cun- ning. Native archaeologists assert that a good catalogue of "lost arts " may be made out, notably those of the composition and appli- LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AQES. 203 cation of violet lacquer, and the ancient cloisonne enamel. The deli- cacy of tact, freedom of movement, and perfection of finish visible on Japanese work, are the result of long hereditary application and con- centrated skill. Hidden away in sequestered villages, or occupying the same workshop in cities for centuries, generations of craftsmen wrought upon one class of objects, until from the workman's hand is born the offspring of a long pedigree of thought and dexterity. Japanese an- tiquarians fix the date of the discovery of lacquer-ware variously at A.D. 724 and 900. Echizen, from the first, has been noted for the abundance and luxuriant yield of lacquer -trees, and the skill of her Chasiug Floral Designs from Nature on Copper. workmen in extracting the milk-white virgin sap, which the action of the air turns to black, and which by pigments is changed to various colors. In the thirteenth century the art of gold-lacquering attained the zenith of perfection. Various schools of lacquer art were founded, one excelling in landscape, another in marine scenery, or the delinea- tion, in gold and silver powder and varnish, of birds, insects, and flow- ers. The masters who flourished during the Ho jo period still rule the pencil of the modern artist. Kioto, as the civil and military as well as ecclesiastical capital of the empire, was the centre and standard of manners, language, and 204 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. etiquette, of art, literature, religion, and government. No people are more courtly and polished in their manners than the Japanese, and my visit to Kioto in 1873 impressed me with the fact that the citizens of this proud miako surpass all others in Japan in refined manners, and the graces of address and etiquette. The direct influences of court life have made themselves perceptibly felt on the inhabitants of the city. From this centre radiated the multifarious influences which have molded the character of the nation. The country priest came as pil- grim to the capital as to the Holy City, to strengthen his faith and cheer his soul amidst its inspirations, to see the primate and magnates of his sect, to pray at the famous shrines, to study in the largest mon- asteries, under the greatest lights and holiest teachers. Returning to his parish, new sanctity was shed from his rustling robes. His brethren welcomed him with awe, and the people thronged to see and venerate the holy man who had drunk at the very fountains of the faith. The temple coffers grew heavy with the weight of offerings because of him. The sons of the noblemen in distant provinces were sent to Kioto to be educated, to learn reading and writing from the priests, the perfection of the art of war in the army, the etiquette of palace life as pages to, or as guests of, the court nobles. The artisan or rich merchant from Oshiu or Kadzusa, who had made the journey to Kioto, astonished his wondering listeners at home with tales of the splendor of the processions of the mikado, the wealth of the temples, the number of the pagodas, the richness of the silk robes of the court nobles, and the wonders which the Kioto potters and vase -makers, sword-forgers, goldsmiths, lacquerers, crystal-cutters, and bronze-mold- ers, daily exposed in their shops in profusion. In Kioto also dwelt the poets, novelists, historians, grammarians, writers, and the purists, whose dicta were laws. By them were writ- ten the great bulk of the classic literature, embracing poetry, drama, fiction, history, philosophy, etiquette, and the numerous diaries and works on travel in China, Corea, and the remote provinces of the country, and the books called " mirrors " (kagami) of the times, now so interesting to the antiquarian student. Occasionally nobles or court ladies would leave the luxury of the city, and take up their abode in a castle, tower, pagoda, or temple room, or on some mountain overlooking Lake Biwa, the sea, or the Yodo River, or the plains of Yamato; and amidst its inspiring scenery, with tiny table, ink-stone and brush, pen some prose epic or romance, that has since become an LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 205 immortal classic. Almost every mansion of the nobles had its " look- ing-room," or " Chamber of Inspiring View," whence to gaze upon the landscape or marine scenery. Rooms set apart for this aesthetic pleas- ure still form a feature of the house of nearly every modern native of means. On many a coigne of vantage may be seen also the summer- houses or rustic booths, where gather pleasure parties on picnics. Picnic Booth, overlooking Lake Biwa. In the civil administration of the empire, the chief work was to dispense justice, punish offenders, collect taxes, and settle disputes. After the rude surveys of those days, the boundaries of provinces and departments were marked by inscribed posts of wood or stone. Be- fore the days of writing, the same end was secured by charcoal buried in the earth at certain points, the durability of which insured the mark against decay. The peasants, after the rice-harvest was over, brought their tribute, or taxes, with joyful ceremony, to the govern- ment granaries in straw bags, packed on horses gayly decorated with scarlet housings, and jingling with clusters of small bells. A relic of this custom is seen in the bunches of bells suspended by red cotton 14 206 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. stuff from the rear of the pack-saddle, which dangle musically from the ungainly haunches of the native sumpters. From earliest times there existed seki (guard gates or barriers) be- tween the various provinces at mountain passes or strategic points. As feudalism developed, they grew more numerous. A fence of pal- isades, stretched across the road, guarded the path through which, ac- cording to time, or orders of the keepers, none could pass with arms, or without the pass-word or passport. Anciently they were erected at the Hakone and other mountain passes, to keep up the distinction be- tween the Ainos and the pure Japanese. The possession of these bar- riers was ever an important object of rival military commanders, and the shifts, devices, and extraordinary artifices resorted to by refugees, disguised worthies, and forbidden characters, furnish the historian, the novelist, and dramatist with some of their most thrilling episodes. It is related of Yoshitsune, after he had incurred the wrath of Yoritomo, that, with Benkei, his servant, he arrived at a guard gate kept by some Genji soldiers, who would have been sure to arrest him had they discovered his august personality. Disguised as wandering priests of the Buddhist sect Yama-bushi, they approached the gate, and were challenged by the sentinel, who, like most of his class at that time, was ignorant of writing. Benkei, with great dignity, draw- ing from his bosom a roll of blank paper, began, after touching it reverently to his forehead, to extemporize and read aloud in choicest and most pious language a commission from the high-priest at the temple of Hokoji, in Kioto, in which stood the great image of Buddha, authorizing him to collect money to cast a colossal bell for the tem- ple. At the first mention of the name of his reverence the renowned priest, so talismanic in all the empire, the soldier dropped down on his knees with face to the ground, and listened with reverent awe, un- aware that the paper was as blank as the reader's tongue was glib. To further lull suspicion, Benkei apologized for the rude conduct of his servant-boy, who stood during the reading, because he was only a boor just out of the rice-fields; and, giving him a kick, bid him get down on his marrow-bones, and not stand up in the presence of a gen- tleman and a soldier. The ruse was complete. The illustrious youth and his servant passed on. Medical science made considerable progress in the course of cent- uries. The materia medica, system, practice, and literature of the healing art were borrowed from China ; but upon these, as upon most other matters, the Japanese improved. Acupuncture, or the introduc- LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 207 tion of needles into living tissues for remedial purposes, was much im- proved by the Japanese. The puncturing needles, as fine as a hair, were made of gold, silver, or tempered steel, by experts. The bones, large nerves, or blood-vessels were carefully avoided in the process, which enjoyed great repute in cases of a peculiar violent colic, to which the natives are subject, and which sometimes becomes endemic. On the theory that this malady was caused by wind, holes were made in the stomach or abdomen, to the mystic number of nine corresponding to the nine apertures of the body. Moxa (Japanese, mokusa ; mo, fire, from moyeru, to burn, and kusa, herb, grass), or the burning of a small cone of cottony fibres of the artemisia, on the back or feet, was practiced as early as the eleventh century, reference being made to it in a poem written at that time. A number of ancient stanzas and puns relating to Mount Ibuki, on the sides of which the mugwort grows luxuriantly, are still extant. To this day it is an exception to find the backs of the common people unscarred with the spots left by the moxa. The use of mercury in corrosive sublimate was very an- ciently known. The do-sha powder, however, which was said to cure various diseases, and to relax the rigid limbs of a corpse, was manu- factured and sold only by the bonzes (Japanese, bozu) of the Shin Gon sect. It is, and always was, a pious fraud, being nothing but uneffica- cious quartz sand, mixed with grains of mica and pyrites.* Of the medieval sports and pastimes within and without of doors, the former were preferred by the weak and effeminate, the latter by the hale and strong. Banquets and carousals in the palace were fre- quent. The brewing of sake from rice was begun, according to record, * See in Titsingh a long account of the wonderful virtues and effects claimed for the do-sha ("dosia") powder, and in various other old writers on Japan, who have gravely described this humbug. I once tested this substance thoroughly by swallowing a tea-spoonful, without experiencing any effects. It might cause, but not cure, a headache. I also used up a packageful of the holy sand, purchased at an orthodox Shin Gon temple, upon a stiffened corpse that had but a short time previous become such, but no unlimbering of the rigid body took place. I also fused a quantity of the certified "drug" with some carbonate of soda, dissolved the resultant mass in distilled water, and upon adding a few drops of hydrochloric acid, a precipitate of gelatinous silica was the result. I also subjected the do-sha to careful microscopic examination, finding it only quartz sand, with flakes of other minerals. That the "corpse" in my experiment was that of an old dog does not affect the validity of the test. It may be remembered also that gelati- nous silica is the substance sometimes used to adulterate butter. The main ob- jection to such butter is that one can buy sand in a cheaper form ; and the same may be said of that nostrum in the ecclesiastical quackery and materia tlie- ologica of Japan called do-sha. 208 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. in the third century, and the office of chief butler even earlier. The native sauce, sho-yu, made of fermented wheat and beans, with salt and vinegar, which the cunning purveyors of Europe use as the basis of their high-priced piquant sauces, was made and used as early as the twelfth century. The name of this saline oil (sAo, salt ; yu, oil) ap- pears as " soy " in our dictionaries, it being one of the three words (soy, bonze, moxa) which we have borrowed from the Japanese. At the feasts, besides the wine and delicacies to please the palate, music, song, and dance made the feast of reason and the flow of soul, while witty and beautiful women lent grace and added pleasure to the fes- tivities. In long trailing robes of white, crimson, or highly figured silk, with hair flowing in luxuriance over the shoulders, and bound gracefully in one long tress which fell below the waist behind, maids and ladies of the palace rained glances and influence upon the favored ones. They fired the heart of admirers* by the bewitching beauty of a well- formed hand, foot, neck, face, or form decked with whatever added charms cosmetics could bestow upon them. Japanese ladies have ever been noted for neatness, good taste, and, on proper occasions, splendor and luxuriance of dress. With fan, and waving long sleeve, the language of secret but outwardly decorous passion found ample ex- pression. Kisses, the pressure of the hand, and other symbols of love as expressed in other lands, were then, as now, unknown. In humble life also, in all their social pleasures the two sexes met together to participate in the same delights, with far greater freedom than is known in Asiatic countries. As, however, wives or concubines had not always the attractions of youth, beauty, wit, maidenly freshness, * The following is the native ideal of a Japanese woman, given by a young Japanese gentleman at the International Congress of Orientalists held at Paris in 1873: "I will commence, gentlemen, with the head, which is neither too large nor too small. Figure to yourself large black eyes, surmounted by eyebrows of a strict arch, bordered by black lashes ; a face oval, white, very slightly rose-col- ored on the cheeks, a straight high nose ; a small, regular, fresh mouth, whose thin lips disclose, from time to time, white teeth ranged regularly ; a narrow forehead, bordered by long, black hair, arched with perfect regularity. Join this head by a round neck to a body large, but not fat, with slender loins, hands and feet small, but not thin ; a breast whose swell (saillie) is not exaggerated. Add to these the following attributes : a gentle manner, a voice like the night- ingale, which makes one divine its artlessness; a look at once lively, sweet, gracious, and always charming; witty words pronounced distinctly, accompa- nied by charming smiles; an air sometimes calm, gay, sometimes thoughtful, and always majestic ; manners noble, simple, a little proud, but without ever incur- ring the accusation of presumption." LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 209 or skill at the koto, the geisha, or singing-girl, then as now, served the sake, danced, sung, and played, and was rewarded by the gold or gifts of the host, or perhaps became his Hagar. The statement that the empress was attended only by " vestals who had never beheld a man " is disproved by a short study of the volumes of poetry, amorous and otherwise, written by them, and still quoted as classic. As to the standard of virtue in those days, I believe it was certainly not below that of the later Roman empire, and I am inclined to believe it was far above it. In the court at Kioto, besides games of skill or chance in the house, were foot -ball, cock-fighting, falconry, horsemanship, and archery. The robust games of the military classes were hunting the boar, deer, bear, and smaller game. Hunting by falcons, which had been intro- duced by some Corean em- bassadors in the time of Jingu Kogo, was almost as extensively practiced as in Europe, almost every feu- dal lord having his perch of falcons. Fishing by cor- morants, though a useful branch of the fisherman's industry, was also indulged in for pleasure. The se- vere exercise of hunting for sport, however, never be- came as absorbing and pop- ular in Japan as in Europe, being confined more to the professional huntsman, and the seeker for dailv food. Court Lady iu Kioto. 210 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The court ladies shaved off their eyebrows, and painted two sable bars or spots on the forehead resembling false eyebrows. In addition to the gentle tasks of needle-work and embroidery, they passed the time in games of chess, checkers, painted shells, and a diversion pe- culiar to the palace, in which the skill of the player depended on her sensitiveness in appreciating perfumes, the necessary articles being vials of fragrant extracts. Their pets were the peculiar little dogs called chin. They stained their teeth black, like the women of the lower classes ; an example which the nobles of the sterner sex followed, as they grew more and more effeminate. One of the staple diversions of both sexes at the court was to write poetry, and recite it to each other. The emperor frequently honored a lady or noble by giving the chosen one a subject upon which to compose a poem. A happy thought, skillfully wrought stanza, a felicitous grace of pantomime, often made the poetess a maid of honor, a concubine, or even an empress, and the poet a minister or councilor. Another favorite means of amusement was to write and read or tell stories the Scheherezade of these being a beautiful lady, who often composed her own stories. The following instance is abbreviated from the Onna Dai Gaku (" Woman's Great Study ") : Ise no Taiyu was a daughter of Sukeichika, the mikado's minister of festivals, and a highly accomplished lady. None among the ladies of the court could equal her. One day a branch of luxuriant cherry-blossoms was brought from Nara. The emperor gave it to her, and asked her to extemporize a verse. She did so, and the courtiers were all astonished at the beauty and delicate sentiment of the verse. Here is another: Murasaki Shikibu was the daughter of the lord of Echizen. One day a lady of Kamo asked if there was any new entertaining literature or novels, as the empress - dowager wished to read something new. The lady invited Murasaki to write some sto- ries. She, knowing that the great Chinese scholar Shomei completed his collection of the essays of ancient writers by building a high house and secluding himself in it, had a high tower erected at Ishiyama overlooking Lake Biwa, and affording a glorious view of the mount- ains, especially in the moonlight. There she retired, and one night when the full moon shone upon the waters she was so inspired that she wrote in one night two chapters of the Genji Monogatari* a book * The various forms of inarticulate language, by pantomime, flowers, art, and symbolism, in Japan differ in many respects from those expressed by us. Among the gestures partly or wholly unknown to them are nictation, kissing, shaking LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 211 containing fifty-four chapters in all, which she finished in a few weeks. She presented it to the empress-dowager, who gave it to the mikado. To this day it is a classic. Sei Shonagon was the daughter of Kiyowara no Motosuke. She was one of the imperial concubines. She was well read in Japanese and Chinese literature, and composed poetry almost from infancy, having a wonderful facility of improvisation. One day, after a fall of snow, she looked out from the southern door of the palace. The emperor, having passed round the wine-cup to his lords and ladies at the usual morning assembly of the courtiers and maids of honor, said, " How is hands, shrugging the shoulders, and the contemptuous gyratory motion of the thumb set against the nose, with the fingers upright. Flirtation is practiced not by the use of the fan or the handkerchief (which is of paper), but with a wave of the right hand, with palms downward, or by the fair charmer waving her long sleeve. Instead of winking, they convey the same meaning by twitching the left corner of the mouth, or rolling the eyeballs to the right or left. The girls simper by letting their eyelids fall, and the language of woman's eyes is in other respects the same as with us, as Japanese poetry shows. Jealousy is indicated by the erecting the two forefingers on the forehead, in allusion to the monster which in Japan has horns and black hide, but not green eyes. A jilt who wishes to give her lover "the mitten" sends him a branch of maple, the color (iro) of whose leaves has changed, like her love (iro). Turning up the nose and curling the lip in scorn are achieved with masterly skill. In agony, the hands are not clasped, but put upright, palm to palm, at length. People shake their heads to mean " no," and nod them to mean "yes." Among the peculiarities in their code of etiquette, eructation is permissible in company at all times, and after a hearty meal is rather a compliment to the host. On the other hand, to attend to the requirements of nasal etiquette, except with face apart from the company, is very bad manners. Toothpicks must not be used, but in a semi-secret way, and with the left hand covering the mouth. At banquets, the fragrant bark on these is carved ornamentally, and under a shaving loosened from the white wood is written in tiny script a pun, witticism, bon- mot, or sentimental proposal, like that on the "secret papers" on bonbons at our refreshments. At feasts or daily meals, all such matters as carving, slicing, etc., are looked upon as out of place, and properly belonging to servant's work and in the kitchen. In clothing, the idea that garments ought to be loose and flowing, so as to conceal the shape of the body and its parts, and give no striking indication of sex, as among us, was never so general as in China. In hair-dress- ing, besides marking age and sex, the female coiffure had a language of its own. Generally a keen observer could distinguish a maiden, a married wife, a widow who was willing to marry the second time, and the widow who intended never to wed again. As marks of beauty, besides the ideals spoken of on page 30, large ears were thought desirable, especially those with long lobes. Fat people were much-admired, and a rotund physique considered a good gift of nature. Many of the striking details of military and social etiquette, such as falling on hands and knees, with forehead on the floor or on the prone hand, and the simultaneous noisy sucking-in of the breath, which sounds and seems so ridiculous to the for- eigner, are very ancient. 212 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the snow of Kuroho?" No one else understood the meaning, but Sei Shonagon instantly stepped forward and drew up the curtains, revealing the mountains decked in fresh-fallen snow. The emperor was delighted, and bestowed upon her a prize. Sei Shonagon had understood his allusion to the line in an ancient poem which ran thus : "The snow of Kuroho is seen by raising the curtains." Once when a certain kuge was traveling in a province, he came, on a moonlight night, to a poor village in which the cottages had fallen into picturesque decay, the roofs of which gleamed like silver. The sight of the glorified huts inspired the noble with such a fine frenzy that he sat up all night gazing rapturously on the scene, anon compos- ing stanzas. He was so delighted that he planned to remain in the place several days. The next morning, however, the villagers, hear- ing of the presence of so illustrious a guest among them, began busily to repair the ruin, and to rethatch the roofs. The kuge, seeing all his poetic visions dispelled by this vandal industry, ordered his bullock- car, and was off, disgusted. During the first centuries of writing in Japan, the spoken and the written language were identical. With the study of the Chinese liter- ature, and the composition of works by the native literati almost ex- clusively in that language, grew up differences between the colloquial and literary idiom and terminology. The infusion of a large number of Chinese words into the common speech steadily increased; while the learned affected a pedantic style of conversation, so interlarded with Chinese words, names, and expressions, that to the vulgar their discourse was almost unintelligible. Buddhism also made Chinese th6 vehicle of its teachings, and the people everywhere became familiar, not only with its technical terms, but with its stock phrases and forms of thought. To this day the Buddhist, or sham-religious, way of talking is almost a complete tongue in itself, and a good dictionary always gives the Buddhistic meaning of a word separately. In reading or hearing Japanese, the English-speaking resident continually stumbles on his own religious cant and orthodox expressions, which he believes to be peculiar to his own atmosphere, that have a meaning entirely different from the natural sense : " this vale of tears," " this evil world," " gone to his reward," " dust and ashes," " worm of the dust," and many phrases which so many think are exclusively Christian or evangelical, are echoed in Japanese. So much is this true, that the missionaries, in translating religious books, are at first delighted to LIFE IN THE MIDDLE AGES. 213 find exact equivalents for many expressions desirable in technical theology, or for what may fairly be termed pious slang, but will not use them, for fear of misleading the reader, or rather of failing to lead him out of his old notions into the new faith which it is desired to teach. So general have the use and affectation of Chinese become, that in many instances the pedantic Chinese name or word has been retained in the mouths of the people, while the more beautiful native term is almost lost. In general, however, only the men were devoted to Chinese, while the cultivation of the Japanese language was left to the women. This task the women nobly discharged, fully maintain- ing the credit of the native literature. Mr. W. G. Aston says, " I be- lieve no parallel is to be found in the history of European letters, to the remarkable fact that a very large proportion of the best writings of the best age of Japanese literature was the work of women." The Genji Monogatari is the acknowledged standard of the language for the period to which it belongs, and the parent of the Japanese novel. This, with the classics Ise Monogatari and Makura Zoski, and much of the poetry of the time, are the works of women. It is to be noted that the borrowed Chinese words were , taken en- tirely from the written, not the colloquial, language of China, the lat- ter having never been spoken by the Japanese, except by a few in- terpreters at Nagasaki. The Japanese literary style is more concise, and retains archaic forms. The colloquial abounds in interjectional and onomatopoetic words and particles, uses a more simple inflection of the verb, and makes profuse use of honorific and polite terms. Though these particles defy translation, they add grace and force to the language. As in the English speech, the child of the wedded Saxon and Norman, the words which express the wants, feelings, and concerns of every-day life all that is deepest in the human heart are for the most part native ; the technical, scientific, and abstract terms are for- eign. Hence, if we would find the fountains of the musical and beau- tiful language of Japan, we must seek them in the hearts, and hear them flow from the lips, of the mothers of the Island Empire. Among the anomalies with which Japan has surprised or delighted the world may be claimed that of woman's achievements in the domain of letters. It was woman's genius, not man's, that made the Japanese a litera- ry language. Moses established the Hebrew, Alfred the Saxon, and Luther the German tongue in permanent form ; but in Japan, the mobile forms of speech crystallized into perennial beauty under the touch of woman's hand. 214 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XXII. THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. JAPAN, of all the Asiatic nations, seems to have brought the feu- dal system to the highest state of perfection. Originating and devel- oping at the same time as in Europe, it became the constitution of the nation and the condition of society in the seventeenth century. When in Europe the nations were engaged in throwing off the feudal yoke and inaugurating modern government, Japan was riveting the fetters of feudalism, which stood intact until 1871. From the begin- ning of the thirteenth century, it had come to pass that there were virtually two rulers in Japan, and as foreigners, misled by the Hol- landers at Deshima, supposed, two emperors. The growth of feudalism in Japan took shape and form from the early division of the officials into civil and military. As we have seen, the Fujiwara controlled all the civil offices, and at first, in time of emergency, put on armor, led their troops to battle, and braved the dangers of war and the discomforts of the camp. In time, however, this great family, yielding to that sloth and luxury which ever seem, like an insidious disease, to ruin greatness in Japan, ceased to take the field themselves, and delegated the uncongenial tasks of war to certain members of particular noble families. Those from which the greatest number of shoguns were appointed were the Taira and Minamoto, that for several centuries held the chief military appointments. As luxury, corruption, intrigue, and effeminacy increased at the capital, the diffi- culty of keeping the remote parts of the empire in order increased, especially in the North and East. The War Department became dis- organized, and the generals at Kioto lost their ability to enforce their orders. Many of the peasants, on becoming soldiers, had, on account of their personal valor or merit, been promoted to the permanent garrison of household troops. Once in the gay capital, they learned the details of intrigue and politics. Some were made court pages, or attendants on men of high rank, and thus learned the routine of official duty. They THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 215 caught the tone of life at court, where every man was striving for rank and his own glory, and they were not slow to imitate their au- gust examples. Returning to their homes with the prestige of having been in the capital, they intrigued for power in their native districts, and gradually obtained rule over them, neglecting to go when duty called them to Kioto, and ignoring the orders of their superiors in the War Department. The civil governors of the provinces dared not to molest, or attempt to bring these petty tyrants to obedience. Having armor, horses, and weapons, they were able to train and equip their dependents and servants, and thus provide themselves with an armed following. Thus was formed a class of men who called themselves warriors, and were ever ready to serve a great leader for pay. The natural con- sequence of such a state of society was the frequent occurrence of vil- lage squabbles, border brawls, and the levying of black-mail upon de- fenseless people, culminating in the insurrection of a whole province. The disorder often rose to such a pitch that it was necessary for the court to interfere, and an expedition was sent from Kioto, under the command of a Taira or Minamoto leader. The shogun, instead of waiting to recruit his army in the regular manner a process doubt- ful of results in the disorganized state of the War Department and of the country in general had immediate recourse to others of these veteran " warriors," who were already equipped, and eager for a fray. Frequent repetition of the experience of the relation of brothers in arms, of commander and commanded, of rewarder and rewarded, grad- ually grew into that of lord and retainers. Each general had his spe- cial favorites and followers, and the professional soldier looked upon his commander as the one to whom his allegiance was directly due. The distant court at Kioto, being utterly unable to enforce its author- ity, put the whole power of quieting the disturbed districts, whenever the disorder increased beyond the ability of the civil magistrate to re- press it, into the hands of the Minamoto and Taira. These families thus became military clans and acquired enormous influence, enjoyed the monopoly of military patronage, and finally became the virtual rulers of the land. The. power of the sword was, as early as the twelfth century, lost to the court, which then attempted, by every means in its power, to check the rising influence of the military families and classes. They began by denying them high rank, thus putting them under social ban. 216 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. They next attempted to lay an interdict upon the warriors by forbid- ding them to ally themselves with either the Taira or the Minamoto. This availed nothing, for the warriors knew who rewarded them. They then endeavored, with poor success, to use one family as a check upon the other. Finally, when the Minamoto, Yoriyoshi, and Yoshiiye conquered all the north of Hondo, and kept in tranquillity the whole of the Kuanto for fifteen years, even paying governmental expenses from their private funds, the court ignored their achievements. When they petitioned for rewards to be bestowed on their soldiers, the dila- tory and reluctant, perhaps jealous, nobles composing the court not only neglected to do so, but left them without the imperial commis- sion, and dishonored their achievements by speaking of them as " pri- vate feuds." Hence they took the responsibility, and conferred upon their soldiers grants of the conquered land in their own name. The Taira followed the same policy in the south and west. When Yoritomo became Sei-i Tai Shogun at Kamakura, erected the dual system, and appointed a military with a civil governor of each province in the interest of good order, feudalism assumed national pro- portions. Such a distribution soon ceased to be a balance, the milita- ry pan in the scale gained weight and the civil lost until it kicked the beam. At the end of the Hojo domination, the court had lost the government of the provinces, and the kuge (court nobles) had been despoiled and impoverished by the buke (military). So thoroughly had feudalism become the national polity, that in the temporary mika- doate, 1534-1536, the Emperor Go-Daigo rewarded those who had re- stored him by grants of land for them to rule in their own names as his vassals. Under the Ashikagas, the hold of even the central military author- ity, or chief daimio, was lost, and the empire split up into fragments. Historians have in vain attempted to construct a series of historical maps of this period. The pastime was war a game of patchwork in which land continually changed possessors. There was no one great leader of sufficient power to overawe all ; hence might made right ; and whoever had the ability, valor, or daring to make himself pre-emi- nent above his fellows, and seized more land, his power would last until he was overcome by a stronger, or his family decayed through the effeminacy of his descendants. During this period, the great clans with whose names the readers of the works of the Jesuits and Dutch writers are familiar, or which have been most prominent since the opening of the empire, took their rise. They were those of Hosokawa THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 217 Uyesugi, Satake, Takeda, the " later Hojo of Odawara," Mori, Otomo, Shimadzu, Riuzoji, Ota, and Tokugawa. As the authority of the court grew weaker and weaker, the alle- giance which all men owed to the mikado, and which they theoretic- ally acknowledged, was changed into loyalty to the military chief. Every man who bore arms was thus attached to some " great name " (daimid), and became a vassal (kerai). The agricultural, and gradual- ly the other classes, also put themselves, or were forcibly included, under the protection of some castle lord or nobleman having an armed following. The taxes, instead of being collected for the central gov- ernment, flowed into the treasury of the local rulers. This left the mikado and court without revenue. The kuge, or Kioto nobles, were thus stripped of wealth, until their poverty became the theme for the caricaturist. Nevertheless, the eye of their pride never dimmed. In their veins, they knew, ran the blood of the gods, while the daimios were only " earth - thieves," and the parvenus of feudalism. They still cherished their empty titles ; and to all students of history their poverty was more honorable than all the glitter of the shogun's train, or the splendor of the richest daimio's mansion. The daimios spent their revenues on their retainers, their personal pleasures, and in building castles. In almost every feudal city, or place of strategic importance, the towers, walls, and moats of these charac- teristic specimens of Japanese architecture could be seen. The strict- est vigilance was maintained at the castle-gates, and a retainer of an- other daimio, however hospitably entertained elsewhere, was never al- lowed entrance into the citadel. A minute code of honor, a rude sort of chivalry, and an exalted sense of loyalty were the growth of the feudal system. Many of the medieval military customs were very interesting. During this period the habit originated of the men shaving the hair off their temples and from the middle of the scalp, and binding the long cue into a top-knot, which was turned forward and laid on the scalp. The object of this was to keep the hair out of the eyes during battle, and also to mark the wearer as a warrior. Gradually it became a universal custom, extending to all classes. When, in 1873, the reformers persuaded the people to cut off their knots and let their hair grow, the latter refused to " imitate the for- eigners," and supposed they were true conservatives, when, in reality, the ancient Japanese knew nothing of shaven faces and scalps, or of top -knots. The ancient warriors wore mustaches, and even beards. 218 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The practice of keeping the face scrupulously bare, until recently so universally observed except by botanists and doctors, is comparatively modern. The military tactics and strategic arts of the Japanese were ancient- ly copied from the Chinese, but were afterward modified as the nature of the physical features of their country and the institutions of feud- alism required. No less than seven distinct systems were at different times in vogue ; but that perfected by Takeda and Uyesugi, in the Ashikaga period, finally bore off the palm. These tactics continued to command the esteem and practice of the Japanese until the revolu- tion wrought by the adoption of the European systems in the present century. The surface of the country being so largely mountainous, uneven, and covered with rice-swamps, cavalry were but little employ- ed. A volley of arrows usually opened the battle, followed by a gen- eral engagement along the whole line. Single combats between com- manders of hostile armies were of frequent occurrence. When they met on the field, their retainers, according to the strict etiquette of war, gave no aid to either, but encouraged them by shouts, as they called out each other's names and rushed to the combat. The battle slackened while the leaders strove, the armies becoming spectators. The victor cut off the head of his antagonist, and, holding it up, shouted his name and claimed the victory. The triumph or defeat of their leaders often decided the fate of the army. Vengeance against the victor was not permitted to be taken at the time, but must be sought again, the two armies again joining battle. The fighting over, those who had slain distinguished personages must exhibit their heads before their chiefs, who bestowed rewards upon them. This practice still continues; and during the expedition in Formosa in 1874, the chief trophies were the heads of the Boutan cannibals; though the commander, General Saigo, attempted to abolish the custom. Who- ever saved his chieftain's life on the field was honored with the place of highest rank in the clan. These customs had a tremendous in- fluence in cultivating valor and a spirit of loyalty in the retainer to- ward the prince. The meanest soldier, if brave and faithful, might rise to the highest place of honor, rank, emolument, and influence. The bestowal of a reward, the investiture of a command, or military promotion, was ever an occasion of impressive ceremony. Even in time of peace the samurai never appeared out-of-doors unarmed, invariably wearing their two swords in their girdle. The offensive weapons spears long and short, the bows, arrows, and quiv- THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 219 er, and battle-axes were set on their butts on the porch or vestibule in front of the house. Within doors, in the tokonoma, or recess, were ranged in glittering state the cuirass, helmet, greaves, gauntlets, and chain-mail. Over the sliding partitions, on racks, were the long hal- berds, which the women of the house were trained to use in case of attack during the absence of the men. The gate of a samurai, or noble's, house was permanently guarded by his armed retainers, who occupied the porter's lodge beside it. Stand- ing upright and ready were three long instruments, designed to en- tangle, throw down, and pin to the earth a quarrelsome applicant. Familiar faces passed unchallenged, but armed strangers were held at bay till their business was known. A grappling-iron, with barbed tongues turned in every direction, making a ball of hooks like an iron hedgehog, mounted on a pike-staff ten feet long, thrust into the Japa- nese loose clothing, sufficed to keep at a wholesome length any swash- buckler whose sword left its sheath too easily. Another spiked weapon, like a double rake, could be thrust between his legs and bring him to the earth. A third, shaped like a pitchfork, could hold him helpless under its wicket arch. Three heavy quarter staves were also ready, to belabor the struggling wight who would not yield, while swords on the racks hung ready for the last resort, or when intruders came in numbers. On rows of pegs hung wooden tickets about three inches square, branded or inscribed with the names of the retainers and serv- ants of the lord's house, which were handed to the keeper of the gate as they passed in or out. The soldiers wore armor made of thin scales of iron, steel, hardened hide, lacquered paper, brass, or shark -skin, chain -mail, and shields. The helmet was of iron, very strong, and lined within by buckskin. Its flap of articulated iron rings drooped well around the shoulders. The visor was of thin lacquered iron, the nose and mouth pieces being removable. The eyes were partially protected by the projecting front piece. A false mustache was supposed to make the upper lip of the warrior dreadful to behold. On the frontlet were the distinguishing- symbols of the man, a pair of horns, a fish, an eagle, dragon, buck- horns, or flashing brass plates of various designs. Some of the hel- mets were very tall. Kato Kiyomasa's was three feet high. On the top was a hole, in which a pennant was thrust, or an ornament shaped like a pear inserted. The " pear-splitter " was the fatal stroke in com- bat and the prize-cut in fencing. Behind the corslet on the back was another socket, in which the clan flag was inserted. The breastplate 220 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. was heavy and tough ; the arms, legs, abdomen, and thighs were pro- tected by plates joined by woven chains. Shields were often used; and for forlorn-hopes or assaults, cavalrymen made use of a stuffed bag resembling a bolster, to receive a volley of arrows. Besides being missile-proof, it held the arrows as spoils. On the shoulders, hanging loosely, were unusually wide and heavy brassarts, designed to deaden the force of the two-handed sword-stroke. Greaves and sandals com- pleted the suit, which was laced and bound with iron clamps, and cords of buckskin and silk, and decorated with crests, gilt tassels, and glittering insignia, Suits of armor were of black, white, purple, crim- son, violet, green, golden, or silver colors. Kusunoki Masatsura. (From a photograph taken from a native drawing.) The rations of the soldiers were rice, fish, and vegetables. Instead of tents, huts of straw or boughs were easily erected to form a camp. The general's head - quarters were inclosed by canvas, stretched on posts six feet high, on which his armorial bearings were wrought. The weapons were bows and arrows, spear, sword, and, rarely, battle- axes and bow-guns ; for sieges, fire-arrows. The general's scabbard was of tiger-skin. Supplies of this material were obtained from Corea, w r here the animal abounds. His baton was a small lacquered wand, with a cluster of strips of thick white paper dependent from the point. Flags, banners, and streamers were freely used ; and a camp, castle, or moving army, in time of war, with its hundreds and thousands of flags, presented a gay and lively appearance. Drums, hard-wood clappers, and conch-shells sounded the reveille, the alarm, the onset, or the re- treat. Owing to the nature of the ground, consisting chiefly of mountains and valleys, or plains covered with rice-swamps intersected by narrow THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 221 paths, infantry were usually depended upon. In besieging a castle, the intrenchments of the investing army consisted chiefly of a line of palisades or heavy planks, propped up from within by hinged supports, at an angle of forty-five degrees, behind which the besiegers fought or lived in camp life, while sentinels paced at the gates. Lookouts were posted on overlooking hills, in trees, or in towers erected for the pur- pose. Sometimes huge kites able to sustain a man were flown, and a bird's-eye view of the interior of the enemy's castle thus obtained. Fire, treachery, stratagem, starvation, or shooting at long range having failed to compel surrender, an assault took place, in which the gates were smashed in, or the walls scaled. Usually great loss resulted be- fore the besiegers were driven off, or were victorious. Rough surgery awaited the wounded. An arrow-barb was usually pulled out by a jerk of the pincers. A sabre-cut was sewed or bound together with tough paper, of which every soldier carried a supply. The wonderful- ly adhesive, absorptive, and healing power of the soft, tough, quickly wet, easily hardening, or easily kept pliable, Japanese paper made ex- cellent plasters, bandages, tourniquets, cords, and towels. In the dress- ing of wounds, the native doctors to this day, as I have often had oc- casion to witness, excel. Seppuku (belly-cut) or hara-kiri also came into vogue about the time of the beginning of the domination of the military classes. At first, after a battle, the vanquished wounded fell on their swords, drove them through their mouth or breast, or cut their throats. Often a fa- mous soldier, before dying, would flay and score his own face beyond recognition, so that his enemies might not glory over him. This grew into a principle of honor ; and frequently the unscathed survivors, de- feated, and feeling the cause hopeless, or retainers whose master was slain, committed suicide. Hence arose, in the Ashikaga period, the fashion of wearing two swords ; one of which, the longer, was for en- emies ; the other, shorter, for the wearer's own body. The practice of hara-kiri as a judicial sentence and punishment did not come into vogue until in the time of the Tokugawas. Thrust into a tiny scabbard at the side of the dirk, or small sword, was a pair of chopsticks to eat with in camp. Anciently these were skewers, to thrust through the top-knot of a decapitated enemy, that the head might be easily carried. Besides, or in lieu of them, was a small miniature sword, ko-katana (little sword), or long, narrow knife. Al- though this was put to various trivial uses, such as those for which we employ a penknife, yet its primary purpose was that of the card of 15 222 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the owner. Each sword was adorned with some symbol or crest, which served to mark the clan, family, or person of the owner. The Satsuma men wore swords with red-lacquered scabbards. Later, the Tokugawa vassals, who fought in the battle of Sekigahara, were called " white hilts," because they wore swords of extraordinary length, with white hilts. The bat, the falcon, the dragon, lion, tiger, owl, and hawk, were among the most common designs wrought in gold, lacquer, carving, or alloy on the hilts, handles, or scabbard ; and on the ko-ka- tana was engraved the name of the owner. Feudalism was the mother of brawls innumerable, and feuds be- tween families and clans continually existed. The wife whose hus- band was slain by the grudge-bearer brought up her sons religiously to avenge their father's death. The vendetta was unhindered by law and applauded by society. The moment of revenge selected was usually that of the victim's proudest triumph. After promotion to office, succession to patrimony, or at his marriage ceremony, the sword of the avenger did its bloody work. Many a bride found herself a widow on her wedding-night. Many a child became an orphan in the hour of the father's acme of honor. When the murder was secret, at night, or on the wayside, the head was cut off, and the avenger, plucking out his ko-katana, thrust it in the ear of the victim, and let it lie on the public highway, or sent it to be deposited before the gate of the house. The ko-katana, with the name engraved on it, told the whole story. Whenever the lord of a clan wished his rival or enemy out of the way, he gave the order of Herodias to her daughter to his faithful re- tainers, and usually the head in due time was brought before him, as was John's, on a charger or ceremonial stand. The most minutely detailed etiquette presided over the sword, the badge of the gentleman. The visitor whose means allowed him to be accompanied by a servant always left his long sword in his charge when entering a friend's house ; the salutation being repeated bowing of the forehead to the floor while on the hands and knees, the breath being sucked in at the same time with an impressive sound. The de- gree of obeisance was accurately graded according to rank. If alone, the visitor laid his sword on the floor of the vestibule. The host's servants, if so instructed by their master, then, with a silk napkin in hand, removed it inside and placed it, with all honor, on the sword- rack. At meetings between those less familiar, the sheathed weapon was withdrawn from the girdle and laid on the floor to the right, an THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 223 indication of friendship, since it could not be drawn easily. Under suspicious circumstances, it was laid to the left, so as to be at hand. On short visits, the dirk was retained in the girdle ; on festal occasions, or prolonged visits, it was withdrawn. To clash the sheath of one's sword against that of another was a breach of etiquette that often re- sulted in instantaneous and bloody reprisal. The accompanying cut by Hokusai represents such a scene. The story is a true one, and well The Challenge. told by Mitford. Fuwa Banzaemon he of the robe marked with the nuretsubami (swallow in a shower) and Nagoya Sanzaburo he of the coat figured with the device of lightning both enemies, and ronin, as their straw hats show, meet, and intentionally turn back to back and clash scabbards, holding their hands in tragic attitude. In a moment more, so the picture tells us, the insulted scabbards will be empty, and the blades crossed in deadly combat. In the story, which has been versified and dramatized, and which on the boards will hold an audience breathless, Nagoya finally kills Fuwa The writing at the side of the sketch gives the clue to the incident: saya-ate (scabbard collision), equivalent to our " flinging down the gauntlet." To turn the sheath in the belt as if about to draw was tantamount to a challenge. To lay one's weapon on the floor of a room, and kick the guard toward a person, was an insult that generally resulted in a combat to the death. Even to touch another's weapon in any way was a grave offense. No weapon was ever exhibited naked for any 224 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. purpose, unless the wearer first profusely begged pardon of those present. A wish to see a sword was seldom made, unless the blade was a rare one. The owner then held the back of the sword to the spectator, with the edge toward himself, and the hilt, wrapped in the little silk napkin which gentlemen always carry in their pocket-books, or a piece of white paper, to the left. The blade was then withdrawn from the scabbard, and admired inch by inch, but never entirely with- drawn unless the owner pressed his guest to do so, when, with much apology, the sword was entirely withdrawn and held away from those present. Many gentlemen took a pride in making collections of swords, and the men of every samurai family wore weapons that were heir-looms, often centuries old. Women wore short swords when traveling, and the palace ladies in time of fires armed themselves. In no country has the sword been made an object of such honor as in Japan. It is at once a divine symbol, a knightly weapon, and a certificate of noble birth. " The girded sword is the soul of the samurai." It is "the precious possession of lord and vassal from times older than the divine period." Japan is "the land of many blades." The gods wore and wielded two-edged swords. From the tail of the dragon was born the sword which the Sun-goddess gave to the first emperor of Japan. By the sword of the clustering clouds of heaven Yamato-Dake subdued the East. By the sword the mortal heroes of Japan won their fame. " There's naught 'twixt heaven and earth that man need fear, who carries at his belt this single blade." " One's fate is in the hands of Heaven, but a skillful fighter does not meet with death." " In the last days, one's sword becomes the wealth of one's posterity." These are the mottoes graven on Japanese swords. Names of famous swords belonging to the Taira, Minamoto, and other families are, "Little Crow," " Beard - cutter," "Knee -divider." The two latter, when tried on sentenced criminals, after severing the heads from the body, cut the beard, and divided the knee respective- ly. The forging of these swords occupied the smith sixty days. No artisans were held in greater honor than the sword-makers, and some of them even rose to honorary rank. The forging of a blade was often a religious ceremony. The names of Munechicka, Masamune, Yoshimitsu, and Muramasa, a few out of many noted smiths, are familiar words in the mouths of even Japanese children. The names, or marks and dates, of famous makers were always attached to their blades, and from the ninth to the fifteenth century were sure to be THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. 225 genuine. In later times, the practice of counterfeiting the marks of well-known makers came into vogue. Certain swords considered of good omen in one family were deemed unlucky in others. I had frequent opportunities of examining several of the master- pieces of renowned sword -makers while in Japan, the property of kuges, daimios, and old samurai families, the museum at Kamakura being especially rich in famous old blades. The ordinary length of a sword was a fraction over two feet for the long and one foot for the short sword. All lengths were, however, made use of, and some of the old warriors on horseback wore swords over six feet long. The Japanese sword -blade averages about an inch in width, about seven-eighths of which is a backing of iron, to which a face of steel is forged along its entire length. The back, about one-fourth of an inch thick, bevels out very slightly to near the centre of the blade, which then naiTows to a razor edge. The steel and the forging line are easily distinguished by a cloudiness on the mirror-like polish of the metal. An inch and a quarter from the point, the width of the blade having been decreased one -fourth, the edge is ground off to a semi- parabola, meeting the back, which is prolonged, untouched ; the curve of the whole blade, from a straight line, being less than a quarter of an inch. The guard is often a piece of elaborate workmanship in metal, representing a landscape, water -scene, or various emblems. The hilt is formed by covering the prolonged iron handle by shark- skin and wrapping this with twisted silk. The ferule, washers, and elects are usually inlaid, embossed, or chased in gold, silver, or alloy. The rivets in the centre of the handle are concealed by designs, often of solid gold, such as the lion, dragon, cock, etc. In full dress, the color of the scabbard was black, with a tinge of green or red in it, and the bindings of the hilt of blue silk. The taste of the wearer was often displayed in the color, size, or method of wearing his sword, gay or proud fellows affecting startling colors or extravagant length. Riven through ornamental ferules at the side of the scabbards were long, flat cords of woven silk of various tints, which were used to tie up the flowing sleeves, preparatory to fighting. Every part of a sword was richly inlaid, or expensively finished. Daimios often spent extravagant sums on a single blade, and small fortunes on a collection. A samurai, however poor, would have a blade of sure temper and rich mountings, deeming it honorable to suf- fer for food, that he might have a worthy emblem of his social rank as a samurai. A description of the various styles of blade and scab- 226 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. bard, lacquer, ornaments, and the rich vocabulary of terms minutely detailing each piece entering into the construction of a Japanese sword, the etiquette to be observed, the names, mottoes, and legends relating to them, would fill a large volume closely printed. A consid- erable portion of native literature is devoted to this one subject. Archer on Castle Rampart. (From a native drawing.) The bow and arrows were the chief weapons for siege ana long- range operations. A Japanese bow has a peculiar shape, as seen in the engraving. It was made of well-selected oak (kashi), incased on both sides with a semi-cylinder of split bamboo toughened by fire. The three pieces composing the bow were then bound firmly into one piece by thin withes of rattan, making an excellent combination of Lightness,, strength, and elasticity. The string was of hemp. Arrows were of various kinds and lengths, according to the arms of the arch- THE GROWTH AND CUSTOMS OF FEUDALISM. .227 er. The average length of the war-arrow was three feet. The " tur- nip - head," " frog - crotch," " willow - leaf," " armor - piercer," " bowel- raker," were a few of the various names for arrows. The "turnip- top," so named from its shape, made a singing noise as it flew. The " frog-crotch," shaped like a pitchfork, or the hind legs of a leaping- frog, with edged blades, was used to cut down flags or sever helmet lacings. The " willow-leaf " was a two-edged, unbarbed head, shaped like the leaf of a willow. The " bowel - raker " was of a frightful shape, well worthy of the name ; and the victim whose diaphragm it penetrated was not likely to stir about afterward. The "armor- piercer" was a plain bolt-head, with nearly blunt point, well calculated to punch through a breastplate. Barbs of steel were of various shape ; some- times very heavy, and often handsome- ly open -worked. The shaft was of cane bamboo, with string-piece of bone or horn, whipped on with silk. Quiv- ers were of leather, water-proof paper, or thin lacquered wood, and often splendidly adorned. Gold-inlaid weap- ons were common among the rich sol- diers, and the outfit of an officer often cost many hundreds of dollars. Not a few of these old tools of war have lost their significance, and have be- come household adornments, objects of art, or symbols of -peace. Such especially are the emblems of the car- penter's guilds, which consist of the half - feathered " turnip - head " arrow, wreathed with leaves of the same suc- culent, and the " frog-crotch," inserted in the mouth of a dragon, crossed upon the ancient mallet of the craft. These adorn temples or houses, or are carried in the local parades and festi- vals. As Buddhism had become the pro- fessed religion of the entire nation, or Knife-prong, Arrows, and Mallet. 228 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the vast majority of the military men were Buddhists. Each had his patron or deity. The soldier went into battle with an image of Buddha sewed in his helmet, and after victory ascribed glory to his divine deliverer. Many temples in Japan are the standing monuments of triumph in battle, or vows performed. Many of the noted captains, notably Kato, inscribed their banners with texts from the classics or the prayers, " Namu Amida Butsu," or " Namu mio ho," etc., ac- cording to their sect. Amulets and charms were worn almost without exception, and many a tale is told of arrows turned aside, or swords broken, that struck on a sacred image, picture, or text. Before enter- ing a battle, or performing a special feat of skill or valor, the hero uttered the warrior's prayer, " Namu Hachiman Dai-bosatsu " (Glory to Hachiman, the incarnation of Great Buddha). Though brave heroes must, like ordinary men, pass through purgatory, yet death on the battle-field was reckoned highly meritorious, and the happiness of the warrior's soul in the next world was secured by the prayers of his wife and children. [Note on the Development of Feudalism. A thoroughly competent critic in The Japan Mail of November 25th, 1876, in a review of this work, criticising the au- thor's treatment of Japanese feudalism, says : " In Japan, as in other Asiatic countries, the two main functions of government were the collection of the land revenue and the repression of rapine. In the palmy days of the mikado's power, both these functions were united in the hands of the prefects, who were appoint- ed from Kioto, with a tenure of office restricted to four years. What Yoritomo ostensibly did was to procure a division of these two departments of govern- mental activity, leaving one (the collection of revenue) to the mikado's function- aries, and obtaining the control of the other (the repression of crime) for himself. This control he acquired not .... in virtue of his military office of Sei-i-Tai Sho- gun,but by cloaking his military power under the guise of his civil title, So Tsui- ho Shi, which might well be rendered Chief Commissioner of Police, or High Constable of the Realm. The extension of the system of appointing military magistrates, which was found to work so well in the Kuanto, to the central and western provinces, was effected some years before he received his rank of Bar- barian-quelling Generalissimo. The second step in the direction of feudalism .... was the system, initiated by the Ashikaga shoguns, of making the military magistracies hereditary in the families of their own nominees. The third was when Hide'yoshi parceled out the fiefs without reference to the sovereign, by titles granted in his own names. This was the precedent that lyeyasu follow- ed when he based the power of his dynasty on the tie of personal fealty of the Fudai daimios and hatamotos to himself and his successors as lords-paramount of their lands."] NOBUNAOA, THE PERSECUTOR OF THE BUDDHISTS. 229 XXIII. NOBDNAGA, THE PERSECUTOR OF THE BUDDHISTS. IN the province of Echizen, a few miles from Fukui, on the sea- coast, stands the mountain of Ochi, adorned with many a shrine and sacred portal, and at its foot lies the village of Ota. Tradition states that nearly a thousand years ago the pious bonze, Tai Cho, ascended and explored this mountain, which is now held sacred and resorted to by many a pilgrim. Here, in uninterrupted harmony, dwelt for cent- uries priests of both the native Shinto and Buddhist cultus, until 1868, when, in the purification, all Shinto shrines were purged of Bud- dhist symbolism and influences, as of a thing unclean. The priests were wont to make occasional journeys to Kioto, the ecclesiastical cen- tre of the country. Centuries before the troublous times of Ashikaga, and during the period of the Taira and Minamoto, one of the Shinto priests, while on his way through Omi, stopped at Tsuda, and lodged with the nanushi, or head-man of the village, and asked him for one of his sons for the priesthood. The host gave him his step-son, whom the priest named Ota Chikazane. That boy was of Taira blood, the great-grandson of Kiyomori. His father, Sukemori, had been killed by the Minamoto, but his mother had fled to Omi, and the head-man of the village of Tsuda had mar- ried her. The mother, though grieving for the loss of her son, doubtless, as a pious woman, rejoiced to see him in such excellent hands. The lad was returned to Ota, and lived in the village. He grew up, married as became a kannushi (custodian of a Shinto shrine), and founded a family of Shinto priests. He was the common ancestor of the famous hero of Echizen, Shibata Katsuiye, and of the renowned Nobunaga, who deposed the Ashikaga, persecuted the Buddhists, encouraged the Jesuits, and restored, to a great extent, the supremacy of the mikado. In the " History of the Church," a portrait is given of Nobunana, which is thus translated by Dr. Walter Dixon. He is described as " a prince of large stature, but of a weak and delicate complexion, with a 230 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. heart and soul that supplied all other wants ; ambitious above all man- kind ; brave, generous, and bold, and not without many excellent mor- al virtues ; inclined to justice, and an enemy to treason. With a quick and penetrating wit, he seemed cut out for business. Excelling in mili- tary discipline, he was esteemed the fittest to command an army, man- age a siege, fortify a town, or mark out a camp, of any general in Ja- pan, never using any heads but his own. If he asked advice, it was more to know their hearts than to profit by their advice. He sought to see into others, and to conceal his own counsel, being very secret in his designs. He laughed at the worship of the gods, convinced that the bonzes were impostors abusing the simplicity of the people, and screening their own debauches under the name of religion." Nobunaga had four generals, whom the people in those days were wont to nickname, respectively, "Cotton," "Rice," "Attack," "Re- treat." The one was so fertile of resources that he was like cotton, that can be put to a multitude of uses ; the second was as absolutely necessary as rice, which, if the people be without for a day, they die; the third excelled in onset ; the fourth, in skillful retreat. They were Hideyoshi, Goroza, Shibata, and Ikeda. A fifth afterward joined him, whose name was Tokugawa lyeyasu. These three names, Nobunaga, Hideyoshi, and lyeyasu, are the most renowned in Japan. Nobunaga first appears on the scene in 1542. His father, after the fashion of the times, was a warrior, who, in the general scramble for land, was bent on securing a fair slice of territory. He died in 1549, leaving to his son his arms, his land, and his feuds. Nobunaga gained Suruga, Mino, Omi and Mikawa, Ise and Echizen, in succession. Hav- ing possession of Kioto, he built the fine castle of Nijo, and took the side of Ashikaga Yoshiaki, who by his influence was made shogun in 1558. Six years later, the two quarreled. Nobunaga arrested and deposed him, and the power of this family, which had lasted two hun- dred and thirty-eight years, came to an end. From this time there was no Sei-i Tai Shogun, until lyeyasu obtained the office, in 1604. By the aid of his commanders, Hideyoshi and lyeyasu, he brought large portions of the empire under his authority, and nominally that of the mikado, in whose name he governed. He became Naidaijin (inner great minister), but never shogun. The reason of this, doubt- less, was that the office of shogun was by custom monopolized by the Minamoto family and descendants, whereas Nobunaga was of Taira de- scent. Like Yoritomo, he was a skillful and determined soldier, but was never able to subdue the great clans. Unlike him, he lacked ad- NOBUNAGA, THE PERSECUTOR OF THE BUDDHISTS. 231 ministrative power, and was never able to follow up in peace the vic- tories gained in war. He met his death in Kioto, when in the fullness of his power and fame, in the following manner. Among his captains was Akechi, a brave, proud man, who had taken mortal offense at his leader. One da} 7 , while in his palace, being in an unusually merry and familiar mood, Nobunaga put Akechi's head under his arm, saying he would make a drum of it, struck it with his fan, like a drumstick, playing a tune. Akechi did not relish the joke, and silently waited for revenge. His passion was doubtless nursed and kept warm by a previous desire to seize the place and power and riches of his chief. In those days treachery was a common and trivial occurrence, and the adherent of to-day was the deserter of to-morrow. The opportu- nity did not delay. Nobunaga had sent so large a re-enforcement into the west, to Hideyoshi, who was fighting with Mori, that the garrison at the capital was reduced to a minimum. Akechi was ordered to the Chiugoku, and pretended to march thither. Outside the city he dis- closed his plan of killing Nobunaga, whom he denounced to his offi- cers, and promised them rich booty. They returned to Kioto, and sur- rounded the temple of Honnoji, where their victim was then residing. Hearing of the unexpected presence of so many soldiers in armor around his dwelling, he drew aside the window of his room to ascer- tain the cause. He was struck by an arrow, and instantly divined the situation, and that escape was impossible. He then set the temple on fire, and committed suicide. In a few minutes the body of the great hero was a charred crisp. An uninscribed tomb of polygonal masonry, built in his honor, stands in the ten-shiu, or keep, of his most famous castle, Azuchi yama, on a high hill looking out upon the white walls of the fortress of Hi- kone, the blue lake of Biwa, and the towering grandeur of Ibuki yama. He died at the age of forty-nine. The position of Ota Nobunaga in Japanese history would be illy understood were the reader to regard him merely as a leader in clan fights, who by genius and vigor rose above the crowd of petty milita- ry adventurers, or even as one who wished to tranquilize and unify all Japan for the mikado. We must inquire why it is that no man has won r demonstrative pronoun, or serves as a social handle. Hence, in foreign works, Hideyoshi, the taiko ; or that one of the many taiko, called Hideyoshi, is referred to as Taiko sama. Hideyoshi was a man of war from his youth up. His abilities and 1C 238 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. soldierly qualities made him a favorite commander. His banner con- sisted of a cluster of gourds. At first it was a single gourd. After each battle another was added, until at last it became an imposing sheaf. The standard-bearer carried aloft at the head of the columns a golden representation of the original model, and wherever Hideyoshi' s banner moved there was the centre of victory. At the death of Nobunaga, the situation was as follows : His third son, Nobutaka, was ruler over Shikoku ; Shimadzu (Satsuma) was fighting with Otomo, and seizing his land in Kiushiu. Hideyoshi and Nobuwo, second son of Nobunaga, with the imperial army, were fight- ing with Mori, Prince of Choshiu, who held ten provinces in the West. lyeyasu, ruler of eight provinces in the Kuanto, was in the field against Hojo of Odawara. Shibata held Echizen. Hideyoshi and lyeyasu were the rising men, but the former attained first to highest power. Immediately on hearing of Nobunaga's death, Hideyoshi made terms with Mori, hastened to Kioto, and defeated and slew Akechi. The fate of this assassin has given rise to the native proverb, " Akechi ruled three days." His name and power were now paramount. The prizes of rank were before him, for the mikado and court could not oppose his wishes. Of his master's sons, one had died, leaving an infant ; the second son was assisted by lyeyasu, with whom Hideyoshi had made a compromise ; the third, Nobutaka, was weak, and endeavored, sec- onded by his chief captain, Shibata, who had married the sister of No- bunaga, to maintain his rights. Hideyoshi marched into Mino, de- feated him, pursued Shibata into Echizen, and, after several skirmishes, burned his castle. The account of this, as given by the Jesuits, is as follows: "Among the confederates of Nobutaka was one Shibata dono, brother-in-law to Nobunaga. He was besieged in the fortress of Shi- bata [in what is now Fukui] ; and seeing no way of escape, he, having dined with his friend's wife and children and retainers, set fire to his castle, first killing his wife, his children, and the female servants ; and his friends, following his example, afterward committed suicide, and lay there wallowing in their blood, till the fire kindled, and burned them to ashes." My residence in Fukui, during the year 1871, was immediately on the site of part of Shibata's old castle. His tomb stands under some venerable old pine-trees some distance from the city. When I visited it, the old priest who keeps 'the temple, since erected, brought out sev- eral old boxes carefully labeled, and reverently opened them. One contained the rusty breastplate and other portions of Shibata's armor, HIDEYOSHPS ENTERPRISES. INVASION OF COREA. 239 picked up after the tire. Otlier relics saved from the ashes were shown me. The story, as it fell from the old bonze's lips, and was translated by my interpret- er, is substantially that given by the native historians. Having fled, after many de- feats, he reached the place now Cam P of Hideyoshi on Atago Mountain, be- fore Fukui. called Fukui. Hideyoshi, in hot pursuit, fixed his camp on Atagoyama, a mountain which overlooks the city, and began the siege, which he daily pressed closer and closeiv Being hopelessly surrounded, and succor hopeless, Shibata, like a true Epicurean, gave a grand feast to all his captains and re- tainers, in anticipation of the morrow of death. All within the doomed walls eat, drank, sung, danced and made merry, for the mor- 240 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. row was not to see them in this world. At the height of the ban- quet, Shibata, quaffing the parting cup before death, addressed his wife thus : " You may go out of the castle and save your life. You are a woman ; but we are men, and will die. You are at liberty to marry another." His wife, the sister of Nobunaga, with a spirit equal to his, was moved to tears, thanked her lord for his love and kindness, and declared she would never marry another, but would die with her husband. She then composed a farewell stanza of poetry, and, with a soul no less brave because it was a woman's, received her husband's dirk into her heart. Like true Stoics, Shibata and his companions put all the women and children to the death they welcomed, and for which they gave thanks ; and then, with due decorum and ceremony, opening their own bodies by hara-kiri, they died as brave Japanese ever love to die, by their own hands, and not by those of an enemy. Hideyoshi, on his return to Kioto, began a career of usefulness, devel- oping the resources of the empire and strengthening the power of the emperor. Knowing it was necessary to keep his captains and soldiers busy in time of inaction, and having a genius for the works of peace as well as war, he built splendid palaces at Kioto, improved the city, and paved the bed of the river Kamo with broad, flat stones. He laid the foundations of the future commercial greatness of Ozaka by enlarging the site of the monastery destroyed by Nobunaga, building the immense fortress, only part of which still remains, the pride of the city, enlarged and deepened the river, and dug many of the hundreds of canals which give this city whatever right it may have to be called the Venice of Japan. It had, when I saw it in 1871, over eleven hundred bridges, one of them of iron. He fortified Fushimi, the strategic key of Kioto, with a triple-moated castle, erected colossal towers and pagodas in many places. He sequestrated the flourishing commercial port of Nagasaki from the Daimio of Omura, and made it the property of the crown. Neither Deshima nor Pappenberg was then historic ; but the lovely scenery was as much the subject of admiration as it is now. His policy was to forgive those who had fought against him, and not to put them to death, as Nobunaga had done, who, in the course of his life, had killed his brother, father-in-law, and many of his enemies. He reform- ed the revenues. His rule was highly popular, for, in his execution of justice, he cared little for rank, name, or family line, or services done to himself. He was successful in inducing lyeyasu, after the latter had secured the taiko's mother as hostage, to come to Kioto and pay HIDETOSEFS ENTERPRISES. INVASION OF COREA. 241 homage to the emperor ; and the two rivals becoming friends, lyeyasu married the taiko's sister. Mori, lord of the Western provinces, also came to the capital, and acknowledged him as his superior. Among his other works, Hideyoshi followed out the policy of No- bnnaga, destroyed the great monastery at Kumano, the bonzes of which claimed the province of Kii. He was never made shogun, not being of Minamoto blood ; but having become Kuambaku, and being sur- rounded by nobles of high birth and the lofty etiquette of the court, he felt the need of a pedigree. No one at court knew who his grand- father was, if, indeed, he was aware himself. He made out that his mother was the daughter of a kuge, who, in the disturbed times of Ashikaga, had fled from Kioto, and, while in poverty and great distress, had married his father, but had conceived him before her marriage. In his youth he had wedded a peasant girl ; but as he rose step by step to eminence, he kept on marrying until he had a number equal to that of the polygamous English king, Henry VIII. ; but, unlike that monarch, he enjoyed them all at once, and caused none of them to lose her head. The last two of his spouses were, respectively, a daugh- ter of the house of Mae'da, of the rich province of Kaga, and the Princess Azai, from Omi, daughter of the wife of Shibata Katsuiye, whom the Jesuits, under the name of Kita Mandocoro, say was the first wife of the taiko, " sweetest and best beloved." He had no son until in old age. The immoderate ambition of Hideyoshi's life was to conquer Corea, and even China. It had been his dream when a boy, and his plan when a man. When un- der Nobunaga, he had begged of him the revenue of Kiushiu for one year and weapons, while he himself would provide the ships and provisions, offering to subdue Corea, and with an army of Co- reansHo conquer China, and thus i mage O f Japanese Deified Hero, seen in make the three countries one. His Shinto Shrines, master laughed, but he kept thinking of it. When in the Kuanto, he visited Kamakura, and saw an image of Yoritomo, such as one 242 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. may still see in the temple of Tsurugaoka. Rubbing and patting its back, the parvenu thus addressed the illustrious effigy : " You are my friend. You took all the power under Heaven (in Japan). You and I, only, have been able to do this ; but you were of a famous family, and not like me, sprung from peasants. I intend, at last, to conquer all the earth, and even China. What think you of that?" Hideyoshi used to say, " The earth is the earth's earth " a doctrine which led him to respect very slightly the claim of any one to land which he coveted, and had won by his own efforts. Under the declining power of Ashikaga, all tribute from Corea had ceased, and the pirates who ranged the coasts scarcely allowed a pre- carious trade to exist. The So family, who held Tsushima, however, had a small settlement in Corea. Some Chinese, emigrating to Japan, told Hideyoshi of the military disorganization and anarchy in China, which increased his desire to " peep into China." He then sent twc embassies in succession to Corea to demand tribute. The second was successful. He also sent word to the Emperor of China by some Lin Kiu tribute-bearers that if he (the Emperor of China) would not hear him, he would invade his territory with an army. To the Corean en- voy he recounted his exploits, and announced his intentions definitely. Several embassies crossed and recrossed the sea between Corea- and Japan, Hideyoshi meanwhile awaiting his best opportunity, as the dispatch of the expedition depended almost entirely on his own will. His wife, Azai, had borne him a child, whom he loved dearly, but it died, and he mourned for it many months. One day he went out to a temple, Kiyomidzu, in Kioto, to beguile the sad hours. Lost in thought, in looking over the western sky beyond the mountains, he suddenly exclaimed to his attendant, " A great man ought to employ his army beyond ten thousand miles, and not give way to sorrow." Returning to his house, he assembled his generals, and fired their en- thusiasm by recounting their exploits mutually achieved. He then promised to march to Peking, and divide the soil of China in fiefs among them. They unanimously agreed, and departed to the various provinces to prepare troops and material. Hideyoshi himself went to Kiushiu. On his way, some one suggested that scholars versed in Chinese should accompany the expedition. Hideyoshi laughed, and said, " This expedition will make the Chinese use our literature." After worship- ing at a shrine, he threw up a handful of one hundred " cash " in front of the shrine, and said, " If I am to conquer China, let the heads show HIDtiYOSHPS ENTERPRISES. INVASION OF CORE A. 243 it." The Japanese copper and iron zeni, or kas, have Chinese charac- ters representing the chronological period of coinage on one side, and waves representing their circulation as money on the reverse. The lettered side is " head," the reverse is " tail." All the coins which the taiko flung up came down heads. The soldiers were delighted with the omen. Maps of Corea were distributed among the commanders of the eight divisions, and the plan of the expedition and their co-op- eration explained. Kato Kiyornasa, who hated the Christians, and who afterward be- came their bitterest persecutor, was commander of the first ; and Koni- shi Yukinaga, the Christian leader, and a great favorite of the Jesuits, of the second. These divisions were alternately to lead the van. The naval and military force that embarked is set down in the Guai Shi at five hundred thousand men. A reserve of sixty thousand was kept ready in Japan as re-enforcements. Many of the generals, captains, and private soldiers were of the Christian faith. Kato despised Ko- nishi, and they were not friends. The latter was the son of a druggist, and persisted, to the disgust of the high-born Kato, in carrying a ban- ner representing a paper medicine-bag, such as can be seen swinging in front of a native drug-shop to-day. He probably took his cue from the august parvenu, the taiko. Hideyoshi expected to lead the army himself ; but being sixty years old, and infirm, and his aged mother sorrowing so that she could not eat on account of it, he remained behind. He gave Kato a flag, say- ing, " This was given me by Ota [Nobunaga] when I marched against Mori [Choshiu]." To Konishi he presented a fine horse, saying, " With this gallop over the bearded savages [Coreans]." All being ready, the fleet set sail amidst the shouts of the army and the thunder of cannon on the shore. Hideyoshi had attempted to buy or charter two Portuguese ships, but was unsuccessful, and the fleet consisted of large junks. They were detained off Iki Island by stormy weather. As soon as it was calm, Konisni, well acquainted with the route, sailed away with his division, arrived at Fusan, in Southern Corea, first, and seized the castle. Without allowing his troops to rest, he urged them on to other triumphs, that the glory might be theirs alone, and not be shared by the other troops, who would soon arrive. Another large castle was stormed, several towns captured, and brilliant victories won. Three days later, Kato arrived, and heard, to his chagrin, of his rival's advance into the interior. He exclaimed, "The boy has taken my route ; I shall not follow in his tracks." He then burned the town, 244 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. which Konishi had spared, and advanced into the country by another way. Corea was divided into eight circuits, and the taiko's plan had been for each corps of the army to conquer a circuit. The Corean king ap- pointed a commander-in-chief, and endeavored to defend his country, but the Japanese armies were everywhere victorious. After many bat- tles fought, and fortresses stormed, nearly all the provinces of the eight circuits were subdued, and the capital, Kenkitai, was taken. The king and his son fled. At one great battle, ten thousand Coreans are said to have been killed, and their ears cut off and preserved in salt or sake. The forts were garrisoned by Japanese troops. The Coreans asked the aid of China, and a Chinese army of assistance was sent forward, and after several severe battles the Japanese were compelled to fall back. Reserves from Japan were dispatched to Corea, and the Japa- nese were on the point of invading China, when, in 1598, the death of the taiko was announced, and orders were received from their Govern- ment to return home. A truce was concluded, and Corean envoys ac- companied Konishi to Japan. The conquest of Corea, thus ingloriously terminated, reflects no honor on. Japan, and perhaps the responsibility of the outrage upon a peaceful nation rests wholly upon Hideyoshi. The Coreans were a mild and peaceable people, wholly unprepared for war. There was scarcely a shadow of provocation for the invasion, which was nothing less than a huge filibustering scheme. It was not popular with the people or the rulers, and was only carried through by the will of the taiko. While Japan was impoverished by the great drain on its re- sources, the soldiers abroad ruthlessly desolated the homes and need- lessly ravaged the land of the Coreans. While the Japanese were de- stroying the liberties of the Coreans, the poor natives at home often pawned or sold themselves as slaves to the Spaniards and Portuguese slave - traders. The sacrifice of life on either side must have been great, and all for the ambition of one man. Nevertheless, a party in Japan has long held that Corea was, by the conquests of the third and sixteenth centuries, a part 0f the Japanese empire, and the reader will see how in 1872, and again in 18*75, the- cry of "On to Corea!" shook the nation like an earthquake. The taiko died on the 15th of September, 1598. Before his death, he settled the form of government, and married his son Hideyori, then six years old, to the granddaughter of lyeyasu, and appointed five tairo, or ministers, who were to be guardians of the boy, and to ac* HIDEYOSHPS ENTERPRISES. INVASION OF COREA. 245 knowledge him as his father's successor. As lyeyasu was the rising man, the taiko hoped thus to gain his influence, so that the power might descend in his own family. The last thoughts of the hero were of strengthening the citadel at Ozaka. The old hero was buried in the grounds of Kodaiji, in Kioto. The victorious army, returning from Corea, brought much spoil, and fine timber to build a memorial temple to the memory of the dead hero. Among other trophies were several thousands of ears, which, instead of heads, the Japanese carried back to raise a barrow in Kioto. The temple was erected on a hill on the west side of Kioto by his wife, who, after the death of her husband, became a nun. Thii splendid edifice was afterward burned, and the site of the taiko's re- mains is uncertain. Mimidzuka (Ear Monument), in Kioto. (From a photograph.) In the city still stands the Mimidzuka (ear-tomb), a monument of characteristic appearance. It consists of a cube, sphere, and pagoda- curve, surmounted by two spheroids, the top-stone rising to a point. The mound is seven hundred and twenty feet in circumference, and ninety feet in height ; the pedestal at the top being twelve feet square, and the monument twelve feet high. As usual on Buddhist tombs or ecclesiastical edifices, a Sanskrit letter is carved on each side of the four faces of the cube. Beneath this tomb is a barrow, covering the dissevered ears of thousands of Coreans ; but the most enduring monu- ments of the great taiko were the political institutions, and the works of peace reared by his genius and labor. 246 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. It is not difficult to account for the tone of admiration and pride with which a modern Japanese speaks of " the age of Taiko." There are many who hold that he was the real unifier of the empire, and that lyeyasu merely followed in his footsteps, perfecting the work which Hideyoshi began. Certain it is that in many of the most striking forms of national administration, and notably in bestowing upon his vassals grants of land, and making the conditions of tenure loyalty to himself and family, lyeyasu was but the copyist of the taiko. In his time, the arts and sciences were not only in a very flourishing condition, but gave promise of rich development. The spirit of military enterprise and internal national improvement was at its height. Contact with the foreigners of many nations awoke a spirit of inquiry and intellectual activity ; but it was on the seas that genius and restless activity found their most congenial field. This era is marked by the highest perfection in marine architecture, and the extent and variety of commercial enterprises. The ships built in this century were twice or thrice the size, and vastly the superior in model, of the junks that now hug the Japanese shores, or ply between China and Japan. The pictures of them preserved to the present day show that they were superior in size to the vessels of Columbus, and nearly equal in sailing qualities to the contemporary Dutch and Portuguese galleons. They were provided with ordnance, and a model of a Japanese breech-loading cannon is still preserved in Kioto. Ever a brave and adventurous people, the Japanese then roamed the seas with a freedom that one who knows only of the modern shore-bound people would scarcely credit. Voyages of trade, discovery, or piracy had been made to India, Siam, Burmah, the Phil- ippines, Southern China, the Malay Archipelago, and the Kuriles, on the north, even in the fifteenth century, but were most numerous in the sixteenth. The Japanese gave the name to the island of Roson (Luzon), and the descendants of Japanese pirates or traders are still to be found in numbers in this archipelago. In the city of Ayuthaya, on the Menam, in Siam, a flourishing sea-port, the people call one part of the place the " Japanese quarter." The Japanese literature contains many references to these adventurous sailors ; and when the records of the Far East are thoroughly investigated, and this subject fully studied, very interesting results will be obtained, showing the wide- spread influence of Japan at a time when she was scarcely known by the European world to have existence. CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 247 XXV. CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS* IT seems now nearly certain that when Columbus set sail from Spain to discover a new continent, it was not America he was seek- ing ; for of that he knew nothing. His quest was the land of Japan. Marco Polo, the Venetian traveler, had spent seventeen years (1275- 1292) at the court of the Tartar emperor, Kublai Khan, and while in Peking had heard of a land lying to the eastward called, in the lan- guage of the Chinese capital, Jipangu, from which our modern name, Japan, has been corrupted. Columbus was an ardent student of Polo's book, which had been published in 1298. He sailed westward across the Atlantic to find this kingdom of the sun-source. He discovered, not Japan, but an archipelago in America, on whose shores he eagerly inquired concerning Jipangu. The torch of modern discovery thus kindled by him was handed on by Vasco da Gama, and a host of brave Portuguese navigators, who drove their keels into the once un- known seas of the Orient, and came back to tell of densely populated empires enriched with the wealth that makes civilization possible, and of which Europe had scarcely heard. Their accounts fired the hearts of the zealous who longed to convert the heathen, aroused the cupidity of traders who thirsted for gold, and kindled the desire of monarchs to found empires in Asia. As the Spaniards had founded an empire in America, Portugal was then nearing the zenith of her maritime glory. Mendez Pinto, a Por- tuguese adventurer, seems to have been the first European who landed on Japanese soil. On his return to Europe, he told so many wonder- ful stories that he was dubbed, by a pun on his Christian name, " the * Iu compiling this chapter, I have made use of Hildreth's "Japan as it Was and Is;" Le'on Page's' "Histoire de la Religion Chretienne au Japon;" Char- levoix^s " Histoire du Christian ismeau Japon;" Dixon's "Japan;" "Shimabara: A Japanese Account of the Christian Insurrection in 1637;" the Japanese Encyclo- paedia, San Sai Dzu Ye; and the able paper of Herr Von Brandt (Minister of the North German Confederation in Japan) read before the German Asiatic Society of Japan. 248 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. mendacious." His narrative was, however, as we now know, substan- tially correct. Pinto, while in China, had got on board a Chinese junk, commanded by a pirate. They were attacked by another cor- sair, their pilot was killed, and the vessel was driven off the coast by a storm. They made for the Liu Kiu Islands ; but, unable to find a harbor, put to sea, and after twenty-three days beating about, sighted the island of Tane (Tanegashima, island of the seed), off the south of Kiushiu, and landed. The name of the island was significant. The arrival of those foreigners was the seed of troubles innumerable. The crop was priestcraft of the worst type, political intrigue, religious per- secution, the Inquisition, the slave-trade, the propagation of Christian- ity by the sword, sedition, rebellion, and civil war. Its harvest was garnered in the blood of sixty thousand Japanese. The native histories recount the first arrival of Europeans on Tane- gashima in 1542, and note that year as the one in which fire-arms were first introduced. Pinto and his two companions were armed with arquebuses, which delighted this people, ever ready to accept whatever will tend to their advantage. They were even more im- pressed with the novel weapons than by the strangers. Pinto was in- vited by the Daimio of Bungo to visit him, which he did. The na- tives began immediately to make guns and powder, the secret of which was taught them by their visitors. In a few years, as we know from Japanese history, fire-arms came into general use. To this day many country people call them " Tanegashima." Thus, in the beginning, hand-in-hand came foreigners, Christianity, and fire-arms. To many a native they are still each and equal members of a trinity of terrors, and one is a synonym of the other. Christianity to most of "the heathen" still means big guns and powder. In those days commerce and piracy, war and religion, were closely united ; and the sword and the cross were twin weapons, like the cime- ter and the Koran of the Turks, by which the pious robbers of the most Christian empires of Spain and Portugal went forth to conquer weak nations. The pirate-trader who brought Pinto to Japan cleared twelve hun- dred per cent, on his cargo, and the three Portuguese returned, loaded with presents, to China. This new market attracted hundreds of Por- tuguese adventurers to Japan, who found a ready welcome at the hands of the impressible people. The daimios vied with each other in at- tracting the foreigners to their shores, their object being to obtain the weapons, and get the wealth which would increase their power, as the CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 249 authority of the Ashikaga shoguns had before this time been cast off, and each chief was striving for local supremacy. The missionary followed the merchant. Already the Portuguese priests and Franciscan friars were numerous in India and the straits. A native of Satsuma named Anjiro, who, having killed a man, had fled to Pinto' s boat, and was carried off by him, after the long suffer- ings of remorse reached Goa, becoming a convert to Christianity. Learning to read and write Portuguese, and having mastered the whole Christian doctrine, he became Xavier's interpreter. To the question whether the Japanese would be likely to accept Christianity, An j ire answered in words that seem fresh, pertinent, and to have been ut- tered but yesterday, so true are they still that " his people would not immediately assent to what might be said to them, but they would investigate what I might affirm respecting religion by a multitude of questions, and, above all, by observing whether my conduct agreed with my words. This done, the king (daimio), the nobility, and adult pop- ulation would flock to Christ, being a nation which always follows rea- son as a guide." The words are recorded by Xavier himself. In 1549, the party of two Jesuits and two Japanese landed at Ka- goshima, in Satsuma. Xavier, after studying the rudiments of the lan- guage, beyond which he never advanced, and making diligent use of the pictures of the Virgin and Child, soon left the capital of this war- like clan, for the city had not been favored with the commerce of tho Portuguese; and, as the missionaries had not come to improve the material resources of the province, they were not warmly welcomed. He then went to Bungo and Nagato. Besides having an interpreter, though unable to preach, he used to read the Gospel of Matthew trans- lated by Anjiro into Japanese, and Romanized. Though unable to understand much of it, he read it in public with great effect. There trade was flourishing and enriching the daimios, and he was warmly received by them. His next step was a journey to Kioto. There, in- stead of the extraordinary richness of the sovereign's palace, which he had expected to see plated with gold on the roofs and ceilings, with tables of the same metal, and all the other wonders as related by Mar- co Polo, he found it but a city which wars and fires had rendered des- olate, and almost uninhabitable, except as a camp. Here he employed the policy of austerity and poverty, his appearance being that of a beg- gar, though later he used wealth and great display in his ministrations, with marked effect. The mikado's (dairi) authority, he found, was merely nominal ; the shogun, Ashikaga Yoshiteru, ruled only over a 250 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. few provinces around the capital. Every one's thoughts were of war, and battle was imminent. The very idea of an interview with the mi- kado was an absurdity, and one with the Kubo sama (shdgun) an im- possibility, his temporary poverty not permitting him to make a pres- ent effectively large enough for the latter, and rendering him con- temptible in the eyes of the people. He attempted to preach several times in the streets, but, not being master of the language, failed to se- cure attention, and after two weeks left the city disgusted. Not long after, having turned his attention to the furtherance of trade and di- plomacy, he departed from Japan, disheartened by the realities of mis- sionary work. He had, however, inspired others, who followed him, and their success was amazingly great. Within five years after Xavier visited Kioto, seven churches were established in the vicinity of the city itself, while scores of Christian communities had sprung up in the south-west. In 1581, there were two hundred churches, and one hun- dred and fifty thousand native Christians. In Bungo, where Xavier won his way by costly gifts, as he did in Suwo by diplomacy ; in Hari- ma and Omura, the daimios themselves had professed the new faith, while Nobunaga, the hater of the Buddhists, openly favored the Chris- tians, and gave them eligible sites upon which to build dwellings and churches. Ready to use any weapons against the bonzes, Nobunaga hoped to use the foreigners as a counterpoise to their arrogance. In 1583, an embassy of four young noblemen was dispatched by the Christian daimios of Kiushiu to the pope, to declare themselves vassals of the Holy See. Eight years afterward, having had audience of Philip II. of Spain, and kissed the feet of the pope at Rome, they returned, bringing with them seventeen Jesuit missionaries an im- portant addition to the many Portuguese religious of that order al- ready in Japan. Spanish mendicant friars from the Philippine Isl- ands, with Dominicans and Augustans, also flocked into the country, preaching and zealously proselyting. The number of " Christians " at the time of the highest success of the missionaries in Japan was, ac- cording to their own figures, six hundred thousand a number which I believe is no exaggeration, the quantity, not quality, being consid- ered. The Japanese, less accurately, set down a total of two million nominal adherents to the Christian sects, large numerical statements in Japanese books being untrustworthy, and often worthless. Among their converts were several princes, and large numbers of lords and gentlemen in high official position, generals and captains in the army, and the admiral and officers of the Japanese fleets. Several of the la- CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 251 dies of the households of Hideyoshi, Hideyori, and lyeyasu, besides influential women of noble blood in many provinces whose rulers were not Christians, added to their power, while at the seat of government the chief interpreter was a Jesuit father. Churches, chapels, and resi- dences of the fathers were mrmbered by thousands, and in some prov- inces crosses and Christian shrines were as numerous as the kindred evidences of Buddhism had been before. The fathers and friars had traveled or preached from one end of the western half of Hondo to the other; northward in Echizen, Kaga, Echigo, and Oshiu, and in the provinces of the Tokaido. They had also one church in Yedo. The causes of this astonishingly rapid success of the Jesuits are to be sought in the mental soil which the missionaries found ready prepared for their seed. It was in the later days of the Ashikaga, when Xavier arrived in Japan. Centuries of misrule and anarchy had reduced the people, on whom the burdens of war fell, to the lowest depths of pov- erty and misery. The native religions then afforded little comfort or consolation to their adherents. Shinto had sunk to a myth almost utterly unknown to the people, and so overshadowed by Buddhism that only a few scholars knew its origin. Buddhism, having lost it< vitalizing power, had degenerated into a commercial system of prayers and masses, in which salvation could be purchased only by the merit of the deeds and prayers of the priests. Nevertheless, its material and outward splendor were never greater. Gorgeous vestments, blazing lights, imposing processions, altars of dazzling magnificence, and a sensuous worship captivated the minds of the people, while indulgences were sold, and saints' days and holidays and festivals were multiplied. The Japanese are an intensely imaginative people ; and whatever appeals to the aesthetics of sense, or fires the imagination, leads the masses captive at the will of their religious leaders. The priests of Rome came with crucifixes in their hands, eloquence on their lips, and with rich dresses, impressive ceremonies, processions, and mysteries out-dazzled the scenic display of the Buddhists. They brought pict- ures, gilt crosses, and images, and erected gorgeous altars, which they used as illuminated texts for their sermons. They preached the doc- trine of an immediate entrance into paradise after death to all be- lievers, a doctrine which thrilled their hearers to an uncontrollable pitch^of enthusiasm. Buddhism promises rest in heaven only after many transformations, births, and the repeated miseries of life and death, the very thought of which wearies the soul. The story of the Cross, made vivid by fervid eloquence, tears^ and harrowing pictures 252 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. and colored images, which bridged the gulf of remoteness, and made the act of Calvary near and intensely real, melted the hearts of the impressible natives. Furthermore, the transition from the religion of India to that of Rome was extremely easy. The very idols of Buddha served, after a little alteration with the chisel, for images of Christ. The Buddhist saints were easily transformed into the Twelve Apostles. The Cross took the place of the torii. It was emblazoned on the hel- mets and banners of the warriors, and embroidered on their breasts. The Japanese soldiers went forth to battle like Christian crusaders. In the roadside shrine Kuanon, the Goddess of Mercy, made way for the Virgin, the mother of God. Buddhism was beaten with its own weapons. Its own artillery was turned against it. Nearly all the Christian churches were native temples, sprinkled and purified. The same bell, whose boom had so often quivered the air announcing the orisons and matins of paganism, was again blessed and sprinkled, and called the same hearers to mass and confession; the same lavatory that fronted the temple served for holy-water or baptismal font ; the same censer that swung before Amida could be refilled to waft Chris- tian incense; the new convert could use unchanged his old beads, bells, candles, incense, and all the paraphernalia of his old faith in celebration of the new. Almost every thing that is distinctive in the Roman form of Chris- tianity is to be found in Buddhism : images, pictures, lights, altars, incense, vestments, masses, beads, wayside shrines, monasteries, nun- neries, celibacy, fastings, vigils, retreats, pilgrimages, mendicant vows, shorn heads, orders, habits, uniforms, nuns, convents, purgatory, saint- ly and priestly intercession, indulgences, works of supererogation, pope, archbishops, abbots, abbesses, monks, neophytes, relics and relic- worship, exclusive burial-ground, etc., etc., etc. The methods which the foreign priests employed to propagate the flew faith were not such as commend themselves to a candid mind. The first act of propagation was an act of Mariolatry. They brought with them the spirit of the Inquisition, then in full blast in Spain and Portugal, which they had used there for the reclamation of native and Dutch heretics. In Japan they began to attack most violently the character of the native bonzes, and to incite their converts to insult the gods, destroy the idols, and burn or desecrate the old shrines. They made plentiful use of the gold furnished liberally by the kings of Portugal and Spain, under the name of " alms." In two years and a half Xavier received one thousand doubloons (fifteen thousand dol- CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 253 lars) for the support of his mission. This abundance of the foreign precious metal was noticed especially by the native rulers. In Kiu- shiu the daimios themselves became Christians, and they compelled their subjects to embrace their religion. The people of whole districts of country were ordered to become Christians, or to leave their land and the homes of their fathers, and go into banishment. The bonzes were exiled or killed ; and fire and sword, as well as preaching, were employed as instruments of conversion. Furthermore, fictitious mira- cles were frequently got up to utilize the credulity of the superstitious in furthering the spread of the faith, glowing accounts of which may be found in Leon Pages' " Histoire de la R. C." Not only do the na- tive Japanese writers record these things as simple matter of fact, but the letters of the Jesuits themselves, and the books written by them, teem with instances of ferocious cruelty and pious fraud wrought in their behalf, or at their instigation. The following passages from the Jesuit Charlevoix's " Histoire du Christianisme au Japon " are trans- lated by Dr. Walter Dixon in his " Japan :" " Sumitanda, King of Omura, who. had become a Christian in 1562, declared open war against the devils [bonzes]. He dispatched some squadrons through his kingdom to ruin all the idols and temples without any regard to the bonzes' rage.". ... "In 1577, the lord of the island of Ama- cusa [Amakusa] issued his proclamation, by which his subjects whether bonzes or gentlemen, merchants or tradesmen were required either to turn Christians, or to leave the country the very next day. They almost all submitted, and received baptism, so that in a short time there were more than twenty churches in the kingdom. God wrought miracles to confirm the faithful in their belief." The DaimiO of Takatsiiki, Settsu, " labored with a zeal truly apostolic to extirpate the idolaters out of his states. He sent word that they should either receive the faith, or be gone immediately out of his country, for he would acknowledge none for his subjects but such as acknowledged the true God. The declaration obliged them all to accept instruction, which cut out work enough for all the fathers and missionaries at Meaco [Miako]." The Daimio of Bungo at one time, during war, destroyed a most prodigious and magnificent temple, with a colossal statue, burning three J.housand monasteries to ashes, and razing the temples to the ground. The comment of the Jesuit writer on this is, "This ardent zeal of the prince is an evident instance of his faith and charity." This does not, however, sound like an echo of the song once heard 17 254 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. above the Bethlehem hills, few echoes of which the Japanese have as yet heard. As the different orders, Jesuits, Franciscans, and Augustinians, in- creased, they began to trench upon each other's parishes. This gave rise to quarrels, indecent squabbles, and mutual vituperation, at which the pagans sneered and the bonzes rejoiced. While the friars of these orders were rigorously excommunicating each other, thinking heathen were not favorably impressed with the new religion. Chris- tianity received her sorest wound in the house of her friends. At this time, also, political and religious war was almost universal in Europe, and the quarrels of the various nationalities followed the buccaneers, pirates, traders, and missionaries to the distant seas of Japan. The Protestant, Dutch, and English stirred up the hatred and fear of the Japanese against the papists, and finally against each other. Spaniards and Portuguese blackened the character of the here- tics, and as vigorously abused each other when it served their interest. All of which impelled the shrewd Japanese to contrive how to use them one against the other, an art which they still understand. All foreigners, but especially Portuguese, then were slave-traders, and thousands of Japanese were bought and sold and shipped to Macao, in China, and to the Philippines. The long civil wars, and the misery caused by them, and the expedition to Corea, had so impoverished the people that slaves became so cheap that even the Malay and negro servants of the Portuguese, speculated in the bodies of Japanese slaves who were bought and sold and transported. Hideyoshi repeatedly issued decrees threatening with death these slave-traders, and even the purchasers. The sea-ports of Hirado and Nagasaki were the resort of the lowest class of adventurers from all European nations, and the result was a continual series of uproars, broils, and murders among the foreigners, requiring ever arid anon the intervention of the native authorities to keep the peace. To the everlasting honor of some of the Jesuit bishops and priests be it said, they endeavored to do all they could to prevent the traffic in the bodies of men. Such a picture of foreign influence and of Christianity, which is here drawn in mild colors, as the Japanese saw it, was not calculated to make a permanently favorable impression on the Japanese mind. While Nobunaga lived, and the Jesuits basked in his favor, all was progress and victory. Hideyoshi, though at first favorable to the new religion, issued, in 1587, a decree of banishment against the foreign missionaries. The Jesuits closed their churches and chapels, ceased CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 255 to preach in public, but carried on their proselyting work in private as vigorously as ever, averaging ten thousand converts a year, until 1590. The Spanish mendicant friars, pouring in from the Philippines, openly defied the Japanese laws, preaching in their usual garb in pub- lic, and in their intemperate language. This aroused Hideyoshi's attention, and his decree of expulsion was renewed. Some of the churches were burned. In 1596, six Franciscan, three Jesuit, and sev- enteen Japanese converts were taken to Nagasaki, and there crucified. Still the Jesuits resided in the country, giving out to the people that the Spaniards nourished the political designs against Japan, and that the decrees of expulsion had been directed against the priests of that nation, and that the late outburst of persecution was an explosion of zeal on the part of a few subordinate officials. Several of the gener- als of the army in Corea still openly professed the Christian faith. When the taiko died, affairs seemed to take a more favorable turn, but only for a few years. The Christians looked to Hideyori for their friend and quasi-leader. The battle of Sekigahara, and the de- feat of Hideyori's following, blew their hopes to the winds ; and the ignominious death of Ishida, Konishi, and Otani, the Christian gener- als who had witnessed a good confession both as warriors and as up- holders of the faith in Corea and at home, drove their adherents to the verge of despair. lyeyasu re-adjusted the feudal relations of his vassals in Kiushiu ; and as the taiko had also re-arranged the fiefs, the political status of the Christians was profoundly altered. The new daimios, carrying the policy of their predecessors as taught them by the Jesuits, but reversing its direction, began to persecute their Chris- tian subjects, and to compel them to renounce their faith. The native converts resisted even to blood and the taking-up of arms. This was an entirely new thing under the Japanese sun. Hitherto the attitude of the peasantry to the Government had been one of passive obedi- ence and slavish submission. The idea of armed rebellion among the farmers was something so wholly new that lyeyasu suspected foreign instigation. Color was given to this idea by the fact that the foreign- ers still secretly or openly paid court to Hideyori, and at the same time freely dispersed gold and gifts, in addition to religious comfort, to the persecuted. lyeyasu became more vigilant as his suspicions in- creased, and, resolving to crush this spirit of independence and intimi- date the foreign emissaries, met every outbreak with bloody reprisals. In 1606, an edict from Yedo forbade the exercise of the Christian re- ligion, but an outward show of obedience warded off active persecu- 256 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. tion. In 1610, the Spanish friars again aroused the wrath of the Gov- ernment by defying its commands, and exhorting the native converts to do likewise. In 1611, lyeyasii obtained documentary proof of what he had long suspected, viz., the existence of a plot on the part of the native converts and the foreign emissaries to reduce Japan to the position of a subject state. The chief conspirator, Okubo, then Gov- ernor of Sado, to which place thousands of Christian exiles had been sent to work the mines, was to be made hereditary ruler by the for- eigners. The names of the chief native and foreign conspirators were written down, with the usual seal of blood from the end of the middle finger of the ringleader. With this paper was found concealed, in an iron box in an old well, a vast hoard of gold and silver. lyeyasii now put forth strenuous measures to root out utterly what he believed to be a pestilent breeder of sedition and war. Fresh edicts were issued, and in 1614 twenty-two Franciscan, Dominican, and Au- gustinian friars, one hundred and seventeen Jesuits, and hundreds of native priests and catechists, were embarked by force on board junks, and sent out of the country. In 1615, lyeyasii pushed matters to an extreme with Hideyori, who was then entertaining some Jesuit priests ; and, calling out the troops of Kiushiu and the Kuanto, laid siege to the castle of Ozaka. A bat- tle of unusual ferocity and bloody slaughter raged, on the 9th of June, 1615, ending in the burning of the citadel, and the total defeat and death of Hideyori and thousands of his followers. The Jesuit fathers say that one hundred thousand men perished in this brief war, of which vivid details are given in the " Histoire de la Religion Chretienne." The Christian cause was now politically and irretrievably ruined. Hil- dredth remarks that Catholicism in Japan " received its death-blow in that same year in which a few Puritan pilgrims landed at Plymouth to plant the obscure seeds of a new and still growing Protestant em- pire." The exiled foreign friars, however, kept secretly returning, apparent- ly desirous of the crown of martyrdom. Hidetada, the shogun, now pronounced sentence of death against any foreign priest found in the country. lyemitsu, his successor, restricted all foreign commerce to Nagasaki and Hirado ; all Japanese were forbidden to leave the coun- try on pain of death; and in 1624 all foreigners, except Dutch and Chinese, were banished from Japan, and an edict was issued command- ing the destruction of all vessels beyond a certain diminutive size, and restricting the universal model in ship-building to that of the coasting CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 257 junk. Fresh persecutions followed, many apostate lords and gentry now favoring the Government. Fire and sword were used to extir- pate Christianity, and to paganize the same people who in their youth were Christianized by the same means. Thousands of the native con- verts fled to China, Formosa, and the Philippines. All over the em- pire, but especially at Ozaka and in Kiushiu, the people were com- pelled to trample on the cross, or on a copper plate engraved with the representation of " the Christian criminal God." The Christians suf- fered all sorts of persecutions. They were wrapped in straw sacks, piled in heaps of living fuel, and set on fire. All the tortures that barbaric hatred or refined cruelty could invent were used to turn thou- sands of their fellow-men into carcasses and ashes. Yet few of the natives quailed, or renounced their faith. They calmly let the fire of wood cleft from the crosses before which they once prayed consume them, or walked cheerfully to the blood-pit, or were flung alive into the open grave about to be filled up. Mothers carried their babes at their bosoms, or their children in their arms to the fire, the sword, or the precipice's edge, rather than leave them behind to be educated in the pagan faith. If any one doubt the sincerity and fervor of the Christian converts of to-day, or the ability of the Japanese to accept a higher form of faith, or their willingness to suffer for what they be- lieve, they have but to read the accounts preserved in English, Dutch, French, Latin, and Japanese, of various witnesses to the fortitude of the Japanese Christians of the seventeenth century. The annals of the primitive Church furnish no instances of sacrifice or heroic con- stancy, in the Coliseum or the Roman arenas, that were not paralleled on the dry river-beds and execution-grounds of Japan. Finally, in 1637, at Shimabara, the Christians rose by tens of thou- sands in arms, seized an old castle, repaired and fortified it, and raised the flag of rebellion. Armies from Kiushiu and the Kuanto, com- posed mainly of veterans of Corea and Ozaka, were sent by the sho- gun to besiege it. Their commanders expected an easy victory, and sneered at the idea of having any difficulty in subduing these farmers and peasants. A siege of two months, by land and water, was, how- ever, necessary to reduce the fortress.* Thousands of the rebels, were hurled from the rock of Pappenburg, or were banished to va- * Dr. Geerts, in the Chrysanthemum, Jan., 1883, and in the "Transactions of the Asiatic Society of Japan," vol. xi., with original documents, vindicates the Dutch from the aspersions cast upon them by Tavernier and Kaempfer. 258 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. rious provinces, or put to death by torture. Others escaped, and fled to the island of Formosa, joining their brethren already there. The edicts prohibiting the " evil sect " were now promulgated and published permanently all over the empire, and new ones commanded that, as long as the sun should shine, no foreigners should enter Ja- pan, or natives leave it. The Dutch gained the privilege of a paltry trade and residence on the little fan-shaped island of Deshima (outer island), in front of Nagasaki. Here, under degrading restrictions and constant surveillance, lived a little company of less than twenty Hol- landers, who were allowed one ship per annum to come from the "The Tarpeian Eock of Japan:" the Island of Pappeuberg, in Nagasaki Harbor. (No\* used as a picnic resort.) Dutch East Indies and exchange commodities of Japan for those of Holland. After nearly a hundred years of Christianity and foreign inter- course, the only apparent results of this contact with another religion and civilization were the adoption of gunpowder, and fire-arms as weapons, the use of tobacco, and the habit of smoking, the making of sponge-cake (still called Castira the Japanese form of Castile), the naturalization into the language of a few foreign words, the intro- duction of new and strange forms of disease, among which the Japa- CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 259 nese count the scourge of the venereal virus, and the permanent addi- tion to that catalogue of terrors which priest and magistrate in Asiat- ic countries ever hold as weapons to overawe the herd. For centuries the mention of that name would bate the breath, blanch the cheek, and smite with fear as with an earthquake shock. It was the syno- nym of sorcery, sedition, and all that was hostile to the purity of the home and the peace of society. All over the empire, in every city, town, village, and hamlet ; by the roadside, ferry, or mountain pass ; at every entrance to the capital, stood the public notice-boards, on which, with prohibitions against the great crimes that disturb the relations of society and government, was one tablet, written with a deeper brand of guilt, with a more hideous memory of blood, with a more awful terror of torture, than when the like superscription was affixed at the top of a cross that stood between two thieves on a little hill outside Jerusalem. Its daily and familiar sight startled ever and anon the peasant to clasp hands and utter a fresh prayer, the bonze to add new venom to his maledictions, the magistrate to shake his head, and to the mother a ready word to hush the crying of her fret- ful babe. That name was Christ. So thoroughly was Christianity, or the "Jashiu mon" (corrupt sect), supposed to be eradicated before the end of the seventeenth century, that its existence was historical, remembered only as an awful scar on the national memory. No ves- tiges were ..supposed to be left of it, and no knowledge of its tenets was held, save by a very few scholars in Yedo, trained experts, who were kept, as a sort of spiritual blood-hounds, to scent out the adher- ents of the accursed creed. So perfect was the work done, that the Government believed fully, as Europeans, and among them Mr. Lecky, who uses the example to strengthen his argument, that " persecution had extirpated Christian- ity in Japan." It was left to our day, since the recent opening of Japan, for them to discover that a mighty fire had been smoldering for over two centuries beneath the ashes of persecutions. As late as 1829, seven persons, six men and an old woman, were crucified in Ozaka, on suspicion of being Christians and communicating with for- eigners. When the French brethren of the Mission Apostolique, of Paris, came to Nagasaki in 1860, they found in the villages around them over ten thousand people who held the faith of their fathers of the seventeenth century. A few interesting traces and relics of the century of Christianity and foreigners still exist in Japan. In the language the names of 260 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. God (Deus), Holy Spirit (Espiritu Santo), Jesus (Yesu), and Christ (Kirishito) have remained. Castira is still the name of sponge-cake, so universally used, and the making of which was first taught by the men of Castile ; and the Japanese having no I, change that letter into r. The Japanese have no word for bread ; they use the Latin pan. The words taffel (table), Dontaku (Sunday), cuppu (cup), rauda (lauda- num), yerikter (electricity), bouton (button), briki (tin), and many of the names of drugs and medicines, and rare metals and substances, terms in science, etc., and even some in common use, are but the Jap- anized forms of the Dutch words. I have seen "Weird Specifica" Hollander on Deshima looking for the Arrival of a Ship. and " Voum Von Mitter " in large Roman letters, or in katagana, ad- vertised on the hanging signs of the drug-shops in every part of the country I have been in, from Kobe to near Niigata, and other trav- elers have noticed it nearly everywhere in Japan. It is the old or incorrect spelling of the name of some Dutch nostrum. The natives speak of Christianity as the religion of the " Lord of Heaven." The destruction of the Christian churches, crosses, images, etc., was so thorough that the discovery of relics by modern seekers has been very rare. A few years ago, shortly after Perry's arrival, CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 261 there was in Suruga a cave, to which the country people resorted in large numbers, on account of the great efficacy believed to reside in an image of the mother of Shaka (Buddha), with her infant in her arms. The idol was reputed to have healed many diseases. An educated samurai, who hated all foreigners and their ways and works, especially the " Jesus doctrine," happening to enter the cave, perceived in a mo- ment that the image was a relic of the old Christian worship. It was nothing else than an image of the Virgin Mary and the infant Jesus. The samurai dashed it to pieces. The attempts of the English and French to open a permanent trade with Japan are described in Hildredth's "Japan as It Was and Is." Captain John Saris, with the ships Clove, Thomas, and Hector, left England in April, 1611, with letters from the king, James I. of En- gland, to the " emperor " (shogun) of Japan. Landing at Hirado, he was well received, and established a factory in charge of Mr. Richard Cocks. With Will Adams and seventeen of his company, Saris set out to see lyeyasu, who was then living at the modern Shidzuoka. He touched at Hakata, traversed the Inland Sea, past Shimonoseki, to Ozaka ; thence by boat to Fushimi, thence by horse and palanquin to Sumpu (Shidzuoka). In the interview accorded the English captain, lyeyasu invited him to visit his son, Hidetada, the ruling shogun at Yedo. Saris went to Yedo, visiting, on his way, Kamakura and the great copper image of Dai Butsu, some of the Englishmen going in- side of it and shouting in it for the fun of the thing. They also wrote their own names inside of it, as foreign tourists, visitors, and even personal friends of republican rulers do to this day, and as the natives have always done, to immortalize themselves. After a stay in Yedo, they touched at Uraga ; thence returned to Sumpu, where a treaty, or privileges of trade, in eight articles, was signed and given to Saris. It bore the signature of Minamoto lyeyasu. After a tour of three months, Saris arrived at Hirado again, having visited Kioto, where he saw the splendid Christian churches and Jes- ' uit colleges, on his way. After discouraging attempts to open a trade with Siam, Corea, and China, and hostilities having broken out be- tween them and the Dutch, the English abandoned the project of per- manent trade with Japan ; and all subsequent attempts to reopen it failed, Will Adams, who was an English pilot, and the first of his nation in Japan, is spoken of frequently, and in no flattering terms, by the Jesuit fathers. He arrived in Japan in 1607, and lived in or near 262 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Yedo till he died, in 1620. By the sheer force of a manly, honest character, this sturdy Briton, " who may have seen Shakspeare and Ben Jonson" and Queen Elizabeth, rose into favor with lyeyasii, and gained the regard of the people. His knowledge of ship-build- ing, mathematics, and foreign affairs made him a very useful man. Although treated with honor and kindness, he was not allowed to leave Japan. He had a wife and daughter in England. He was made an officer, and given the revenues of the village of Henri, in Sa- gami, near the modern Yokosuka, where are situated the dry-docks, machine-shops, and ship-building houses in which the modern war-ves- sels of the imperial navy are built and launched a fitting location, so near the ground made classic by this exile from the greatest marine nation in the world. Will Adams had a son and daughter born to him in Japan, and there are still living Japanese who claim descent from him. One of the streets of Yedo was named after him, Anjin Cho (Pilot Street), and the people of that street still hold an annual celebration on the 15th of June in his honor, one of which I attended in 1873. When Adams died, he, and afterward his Japanese wife, were buried on the summit of one of the lovely hills overlooking the Bay of Yedo, Goldsborough Inlet, and the surrounding beautiful and classic landscape. Adams chose the spot himself. The people of Yedo erected memorial-stone lanterns at his tomb. Perry's fleet, in 1854, anchored within the very shadow of the Englishman's sepul- chre. In May, 1872, Mr. Walters, of Yokohama, after a study of Hil- dreth and some search, discovered the tomb, which others had sought for in vain. Two neat stone shafts, in the characteristic style of na- tive monumental architecture, set on a stone pediment, mark the spot. I visited it, in company of the bonze in charge of the Shin shiu tem- ple of the village, in July, 1873. In Charlevoix's " Histoire du Christianisme au Japon," it is related that the Abbe Sidotti, an Italian priest, came to Manila, with the in- tention of landing in Japan, and once more attempting to regain Japan to Christianity. After several years' waiting, he persuaded the cap- tain of a vessel to take him to Satsuma and set him ashore. This was done in 1709. He was arrested and sent to Yedo. There he was confined in a house in the city district, called Koishikawa, on the slope of a hill ever since called Kirishitan zaka (Christian slope), as the valley at the foot is called Kirishitan dane (Christian valley), and the place Kirishitan gui (Christian neighborhood). Here the censors, judges, scholars, and interpreters assembled, and for many days ex- CHRISTIANITY AND FOREIGNERS. 263 amined him, asking many questions and gaining much information concerning foreign countries. In another building near by, an old man and woman who had professed Christianity, and had been com- pelled to recant, were confined. After the abbe's arrival, exhorted by him, they again embraced their old faith. The abbe gave his name as Jean Baptiste. He made a cross of red paper, which he pasted on the wall of his room. He was kept prisoner, living for several years after his arrival, in Yedo, and probably died a natural death. About ten years ago, the Rev. S. R. Brown, D.D., discovered a book called Sei Yd Ki Bun (Annals of Western Nations), in three volumes, written by the Japanese scholar who examined the abbe. The books contain a summary of the history and judicial proceedings in the case, and the information gained from the Italian. The whole narrative is of intensest interest. While in Tokio, in 1874, 1 endeav- ored to find the site of the Inquisition, and the martyr's tomb. Tradition says that the abbe was buried on the opposite slope of the valley corresponding to that on which he lived, under an old pine- tree, near a spring. Pushing my way through scrub bamboo along a narrow path scarcely perceptible for the undergrowth, I saw a name- less stone near a hollow, evidently left by a tree that had long since fallen and rotted away. A little run of water issued from a spring hard by. At the foot was a rude block of stone, with a hollow for water. Both were roughly hewn, and scarcely dressed with the chisel. Such stones in Japan mark the graves of those who die in disgrace, or unknown, or uncared for. This was all that was visible to remind the visitor of one whose heroic life deserved a nobler monument. The influence of a century of Papal Christianity in Japan on the national ethics and character was nil. A careful examination has not revealed any trace of new principles of morals adopted by the Japa- nese from foreigners in the sixteenth, as has been gained in the nine- teenth century, though the literary, scientific, and material gains were great. The Japanese mental constitution and moral character have been profoundly modified in turn by Buddhism and Confucianism, but the successive waves of Christianism that passed over Japan left no sediment teeming with fertility, rather a barren waste like that which the river-floods leave in autumn. I should be glad to see these statements disproved. Let us hope that the Christianity of the present, whether Catholic, Protestant, or Russo-Greek, may work a profounder and more beneficent revolution in faith and moral practice, and that only that kingdom may be established which is not of this world. 264 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XXVI. IYEJAS&, THE FOUNDER OF YEDO. THE last of struggles of rival military factions for the possession of power is now to be narrated, and the weary record of war and strife closed. Since 1159, when the Taira and Minamoto came to blows in the capital, and the imperial palace fell into the hands of armed men, and the domination of the military families began, until the opening of the seventeenth century the history of Japan is but that of civil war and slaughter. The history of two centuries and a half that fol- lowed the triumphs of lyeyasii is that of profound peace. Few na- tions in the world have enjoyed peace so long. The man who now stood foremost among men, who was a legislator as well as warrior, who could win a victory and garner the fruits of it, was Tokugawa lyeyasii, the hero of Sekigahara, the most decisive bat- tle in Japanese history, the creator of the perfected dual system and of feudalism, and the founder of Yedo. Yedo is not an ancient city. Its site becomes historic when Yama- to Dake, in the second century of our era, marched to conquer the Eastern tribes. In later times, the Minamoto chieftains subdued the plains of the Kuanto. Until the twelfth century, the region around the Bay of Yedo was wild, uncivilized, and sparsely populated, and the inhabitants were called by the polished Kioto people "Adzuma Ebisu," or Eastern boors. In the fifteenth century, a small castle was built on the rising ground within the western circuit of the present stronghold, and near Koji machi (Yeast Street), where now stands the British Legation. East of the castle was a small relay village, Temma Cho, near the modern site of the prison, at which officials or travelers, on their way to Kamakura or Kioto, vi& the Tokaido, might stop for rest and re- freshment, or to obtain fresh kagos (palanquins), bearers, and bag- gage-carriers. The name of the commander of the castle, Ota Do- kuan, a retainer of the shogun at Kamakura, and a doughty warrior, is still preserved in the memories of the people, and in poetry, song, IYEYASU, THE FOUNDER OF YEDO. 265 art, and local lore. A hill in the north of the city, a delightful pic- nic resort, bears his name, and the neighborhood of Shiba was his favorite drill-ground and rendezvous before setting out on forays or campaigns. One romantic incident, in which a maiden of equal wit and beauty bore chief part, has made him immortal, though the name of the fair one has been forgotten. One day, while out hawking near Yedo, a heavy shower of rain fell. Dismounting from his horse, he, with his attendant, approached a house, and in very polite terms begged the loan of a grass rain-coat (mino). A pretty girl, daughter of the man of the house, came out, listened, blushing, to the request, but, answer- ing not a word, ran to the garden, plucked a flower, handed it, with mischief in her eyes, to the hero, and then coquettishly ran away. Ota, chagrined and vexed at such apparently frivolous manners and boorish inhospitality, and the seeming slight put upon his rank, re- turned in wrath, and through the rain, to his castle, inwardly cursing the "Adzuma Ebisu," who did not know how to treat a gentleman. It happened that, shortly after, some court nobles from Kioto were present, sharing the hospitalities of the castle at Yedo, to whom he related the incident. To his own astonishment, the guests were de- lighted. " Here," said they, " in the wilderness, and among the 'Ad- zuma Ebisu,' is a gentle girl, who is not only versed in classic poetry, but had the wit and maidenly grace to apply it in felicitous style." Ota had asked for a rain-coat (mino) ; the little coquette was too po- lite to acknowledge she had none. How could she say " no " to such a gallant ? Rather, to disguise her negative, she had handed him a mountain camellia ; and of this flower the poet of Yamato had, centu- ries ago, sung : " Although the mountain camellia has seven or eight petals, yet I grieve to say it has no seed " (mino). After the death of Ota, no name of any great note is attached to the unimportant village or fortress; but in 1590, at the siege of Oda- wara, Hideyoshi suggested to his general, lyeyasu, Yedo as the best site for the capital of the Kuanto. After the overthrow of the " later Ho jo " clan, and the capture of their castle at Odawara, lyeyasu went to Yedo and began to found a city. He set up his court, and watched his chances. lyeyasu was born at Okasaki, in Mikawa, in 1 542 ; he served with Nobunaga and with Hideyoshi; again fought with the latter, and again made terms with him. His first possessions were Mikawa and Suruga. In the latter province he built a fine castle at Sumpu (now 266 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. called Shidziioka), and made it his residence for many years. He seems to have had little to do with the Corean expedition. While busy in building Yedo in 1598, he received news of the taiko's sick- ness, attended his death-bed, and was urged to swear to protect the interests of Hideyori, then six years old. He evasively declined. The prospects of the boy were not very fine. In the first place, few people believed him to be the son of the taiko. In the second place, the high-spirited lords and nobles, who prided themselves on their blood and lineage, detested Hideyoshi as an upstart, and had been kept in curb only by his indomitable will and genius. They were still more incensed at the idea of his son Hideyori, even if a true son, succeed- ing. Again: Hidenobu, the nephew of Nobunaga, was living, and put in a claim for power. His professed conversion to Christianity gave him a show of support among the Christian malcontents. As for lyeyasu, he was suspected of wishing to seize the military power of the whole empire. The strong hand of the taiko was no longer felt. The abandonment of the Corean invasion brought back a host of men and leaders, flushed with victory and ambition. Differences sprung up among the five governors. With such elements at work thousands of men, idle, to whom war was pastime and delight, princes eager for a fray in which land was the spoil, more than one man aspir- ing to fill the dead master's place only a spark was needed to kindle the blaze of war. The governors suspected lyeyasu. They began to raise an army, lyeyasu was not to be surprised. He followed the example of his rivals, and watched. I shall not tax the patience of the reader to fol- low through the mazes of the intricate quarrels which preceded the final appeal to arms. Suffice to say, that after the seizure and reseiz- ure of the citadel of Ozaka and the burning of the taiko's splendid palace in Fushimi, the army of the league and the army of lyeyasu met at Sekigahara (plain of the barrier), in Omi, near Lake Biwa. By this battle were decided the condition of Japan for over two centuries, the extinction of the claims of the line of Nobunaga and Hideyoshi, the settlement of the Tokugawa family in hereditary suc- cession to the shogunate, the fate of Christianity, the isolation of Ja- pan from the world, the fixing into permanency of the dual system and of feudalism, the glory and greatness of Yedo, and peace in Japan for two hundred and sixty-eight years. In the army of the league were the five governors appointed by the taiko, and the lords and vassals of Hideyoshi, and most of the generals IY&YASU, THE FOUNDER OF YEDO. 267 and soldiers who had served in the Corean campaigns. Among them were the clans of Satsuma, Choshiu, Uyesugi, and Ukita, with the famous Christian generals, Konishi and Ishida. This army, one hun- dred and eighty thousand strong, was a heterogeneous mass of veter- ans, acting under various leaders, and animated by various interests. As the leaders lacked unity of purpose, so the army was made the vic- tim of discordant counsels and orders. On the other hand, the army of one man, lyeyasu, had one soul, one discipline, and one purpose. The Castle of Gif u, in Mino, was captured by one of his captains. On the 1st of October, 1600, lyeyasu marched from Yedo over the To- kaido with a re-enforcement of thirty thousand troops. His standard was a golden fan and a white flag embroidered with hollyhocks. The diviners had declared "the road to the West was shut." lyeyasu answered, "Then I shall open it by knocking." On the thirteenth day he arrived at Gifu, where he effected a junction with his main body. Some one offered him a persimmon (ogaki). He said, as it fell in his hand, " Ogaki waga te ni otsuru " (" Ogaki has fallen into my hand "). . He threw it down, and allowed his attendants to eat the good-omened and luscious pieces. The battle-field at Sekigahara is an open, rolling space of ground, lying just inside the eastern slope of hills on the west wall of Lake Biwa, and part of the populous plain drained by the Kiso gawa, a branch of which crosses the field and winds round the hill, on which, at that time, stood a residence of the Portuguese missionaries. The Nakasendo,* one of the main roads between Yedo and Kioto, enters from Omi, and bisects the field from west to east, while from the north- west, near the village of Sekigahara, the road enters from Echizen. By * The Nakasendo (Central Mountain Road) is three hundred and eighty-one miles long. It begins at the Bridge of Sanjo, over the river at Kioto, and ends at Nihon Bridge in Tokio. It was used, in part, as early as the second century, but was more fully opened in the early part of the eighth century. It passes through Omi, Mino, Shinano, Kodzuke", terminating in Musashi. It can be easily trav- ersed in fourteen days ; but the tourist who can understand and appreciate all he sees would be reluctant to perform the tour, if for pleasure, in less than a month. There are on the route nine toge (mountain passes). It carries the trav- eler through the splendid scenery of Shinano, which averages twenty-five hun- dred feet above the sea-level, along Lake Biwa, and nearly its whole length is classic ground. The Nakasendo is sometimes called the Kisokaido. An excel- lent guide-book, in seven volumes, full of good engravings, published in 1805, called Kisoji Meisho Dzuye~ (" Collection of Pictures of Famous Places on the Na- kasendo"), furnishes the information that makes a sight of the famous places very enjoyable. The heights of the toge are as follows : 620, 2150, 3060, 4340, 3680, 5590, 3240, and 4130 feet, respectively. 268 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. this road the writer, in 1872, came to reach the classic site and study the spot around which cluster so many stirring memories. The lead- ers of the army of the league, having arranged their plans, marched out from the Castle of Ogaki at early morn on the fifteenth day of the Ninth month. They built a fire on a hill overlooking the narrow path, to guide them as they walked without keeping step. It was raining, and the armor and clothes of the soldiers were very wet. At five o'clock they reached the field, the Satsuma clan taking up their position at the foot of a hill facing east. Konishi, the Christian hero of Corea, commanded the left centre, Ishida the extreme left. Four famous commanders formed, with their corps, the right wing. Re- serves were stationed on and about the hills facing north. The cav- alry and infantry, according to the Guai Shi figures, numbered one hundred and twenty-eight thousand. At early morn of the same day one of the pickets of lyeyasu's out- posts hastened to the tent of his general and reported that all the en- emy had left the Castle of Ogaki. Other pickets, from other points, announced the same reports simultaneously. lyeyasii, in high glee, exclaimed, " The enemy has indeed fallen into my hand." He order- ed his generals to advance and take positions on the field, himself leading the centre. His force numbered seventy-five thousand. This was the supreme moment of lyeyasii's life. The picture as given us by native artist and tradition is that of a medium-sized and rotund man, of full, round, and merry face, who loved mirth at the right time and place, and even when others could not relish or see its appropriateness. Of indomitable will and energy, and having a gen- ius for understanding men's natures, he astonished his enemies by ce- lerity of movement and the promptitude with which he followed up his advantages. Nevertheless, he was fond of whims. One of these was to take a hot bath before beginning a battle ; another was to is- sue ambiguous orders purposely when he wished to leave a subordi- nate to act according to his own judgment. On the present occasion, his whim was to go into battle with armor donned, but with no hel- met on, knotting his handkerchief over his bare forehead. A dense fog hung like a pall over the battle-field, so that one could not see far- ther than a few feet. The two armies, invisible, stood facing each other. However, lye- yasu sent an officer with a body of men with white flags, who ad- vanced six hundred feet in front of the main army, to prevent surprise. At eight o'clock the fog lifted and rolled away, and the two hosts de- IYEYASU, THE FOUNDER OF YEDO. 269 scried each other. After a few moments' waiting, the drums and conchs of the centre of each army sounded, and a sharp fi^e of match- locks and a shower of arrows opened the battle. The easterners at first wavered, and till noon the issue was doubtful. Cannon were used during the battle, but the bloodiest work was done with the sword and spear. One of the corps in the army of the league deserted and joined the side of lyeyasu. At noon, the discipline and unity of the eastern army and the prowess and skill of lyeyasu triumphed. Ordering his conch-blowers and drummers to beat a final charge, and the reserves having joined the main body, a charge was made along the whole line. The enemy, routed, broke and fled. Nearly all the wounded, and hundreds of unscathed on the battle-field, committed hara-kiri in order not to survive the disgrace. The pursuers cut off the heads of all overtaken, and the butchery was frightful. The grass was dyed red, and the moor became literally, not only an Aceldama, but a Golgotha. According to the Guai Shi's exaggerated figures, forty thousand heads were cut off. Of the Eastern army four thousand were slain, but no general was killed. The soldiers assembled, accord- ing to custom, after the battle in the centre of the field, to show their captives and heads. On this spot now stands a memorial mound of granite masonry within a raised earthen embankment, surrounded and approached from the road by rows of pine-trees. On the Kioto side of the village, near the shrine of Hachiman, may be seen a kubidzuka (barrow, or pile of heads), the monument of this awful slaughter, and one of the many such evidences of former wars which careful travelers in Japan so often notice. lyeyasu went into the fight bare-headed. After the battle he sat down upon his camp-stool, and ordered his' helmet to be brought. All wondered at this. Donning it with a smile, and fastening it securely, he said, quoting the old proverb, "After victory, knot the cords of your helmet." The hint was taken and acted upon. Neither rest nor negligence was allowed. The Castle of Hikone, on Lake Biwa, was immediately invested and captured. Ozaka was entered in great triumph. Fushimi and Kioto were held ; Chdshiu and Satsuma yielded. Konishi and Mitsuda were executed on the execution - ground in Kioto. The final and speedy result was that all Japan submitted to the hero who, after victory, had knotted the cords of his helmet. 18 270 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XXVII. THE PERFECTION OF DUARCHT AND FEUDALISM. WE have traced the rise and fall of no fewer than six families that held governing power in their persons or in reality. These were in succession the Sugawara, Fujiwara, Taira, Minamoto, Hojo, and Ashi- kaga. The last half of the sixteenth century witnessed the rise, not of great families, but of individuals, the mark of whose genius and en- ergy is stamped upon Japanese history. These three individuals were Nobunaga, Hideyoshi, and lyeyasu. Who and what were they ? Nobunaga was one of many clan-leaders who, by genius and dar- ing, rose above the crowd, and planned to bring all the others in sub- jection to himself, that he might rule them in the mikado's name. From having been called Balca Dono (Lord Fool) by his enemies, he rose to be Nai Dai Jin, and swayed power equal to a shogun, but he never received that name or honor ; for not being a Minamoto, he was ineligible. But for this inviolable precedent, Nobunaga might have be- come Sei-i Tai Shogun, and founded a family line as proud and pow- erful as that of the Tokugawas of later time. Who was Hideyoshi? This question was often asked, in his own time, by men who felt only too keenly what he was. This man, who manufactured his own ancestry on paper, was a parvenu from the peasant class, who, from grooming his master's horses in the stable, continued his master's work, as shogun, in the field, and, trampling on all precedent, amazed the Fujiwara peers by getting the office of kuambakii. Who was lyeyasu ? Neither of his two predecessors had Minamoto blood. lyeyasu, though at first an obscure captain under Nobunaga, was of true Genji stock. The blood of mikados, and of the great conquerors of Eastern Japan, was in his veins. He was destined to eclipse even the splendor of his forefathers. He was eligible, by right of descent, to become Sei-i Tai Shogun, or chief of all the daimios. The family of Tokugawa took its name from a place and river in Shimotsuke, near Ashikaga and Nitta which are geographical as THE PERFECTION OF DUARCHT AND FEUDALISM. 27l well as personal names claimed descent from the mikado Seiwa through the Minamoto Yoshiiye, thence through that of Nitta Yoshi- sada. Tokugawa Shiro, the father of lyeyasu, lived in the village of Matsudaira, in Mikawa. lyeyasu always signed the documents sent to foreigners, Minamoto no lyeyasu. As it is the custom in Japan, as in Europe, to name families after places, the name of this obscure village, Matsudaira, was also taken as a family name by nearly all vassals, who held their lands by direct grant from lyeyasu. In 1867, no fewer than fifty-four daimios were holding the name Matsudaira. The title of the daimio in whose capi- tal the writer lived in 1871, was Matsudaira Echizen no Kami. Crest of the Tokugawa Family. The Tokugawa crest was a circle inclosing three leaves of the awoi (a species of mallow, found in Central Japan) joined at the tips, the stalks touching the circle. This gilded trefoil gleamed on the Govern- ment buildings and property of the shogun, and on the official docu- ments, boats, robes, flags, and tombs. On Kaempfer's and Hildreth's books there is printed under it the misleading legend, " Insignia Im- peratoris Japonici." The trefoil flag fluttered in the breeze when Commodore Perry made his treaty under its shadow. To this day many -foreigners suppose it to be the national flag of Japan. It was simply the family crest of the chief daimio in Japan. The imperial court, yearning for peace, and finding in lyeyasu the person to keep the empire in order, command universal obedience, and 272 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. satisfy the bJood requirements of precedent to the office, created him Sei-i Tai Shogun, and it was left to Minamoto Tokugawa lyeyasu to achieve the perfection of duarchy and Japanese feudalism. Let us see how he arranged the chess-board of the empire. There were his twelve children, a number of powerful princes of large landed possessions whom he had not conquered, but conciliated; the lesser daimios, who had joined him in his career ; his own retainers of every grade ; and a vast and miscellaneous array of petty feudal superiors, having grants of land and retinues of from three to one hundred fol- lowers. The long hereditary occupation of certain lands had given the holders a right which even lyeyasu could not dispute. Out of such complexity and chaos, how was such a motley array of proud and turbulent men to be reduced to discipline and obedience ? Upon such a palimpsest, how was an accurate map to be drawn, or a durable legible record to be written? lyeyasu had force, resources, and pa- tience. He was master of the arts of conciliation and of letting alone. He could wait for time to do its work. He would give men the op- portunity of being conquered by their own good sense. Of lyeyasii's twelve children, three daughters married the daimios of Mimasaka, Sagami, and Hida. Of his nine sons, Nobuyasu died before his father became shogun. Hideyasu, his second son, had been adopted by the taiko, but a son was born to the latter. lyeyasu then gave his son the province of Echizen. Hence the Echizen clansmen, as relatives of the shogunal family, were ever their stanchest sup- porters, even until the cannon fired at Fushimi in 1868. Their crest was the same trefoil as that of their suzerain. When Hideyasu was enfeoffed with Echizen, many prominent men and heads of old families, supposing that he would, of course, succeed his father in office, followed him to his domain, and lived there. Hence in Fukui, the capital of Echizen, in which I lived during the year 1871, 1 became acquainted with the descendants of many proud families, whose ancestors had nursed a profound disappointment for over two centuries ; for lyeyasu chose his third son, Hidetada, who had married a daughter of the taiko, to succeed him in the shogunate. Tadayashi, fifth son of lyeyasu, whose title was Matsudaira Satsuma no Kami, died young. At his death five of his retainers disemboweled themselves, that they might follow their young master into the happy land. This is said to be the last instance of the ancient custom of jun-shi (dying with the master), such as we have noticed in a former chapter. During the early and mediaeval centuries occur authentic in- THE PERFECTION OF DUARCHY AND FEUDALISM. 273 stances of such immolation, or the more horrible test of loyalty m the burial of living retainers to their necks in the earth, with only the head above ground, who were left to starve slowly to death. Burying a man alive under the foundations of a castle about to be built or in the pier of a new bridge, was a similar instance of lingering superstitions. In the En Kan (" Mirror of the Military Families of Japan "), a com- plete list of the " Yedo nobility," or clans, no record is given of lye- yasii's sixth and ninth male children. On his three last sons were bestowed the richest fiefs in the empire, excepting those of Satsuma, Kaga, Mutsu, Higo, and a few others all-powerful daimios, whose lands lyeyasu could not touch, and whose allegiance was only secured by a policy of conciliation. These three sons were invested with the principalities of Owari, Kii, and Mito. They founded three families, who were called Gosanke (the three illustrious families), and from these, in case of failure of heirs in the direct line, the shogun was to be chosen. The assessed revenue of these families were 610,500, 555,000, and 350,000 koku of rice, respectively. They were held in great respect, and wielded immense influence. Their yashikis in Yedo were among the largest, and placed in the most conspicuous and com- manding sites of the city. At the tombs of the shoguns at Shiba and Uyeno, the bronze memorial lanterns presented in honor of the de- ceased ruler are pre-eminent above all others for their size and beauty. In the course of history down to 1868, it resulted that the first sev- en shoguns were descendants of lyeyasu in the line of direct heirs.* From the eighth, and thence downward to the sixteenth, or next to the last, the shoguns were all really of the blood of Kii. The Owari fam- ily was never represented on the seat of lyeyasu. It was generally believed, and is popularly stated, that as the first Prince of Mito had * SHOGUNS OF THE TOKUGAWA FAMILY. 1. lyeyasu 1603-1604 2. Hidetada 1605-1622 3. lyemitsu 1623-1649 4. ly^tsuna 1650-1680 5. Tsunayoshi 1681-1708 6. lyenobu 1709-1712 7. Iye*tsugu 1713-1716 8. Yoshimum*... . 1717-1744 9. lydshige" 1745-1762 10. Iy castleg were made, and their pedigrees made out and published ; the councils called Hiojo-sho (Discussion and Decision), and Wakadoshiyori (Assembly of Elders), established, and Corean envoys received. The height of pride and ambition which lyemitsu had already reached is seen in the fact that, in a letter of reply from the bakufu to Corea, the shogun is referred to as Tai Kun (" Tycoon "), a title never conferred by the mikado on any one, nor had lyemitsu any le- gal right to it. It was assumed in a sense honorary or meaningless to any Japanese, unless highly jealous of the mikado's sovereignty, and THE PERFECTION OF DUABCHT AND FEUDALISM. 287 was intended to overawe the " barbarian " Coreans. It is best explain- able in the light of the Virgilian phrase, magna pars fui, or the less dignified " Big Indian I." The building of the fine temples of Toyeizan, at Uyeno, in Yedo, and at Nikko, were completed in lyemitsii's time, he making five jour- neys thither. He died in 1649, after a prosperous rule of twenty-six years, and was buried with his grandfather at Nikko. The successors of lyeyasii, the shoguns of the Tokugawa dynasty, fourteen in all, were, with one exception, buried alternately in the cemeteries of Zozoji and Toyeizan, in the city districts of Shiba and Uyeno. These twin necropolises of the illustrious departed were the chief glories of Yedo, which was emphatically the city of the Toku- gawas. The remains of six of them lie in Uyeno, and six in Shiba, while two are at Nikko. During the summer of 1872, in company with an American friend and three of my brightest students, I made a journey to Nikko, and for nearly a week reveled in its inspiring scenery and solemn asso- ciations. During my three years' residence in Tokio, I visited these twin sacred places many times, spending a half -day at a visit. No one has described these places better than Mr. Mitford, in his " Tales of Old Japan." He says : " It is very difficult to do justice to their beauty in words. I have the memory before me of a place green in winter, pleasant and cool in the hottest summer, of peaceful cloisters, of the fragrance of incense, of the subdued chant of richly robed priests, and the music of bells of exquisite designs, harmonious color- ing, and rich gilding. The hum of the vast city outside is unheard here, lyeyasu himself, in the mountains of Nikko, has no quieter resting-place than his descendants in the heart of the city over which he ruled." Passing through an immense red portal on the north side of Shiba, we enter the precincts of the sacred place through a long, wide ave- nue, lined by overarching firs, and rendered solemnly beautiful by their shade. A runner is usually on hand to conduct visitors to the gate, inside of which a priest is waiting. We enter a pebbled court- yard, in which are ranged over two hundred large stone lanterns. These are the gifts of the fudai daimios. Each lantern is inscribed with the name of the donor, the posthumous title of the deceased sho- gun, the name of the temple at Shiba, and the province in which it is situated, the date of the offering, and a legend, which states that it is reverently offered. On the following page is the reading on one, and will serve as a specimen : 288 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. TO THE ILLUSTRIOUS TEMPLE OF LEARNING* [Posthumous title of the sixth Shogun lyenobul THIS STONE LANTERN, SET UP BEFORE THE TOMB AT THE TEMPLE OF ZOZOJI, IN MUSASHI, IS REVERENTLY OFFERED BY THE RULING DAIMIO, NOBLE OF THE FIFTH RANK, MASUYAMA FUJIWARA MASATO, LORD OF TSUSHIMA, IN THE SECOND YEAR OF THE PERIOD OF STRICT VIRTUE, IN THE CYCLE OF THE WATER DRAGON [1711]. Passing through a handsomely gilt and carved gate-way, we enter another court -yard, the sides of which are gorgeously adorned. Within the area are bronze lanterns, the gift of the Kokushiu daimios. The six very large gilded lanterns standing by themselves are from the Go San Ke, the three princely families, in which the succession to the office of shogun was vested. To the left is a monolith lavatory ; and to the right is a splendid building, used as a depository of sacred utensils, such as bells, gongs, lanterns, etc., used only on matsuri, or festival days. Passing through another handsome gate which eclipses the last in richness of design, we enter a roofed gallery somewhat like a series of cloisters. In front is the shrine, a magnificent specimen of native architecture. Sitting down upon the lacquered steps, we remove our shoes, while the shaven bonze swings open the gilt doors, and reveals a transept and nave, laid with finest white matting, and ceiled in squares wrought with elaborate art. The walls of the transept are arabesqued, and the panels carved with birds and flowers the fauna of Japan, both real and mythical and the various objects in Japanese sacred and legend- ary art. In each panel the subjects are different, and richly repay * The homio, or posthumous titles of thirteen Tokugawa shoguns, are : 1, Great Light of the East ; 2, Chief Virtue ; 3, Illustrious Enterprise ; 4, Strict Holding ; 5, Constant System ; 6, Literary Brightness ; 7, Upholder of the Plan ; 8, Up- holder of Virtue ; 9, Profound Faith ; 10, Steady Brightness ; 11, Learned Rever- ence ; 12, Learned Carefulness ; 13, Rigid Virtue. THE PERFECTION OF DUARCHY AND FEUDALISM. 289 study. The glory of motion, the passionate life of the corolla, and the perfection of nature's colors have been here reproduced in inani- mate wood by the artist. At the extremity of the nave is a short flight of steps. Two massive gilt doors swing asunder at the touch of priestly hands, and across the threshold we behold an apocalypse of splendor. Behind the sacred offertories, on carved and lacquered tables, are three reliquaries rising to the ceiling, and by their outer covering simulating masses of solid gold. Inside are treasured the tablets and posthumous titles of the august deceased. Descending from this sanctum into the transept again, we examine the canonical rolls, bell, book, and candles, drums and musical instruments, with which the Buddhist rites are celebrated and the liturgies read. Don- ning our shoes, we pass up a stone court fragrant with blossoming flowers, and shaded with rare and costly trees of every variety, form, and height, but overshadowed by the towering firs. We ascend a flight of steps, and are in another pebbled and stone-laid court, in which stands a smaller building, called a haiden, formerly used by the living shogun as a place of meditation and prayer when making his annual visit to the tombs of his forefathers. Beyond it is still another flight of stone steps, and in the inclosure is a plain monumental urn, " This is the simple ending to so much magnificence " the solemn application of the gorgeous sermon. The visitor, on entering the cemetery by the small gate to the right of the temple, and a few feet distant from the great belfry, will see three tombs side by side. The first to the left is that of lyenobu, the sixth of the line, who ruled in 1709-1713. The urn and gates of the tomb are of bronze. The tomb in the centre is that of lyeyoshi, the twelfth, who ruled 1838-1854. The third, to the right, is that of lyemochi, the fourteenth shogun, who ruled 1858-1866, and was the last of his line who died in power. From the tomb of lyemochi, facing the east and looking to the left, we may see the tombs of lyetsugu. (1713-1716), the seventh, and of lyeshige (17451762), the ninth, shogun. Descending the steps and reaching the next stone platform, we may, by looking down to the left, see the tombs of a shogun's wife and two of his children. The court -yards and shrines leading to the tombs of lyetsugu and lyeshige are fully as handsome as the others. Hidetada (1606- 1623), the second prince of the line, is buried a few hundred yards south of the other tombs. The place is easily found. Passing down the main avenue, and turning to the right, we have a walk of a fur- 290 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. long or two up a hill, on the top of which, surrounded by camellia- trees, and within a heavy stone palisade, is a handsome octagon edi- fice of the same material. A mausoleum of gold lacquer rests up- right on a pedestal. The tomb, a very costly one, is in a state of perfect preservation. On one side of the path is a curiously carved stone, representing Buddha on his death-bed. The great temple of Zozoji belonged to the Jodo sect, within whose pale the Tokugawas lived and died.* * This splendid temple and belfry was reduced to ashes on the night of Decem- ber 31st, 1874, by a fanatic incendiary. It had been sequestrated by the Imperial Government, and converted into a Shinto miya. On a perfectly calm midnight, .during a heavy fall of snow, the sparks and the flakes mingled together with in- describable effect. The new ytfar was ushered in by a perpendicular flood of dazzling green flame poured up to an immense height. The background of tall crypiomeria trees heightened the grandeur of the fiery picture. As the volatil- ized gases of the various metals in the impure copper sheathing of the roof and sides glowed and sparkled, and streaked the iridescent mass of flame, it afforded a spectacle only to be likened to a near observation of the sun, or a view through a colossal spectroscope. The great bell, whose casting had been superintended by lyemitsu, and by him presented to the temple, had for two hundred years been the solemn monitor, inviting the people to their devotions. Its liquid notes could be heard, it is said, at Odawara. On the night of the fire the old bell-ringer leaped to his post, and, in place of the usual solemn monotone, gave the double stroke of alarm, until the heat had changed one side of the bell to white, the note deepening in tone, until, in red heat, the ponderous link softened and bent, dropping its burden to the earth. It is to be greatly regretted that the once sacred grounds of Shiba groves are now desecrated and common. "Sic transit gloria Tokugawarum" The family of Tokugawa, the city of Yedo, and the institutions of peaceful feudalism took their rise and had their fall together. When the last shogun re- signed in 1868, Yedo became the Tokio, or national capital, and with Old Yedo, feudalism and Old Japan passed away. The desperate efforts afterward made in 1874 at Saga, in Hizen (p. 575), in 1876 at Kumamoto, in Higo (p. 619), and in Sat- suma in 1877 (p. 621), to overthrow the mikado's government, were but the ex- piring throes of feudalism. Old Japan has forever passed away, to live only in art, drama, and literature. The student will find the following monographs val- uable and interesting: "The Streets and Street Names of Yedo," in "Transac- tions of the Asiatic Society of Japan," 1873. " The Tokio Guide," and " Map of Tokio, with Notes Historical and Explanatory ;" Yokohama, 1872. " The Castle of Yedo," by T. R. H. M'Clatchie, a valuable paper read before the Asiatic So- ciety, Dec. 22d, 1877, and printed in the Japan Mail for Jan. 12th, 1878, and in the society's "Transactions" for 1878. Mitford's "Tales of Old Japan." "Chiu- shingura ; or, The Loyal League," a Japanese, Romance (of the 47 Ronins), enrich- ed with native illustrations, notes, and appendix; New York, 1876. "Japanese Heraldry," by T. R. H. M'Clatchie, in Asiatic Society's " Transactions" for 1877. The best glimpse into every-day humble life is afforded in "Our Neighborhood; or, Sketches in the Suburbs of Yedo," by T. A. P. (T. A. Purcell, M.D.); Yoko- hama, 1874. In Alcock's " Three Years in Japan" (New York, Harper & Broth- ers) and Hildredth's " Japan " are also some good pictures as seen by foreign eyes. THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 291 XXVIII. THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN* IT is the popular impression in the United States and in Europe that the immediate cause of the fall of the shogun's Government, the restoration of the mikado to supreme power, and the abolition of the dual and feudal systems was the presence of foreigners on the soil of Japan. No one who has lived in Dai Nippon, and made himself fa- miliar with the currents of thought among the natives, or who has studied the history of the country, can share this opinion. The for- eigners and their ideas were the occasion, not the cause, of the de- struction of the dual system of government, which would certainly have resulted from the operation of causes already at work before the foreigners arrived. Their presence served merely to hasten what was already inevitable. I purpose in this chapter to- expose the true causes of the recent marvelous changes in Japan. These comprise a three-fold political revolution within, a profound alteration in the national policy toward foreigners, and the inauguration of social reforms which lead us to hope that Japan has rejected the Asiatic, and adopted the European, ideal of civilization. I shall attempt to prove that these causes oper- ated mainly from within, not from without ; from impulse, not from impact ; and that they were largely intellectual. The history of Japan, as manifested in the current of events since the advent of Commodore Perry, has its sources in a number of dis- tinct movements, some logically connected, others totally distinct from the rest. These were intended to effect: 1. The overthrow of the shogun, and his reduction to his proper level as a vassal ; 2. The res- toration of the true emperor to supreme power; 3. The abolition of the feu'dal system and a return to the ancient imperial regime; 4. The abolition of Buddhism, and the establishment of pure Shinto as * Reprinted and enlarged from the North American Review of April, 1875. 292 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the national faith and the engine of government. These four move- ments were historically and logically connected. The fifth was the expulsion of the foreign "barbarians," and the dictatorial isolation of Japan from the rest of the world ; the sixth, the abandonment of this design, the adoption of Western civilization, and the entrance of Japan into the comity of nations. The origin of the first and second movements must be referred to a time distant from the present by a century and a half ; the third and fourth, to a period within the past century; the fifth and sixth, to an impulse developed mainly within the memory of young men now living. There existed, long before the advent of Perry, definite conceptions of the objects to be accomplished. These lay in the minds of earnest thinkers, to whom life under the dual system was a perpetual winter of discontent, like snow upon the hills. In due season the spring would have come that was to make the flood. The presence of Perry in the Bay of Yedo was like an untimely thaw, or a hot south-wind in February. The snow melted, the streams gathered. Like houses built upon the sand, the shogunate and the feudal system were swept away. They were already too rotten and worm-eaten to have the great fall which the simile might suggest. The mikado and the ancient ark of state floated into power. Buddhism stood as upon a rock, damaged, but firm. The foreigner, moored to the pile-driven foundations of his treaties, held his own more firmly than -before. The flood in full mo- mentum was swollen by- a new stream and deflected into a new chan- nel. Abandoning the attempt to defy the gravitation of events, to run up the hill of a past forever sloping backward into the impossi- ble, the flood found surcease with the rivers of nations that make the ocean of human solidarity. The chief motors of these movements were intellectual. Neither the impact of foreign cannon-balls at Kagoshima or Shimonoseki (see Appendix), nor the heavy and unjust indemnities demanded from the Japanese, wrought of themselves the events of the last ten years, as foreigners so complacently believe. An English writer resident in Japan concludes his translation of the " Legacy of lyeyasu " by refer- ring to it as the " constitution under which this country [Japan] was governed until the time within the recollection of all, when it gave way to the irresistible momentum of a higher civilization." The translator evidently means that the fall of the dual form of govern- ment and the feudal system was the direct result of contact with the higher civilization of Europe and America. English writers on Japan THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 293 seem to imply that the bombardment of Kagoshima was the para- mount cause that impelled Japan to adopt the foreign civilization. Much, also, has been said and written in praise of Japan for her abolition of the feudal system l>y a " stroke of the pen," and thus u achieving in one day what it required Europe centuries to accom- plish." An outsider, whose knowledge of Dai Nippon is derived from our old text-books and cyclopedias, or from non-resident book-makers, may be so far dazed as to imagine the Japanese demi-gods in state- craft, even as the American newspapers make them all princes. To the writer, who has lived in a daimio's capital before, during, and after the abolition of feudalism, the comparison suggests the reason why the Irish recruit cut off the leg instead of the head of his enemy. Long before its abolition, Japanese feudalism was ready for its grave. The overthrow of the shogun left it a headless trunk. To cut off its legs and bury it was easy, and in reality this was what the mikado's Government did, as I shall show. As it would be vain to attempt to comprehend our own late civil war by beginning at Sumter, or even with the Compromise measures of 1851 ; so one will be misled who, in attempting to understand the Japan of to-day, looks only at events since Perry's time. The roots of the momentous growth of 1868 are to be found within the past centuries. Yoritomo's acts were in reality the culmination of a long series of usurpations, begun by the Taira. Under the plea of military necessity, he had become an arch-usurper. In the period 1184-1199 A.D. began that dual system of government which has been the political puzzle of the world ; which neither Kaempfer, nor the Deshima Hollanders, nor the Portuguese Jesuits seem ever to have fully understood ; which has filled our cyclopedias and school-books with the misleading non- sense about " two emperors," one "spiritual " and the other " secular ;" which led the astute Perry and his successors to make treaties with an underling ; which gave rise to a vast mass of what is now very amus- ing reading, embracing much prophecy, fiction, and lamentations, in the Diplomatic Correspondence from Japan ; and which keeps alive that venerable solecism heard among a few Rip Van Winkles in Ja- pan, who talk, both in Japanese and English, about the " return of the tycoon to power." There never was but one emperor in Japan ; the shogun was a military usurper, and the bombastic title " tycoon " a diplomatic fraud. We have seen how the policy of Yoritomo was continued by the 294 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Ho jo, the Ashikaga, and the Tokugawas, who consummated the per- manent separation of the throne and the camp. The custom of the shoguns going to Kioto to do the mikado homage fell into desuetude after the visit of lyemitsu. The iron-handed rule of the great com- mander at Yedo was felt all over the empire, and after centuries of war it had perfect peace. Learning flourished, the arts prospered. So perfect was the political machinery of the bakufu that the power of the mikado seemed but a shadow, though in reality it was vastly greater than foreigners ever imagined. The dwellings of the two rulers at Yedo and Kioto, of the domi- neering general and the overawed emperor, were typical of their posi- tions. The mikado dwelt, unguarded, in a mansion surrounded by gardens inclosed within a plaster wall, in a city which was the chosen centre of nobles of simple life, highest rank, and purest blood, men of letters, students, and priests, and noted for its classic history and sacred associations, monasteries, gardens, and people of courtly man- ners and gentle life. The shogun lived in a fortified and garrisoned castle, overlooking an upstart city full of arsenals, vassal princes, and military retainers. The feelings of the people found truest expression in the maxim, " The shogun all men fear ; the mikado all men love." The successors of lyeyasii, carrying out his policy, having extermi- nated the " corrupt sect " (Christianity), swept all foreigners out of the empire, and bolting its sea-barred gates, proceeded to devise and execute measures to eliminate all disturbing causes, and fix in eternal stability the peaceful conditions which were the fruit of the toils of his arduous life. They deliberately attempted to prevent Chronos from devouring his children. According to their scheme, the intellect of the nation was to be bounded by the Great Wall of the Chinese classics, while to the hie- rarchy of Buddhism one of the most potent engines ever devised for crushing and keeping crushed the intellect of the Asiatic masses was given the ample encouragement of government example and patron- age. An embargo was laid upon all foreign ideas. Edicts commanded the destruction of all boats built upon a foreign model, and forbade the building of vessels of any size or shape superior to that of a junk. Death was the penalty of believing in Christianity, of traveling abroad, of studying foreign languages, of introducing foreign customs. Be- fore the august train of the shogun men must seal their upper win- dows, and bow their faces to the earth. Even to his tea-jars and cook- ing-pots the populace must do obeisance with face in the dust. To THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 295 study ancient history, which might expose the origin of the shogun- ate, was forbidden to the vulgar, and discouraged among the higher. A rigid censorship dried the life-blood of many a master spirit, while the manufacture and concoction of false and garbled histories which extolled the reigning dynasty, or glorified the dual system of govern- ment as the best and only one for Japan, were encouraged. There were not wanting poets, fawning flatterers, and even historians, who in their effusions styled the august usurper the 0-gimi (Chinese, tai-kun, or "tycoon"), a term meaning great prince, or exalted ruler, and properly applied only to the mikado. The blunders, cruelties, and op- pressions of the Tokugawa rulers were, in popular fiction and drama, removed from the present, and depicted in plots laid in the time of the Ashikagas, and the true names changed. One of the most perfect systems of espionage and repression ever devised was elaborated to fetter all men in helpless subjection to the great usurper. An incred- ibly large army of spies was kept in the pay of the Government. Within such a hedge, the Government itself being a colossal fraud, rapidly grew and flourished public and private habits of lying, and de- ceit in all its forms, until the love of a lie apparently for its own sake became a national habit. When foreigners arrived in the Land of the Gods during the decade following Perry's arrival, they concluded that the lying which was everywhere persistently carried on in the Govern- ment and by private persons with such marvelous facility and unique originality was a primal characteristic of Japanese human nature. The necessity of hoodwinking the prying eyes of the foreigners, lest they should discover the fountain of authority, and the true relation of the shogun, gave rise to the use of official deception that seemed as varie- gated as a kaleidoscope and as regular as the laws of nature. The ma- jority of the daimios who had received lands and titles from the sho- gun believed their allegiance to be forever due to him, instead of to the mikado, a belief stigmatized as rank treason by the students of history. As for the common people, the great mass of them forgot, or never knew, that the emperor had ever held power or governed his people ; and being officially taught to believe him to be a divine per- sonage, supposed he had lived thus from time immemorial. Knowing only of the troubled war times before the "great and good" Tokuga- was, they believed devoutly in the infallibility, paternal benevolence, and divine right of the Yedo rulers. The line of shoguns, founded by lyeyasu, was the last that held, or ever will hold, the military power in Japan. To them the Japanese 296 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. people owe the blessing of nearly two hundred and seventy years of peace. Under their firm rule the dual form of government seemed fixed on a basis unchangeable, and the feudal system in eternal stabili- ty. There did not exist, nor was it possible there should arise, causes such as undermined the feudalism of Europe. The Church, the Em- pire, free cities, industrialism these were all absent. The eight classes of the people were kept contented and happy. A fertile soil and ge- nial clime gave food in unstinted profusion, and thus was removed a cause which is a chronic source of insurrection in portions of China. As there was no commerce, there was no vast wealth to be accumu- lated, nor could the mind of the merchant expand to a limit danger- ous to despotism by fertilizing contact with foreigners. All learning and education, properly so called, were confined to the samurai, to whom also belonged the sword and privilege. -The perfection of the governmental machinery at Yedo kept, as was the design, the daimios poor and at jealous variance with each other, and rendered it impossi- ble for them to combine their power.] No two of them ever were al- lowed to meet in private or to visit each other without spies. The vast army of eighty thousand retainers of the Tokugawas, backed by the following of some of the richest clans, such as Owari, Kii, Mito, and Echizen (see Appendix), who were near relatives of the shogunal family, together with the vast resources in income and accumulation, made it appear, as many believed, that the overthrow of the Tokuga- was, or the bakuf u, or the feudal system, was a moral impossibility. Yet all these fell to ruin in the space of a few months ! The baku- fu is now a shadow of the past. The Tokugawas, once princes and the gentry of the land, whose hands never touched other tools than pen and sword, now live in obscurity or poverty, and by thousands keep soul and body together by picking tea, making paper, or digging the mud of rice-fields they once owned, like the laborers they once despised. Their ancestral tombs at Kuno, Shiba, Uyeno, and Nikko, once the most sacred and magnificently adorned of Japanese places of honor, are now dilapidating in unarrested neglect, dishonor, and de- cay. The feudal system, at the touch of a few daring parvenus, crum- bled to dust like the long undisturbed tenants of catacombs when sud- denly moved or exposed to the light of day. Two hundred and fifty princes, resigning lands, retainers, and incomes, retired to private life in Tokio at the bidding of their former servants, acting in the name of the mikado. They are now quietly waiting to die. They are the " dead facts stranded on the shores of the oblivious years." THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 297 What were the causes of these three distinct results? When be- gan the first gathering of the waters which burst into flood in 1868, sweeping away the landmarks of centuries, floating the old ship of state into power, impelling it, manned with new men and new ma- chinery, into the stream of modern thought, as though Noah's ark had been equipped with engines, steam, and propellers ? To understand the movement, we must know the currents of thought, and the men who produced the ideas. There were formerly many classes of people in Japan, but only three of these were students and thinkers. The first comprised the court nobles, the literati of Kioto ; the second, the priests, who brought into existence that mass of Japanese Buddhistic literature, and origi- nated and developed those phases of the India cultus which have made Japanese Buddhism a distinct product of thought and life among the manifold developments of the once most widely professed religion in the world. This intellectual activity and ecclesiastical growth culminated in the sixteenth century. Since that time Japa- nese thought has been led by the samurai, among whom we may in- clude the priests of Shinto. The modern secular intellectual activity of Japan attained its highest point during the latter part of the last and the first quarter of the present century. Even as far back as the seventeenth century, the students of ancient history began to under- stand clearly the true nature of the duarchy, and to see that the sho- gunate could exist only while the people were kept in ignorance. From that time Buddhism began to lose its hold on the intellect of the samurai and lay educated classes. The revival of Chinese learn- ing, especially the Confucian and Mencian politico - ethics, followed. Buddhism was almost completely supplanted as a moral force. The invasion of Corea was one of the causes tributary to this result, which was greatly stimulated by the presence of a number of refugee schol- ars, who had fled from China on the overthrow of the Ming dynasty. The secondary influence of the fall of Peking and the accession of the Tartars became a parallel to the fall of Constantinople and the dispersion of the Greek scholars through Europe in the thirteenth century. The relation between the sovereign (mikado) and vassal (shdgun) had become so nearly mythical, that most Japanese fathers could not satisfy the innocent and eager questions of their children as to who was sovereign of Japan. The study of the Confucian moral scheme of " The Five Relations " (i. e., sovereign and minister, parent and child, husband and wife, elder and younger brother, and between 298 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. friends), in which the first and great requirement is the obedience of the vassal to his lord, aroused an incoercible desire among the samurai to restore and define that relation so long obscured. This spirit in- creased with every blunder of the bakufu; and when the revolution opened, " the war-cry that led the imperial party to victory was Daigi meibun, or the 'King and the subject;' whereby it was understood that the distinction between them must be restored, and the shogun should be reduced to the proper relation of subject or servant to his sovereign."* The province of Mito was especially noted for the number, ability, and activity of its scholars. In it dwelt the learned Chinese refugees as guests of the daimio. The classic, which has had so powerful an influence in forming the public opinion which now upholds the mi- kado's throne, is the product of the native scholars, who submitted their text for correction to the Chinese scholars. The second Prince of Mito, who was born 1622, and died 1700, is to be considered, as was first pointed out by Mr. Ernest Satow, as " the real author of the movement which culminated in the revolution of 1868." Assembling around him a host of scholars from all parts of Japan, he began the composition of the Dai Nikon Shi, or " History of Japan." It is writ- ten in the purest Chinese, which is to Japan what Latin is to learning in Europe, and fills two hundred and forty-three volumes, or matter about equal to Mr. Bancroft's " History of the United States." It was finished in 1715, and immediately became a classic. Though dil- igently studied, it remained in manuscript, copied from hand to hand by eager students, until 1851, when the wide demand for it induced its publication in print. The tendency of this book, as of most of the many publications of Mito,f was to direct the minds of the people to the mikado as the true and only source of authority, and to point out the historical fact that the shogun was a military usurper. Mito, be- ing a near relative of the house of Tokugawa, was allowed greater lib- erty in stating his views than could have been granted to any other person. The work begun by Mito was followed up by the famous scholar, Rai Sanyo, who in 1827, after twenty years of continuous la- bor, completed his Nikon Guai Shi ("External History of Japan"), in which he gives the history of each of the military families, Taira, Mi- namoto, Ho jo, Ashikaga, etc., who held the governing power from the * Arinori Mori : Introduction to " Education in Japan," p. 26. t See article Japan, Literature of, in the "American Cyclopaedia." THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 299 period of the decadence of the mikados. This work had to pass the ordeal of the censorate at Yedo, and some of the volumes were re- peatedly purged by the censors before they were allowed to be pub- lished. The unmistakable animus of this great book is to show that the mikado is the only true ruler, in whom is the fountain of power, and to whom the allegiance of every Japanese is due, and that even the Tokugawas were not free from the guilt of usurpation. The long peace of two centuries gave earnest patriots time to think. Though the great body of the people, both the governing and the gov- erned classes, enervated by prolonged prosperity and absence of dan- ger, cared for none of these things, the serious students burned to see the mikado again restored to his ancient authority. This motive alone would have caused revolution in due time. They felt that Japan had retrograded, that the military arts had sunk into neglect, that the war spirit slumbered. Yet on all sides the " greedy foreigners " were ey- ing the Holy Country. Already the ocean, once a wall, was a high- way for wheeled vessels. The settlement of California and the Pacif- ic coast made the restless Americans their neighbors on the east, with only a wide steam ferry between. American whalers cruised in Japa- nese waters, and hunted whales in sight of the native coasters. Amer- ican ships repeatedly visited their harbors to restore a very few of the human waifs which for centuries in unintermitted stream had drifted up the Kuro Shiwo and across the Pacific, giving to America wrecks and spoils, her tribes men, her tongues words, and perhaps the civiliza- tion which in Peru and Mexico awoke the wonder and tempted the cupidity of the Spanish marauders (see Appendix). Defying all prec- edent, and trampling on Japanese pride and isolation, the American captains refused to do as the Hollanders, and go to Nagasaki, and ap- peared even in the Bay of Yedo. The long scarfs of coal-smoke were becoming daily matters of familiar ugliness and prognostics of doom. The steam-whistle heard by the junk sailors as potent as the rams' horns of old had already thrown down their walls of exclusion. The "black ships" of the "barbarians" passing Matsumae in one year numbered eighty-six. Russia, on the north, was descending upon Saghalin ; the English, French, Dutch, and Americans were pressing their claims for trade and commerce. The bakufu was idle, making few or no preparations to resist the fierce barbarians. Far-sighted men saw that, in presence of foreigners, a collision between the two centres of government, Yedo and Kioto, would be immediate as it was inevitable. When it should come, in the nature of the case, the sho- 300 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. gunate must fall. The samurai would adhere to the mikado's side, and the destruction of the feudal system would follow as a logical ne- cessity. It was the time of luxury, carousal, and the stupor of licen- tious carnival with most of the daimios, but with others of gloomy forebodings. Another current of thought was flowing in the direction of a re- stored mikadoate. It may be called the revival of the study of pure Shinto, and, in examining the causes of the recent revolution, can not be overlooked. The introduction of Buddhism and Chinese philoso- phy greatly modified or " corrupted " the ancient faith. A school of modern writers has attempted to purge modern Shinto, and present it in its original form. According to this religion, Japan is pre-eminently the Land of the Gods, and the mikado is their divine representative and vicegerent. Hence the duty of all Japanese implicitly to obey him. During the long reign of the shoguns, and of Buddhism, which they favored and professed, few, indeed, knew what pure Shinto was. Its Bible is the Kojild, compiled A.D. 712. Several other works, such as the Nihongi, Manyoshiu, are nearly as old and as valuable in the eyes of Shinto scholars as the Kojiki. They are written in ancient Japanese, and can be read only by special students of the archaic form of the language. The developments of a taste for the study of ancient native literature and for that of history were nearly synchronous. The neglect of pure Japanese learning for that of Chinese had been almost universal, until Keichiu, Kada, and other scholars revived its critical study. The bakufu discouraged all such investigation, while the mikado and court at Kioto lent it all their aid, both moral and, as it is said, "pecuniary. Mabuchi (1697-1769), Motoori (1730-1801), and Hirata (1776-1843), each successively the pupil of the other, are the greatest lights of pure Shinto ; and their writings, which are devoted to cosmogony, ancient history, and language, the true position of the mikado and the Shinto cultus, exerted a lively influence at Kioto, in Mito, in Echizen, Satsuma, and in many other provinces, where a political party was already form- ing, with the intention of accomplishing the abolition of the bakufu and a return to the Osei era. The necessary result of the study of Shinto was an increase of reverence for the mikado. Buddhism, Chi- nese influence, Confucianism, despotism, usurpation, and the bakufu were, in the eyes of a Shintoist, all one and the same. Shinto, the ancient true religion, all which a patriot could desire, good govern- ment, national purity, the Golden Age, and a life best explained by the THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 301 conception of the " millennium " among Christians, were synonymous with the mikado and his return to power. The argumencs of the Shintoists helped to swell the tide that came to its flood at Fushimi. Throughout and after the war of 1868-1870, there were no more bit- ter partisans who urged to the last extremes of logic and severity the issues of the war and the " reformation." It was the study of the lit- erature produced by the Shinto scholars and the historical writers that formed the public opinion that finally overthrew the shogunate, the bakufu, and feudalism. Long before foreigners arrived, the seeds of revolution were above the soil. The old Prince of Mito, a worthy descendant of his illustri- ous ancestor, tired of preaching Shinto and of persuading the shogun to hand over his authority to the mikado, resolved, in 1840, to take up arms and to try the wager of battle. To provide the sinews of war, he seized the Buddhist monasteries, and melted down their enor- mous bronze bells and cast them into cannon. By prompt measures the bakufu suppressed his preparations for war, and imprisoned him for twelve years, releasing him only in the excitement consequent upon the arrival of Perry. Meanwhile Satsuma, Choshiu, and other Southern clans were mak- ing extensive military preparations, not merely to be in readiness to drive out the possible foreign invaders, but, as we now know, and as events proved, to reduce the shogun to his proper level as one of many of the mikado's vassals. ) The ancestors of these most powerful clans had of old held equal rank and power with lyeyasu, until the fortunes of war turned against them. They had been overcome by force, or had sullenly surrendered in face of overwhelming odds. Their adhe- sion to the Tokugawas was but nominal, and only the strong pressure of superior power was able to wring from them a haughty semblance of obedience. They chafed perpetually under the rule of one who was in reality a vassal like themselves. On more than one occasion they openly defied and ignored the bakufu's orders ; and the purpose, scarcely kept secret, of the Satsuma and Choshiu clans was to destroy the shogunate, and acknowledge no authority but that of the mikado. From the Southern clans rose, finally, the voice in council, the secret plot, the coup d'etat, and the arms in the field that wrought the pujr jjose for which Mito labored. Yet they would never have been successful, had not a public sentiment existed to support them, which the historical writers had already created by their writings. The scholars could never have gratified their heart's wish, had not the 20 302 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. sword and pen, brain and hand both equally mighty helped each other. Notably pre-eminent among the Southern daimios, in personal char- acteristics, abilities, energy, and far-sightedness, was the Prince of Satsurna. Next to Kaga, he was the wealthiest of all the daimios (see Appendix). Had he lived, he would doubtless have led the revo- lutionary movement of 1868. Besides giving encouragement to all students of the ancient literature and history, he was most active in developing the material resources of his province, and in perfecting the military organization, so that, when the time should be ripe for the onslaught on the bakufu, he might have ready for the mikado the military provision to make his government a complete success. To carry out his plans, he encouraged the study of the Dutch and English languages, and thus learned the modern art of war and scientific im- provement. He established cannon - foundries and mills on foreign principles. He saw that something more was needed. Young men must visit foreign countries, and there acquire the theory and practice of the arts of war and peace. The laws of the country forbade any subject to leave it, and the bakufu was ever on the alert to catch run- aways. Later on, however, by a clever artifice, a number of the brightest young men, about twenty-seven in number, got away in one vessel to Europe, and, despite the surveillance of the Yedo officials, others followed to England and the United States. Among these young men were some who are now high officials of the Japanese Government. The renown of this prince extended all over the empire, and num- bers of young men from all parts of the country flocked to be hi? pupils or students. Kagoshima, his capital, became a centre of busy manual industry and intellectual activity. Keeping pace with the in- tense energy of mind and hand was the growing sentiment that the days of the bakufu were numbered, that its fall was certain, and that the only fountain of authority was the mikado. The Satsuma samurai and students all looked to the prince as the man for the coming crisis, when, to the inexpressible grief of all, he sickened and died, in 1858. He was succeeded in actual power by Shimadzu Saburo, his younger brother. No master ever left more worthy pupils ; and those most trust- ed and trusting, among many others,were Saigo, Okubo, and Katsii. The mention of these names calls up to a native the most stirring memories of the war. Saigo became the leader of the imperial army. Okubo, the implacable enemy of the bakufu, was the master-spirit in council, THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 303 and the power behind the throne which urged the movement to its logical consequences. At this moment, the annihilator of the Saga rebellion, crowned with diplomatic laurels, and the conqueror of a peace at Peking, he stands leader of the Cabinet, and the foremost man in Japan. Katsu advised the bakufu not to fight Choshiu, and his master to resign his position, thus saving Yedo from destruction. The lesser men of note, pupils of Satsuma, who now hold positions of trust, or who have become disinterested Cincinnati, to show their patriotism, are too many to mention. Familiarity with the facts above exposed will enable one to under- stand the rush of events that followed the arrival of the American en- voy. The bakufu was apparently at the acme of power. The shogun lyeyoshi at Yedo was faineant. The mikado at Kioto, Komei Tenno, father of the present emperor, was a man who understood well his true position, hated the bakufu as a nest of robbers, and all foreigners as unclean beasts. Within the empire, all was ripe for revolution. Beneath the portentous calm, those who would listen could hear the rumble of the political earthquake. From without came puffs of news, like atmospheric pulses portending a cyclone. On that 7th day of July, 1853, the natural sea and sky wearing perfect calm, the magnifi- cent fleet of the " barbarian " ships sailed up the Bay of Yedo. It was the outer edge of the typhoon. The Susquehanna was leading the squadrons of seventeen nations. There was one spectator upon the bluffs at Yokohama who was per- suaded in his own mind that the men who could build such ships as those ; who were so gentle, kind, patient, firm ; having force, yet using it not ; demanding to be treated as equals, and in return dealing with Japanese as with equals, could not be barbarians. If they were, it were better for the Japanese to become barbarous. That man was Katsu, now the Secretary of the Japanese Navy. The barbarian envoy was a strange creature. He was told to leave the Bay of Yedo and go to Nagasaki. He impolitely refused, and staid and surveyed, and was dignified. This was anomalous. Other barbarians had not acted so ; they had quietly obeyed orders. Fur- thermore, he brought letters and presents, all directed " To the Em- peror x>f Japan." The shogun was not emperor, but he must make believe to be so. It would not do to call himself the mikado's general only. This title awed sufficiently at home ; but would the strangers respect it ? A pedantic professor (" not the Prince of Dai Gaku ") in 304 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the Chinese college (Dai Gaku Ko) at Yedo was sent to treat with the barbarian Perry. A chopper of Chinese logic, and a stickler for exact terms, the pedant must, as in duty bound, exalt his master. He inserted, or at least allowed to be used in the treaties the title tai-kun, a purely Chinese word, which in those official documents signified that he was the supreme ruler of all Japan. This title had never been be- stowed upon the shogun by the mikado, nor had it ever been used in the imperial official documents. The bakufu and the pedantic pro- fessor, Hayashi, did not mean to lie to the true sovereign in Kioto. The bakufu, like a frog, whose front is white, whose back is black, could look both ways, and present two fronts. Seen from Kioto, the lie was white ; that is, " meant nothing." Looked at by those unsus- pecting dupes, the barbarians, it was black ; that is, " The august Sov- ereign of Japan," as the preamble of the Perry treaty says. Yet to the jealous emperor and court this white lie was, as ever white lies are, the blackest of lies. It created the greatest uneasiness and alarm. The shogun had no shadow of right to this bombastic figment of authority. It was a new illustration in diplomacy of ^Esop's Fable No. 26. The great Yedo frog puffed itself to its utmost to equal the Kioto ox, and it burst in the attempt. The last carcass of these batrachians in diplomacy was buried in Shidzuoka* a city ninety-five miles south- west of Tokio, in 1868. The writer visited this ancient home of the Tokugawas in 1872, and in a building within a mile of the actual presence of the last and still living " tycoon," and within shouting dis- tance of thousands of his ex - retainers, saw scores of the presents brought by Commodore Perry lying, many of them, in mildew, rust, or neglect. They were all labeled " Presented by the of the United States to the Emperor of Japan." Yet the mikado never saw them. The Japanese excel at a jibe, but when did they perpe- trate sarcasm so huge ? The mikado's government, with Pilate's irony, had allowed the tycoon to keep the presents, with the labels on them ! We may fairly infer that so consummate a diplomatist as Perry, had he understood the true state of affairs, would have gone with his fleet to Ozaka, and opened negotiations with the mikado at Kioto, in- stead of with his lieutenant at Yedo. Perhaps he never knew that he had treated with an underling. The immediate results of the opening of the ports to foreign com- merce in 1859 were the disarrangement of the prices of the necessaries of life, and almost universal distress consequent thereon, much sickness and mortality from the importation of foreign diseases, to which was THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 305 added an exceptional succession of destructive earthquakes, typhoons, floods, fires, and storms. In the midst of these calamities the shogun, lyesada, died. An heir must be chosen. His selection devolved upon the tairo, or regent, li, a man of great ability, daring, and, as his enemies say, of unscrupulous villainy. li,* though socially of low rank, possessed almost supreme power. Ignoring the popular choice of Keiki (the seventh son of the Daimio of Mito), who had been adopted by the house of Hitotsiibashi, he chose the Prince of Kii, a boy twelve years of age. In answer to the indignant protests of the princes of Mito,f Echizen, and Owari, he shut them up in prison, and thus alienated from his support the near relatives of the house of Tokugawa. It was his deliberate intention, say his enemies, to depose the mikado, as the Ho jo did, and set up a boy emperor again. At the same time, all who opposed him or the bakuf u, or who, in either Kioto, Yedo, or elsewhere, agitated the restoration of the mikado, he impoverished, imprisoned, exiled, or beheaded. Among his victims were many noble scholars and patriots, whose fate excited universal pity.J * The premier, li, was the Daimio of Hikone", a castled town and fief on Lake Biwa, in Mino ; revenue, three hundred and fifty thousand koku. He was at the head of the fudai. His personal name was Nawosuke; his title at the emperor's court was kamon no kami head of the bureau of the Ku Nai Sho (imperial house- hold) having in charge the hangings, curtains, carpets, mats, and the sweeping of the palace on state occasions. His rank at Kioto was Chiujo, or "general of the second class." In the bakufu, he was prime minister, or " tairo." He had a son, who was afterward educated in Brooklyn, New York. t It would be impossible in brief space to narrate the plots and counterplots at Yedo and Kioto during the period 1860-1868. As a friendly critic (in The Hiogo News, June 9th, 1875) has pointed out, I allow that the Prince of Mito, while wishing to overthrow the shogunate, evidently wished to see the restoration ac- complished with his son, Keiki, in a post of high honor and glory. "While in banishment, secret instructions were sent from Kioto, which ran thus: "The bakufu has shown great disregard of public opinion in concluding treaties with- out waiting for the opinion of the court, and in disgracing princes so closely al- lied by blood to the shogun. The mikado's rest is disturbed by the spectacle of such misgovernment, when the fierce barbarian is at our very door. Do you, therefore, assist the bakufu with your advice; expel the barbarians; content the mind of the people; and restore tranquillity to his majesty's bosom." Kin&e Shiriaku, p. 11, Satow's translation. This letter was afterward delivered up to the bakufu, shortly after which (September, 1861) the old prince died. The Mito clan was for many years afterward divided into two factions, the "Righteous" and the "Wicked." There is no proof that the Prince of Mito poisoned lyesada, except the baseless guess of Sir Rutherford Alcock, which has a value at par with most of that writer's statements concerning Japanese history. J Among others was Yoshida Shoin, a samurai of Choshiu, and a student of 306 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The mikado being by right the supreme ruler, and the shdgun merely a vassal, no treaty with foreigners could be binding unless signed by the mikado. The shogun or his ministers had no right whatever to sign the treaties. Here was a dilemma. The foreigners were pressing the ratification of the treaties on the bakufu, while the mikado and court as vigorously refused their consent. li was not a man to hesitate. As the native chronicler writes : " He began to think that if, in the pres- ence of these constant arrivals of foreigners of different nations, he were to wait for the Kioto people to make up their minds, some un- lucky accident might bring the same disasters upon Japan as China had already experienced. He, therefore, concluded a treaty at Kana- gawa, and affixed his seal to it, after which he reported the transac- tion to Kioto." This signature to the treaties without the mikado's consent stirred up intense indignation at Kioto and throughout the country, which from one end to the other now resounded with the cry, " Honor the mikado, and expel the barbarian." In the eyes of patriots, the regent was a traitor. His act gave the enemies of the bakufu a legal pretext of enmity, and was the signal of the regent's doom. All over the country thousands of patriots left their homes, declaring their inten- European learning. He was the man who tried to get on board Commodore Perry's ship at Shimoda (Perry's " Narrative," p. 485-488). He had been kept in prison in his clan since 1854. He wrote a pamphlet against the project of taking up arms against the bakufu, for which he was rewarded by the Yedo rulers with his liberty. After li's arbitrary actions, Yoshida declared that the shogunate could not be saved, and must fall. When the shogun's ministers were arresting patriots in Kioto, Yoshida resolved to take his life. For this plot, after detection, he was sent to Yedo in a cage, and beheaded. This ardent patriot, whose memo- ry is revered by all parties, was one of the first far-sighted men to see that Japan must adopt foreign civilization, or fall before foreign progress, like India. The national enterprises now in operation were urged by him in an able pamphlet written before his death. Another victim, a student of European literature, and a fine scholar in Dutch and Chinese, named Hashimoto Sanai, of Fukui, brother of my friend Dr. Hashi- moto, surgeon in the Japanese army, fell a martyr to his loyalty and patriotism. This gentleman was the instrument of arousing an enthusiasm for foreign science in Fukui, which ultimately resulted in the writer's appointment to Fukui. Ha- shimoto saw the need of opening peaceful relations with foreigners, but believed that it could safely be done only under the restored and unified government. Under a system of divided authority, he held that the ruin of Japan would re- sult. Had Perry treated with the mikado, foreign war might possibly have re- sulted, though very probably not. By treating with the counterfeit emperor in Yedo, civil war, foreign hostilities, impoverishment of the country, and national misery, prolonged for years, were inevitable. THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 307 tion not to return to them until the mikado, restored to power, should sweep away the barbarians. Boiling over with patriotism, bands of assassins, mostly ronins, roamed the country, ready to slay foreigners, or the regent, and to die for the mikado. On the 23d of March, li was assassinated in Yedo, outside the Sakurada gate of the castle, near the spot where now stand the offices of the departments of War and Foreign Affairs, and the Gothic brick buildings of the Imperial Col- lege of Engineering. /f Then followed the slaughter of insolent foreign- ers, and in some cases of innocent ones, and the burning of their lega- tions, the chief object in nearly every case bein^ to embroil the baku- fu with foreign powers, and thus hasten its fall. Some of these ama- teurs, who in foreign eyes were incendiaries and assassins, and in the native view noble patriots, are now high officials in the mikado's Government. The prestige of the bakufu declined daily, and the tide of influence and power set in steadily toward the true capital. The custom of the shogun's visiting Kioto, and doing homage to the mikado, after an in- terval of two hundred and thirty years, was revived, which caused his true relation to be clearly understood even by the common people, who then learned for the first time the fact that the rule existed, and had been so long insolently ignored. The Prince of Echizen, by a special and unprecedented act of the bakufu, and in obedience to orders from the Kioto court, was made premier. By his own act, as many believe, though he was most probably only the willing cat's-paw of the South- ern daimios, he abolished the custom of the daimios' forced residence in Yedo. Like wild birds from an opened cage, they, with all their retainers, fled from the city in less than a week. Yedo's glory faded like a dream, and the power and greatness of the Tokugawas came to naught. Few of the clans obeyed any longer the command of the bakufu, and gradually the hearts of the people fell away. " And so," says the native chronicler, "the prestige of the Tokugawa family, which had endured for three hundred years; which had been really more brilliant than Kamakura in the age of Yoritomo on a moonlight night when the stars are shining ; which for more than two hundred and seventy years had forced the daimios to come breathlessly to take their turn of duty in Yedo ; and which had, day and night, eighty thousand vassals at its beck and call, fell to ruin in the space of one morning." The clans now gathered at the true miako, Kioto, which became a scene of gayety and bustle unknown since the days of the Taira, 308 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Ending their allegiance to the bakufu, they began to act either ac- cording to their own will, or only at the bidding of the court. They filled the imperial treasury with gold, and strengthened the hands of the Son of Heaven with their loyal devotion. Hatred of the foreign- er, and a desire to fill their empty coffers with the proceeds of com- merce, swayed the minds of many of them like the wind among reeds. Others wished to open the ports in their fiefs, so as to pocket the prof-- Matsudaira Yosbiuaga, ex-Daimio of Echizen, Chief Minister of State in 1SG2. (From a carte-de-visite presented by him.) its of foreign commerce, which the bakufu enjoyed as its monopoly. A war of pamphlets ensued, some writers attempting to show that the clans owed allegiance to the bakufu ; others condemning the idea as treasonable, and, having the historic facts on their side, proved the mi- kado to be the sole sovereign. The bakufu, acting* upon the pressure of public opinion in Kioto, and in hopes of restoring its prestige, bent all its efforts to close the ports and persuade the foreigners to leave Japan. For this purpose they sent an embassy to Europe. To has- THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 309 ten their steps, the ronins now began the systematic assassination of all who opposed their plans, pillorying their heads in the dry bed of the river in front of the city. As a hint to the Tokugawa " usurpers," they cut off the heads of wooden images of the first three Ashikaga shoguns, and stuck them on poles in public. The ronins were ar- rested ; Choshiu espoused their side, while Aidzu, who was governor of the city, threw them into prison. The mikado, urged by the clam- orous braves, and by kuge who had never seen one of the " hairy for- eigners," nor dreamed of their power, issued an order for their expul- sion from Japan. The Choshiu men, the first to act, erected batteries at Shimonoseki. The bakufu, which was responsible to foreigners, commanded the clan to disarm. They refused, and in July, 1863, fired on foreign vessels. They obeyed the mikado, and disobeyed the sho- gun. During the next month, Kagoshima was bombarded by a Brit- ish squadron. On the 4th of September, the Choshiu cannoneers fired on a bakufu steamer, containing some men of the Kokura clan who were enemies of Choshiu, and who had given certain aid and comfort to foreign ves- sels, and refused to fire on the latter. The Choshiu men in Kioto be- sought the mikado to make a progress to Yamato, to show to the em- pire his intention of taking the field in person against the barbarians. The proposal was accepted, and the preliminaries arranged, when sud- denly all preparations were stopped, Choshiu became an object of blackest suspicion, the palace gates were doubly guarded, the city was thrown into violent commotion ; while the deliberations of the palace ended in the expulsion of Sanjo Saneyoshi (now Dai Jo Dai Jin), Sawa (Minister of Foreign Affairs, 1870-'Yl), and five other court nobles, who were deprived of their rank and titles, while eighteen oth- ers were punished, and all retainers or members of the family of Mori (Choshiu) were peremptorily "forbidden to enter the capital" a phrase that made them outlaws. An army was levied, and the city put in a state of defense. The reason of this was, that the Choshiu men were accused of plot- ting to get possession of the mikado's person, in order to dictate the policy of the empire. The eighteen kuge and the six ringleaders were suspected of abetting the plot. This, and the firing on the steamer containing their envoys, roused the indignation of the bakufu, and the clans loyal to it, especially Aidzu, to the highest pitch. The men of Choshiu, accompanied by the seven kuge, fled, September 30th, 1863, to their province. 310 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Choshiu now became the rendezvous of deserters and ronins from all parts of Japan. In July of the following year, 1864, a body of many hundred of irresponsible men of various clans, calling themselves " Irregulars," arrived in Kioto from the South, to petition the mikado to restore Mori and the seven nobles to honor, and to drive out the barbarians. Aidzu and the shogun's vassals were for attacking these men with arms at once. The mikado, not adopting the views of the petitioners, returned them no answer. On July 30th, the " Irregulars" were increased by many hitherto calm, but now exasperated, Choshiu men, and encamped in battle array in the suburbs, where they were joined, August 15th, by two karos, and two hundred men from Choshiu, sent by Prince Mori to restrain his followers from violence. While thus patiently waiting, a notification that they were to be punished was issued, August 19th, to them by the court, then under the influence of Aidzu, and Keiki was put in command of the army of chastisement. With tears and letters of sorrowful regret to their friends at court, the Choshiu men and the ronins, in a written manifesto vindicated the justness of their cause, swore vengeance against Aidzu, whose troops were encamped in the imperial flower-garden, and then asking pardon of the Son of Heaven " for making a disturbance so near the base of the chariot " (the throne), they accepted the wager of battle, and rushed to the attack. "The crisis had arrived," says the native chronicler, "and the spirit of murder filled and overflowed heaven and earth. The term choteki, which for centuries had been obsolete, now again came into being. Many myriads of habitations were destroyed, and millions of people were plunged into a fiery pit." On the 20th of August, 1864, at day-dawn, the battle began, the Choshiu men advan- cing in three divisions, numbering in all thirteen hundred men, their design being to attack the nine gates of the imperial palace and sur- round the flower-garden. The Tokugawa and Aidzu troops were backed by those of Echizen, Hikone, Kuwana, and others. The bat- tle raged furiously for two days, involving the city in a conflagration, which, fanned by a gale, reduced large quarters of it to a level of ashes. The fighting was by men in armor, equipped mostly with sword, ar- row, cannon, and musket: 811 streets, 27,400 houses, 18 palaces, 44 large and 630 small yashikis, 60 Shinto shrines, 115 Buddhist temples, 40 bridges, 400 beggar's huts, and one eta village were destroyed by the flames; 1216 fire-proof store-houses were knocked to pieces by the cannonading kept up after the battle to prevent the Choshiu men from hiding in them. " The capital, surrounded by a nine-fold circle THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 311 of flowers, entirely disappeared in one morning in the smoke of the flames of a war fire." The homeless city populace fled to the suburbs, dwelling on roofless earth, pestered by the heat and clouds of mos- quitoes, while men in soldiers' dress played the robber without fear or shame. " The Blossom Capital became a scorched desert." The Choshiu were utterly defeated, and driven out of the city. Thirty- seven of them were decapitated in prison. The next month the bakufu begged the imperial court to deprive the Mori family and all its branches of their titles. Elated with suc- cess, an order was issued to all the clans to march to the chastisement of the two provinces of Nagato and Suwo. The Tokugawa intended thus to set an example to the wavering clans, and give proof of the power it still possessed. During the same month, September 5th and 6th, 1864, Shimonoseki was bombarded by an allied fleet bearing the flags of four foreign nations. After great destruction of life and property, the generous victors demanded an "indemnity" of three million Mexican dollars (see Appendix). The brave clan, having de- fied the bakufu at Kioto, dared the prowess of the " civilized world," and stood to their guns at Shimonoseki till driven away by over- whelming numbers of balls and men, now prepared to face the com- bined armies of the shogunate. Then was revealed the result of the long previous preparation in the South for war. The Choshiu clansmen, united and alert, were lightly dressed, armed with English and American rifles, drilled in Eu- ropean tactics, and abundantly provided with artillery, which they fired rapidly and with precision. They had cast away armor, sword, and spear. Choshiu had long been the seat of Dutch learning, and translations of Dutch military works were numerously made and used there. Their disciplined battalions were recruited from the common people, not from the samurai alone, were well paid, and full of enthu- siasm. The bakufu had but a motley, half-hearted army, many of whom, when the order was given to march, straightway fell ill, having no stomach for the fight. Some of the most influential clans declined or refused outright to join the expedition, whose purpose was con- demned by almost all the wisest leaders, notably by Katsii, the sho- gun's adviser. A campaign of three months, in the summer of 1866, ended in the utter and disgraceful defeat of the bakufu, and the triumph of Cho- shiu. The clans not yet in the field refused to go to the front. The prestige of the shogunate was now irretrievably ruined. 312 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The young shogun, worn out with ceaseless anxiety, died at Ozaka, September 19th, 1866. He had secured the mikado's consent to the treaties, on the condition that they should be revised, and that Hiogo should never be opened as a port of foreign commerce. He was suc- ceeded by Keiki, his former rival, who was appointed head of the To- kugawa family by the court October, 1866. On the 6th of January, 1867, he was made shogun. He had repeatedly declined the position. He brought to it numerous private virtues, but only the firmness of a feather for the crisis at hand. The average Japanese lacks the stolid- ity and obstinacy of the Chinaman, and fickleness is supposed to be his chief characteristic. Keiki, as some of his once best friends say, was fickleness personified. If, with the help of counselors, he could make up his mind to one course of action, the keenest observers could never forecast the change liable to ensue when new advisers appeared. It is evident that the appointment of such a man at this crisis served only to precipitate the issue. His popularity at the court most prob- ably arose from the fact that he was opposed to the opening of Hio- go and Ozaka to the foreigners. In October, 1867, the Prince of Tosa openly urged the new shogun to resign ; while many able samurai, Saigo, Okubo, Goto, Kido, Hiro- zawa, Komatsu, backed by such men of rank as Shimadzu Saburo, and the ex-princes of Echizen, Uwajima, Hizen, and Tosa, urged the formation of the Government on the basis of the ante-shogun era pri- or to 1200 A.D. They formed so powerful a combination that on the 9th of November, 1867, the vacillating Keiki, yielding to the force of public opinion, tendered his resignation as Sei-i Tai Shogun. This was a long step toward the ancient regime. Yet, as in Japan, whichever party or leader has possession of the mikado is master of the situation ; and as the Aidzu clan, the most stanchly loyal to the Tokugawa family, kept guard at the gates of the imperial palace, it was still uncertain where the actual power would reside whether in the Tokugawa clan, in the council of daimios, or, where it rightfully belonged, with the imperial court. The influential samurai of Satsu- ma, and Choshiu, and the princes of Tosa, Echizen, and Uwajima were determined not to let the question hang in suspense. Gradually, small parties of the soldiers of the combination assembled in the capital. Saigo and Okubo, Kido, Goto, and Iwakura, were too much in earnest to let the supreme opportunity slip. They began to stir up the court to take advantage of the critical moment, the mikado Komei being dead, and, by a bold coup d'etat, abolish the office of shogun and the THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 313 bakufu, and re-establish the Government on the ancient basis, with the young emperor at the head. On the 3d of January, 1868, the troops of the combination (Satsu- ma, Tosa, Echizen, Aki, and Owari) suddenly took possession of the palace gates. The court nobles hitherto surrounding the boy emper- or were dismissed, and only those favoring the views of the combina- tion were admitted to the palace. The court, thus purged, issued an edict in the name of the mikado, which stated that the government of the country was now solely in the hands of the imperial court. The bakufu and office of shogun were abolished. A provisional govern- ment, with three grades of office, was formed, and the positions were at once filled by men loyal to the new rulers. The family of Mori was rehabilitated, and the seven banished nobles were recalled. Sanjo and Iwakura were made assistants to the supreme administrator, Ari- sugawa Miya, a prince of the blood. The indignation of the retainers of Tokugawa knew no bounds. The vacillating shogun now regretted his resignation, and wished him- self back in power. He left Kioto with the clans still loyal to him, with the professed intention of calming the passions of his followers, but in reality of seizing Ozaka, and blocking up the communications of the Southerners. Shortly after, in Yedo, on the 19th of January, the yashikis of the Satsuma clan were stormed and burned by the bakufu troops. The Princes of Owari and Echizen were sent by the court to invite Keiki to join the new Government, and receive an ap- pointment to office even higher than he had held before. He prom- ised to do so, but no sooner were they gone than he yielded to Aidzu's warlike counsel to re-enter Kioto in force, drive out the " bad counsel- ors of the young emperor," and "try the issue with the sword." He was forbidden by the court to approach the city with a military fol- lowing. Barriers were erected across the two roads leading to the capital, and the Southern clansmen, numbering about two thousand, posted themselves behind them, with artillery. Keiki set out from Ozaka on the evening of the 27th of January, with the Aidzu and Kuwana clans in the front of his following, amounting to over ten, or, as some say, thirty thousand men. At Fushimi his messengers were refused passage through the barriers. The kuan-gun (loyal army, Kioto" forces) fired their cannon, and the war was opened. The sho- gun's followers, by their last move on the political chess-board, had made themselves choteki. Their prestige had flown. The battle lasted three days. In the presence of overwhelming 314 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. forces, the Southern samurai showed not only undaunted valor, but the result of previous years of military training. The battle was not to the strong. It was to the side of intelligence, energy, coolness, and valor. The shogun's army was beaten, and in wild disorder fled to Ozaka, the historic castle of which was burned by the loyal army. The chief, unrecognized, found refuge upon an American vessel, and, reaching Yedo on one of his own ships, sought the seclusion of his Keiki, the last Shogun of Japan. (From a photograph.) castle. His own family retainers and most of the subject clans (fudai), and the daimios of Aidzu, Sendai, and others of the North and East, urged him to renew the fight and restore his prestige. One of his min- isters earnestly begged him to commit hara-kiri, urging its necessity to preserve the honor of the Tokugawa clan. His exhortation being unsuccessful, the proposer solemnly opened his own bowels. With a large army, arsenals, munitions of war, and fleet of ships vastly exceed- ing those of the mikado, his chances of success were very fair. But THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 315 this time the vassal was loyal, the waverer wavered no more. Refus- ing to listen to those who advised war, abhorring the very idea of be- ing a choteki, he hearkened to the counsel of his two highest minis- ters, Katsii and Okubo Ichio, and declaring that he would never take up arms against his lord, the mikado, he retired to private life. The comparison of this man with Washington because he refused to head an army, and thus save the country from a long civil war, does not seem to be very happy, though I have heard it made. Personal- ly, Keiki is a highly accomplished gentleman, though ambitious and weak. Politically, he simply did his duty, and made discretion the better part of valor. It is difficult to see in him any exalted traits of character or evidences of genius ; to Katsii and Okubo is due the last and best decision of his life. Katsii, the old pupil of Satsuma and com- rade of Saigo, had long foreseen that the governing power must and ought of right to revert to the mikado, and, braving odium and assas- sination, he advised his master to resign. The victorious Southerners, led by Saigo, were in the southern suburb of Yedo, waiting to attack the city. To reduce a Japanese city needs but a torch, and the im- patient victors would have left of Yedo little but ashes had there been resistance. Katsii, meeting Saigo, assured him of the submissive tem- per of the shogun, and begged him to spare the city. It was done. The fanatical retainers of Keiki made the temple grounds of Uyeno their stronghold. On the 4th of July they were attacked and routed, and the magnificent temple, the pride of the city, laid in ashes. The theatre of war was then transferred to the highlands of Aidzu at Wakamatsu, and thence to Matsumae and Hakodate in Yezo. Victory everywhere perched upon the mikado's brocade banner. By July 1st, 1869, all vestiges of the rebellion had ceased, and "the empire was grateful for universal peace." The mikado's party was composed of the heterogeneous elements which a revolution usually brings forth. Side by side with high-soul- ed patriots were disreputable vagrants and scalawags of every descrip- tion, ronins, or low, two-swordedmen, jo-i, or " foreigner-haters," " port- closers," and Shinto priests and students. There were a few earnest men whose darling hope was to see a representative government estab- lished, while fewer yet eagerly wished Japan to adopt the civilization of the West, and join the brotherhood of nations. These men had utilized every current and eddy of opinion to forward their own views and achieve their own purpose. The object common to all was the exaltation of the mikado. The bond of union which held the major- 316 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ity together was a determination to expel the foreigners or to revise the treaties so as to expunge the odious extra-territoriality clause the thorn that still rankles in the side of every Japanese patriot. For eighteen months the energies of the jo-i t or " foreigner-haters," were utilized in the camp in fighting the rebellious Tokugawa retainers. The war over, the trials of the new Government began. The low, two-s worded men clamored for the fulfillment of the promise that the foreigners should be expelled from Japan and the ports closed. The Shinto officials induced the Government to persecute the native " Christians," demanded the abolition of Buddhism, the establishment of Shinto by edict, and the restoration of the Government on a purely theocratic basis, and echoed the cry of " Expel the barbarian." Even with the majority of the high officials there was no abandonment of the purpose to expel foreigners. They intended to do it, but the wisest of them knew that in their present condition they were not able. Hence they simply wished to bide their time, and gain strength. It was a matter of difficulty to keep patient thousands of swaggering braves whose only tools for earning bread were their swords. The first attention was given to reorganizing a national army, and to devel- oping the military resources of the empire. All this was done with the cherished end in view of driving out the aliens, closing the ports of commerce, and bringing back the days of dictatorial isolation. The desire for foreign civilization existed rather among the adherents of Tokugawa, among whom were many enlightened gentlemen, besides students and travelers, who had been to Europe and America, and who wished their country to take advantage of the inventions of the for- eigners. Yet many of the very men who once wished the foreigners expelled, the ports closed, the treaties repudiated, who were jo-i, or " foreigner-haters," and who considered all aliens as only a few degrees above the level of beasts, are now members of the mikado's Govern- ment, the exponents of advanced ideas, the defenders and executors of philo-Europeanism, or Western civilization. What caused the change that came over the spirit of their dreams ? Why do they now preach the faith they once destroyed ? "It was the lessons taught them at Kagoshima and Shimonoseki," say some. " It was the benefits they saw would arise from commerce," say others. " The child of the revolution was changed at nurse, and the Govern- ment now in power was put into its cradle by mistake or design," say others. Cannon-balls, commerce, and actual contact with foreigners doubt THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 317 less helped the scales to fall from their eyes, but these were helps only. All such means had failed in China, though tried for half a century. They would have failed in Japan also. It was an impulse from with- in that urged the Japanese to join the comity of nations. The noblest trait in the character of a Japanese is his willingness to change for the better when he discovers his wrong or inferiority. This led the leaders to preach the faith they once destroyed, to destroy the faith they once preached. The great work of enlightening the mikado's followers was begun by the Japanese leaders, Okubo, Kido, Goto, all of them students, both of the ancient native literature and of foreign ideas. It was fin- ished by Japanese writers. The kuge, or court nobles, wished to ig- nore the existence of foreigners, drive them out of the country, or worry them by appointing officers of low rank in the Foreign Office, then an inferior sub -bureau. Okubo, Goto, and Kido promptly op- posed this plan, and sent a noble of the imperial court, Higashi Kuze, to Hiogo with Datte, Prince of Uwajima (see Appendix), to give the mikado's consent to the treaties, and to invite the foreign ministers to an audience with the emperor in Kioto. The British and Dutch min- isters accepted the invitation ; the others declined. The train of the British envoy was assaulted by fanatic assassins, one resisting bullet, lance, and sabre of the English dragoons, only to lose his head by the sweep of the sword of Goto, who rode by the side of the foreigners, determined to secure their audience of the mikado. At first sight of the strangers, the conversion of the kuge was thorough and instan- taneous. They made friends with the men they once thought were beasts. In a memorial to the mikado, Okubo further gave expression to his ideas in a memorial that astounded the court and the wavering dai- mios, as follows : " Since the Middle Ages, our emperor has lived be- hind a screen, and has never trodden the earth. Nothing of what went on outside his screen ever penetrated his sacred ear ; the imperial residence was profoundly secluded, and, naturally, unlike the outer world. Not more than a few court nobles were allowed to approach the throne, a practice most opposed to the principles of heaven. Al- though it is the first duty of man to respect his superior, if he reveres that superior too highly he neglects his duty, while a breach is created between the sovereign and his subjects, who are unable to convey their wants to him. This vicious practice has been common in all ages. But now let pompous etiquette be done away with, and simplicity become 21 318 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE, our first object. Kioto is in an out-of-the-way position, and is unfit to be the seat of government. Let his majesty take up his abode tem- porarily at Ozaka, removing his capital hither, and thus cure one of the hundred abuses which we inherit from past ages." The memorial produced an immediate and lively effect upon the court. The young mikado, Mutsuhito, came in person to the meet- ings of the council of state, and before the court nobles and daimios took an oath, as an actual ruler, promising that " a deliberative assem- bly should be formed ; all measures be decided by public opinion ; the uncivilized customs of former times should be broken through ; and the impartiality and justice displayed in the workings of nature be adopted as a basis of action ; and that intellect and learning should be sought for throughout the world, in order to establish the foundations of the empire." This oath is the basis of the new Government. These promises are either the pompous bombast of a puppet or the pregnant utterances of a sovereign, who in magnanimity and w r isdom aspires to lead a nation into a higher life. That such words should in that sublime moment fall from the lips of the chief of an Oriental despotism excites our sympathetic admiration. They seem a sublime echo of affirmation to the prophetic question of the Hebrew seer, " Can a nation be born at once ?" They sound like a glad harbinger of a new and higher national development, such as only those with the strongest faith in humanity believe possible to an Asiatic nation. As matter of fact, the words were uttered by a boy of sixteen years, who scarcely dreamed of the tremendous significance of the language put into his mouth by the high-souled parvenus who had made him em- peror de facto, and who were resolved to have their ideas made the foundations of the new Government. The result of the memorial, and the ceaseless activity of Okubo and his colleagues, was the ultimate removal of the Government to Yedo. It is not easy for a foreigner to comprehend the profound sensation produced throughout the em- pire when the mikado left Kioto to make his abode in another city. During d millennium, Kioto had been the capital of Dai Nippon, and for twenty-five centuries, according to popular belief, the mikados had ruled from some spot near the site of the sacred city. A band of fanatics, fired with the Yamato damashi, religiously opposed, but in vain, his journey eastward. To familiarize his people with the fact that Yedo was now the capital, its name was changed to Tokio, or Eastern Capital. Then was further developed the impulse to enter the path of mod- THE BE CENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 319 ern civilization. While Okubo, Kido, Goto, Iwakura, Sanjo, Itagaki, Oki, and the rising officials sought to purge and strengthen the po- litical system, the work of enlightening the people and the upstarts raised suddenly to power was done by Japanese writers, who for the first time dared, without suffering death, to tell their thoughts. A large measure of freedom of the press was guaranteed ; newspapers sprung up in the capital. Kido, one of the prime movers and leaders, himself established one of the most vigorous, still in existence- the Shimbun Zasshi. The new Government acted with clemency equal to the standard in Christian nations, and most generously to the literary and scientific men among the retainers of the Tokugawas, and invited them to fill posts of honor under the Government. They sent none of the political leaders to the blood-pit, but by the gracious favor of the mikado these were pardoned, and the conciliation of all sections of the empire wisely attempted. Many of those who fought the loyal forces at Fushimi, Wakamatsu, and Hakodate are now the earnest advocates of the restoration and its logical issues. Even Enomoto is envoy of the court of Tokio to that of St. Petersburg. All of the defeated daimios were restored to rank and income. A complete and happy reunion of the empire was the result. Some of the scholars declined office until the time when even greater freedom of speech and pen was permitted. There were men who in the old days, braving odium, and even death, at the hands of the bakufu, had begun the study of the English and Dutch languages, and to feed their minds at the Occidental fount- ains. They were obliged to copy their books in manuscript, so rare were printed copies. Later on, the bakufu, forced by necessity to have interpreters and men skilled in foreign arts and sciences, chose these students, and sent them abroad to study. When the civil war broke out, they were recalled, reaching Japan shortly after the fighting be- gan. They returned, says one of their number, " with their faces flushed with enthusiastic sympathy with the modern civilization of Christendom." Then they began the preparation of those original works and translations, which were eagerly read by the new men in power. Edition after edition was issued, bought, read, lent, and circu- lated. In these books the history of the Western nations was faith- fully told ; their manners and customs and beliefs were explained and defended ; their resources, methods of thought and education, morals, laws, systems of governments, etc., were described and elucidated. Notably pre - eminent among these writers was the school - master, Fu- 320 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. kuzawa. Western ideas were texts : lie clothed them in Japanese words. He further pointed out the weaknesses, defects, and errors of his countrymen, and showed how Japan, by isolation and the false pride that scorned all knowledge derived from foreigners, had failed to advance like Europe or America, and that nothing could save his country from conquest or decay but the assimilation of the ideas which have made the foreigners what they are. There is scarcely a prominent or rising man in Japan but has read Fukuzawa's works, and gratefully acknowledges the stimulus and lasting benefit derived from them. Many of the leaders of the movement toward restoration, who joined it with the cry, " Expel the foreigners," found themselves, after perusal of these works, " unconsciously involved in the advance, with- out wish or invitation," and utterly unable to explain why they were in the movement. Fukuzawa has declined every one of the many flat- tering offers of office and power under the Government, and still de- votes himself to his school and the work of teaching and translation, consuming his life in noble drudgery. He has been the interpreter of Western ideas and life, caring little about the merely external garnish and glitter of civilization. His books on " Western Manners and Cus- toms," and his volumes of tracts and essays, have had an enormous circulation. Nakamura, also a school-master, has, besides writing original tracts, translated a considerable body of English literature, John Stuart Mill's " Essay on Liberty," Smiles's " Self-help," and a few smaller works on morals and religion, which have been widely read. His memorial on the subject of Christianity and religious liberty made a very profound impression upon the emperor and court, and gave a powerful check to the ultra Shintoists. Mori, Mitsukuri, Kato, Nishi, Uchida, Uriu, have also done noble service as authors and translators. It is the writer's firm belief, after nearly four years of life in Japan, mingling among the progressive men of the empire, that the reading and study of books printed in the Japanese language have done more to transform the Jap- anese mind, and to develop an impulse in the direction of modern civ- ilization, than any other cause or series of causes. During the past decade the production of purely Japanese literature has almost entirely ceased. A few histories of recent events, a few war-poems and pamphlets urging the expulsion of the barbarians, were issued previous to the civil war ; but since then almost the entire lit- erary activity has been exhibited in translations, political documents, memoirs of "mikado-reverencers" who had been martyrs to their faith, THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 321 and largely in the expression of Western ideas adapted to the under- standing of the Japanese. The war was ended by July, 1870. Rewards were distributed; and the Government was still further consolidated by creating definite offices, and making all titles, which had been for nearly six centuries empty names, to have reality and power. There was still, however, much dead wood in the ship of state, a condition of chronic strain, a dangerous amount of friction in the machinery, wrangling among the crew, and a vast freight of bad cargo that the purest patriots saw the good ship must " unload," if she was to be saved. This unloading was accomplished in the usual way, by dismissing hundreds of officials one day, and re-appointing on the next only those favorable to the desired policy of the mikado. Furthermore, it became daily more certain that national develop- ment and peace could never be secured while the feudal system ex- isted. The clan spirit which it fostered was fatal to national unity. So long as a Japanese meant by " my country " merely his own clan, loyalty might exist, but patriotism could not. The time seemed ripe for action. The press was busy in issuing pamphlets advocating the abolition of feudalism. Several of the great daimios, long before ready for it, now openly advocated the change. The lesser ones knew bet- ter than to oppose it. The four great clans, Satsuma, Choshiu, Tosa, and Hizen (see Appendix), were the pioneers of the movement. They addressed a memorial to the throne, in which it was argued that the daimios' fiefs ought not to be looked on as private property, but as the mikado's own. They offered to restore the registers of their clans to the sovereign. These were the external signs of the times. Back of these, there were at least three men who were determined to sweep feudalism away utterly. They were Kido, Okubo, Iwakura. The first step was to abolish the appellation of court noble (kuge) and territo- rial prince (daimio), and to designate both as kuazoku, or noble fami- lies. The former heads of clans were temporarily appointed chiji (governors of their clans). This smoothed the way. In September, 1871, the edict went forth calling the daimios to Tokio to retire to pri- vate life. With scarcely an exception, the order was quietly obeyed. The men behind the throne in Tokio were ready and even willing to shed blood, should their (the mikado's) commands be resisted, and they expected to do it. The daimios who were hostile to the measure knew too well the character of the men who framed the edict to resist it. The writer counts among the most impressive of all his life's ex- 322 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. periences that scene in the immense castle hall of Fukui, when the Daimio of Echizen bid farewell to his three thousand two-sworded re- tainers, and, amidst the tears and smiles and loving farewells of the city's populace, left behind him lands, revenue, and obedient followers, and retired to live as a private gentleman in Tokio. Japan's feudalism began nearly eight centuries ago, and existed un- til within the year 1871. It was not a tower of strength in its last days. Long before its fall, it was an empty shell and a colossal sham. Feudalism is only alive and vigorous when the leaders are men of brain and action. Of all the daimios, there were riot ten of any per- sonal importance. They were amiable nobodies, great only in stom- ach or silk robes. Many were sensualists, drunkards, or titled fools. The real power in each clan lay in the hands of able men of inferior rank, who ruled their masters. These are now the men who compose the present Government of Japan. They rose against the shogun, overthrew him, sent him to private life, and then compelled their mas- ters, the daimios, to do likewise. They hold the emperor, and carry on the government in his name. The mikado, however, is much more of a ruler than "his faineant ancestors. Still, the source of government is the same. In 1872, by actual count, four-fifths of the men in the higher offices were of the four great clans of Choshiu, Satsuma, Hizen, and Tosa. A like census in 1876 would show a larger proportion of officials from the northern and central provinces. Nevertheless, this is not sectionalism. The ablest men rise to office and power in spite of the locality of their birth. Natural ability asserts its power, and in the Cabinet and departments are now many of the old bakufu adher- ents, even Katsu, Okubo Ichio, Enomoto, and several scions of the house of Tokugawa. The power has been shifted, not changed, and is displayed by moving new machinery and doing new work. Who are now, and who have been, the actual leaders in Japan since 1868? They are Okubo, Kido, Iwakura, Sanjo, Goto, Katsu, Soyejima, Okurna, Oki, Ito, and many others, of whom but two or three are kuge, while none is a daimio. Almost all were simple samurai, or retainers of the territorial nobles. The objects of the revolution of 1868 have been accomplished. The shogunate and the feudal system are forever no more. The mi- kado is now the restored and beloved emperor. The present per- sonage, a young man of twenty-four years of age, has already shown great independence and firmnness of character, and may in future be- come as much the real ruler of his people as the Czar is of his. The THE RECENT REVOLUTIONS IN JAPAN. 323 enterprise of establishing Shinto as the national faith has failed vastly and ignominiously, though the old Shinto temples have been purged and many new ones erected, while official patronage and influence give the ancient cult a fair outward show. Buddhism is still the re- ligion of the Japanese people, though doubtless on the wane. To summarize this chapter : the shogun was simply one of the many vassals of the mikado of comparatively inferior grade, and historically a usurper; the term "tycoon" was a diplomatic fraud, a title to which the shogun had, officially, not the shadow of right ; the foreign diplo- matists made treaties with one who had no right whatever to make them ; the bakuf u was an organized usurpation ; the stereotyped state- ments concerning a " spiritual " and a " secular " emperor are literary fictions of foreign book-makers ; feudalism arose upon the decadence of the mikado's power ; it was the chief hinderance to national unity, and was ready for its fall before the shock came ; in all Japanese his- tory the reverence for the mikado's person and the throne has been the strongest national trait and the mightiest political force ; the ba- kufu exaggerated the mikado's sacredness for its own purposes; the Japanese are impressible and ever ready to avail themselves of what- ever foreign aids or appliances will tend to their own aggrandizement : nevertheless, there exists a strong tendency to conserve the national type, pride, feelings, religion, and equality with, if not superiority to, all the nations of the world ; the true explanation of the events of the last eight years in Japan is to be sought in these tendencies and the internal history of the nation ; the shogun, bakuf u, and perhaps even feudalism would have fallen, had foreigners never landed in Japan; the movement toward modern civilization originated from within, and was not simply the result of foreign impact or pressure ; the work of enlightenment and education, which alone could assure success to the movement, was begun and carried on by native students, statesmen, and simple patriots. A mighty task awaited the new Government after the revolution of 1868. It was to heal the disease of ages ; to uproot feudalism and sectionalism, with all their abuses ; to give Japan a new nationality ; to change her social system ; to infuse new blood into her veins ; to make a hermit nation, half blinded by a sudden influx of light, competitor with the wealthy, powerful, and aggressive nations of Christendom. It was a problem of national regeneration or ruin. It seemed like en- tering into history a second time, to be born again. What transcendent abilities needed for such a task ! What national 324 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. union, harmony in council, unselfish patriotism required ! What chief, towering above his fellows, would arise, who by mighty intellect and matchless tact could achieve what Yoritomo, or the Taiko, or lyeyasu himself, or all, would be helpless to perform ? At home were the stol- idly conservative peasantry, backed by ignorance, superstition, priest- craft, and political hostility. On their own soil they were fronted by aggressive foreigners, who studied all Japanese questions through the spectacles of dollars and cents and trade, and whose diplomatists too often made the principles of Shylock their system. Outside, the Asiatic nations beheld with contempt, jealousy, and alarm the depart- ure of one of their number from Turanian ideas, principles, and civili- zation. China, with ill -concealed anger, Corea with open defiance, taunted Japan with servile submission to the " foreign devils." For the first time, the nation was represented to the world by an embassy at once august and plenipotentiary. It was not a squad of petty officials or local nobles going forth to kiss a toe, to play the part of figure-heads or stool-pigeons, to beg the aliens to get out of Japan, to keep the scales on foreign eyes, to buy gun-boats, or to hire employes. A noble of highest rank and blood of immemorial an- tiquity, vicar of majesty and national government, with four cabinet ministers, set out to visit the courts of the fifteen nations having treaties with Dai Nippon. These were Iwakura Tomomi, Okubo To- shimiti, Kido Takayoshi, Ito Hirobumi, and Yamaguchi Masaka. They were accompanied by commissioners representing every Government department, sent to study and report upon the methods and resources of foreign civilizations. They arrived in Washington, February 29th, 1872, and, for the first time in history, a letter signed by the mikado was seen outside of Asia. It was presented by the embassadors, robed in their ancient Yamato costume, to the President of the United States, on the 4th of March, Mr. Arinori Mori acting as interpreter. " The first president of the free republic " and the men who had elevated the eta to citizenship stood face to face in fraternal accord. The one hundred and twenty-third sovereign of an empire in its twenty-sixth centennial saluted the citizen - ruler of a nation whose century aloe had not yet bloomed. On the 6th of March they were welcomed on the floor of Congress. This day marked the formal entrance of Japan upon the theatre of universal history. BOOK II. PERSONAL EXPERIENCES, OBSERVATIONS, AND STUDIES IN JAPAN. 1870-1875. FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 327 FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. THE longest unbroken stretch of water statedly traversed by the keel of steamer or sailing vessel lies between California and Japan. The floating city, which leaves its dock in San Francisco at noon on the first day of each month, pulses across four thousand miles of ocean, from which rises no island, harbor, or reef. Nothing amidst all the crowding triumphs of the genius and power of man so impresses the reflecting mind as the thought of that mighty ark, which, by the mag- net and the stars, is guided in safety to the desired haven. Without a Noah, without dove or olive leaf, freighted with bird, beast, and fish, and often with thirteen hundred human souls, over a flood of waters that cover a world beneath, alone for weeks, that ark floats on, at the bidding of the master. Twenty-seven days in the solitudes of the sea seem long to the man of this decade, who crosses the Atlantic's thousand leagues in nine days, and the New World in a week. Even the old traveler whose digestion is sea-worthy; whose appetite is like a whetted saw; who meejs a host of genial fellow-birds of passage, and finds officers who will answer questions : who discovers new and readable books in the ship's library ; and who delights in the study of steerage ethnology yearns in his secret soul for the sight of land again. Even the ocean scenery, though, like God's mercies, new every morning and fresh ev- ery evening, palls on the eye, and loses its glory before the thoughts of the crowded city in which comforts cluster and pleasures bloom. The waves that daily cradle the infant sun and pillow his dying splen- dor, the effulgence of the cavernous sunsets, the wonders of spouting whales, flying-fish, phosphorescence at night, " multitudinous smiles " of waves by day, the circling gulls evermore, or even the fun of bury- ing a' day (Saturday, December 16th) under the 180th meridian, would be gladly exchanged for a patch of farm or the sober glory of a wide- spreading oak. Often, indeed, the monotony of the voyage is relieved by meeting one of the company's steamers. If the weather be fair, 328 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the pillar of cloud, or the long thin scarf of black smoke, descried afar off, is the harbinger of the coming ship. The exchange of newspapers and the sending homeward of letters are accomplished, to the intense delight of passengers jaded with ennui. Thus met in placid mid-ocean, on Sunday, December llth, 1870, the P. M. S. S. Co.'s steamers Great Republic, Captain J. H. Freeman, from San Francisco, and the Japan, bound to San Francisco, from the land whither we were bound. All day long we had watched the smoke. At 5.30 P.M. a rocket was sent up from the Japan. In a few mo- ments our dinner-table was deserted. Within a stone's throw, the pas- sengers on either ship shouted to each other. The stately ships, with scores of lighted windows gleaming on the waters, parted at seven o'clock, one moving to the home-land, one to the Mikado's Empire. The meeting of steamers in mid-ocean is, strange to say, a matter of dislike to a certain class of persons, who, in spite of all preventive pre- cautions, keep up their existence. One or two " stowaways " are found on nearly every steamer that leaves the shores of either continent. They sneak on board the big ship while in port, and are driven from their lair, when at sea, by hunger. When first discovered, the inquisi- tor of the ship the purser uses all his skill to extort the full passage money. If not forthcoming, the " stowaway " is consigned to purga- tory i. e., the fire-room, and compelled to pass coal and feed the fires. This process refines his feelings so far that the " dross " is produced, if on the victim's person. If he refuses to do duty, his fare being still unpaid, he is put in irons, but, by passing through purgatory of the furnace-room, he is " saved " from further punishment, and reaches^the paradise of firm land, " yet so as by fire." All these incidents and accidents of sea-life cease to have any im- portance after the oracle at the head of the table, Captain J. H. Free- man, has announced that " we shall sight Cape King at day-break to- morrow." We try to sleep well during our last night on the water ; but sleep, so often won and long embraced thus far, becomes fickle and flies our eyelids. With joyful wakef ulness, our thoughts are busy with the morrow, until at last, in the wee morning hours, our eyelids are I wake early on the 29th of December, 1870, and from out my state-room window behold the eye-gladdening land within rifle-shot. Hills, crested with timber, line the bay, and the beaches are dotted with thatched huts and white store-houses. Fishermen's boats, manned and moving over the bay, are near enough for us to distinguish their occu- FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 329 pants. Tall, muscular men, with skin of a dirty copper color, in long, loose dress, their mid-scalps shaven, and the projecting cue or top-knot, of the percussion gun-hammer style, are the first natives of Japan whom we see at home. Though different in dress, condition, and as the bar- ber left them, from their gay fellow-countrymen who spend plenty of money and study hard in the United States, they, nevertheless, exactly resemble their brethren in physiognomy and general appearance. The dayspring in the east sifts enough of suggestive light over the land to entice us into the belief that the Land of the Rising Sun is one of the fairest on earth a belief which a residence of years has ripened into an article of faith. To the right lie the two mountainous provinces of Awa and Kadzusa, with their numerous serrated peaks and valleys, which may be beautiful, though now they sleep. To the left is the village of Uraga, opposite which Commodore Perry anchored, with his whole squadron of steamers, on the 7th of July, 1853. Re- maining eight days at this place, he was accorded what he first de- manded an interview with, and the reception of President Fillmore's letter by, an officer of high rank. After the ceremony, he gave the place the name of Reception Bay, which it still retains. Now we pass Perry Island, Webster Isle, and, on the opposite side, Cape Saratoga. We must not forget, mournful though the thought be, that hereabouts beneath us, perhaps under our keel, lies the United States war steam- er Oneida, which was run into and sunk by the British mail steamer Bombay, January 23d, 1870. This is sad; but the sequel is disgrace- ful. Down under the fathoms the Oneida has lain, thus far undis- turbed, a rich and grateful Government having failed to trouble itself to raise the ship or do honor to the dead. The hulk was put up at auction and sold (in 1874), with certain conditions, to a Japanese, for fifteen hundred dollars. This is the one sad thought that casts its shadow over the otherwise profound memories of which the Gulf of Yedo is so suggestive to Americans. The prominent geographical points in the bay echo familiar American names, which later geogra- phers and a cosmopolitan community have ratified, and which com- memorate American genius, skill, a id bloodless victory. The ship moves on, and the panoramic landscape unfolds before us. In th* background of undulating plains, under high and close cultiva- tion, and spotted with villages, rise the crumpled backs of many ranges of mountains ; while afar off, yet brought delusively near by the clear air, sits the queenly mountain in her robes of snow, already wearing the morning's crown of light, and her forehead gilded by the first ray 330 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. of the yet unrisen sun. Beyond her, in the purple air, still glitter the jewel stars, while her own bosom trembles through many changes of color. Far out at sea, long before land is descried, and from a land area of thirteen provinces, the peerless cone is seen and loved. Per- haps no view is so perfect, so impressive for a life-time, so well fitted to inspire that intense appreciation of nature's masterpieces, whose glory and freshness we can feel intensely but once, as is the view of Fuji from an incoming steamer. From vast outspread base, through mighty curves, sweeping past snow, and up to her summit, the mount- ain is visible in queenly solitude and fullness of beauty. Gradually the vast form is bathed in light, and the Land of the Rising Sun stands revealed in golden glory. It is a joy to have seen it thus at first vision. From serene and ancient Fuji, we turn to behold the bustling up- start metropolis of the foreigners in Japan, as it appears in full daylight. Passing Mississippi Bay and Treaty Point, we arrive in front of what was once a little fishing village, but which is now the stately city of Yokohama. We count the craft that lie anchored in the harbor. From thirty to fifty are usually in port. Steamers from Hakodate, Shanghae, and Hong-Kong, and the regular mail steamers from Mar- seilles and Southampton, lie at their buoys. Here are wooden war- ships and iron-clads, from which fly the British, French, Japanese, German, or American flags. A tremendous amount of useless and costly saluting is done by these men-of-war, whom the country folks call " boom- boom fune." Coal -hulks, store-ships, and all the usual evidences of an old harbor, are discovered all around us. The town itself seems compactly built of low houses, with tiled roofs. They are usually two-storied, though many are, in the language of the East, " bungalows," or one-storied dwellings. The foreign settlement seems to be arranged on a plain about a mile square. The Japanese town spreads out another mile or more to the right. Beyond the plains is a sort of semicircle of hills, called " The Bluff." It is covered with scores of handsome villas and dwelling-houses, of all sizes and varieties of architecture. To the left the Bluff runs abruptly into the sea. To the right it sweeps away to the south-west. In local parlance, the various parts of Yokohama are distinguished as " The Bluff," " The Set- tlement," and the " Native " or " Japanese " town. Along the water- front of the settlement runs a fine, wide, well-paved street, called " The Bund," with a stout wall of stone masonry on the water-side. Private dwellings, gardens, and hotels adorn it, facing the water. There are as yet no docks for the shipping, but there is the English and the French FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 331 "hatoba." The former consists of a stone breakwater, or piers, rising twelve feet or so out of the water, inclosing a large irregular quad- rangle, with a narrow entrance at one comer. The land -side of the English hatoba is furnished with steps, and a score or more of boats can discharge their passengers at once. The French hatoba consists of two parallel piers of stone projecting out into the bay. The building of most imposing ugliness from the sea-view is the British Consulate, and near by it is the American. The Japanese Sai Ban Sho, or Court- house, is larger than either of the consulate buildings, and much hand- somer. At the other extremity of the settlement, toward the Bluff, was the French camp, and near by it the English. Three hundred French soldiers guarded as many French civilians resident in Japan, and three hundred English marines, who relieved the Tenth British foot the same that served their king on Bunker Hill were in camp in Yokohama in 1870, and remained until 1875. The engines stop, and the great ship lies motionless at her buoy. Instantly the crowd of boats which have waited, like hounds in the leash, shoot toward the stern ports and gangway, and the steamer be- comes walled in. First of all, the United States mail-boat, propelled by six native scullers, is flying swiftly shoreward, to satisfy the eager souls of the elect with its precious freight. Friends throng on board to meet friends. Englishmen ask the news whether there is to be war with Russia ? French and Germans eagerly inquire for the latest news from the seat of war. From one, I learn that the Japanese Gov- ernment has already issued a proclamation of neutrality, for French marines and German sailors have already come to blows in Yokohama. Fancy creatures in velvet and diamonds, with gold on their fingers and brass in their faces, hasten to see whether any of their guild have arrived from San Francisco. Leaving deck and cabin, we visit the steerage. The coal-lighters are crowded with dirty coolies. They impress us as being the lowest of their class. Their clothing is exceedingly scanty. An American lady with good eyesight supposed them to be clad in very tight leath- er-colored garments. On second sight, wondering at the perfect fit of the dress, she found it to be the only clothing which mother Nature provides for her children. The proprietors of the native boats have entered the ports, and are driving a brisk trade in oranges and various articles of diet, precious only to Asiatics. Huge dried persimmons, which, though shrunken, are four or five inches long, and sake, are very salable. A squad of the Chinese, so numerous in Yokohama, are 332 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. busy in furnishing small change to those who wish to go ashore. Jap- anese tempos, and iron and copper cash, are exchanged for American dimes, greenbacks, and Mexicans. With the kindly aid of a friend, we prepare to go ashore. Safely seated in one of the clean unpainted boats, in which we detect no iron, but only here and there a cleet of copper, we enjoy the glorious beauty of the situation. In the stern stand the two sendos, who make their keel glide over the waves as swiftly as a Venetian gondola shoots under and out from the Rialto. Already the Japanese boatmen have beaten in a race with the American tars. Yonder whizzes a butcher's boat, freshly laden from the abattoir below the city. Six naked ath- letes of magnificent physique, chanting in wild chorus, urge on their craft. Sculling is the method invariably in use among the Japanese. The long scull consists of two pieces tied together. On the handle is a pin, on which a rope is slipped, so that the scull is held down to a uniform height while being worked. The blade rests near where it joins the stock, on an outrigger pivot. The sweep of the stock, at the hand end, is nearly two feet. The sendo, planting his left foot on an inclined board, sways his arms and body at right angles to the boat, singing meanwhile one of his own songs, in his own way. We soon skim over a half-mile of the blue water, pass the United States steamer Idaho and the Prussian war-ship Hermann, and, darting within the stone piers, land on the hatoba, and are in the mikado's empire. The custom-house and the native officials detain us but a few mo- ments. Passing out the gate, we receive our first invitation to part with some small change from three fat little urchins in curious dress, with lion's head and feathers for a cap, and with red streamers hang- ing down their backs. They run before us and perform all kinds of astonishing tricks, such as carrying their heads beneath their feet, mak- ing a ball of themselves, and trundling along, etc. By our financial dealings with these little street-tumblers, we learn that " shin jo " means "gift," and "arigatd" means "thank you," which is the beginning of our vocabulary in Japanese. The fine wide streets of Yokohama are well paved and curbed. The hard white-stone and concrete pavements are able to resist for years the rutting action of the sharp-edged wheels of the native carts. These wheels are ingeniously constructed, and their felloes are mor- tised in segments. They need no tires, and have none. They are propelled by four powerful fellows, who work in pairs, and have FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 333 scarcely more clothing than there is harness on a horse. The fore- most pair push with hands and thighs the front cross-bar, behind which they stand. The other pair supply the vis a tergo, applying their shoulders to a beam which juts out obliquely from beneath and behind the cart. The street cries in every country attract first the Push-cart in Yokohama. Hokusai. new-comer's ears ; and the cry of these cart coolies in Yokohama is one of the most peculiar sounds in or out of Japan. I never after- ward heard these cries, except in Yokohama and Tokio. While the two men in the rear save their wind and vocal force, the two foremost coolies utter alternately and incessantly a coarse, deep, guttural cry, which, if spelling were possible, would be written, " Hai ! huida ! ho ! ho ! hai ! huida ! wa ! ho ! ho ! huidah !" etc. I was, at first hearing, under the impression that the poor wretches were suffering a grievous colic, and a benevolent inclination seized me to buy a few bottles of Mrs. Winslow's Soothing Syrup, and distribute them on the spot. On being told, however, that nothing was the matter with the men, it be- ing their custom to yell in this manner, I abandoned my intention. Rows of iron lamp-posts, with lanterns and burners trimmed and in cleanly readiness, tell of streets well lighted with gas at night. Along the avenue, on which stand the British and American consulates on, one sid^, and the Japanese court-house, bonded warehouses, and police station on the other, are sidewalks, which, along several blocks, are thickly planted, in a breadth of ten feet or more, with evergreens and flowers. Among these we see the camellias in full bloom. The main street crosses this avenue at right angles, extending from the Japanese 22 334 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. town to the canal at the foot of The Bluff. The sidewalks on it are narrow ; but the street pavements are so hard, and are kept so clean, that it is not unpleasant to walk in the street, even in wet weather. The streets in the foreign settlement are paved, curbed, and drained. Since 1874 they have been lighted with gas, from the gas-works of the rich merchant, Takashimaya. Here, for the first time, I behold that native Japanese invention, the product of a Tokio genius, the jin-riki-sha (man-power carriage). It has often been described. It is a baby carriage on adult wheels. It holds one or two persons. A man in the shafts pulls it ; sometimes he is assisted by another from behind. When you wish to go fast, you employ two men, or you may drive tandem with three. Many of these sha are highly ornamented ; for art is appreciated even by the lowest classes in Japan, as a residence of five minutes, and afterward four years, concur in assuring me. Some are made into the form of a boat, with a chanticleer for a figure-head. Foreigners and natives use them, and a wag from Yankee-land has dubbed them " Pull-man cars." Main Street is the showiest of all the Broadway of the " New York of Japan." Here we pass fine stone-fronted stores, banks, hotels, and restaurants. The magnificent show-windows and abundance of plate- glass suggest handsome variety and solid wealth within. These outside displays are, in most cases, but true indices of the varied articles of merchandise within, which are obtainable at very fair prices. Nothing eatable, drinkable, or wearable seems to be lacking to suit the tastes or wishes of an ordinary man, beast, or angel ; though we have heard that the entire bevy of Miss Flora M'Flimsey's cousins in Yokohama assert most strenuously that there is " nothing to wear " at any time. Nevertheless, to man or beast, the abundance and variety of feminine paraphernalia visible in one of the shops in which angelic robes are sold is simply wonderful ; and one notices that the visits of the angels to this place are neither few nor far between. Craftsmen in the finer arts also get their wealth in Yokohama. Several jewelers display tempting wares, and ply a brisk trade. Young Japan wears a watch nowadays, and thousands are sold yearly in Yokohama. Barber's poles salute us on several streets, and one may be shaved in French, English, or Japanese fashion. Photographic establishments tempt our eyes and purse with tasteful albums of Japanese costume and scenery. First-class eating -saloons await their crowds at the hungry hour. The several auction - rooms seem to be well filled with native and foreign purchasers. Confection- FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 337 ers display their bait for the palate. Newspaper offices greet us ; law- yers' and doctors' and dentists' signs seem to be sufficiently plentiful. Carriages and " traps " add to the bustle, and several knots of Japanese farmers, pilgrims, and new-comers from the provinces, staring surpris- ingly at the sights they have long heard of, but which they now for the first time behold, are met as we pass up the street. French Cath- olic or Russian Greek priests in their cassocks, nuns in their black robes, well-dressed Chinese, Jews from every nation under heaven, French soldiers in blue, British soldiers in red coats, and the talkers in a score of different languages, are met with, and help to give the town its cosmopolitan character. Main Street, however, is only the street of shops, shop-keepers, and the usual vulgar herd. Let us turn into the street of "hongs" and "merchants." Be it known that in Yokohama, and the Eastern ports generally, the dis- tinction between a merchant and a shop-keeper is dire and radical. With us lay folk outside of the trading world the difference is small, and not always perceptible a mole - hill, at the least ; but in these Eastern ports a great gulf is fixed, socially and commercially, between the two castes, and the difference is mountainous. With us, a shop- keeper is a man and a brother ; in Yokohama, in the eye of the clubs, and with the elect of wealth, fashion, and the professions, he is but a heathen and a publican. Advertising, the use of a sign - board, and such -like improprieties, are evidences of low caste, and consign the offender to the outer darkness, far away from happy club men and select visitors. This relic of English caste traditions, rank, and class worship is not so strong now as formerly, but is sufficiently potent to cause many a bitter pang and many heart-burnings to those who first experience it in their new residence in the East. The street in which the " hongs," or large business establishments, are situated is rather gloomy, when compared with the lively Maip Street. Most of the buildings are of stone, and many of them are fire- proof "godowns," or store - houses. From the windows of the "tea- firing godowns" issues the fragrant aroma of the new crop of tea, which is being " fired " or dried in deep tin basins, over charcoal fires, by na- tive girls and women, preparatory to packing and export. Most of the largest and wealthiest business houses are owned and managed by tfibse who were among the first -comers to Japan. Many of the "hongs" are branches of houses in China, or they themselves have agencies at Nagasaki, Hiogo, and ports in China. From five to twenty young men form their clerical staff, backed by a small army of native 338 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. porters, coolies, packers, boatmen, etc. These large firms control near- ly all the export trade of Yokohama, and, indeed, of Japan. The tea, silk, copper, rice, etc., is brought from all parts of the country, though chiefly from the West and North, and is disposed of by the native merchants through brokers and " compradores." In most cases the native producer, or even the broker, never sees the foreigner with whom he deals. The most important man in many foreign firms, the power behind and before the throne, is the " compradore." This su- perior being is a Chinaman, who understands enough Japanese, espe- cially with the help of the written Chinese character, to deal with the Japanese merchant, producer, or broker. He is the provider and pay- master of the firm in its dealings with the natives. He arranges, by and with the advice of the merchant, the purchase, sale, and delivery of merchandise. He hires and pays the Japanese employes, and, being the trusted man, is a creature of imposing pretensions, and a quasi- partner of the firm. His facilities, opportunities, and never -cloyed desire for " squeezes " from his Japanese clients are equally abundant, and he lives up to his privileges. Various shifts have been made use of by the Japanese merchants to depose this obnoxious middle -man from his position, and even to eliminate him entirely from mercantile transactions. A bold attempt of this kind was lately made by the plucky Governor of Yokohama, Oye Taku ; but, as the manner of the attempt was technically illegal, it failed, and matters still remain as they were before. This aristocratic and highly antiquated form of doing business, in which the merchant practically holds himself aloof from his custom- ers, is an inheritance from the foreign merchants in the ports of China. Ignorant of the language of that country, trusting their affairs to a " compradore " who spoke pigeon-English, they lived and grew rich, without troubling themselves to learn the language of the pig-tails around them. Few of the merchants in Japan, to their dis- credit let it be said, have seriously endeavored to master the speech of their producers, and, being ignorant of it, the " compradore " is, in such a state of things, a necessary evil. This old-fogy method of do- ing business must in time give way before the enterprise and energy of the younger firms, who refuse to employ " compradores," and the members of which are beginning to acquire the language of the people with whom they deal. There might have been excuses to the first- comers for not learning a language for the acquisition of which no teachers or apparatus at that time existed ; but at the present, thanks FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 339 to American missionaries and the gentlemen of the English civil service, an excellent apparatus of grammars, dictionaries, and phrase-books exists. The four great steamship agencies at present in Yokohama are the American Pacific Mail ; the Oriental and Occidental ; the English Pen- insular and Oriental Steam Navigation Company ; and the French Mes- sageries Maritime Paquet Postes Franais. The Ocean Steamship Com- pany has also an agency here. The native lines of mail steamers Mit- sui Bishi (Three Diamonds) also make Yokohama their terminus. The coming orthodox bridal tour and round-the-world trip will soon be made via Japan first, then Asia, Europe, and America. Already the circum-mundane tourists have become so frequent and temporarily numerous in Yokohama as to be recognized as a distinct class. In the easy language of the port, they are called " globe-trotters." The most interesting portion of Yokohama, alike to the new-comer and the old resident, is the Bluff. Coming to a port opened primarily for trading purposes only, one expects to find shops and store-houses, but few anticipate seeing such dwellings and homes as are to be found on the Bluff. In the afternoon, when the business of the day is over, and the high, grand, and mighty event of the day, the dinner, has not yet been consummated, the visitor on the Bluff sees very fine speci- mens of horseflesh, good turn-outs, and plenty of pedestrian and eques- trian humanity out for fresh air. The trim door-yards, lawns, gardens, fences, and hedges help to make a picture of unexpected beauty. The villas and dwellings are not high, being bungalows of one story, or houses of two stories. Though not remarkable as architectural tri- umphs, they are picturesque without, and full of comfort within. Added to home attractions, is the ever-present lovely scenery of the bay, the distant mountains, the peerless Fuji, and the smiling valleys. Nearly all the professional and many of the business men live on the Bluff, and, whether from the natural altitude, the inspiring freshness of the scenery, or otherwise, the Bluff dwellers are apt to consider themselves of a slightly higher social order than the inhabitants of the plain. The Bluff spreads over an irregular triangle, and its sur- face is rather undulating. Many of the dwellings are snugly embosom- ed amidst groves, or on the slopes and in the hollows, but most of them crown its spurs and ridges in commanding positions. The le- gation's of the treaty powers were, until 1874, situated in especially choice spots. Strange to say, the foreign diplomatic representatives, instead of residing in Tokio, lived at Yokohama, preferring society to the doubtful charms of the Japanese capital. 340 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. My opportune arrival so near New Year's, and the custom of visiting being enthusiastically observed, enabled me to see into the homes of many old residents, and to meet most of the social magnates and men prominent in the diplomatic, literary, commercial, and missionary world. Among others, I saw our hospitable American minister, Hon. Charles E. De Long, the Dutch, French, and Danish ministers, and several consuls and attaches. Mr. Portman, formerly secretary and interpreter to the American Legation, one of the valuable and unrewarded servants of our Government, was then hale and gray, living alone, not knowing that his grave was to be in the Ville du Havre. Beside the legations are the fine American hospital, the General and British hospitals, and the public gardens. On summer evenings one of the bands from the flag-ships stationed in the harbor plays in these gardens ; while flower, beast, and bird shows, and various sports and amusements, fire-works, etc., are furnished by the most indefatiga- ble proprietor that ever catered to public taste. Beyond the " foreign concession" of land that is, outside the limits of foreign dwellings is the race-course, an ample space of ground, leveled, fenced, and furnished with buildings and spectators' stands. The races are held during three days in spring and autumn, followed invariably by a " Black Monday," when bets are paid. An incredible amount of excitement, truly Brit- ish, is got up over Oriental horseflesh. The term for an untried horse is " griffin." A fine new road has been built by the Japanese Government, which passes by the race-course, and winds over the hills and down along the shores of Mississippi Bay, which is described as " the most beautiful for varied scenery in the world." Of course, I am quoting from those who speak in the same sense in which a mother speaks when she asserts, and really believes, that her babe is the last crowning wonder of the universe. Nevertheless, Yokohama numbers among its residents many tourists and sometime residents in the Old and New Worlds in many habitable latitudes. Their almost unanimous verdict is, that Mississip- pi Bay, especially at the sunset and twilight hours, is matchlessly love ly. The New Road, after passing along the beach and through sever- al Japanese villages, past rice and wheat fields, and through a beautiful valley, rejoins Yokohama at " Legation Bluff." Returning from walk or drive, the event of the day, the grand cul- minating act of diurnal existence, to which every thing else is but a prelude, the dinner, claims the solemn thought and most vigorous fac- ulties of mind and body. Whatever else fails, the dinner must be a FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 341 success. " Life without letters is death," was said by the Romans ; but that life without dinners is no life at all, is the solemn conviction of most residents in the East. It is further said that a Frenchman can cook a dinner as a dinner deserves to be cooked, but' only an En- glishman can eat it as it ought to be eaten. In Yokohama, dinner is the test of success in life. If that momentous feed is successfully achieved, sorrow and care are forgotten, the future is hopeful, eternity radiant, and the chief end of man is attained. No bolting, no haste, no slovenliness in dress, no wishing it over. A dinner to be given must be studied and exquisitely planned, as a general plans a battle, or a diplomat a treaty. A dinner to be attended must be dressed for, anticipated, and rehearsed as a joyful hour on a higher plane of exist- ence, or as an ordeal for which one must be steeled and clad in res- ignation. To appreciate the esoteric aesthetics of dinner, and to com- prehend the higher law that governs these august events, apart from the mere vulgar idea of satisfying hunger, one must be educated by a long course of observation and experience. Real enjoyment is doubt- less to be obtained at these dinner parties; but such an idea is not necessarily included within the objects sought by an orthodox giver of a dinner. There are a great many " brilliant flashes of silence " at these dinners, and meditations on crockery are common. Neverthe- less, it is really believed that a good dinner is the correct method of securing the highest earthly happiness, and is the most common means of social enjoyment in Yokohama. Being such a cosmopolitan place, the dweller in Yokohama must be always vigilant to offend none, and in all the windings of conversation must pick his steps, lest he tread on the national, religious, or aesthetic corns of his neighbors. What is complimentary to one man may be insult to some one else present, and so one becomes schooled to make only the correct remark. Though this state of armed neutrality may sometimes tend to make conversation excessively stupid, and a mere round of dessicated commonplaces, it trains one to be, outwardly at least, charitable to all, malicious to none. It keeps one circumspect and cosmopolitan, whether in opinions or moral practice ; and to be cosmopolitan is to be, in Anglo - Oriental eyes, virtuous beyond vulgar conception. Tire predominating culture, thought, manners, dress, and household economy in Yokohama, as in all the Eastern ports, is English. Out- numbering all the other nationalities, with the Press, the Church, the Bar, and the Banks in their own hands; with their ever-present sol- 342 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. diers and navy ; with their unrivaled civil service, which furnishes so many gentlemanly officials; and with most of the business under their control, the prevalence of English thought and methods is very easily accounted for. Because of the very merits and excellences of the genuine Englishman, the American in the East can easily forgive the intense narrowness, the arrogant conceit, and, as relates to Ameri- can affairs, the ludicrous ignorance and fondly believed perfection of knowledge of so many who arrogate to themselves all the insular per- fections. Perhaps most of the Englishmen at the East are fair repre- sentatives of England's best fruits; but a grievously large number, removed from the higher social pressure which was above them, and which kept them at their true level in England, find themselves with- out that social pressure in the East ; and obeying the " law of press- ures," they are apt to become offensively vaporous in their preten- sions. These persons are surprised to find even American enterprise in the East. They are the most radical and finical concerning every idea, custom, ceremony, or social despotism of any kind supposed to be English. These men help to form the army of hard-heads and civilized boors in Japan, to which our own country furnishes recruits, who do so much toward helping the Japanese to carry out in Japan their favorite amusement in American hotels, i. e., to descend on an elevator ; that is, to lay aside their own dignified politeness, and to adopt the rough manners of those who fondly imagine themselves the embodiment of the elevating influences of civilization. They are the foreigners who believe it their solemn duty, and who make it their regular practice, to train up their native servant " boys " in the way they should go by systematic whippings, beatings, and applications of the boot. Fearful of spoiling cook, boy, or " betto " (hostler), they spare neither fist, boot, nor cane. In this species of brutality we be- lieve the vulgar John Bulls to be sinners above all the foreigners in the East. I saw enough in one day to explain why so many of their nationality have felt the vengeful swords of Japanese samurai. Al- though Americans sometimes are swift-footed to follow the example of Englishmen, yet it is usually acknowledged by the Japanese them- selves that the Americans, as a class of that heterogeneous collection of men, who are all alike to them in being foreigners, are more in- clined to give them their rights, and to treat them as equals. Be it remembered that in these remarks we do not refer to that large body of educated, refined, and true-hearted Englishmen who have been such a potent influence in the civilization of Japan. It FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 343 must be confessed, and we cheerfully bear witness to what is a fact, that the predominating good influence in Japan is English. Some of the most prominent and most highly trusted foreign officials of the Japanese Government are English. The navy, the railways, the tele- graphs, public works, and light -houses are managed by them almost exclusively, and a large part, if not most, of the business of the coun- try is in their hands. Some of the very best, and perhaps the majori- ty, of lay students of, and scholars in, the Japanese language are En- glishmen. For all that goes to refine, elevate, and purify society among foreigners we are largely indebted to the English. In my strictures, I refer to that numerous class in Japan who, with pecuniary power and social influence far above that they could gain at home, ape the man- ners and succeed in copying the worst faults of the better class of their countrymen. Living among a people capable of teaching them good manners, and yet ignorant alike of their history, language, insti- tutions, and codes of honor and morals, they regard them as so many chattering silk -worms, tea -plants, and tokens of copper. They are densely ignorant of every thing outside of England, and with unruffled stupidity they fail to conceive how any good thing can come out of a place not included within the little island from which they came. I should feel very glad if none of my countrymen answered to this description. It is to be regretted that the British and American should be so often pitted together ; but so long as fair play, chivalric honor, cosmo- politan breadth of mind, and Christian courtesy are left us, we think the rivalry must be productive of immense good. Like flint and steel, before the dead cold mass of Asiatic despotism, superstition, and nar- rowness, it must result in kindling many a good spark into flames of progress and knowledge. Whatever be their petty differences, the English and American ever strike hands for good purposes more quickly than any other two nationalities in Japan ; and before the men of every other nation the American finds more to love, to honor, and to admire in the Englishman. It is the two nations cemented in- separably together by the blood, religion, language, history, inherit- ance, and the love of liberty and law, that are to impress their char- acter and civilization on the millions of Asia, and to do most toward its regeneration. Let every pen and tongue forbear to needlessly irri- tate, or do aught to sunder the ties that bind together the two great civilizing powers of the world ; but as for the social bigot, the Philis- tine, the bully, let not his disgraced nationality shield him from the social exile and public contempt which he deserves. 344 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Yokohama is fervently believed by many new-comers, especially those who are soon discovered to be either verdant or genuine fools, to be the very worst place in the world for iniquity, gossip, and all manner of rascality. In this they most clearly mistake. Since the same reputation attaches to at least a thousand places, I think the er- ror lies in a defect in the mental vision of the new-comer. Some tem- porary attack of moral color-blindness, strabismus, or disarrangement of the moral lenses, must be the cause of such an erroneous opinion. Long residents and traveled men agree in the belief that the moral status of Yokohama is fully equal to most other ports in the East, if not in the world. Some optimists even hold the opinion that it is better than many other places that boast loudly of their morals. Cer- tain it is that gambling hells have been purged away. Rum " mills " and lewd houses, though numerous enough, are not more common than in other ports. The white woman in scarlet drives her carriage on the Bluff and in the town, but her sisters are not abnormally numerous. Where heathen women are cheap, and wives from home are costly, chastity is not a characteristic trait of the single men ; but the same evil and the same resultant curse rests on all such places where " Chris- tians" live side by side with "pagans." Given a superior race with superior resources, and poor natives who love money more than virtue, and the same state of things results. Missionaries abound in Yokohama, engaged in the work of teaching, and converting the natives to the various forms of the Christian re- ligion. It is a little curious to note the difference in the sentiment concerning missionaries on different sides of the ocean. Coming from the atmosphere and influences of the Sunday-school, the church, and the various religions activities, the missionary seems to most of us an exalted being, who deserves all honor, respect, and sympathy. Ar- rived among the people in Asiatic ports, one learns, to his surprise, that the missionaries, as a class, are " wife -beaters," "swearers," "li- ars," "cheats," "hypocrites," " defrauders," "speculators," etc., etc. He is told that they occupy an abnormally low social plane, that they are held in contempt and open scorn by the " merchants," and by so- ciety generally. Certain newspapers even yet love nothing better than to catch any stray slander or gossip concerning a man from whom there is no danger of gunpowder or cowhide. Old files of some of the newspapers remind one of an entomological collection, in which the specimens are impaled on pins, or the store-house of that celebra- ted New Zealand merchant who sold " canned missionaries." Some FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 345 of the most lovely and lofty curves ever achieved by the nasal orna- ments of pretty women are seen when the threadbare topic of mission- ary scandal is introduced. The only act approaching to cannibalism is when the missionary is served up whole at the dinner-table, and his reputation devoured. The new-comer, thus suddenly brought in con- tact with such new and startling opinions, usually either falls in with the fashion, and adopts the opinions, the foundation for which he has never examined, or else sets to work to find out how much truth there is in the scandals. A fair and impartial investigation of facts usually results in the conviction that some people are very credulous and ex- cessively gullible in believing falsehoods. Scarcely one person in a hundred of those who so freely indulge in, and so keenly enjoy, the gossip and scandal about missionaries, realizes their need of human sympathy, or shows that fair play which teaches us that they are but human beings like ourselves. The men of busi- ness and leisure for every thing except their tongues are utterly un- able to understand the missionary's life, work, or purpose. Apart from the fact that a man who strives to obey the final and perhaps most positive command of the Great Founder of Christianity, to preach the Gospel to every creature, should win respect so far as he obeys that command, it is also most happily true that some of the very best, most conscientious, though quiet, work in the civilization of Japan has been done by missionaries. They were the first teachers; and the first counselors whose advice was sought and acted upon by the Japanese were missionaries, and the first and ripest fruits of scholarship the aids to the mastery of the Japanese language were and are the work of missionaries. The lustre shed upon American scholarship by mis- sionaries in China and Japan casts no shadow, even in the light of the splendid literary achievements of the English civil service. Besides this, a community in which the lives of the majority are secretly or openly at variance with the plainest precepts of the Great Master can not, even on general principles, be expected to sympathize very deeply with, or even comprehend, the efforts of men who are social heretics. It is hard to find an average " man of the world " in Japan who ha any clear idea of what the missionaries are doing or have done. Then dense. Ignorance borders on the ridiculous. On the other hand, a few, very few, who call themselves missiona- ries are incompetent, indiscreet, fanatical, and the terror even of their good and earnest brethren. At present, in Yokohama, there are the edifices of the Established 346 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. English Episcopal, the French Catholic, the Union Protestant, and native Christian churches. There is also a Jewish congregation. Be- sides the Governmental, the private Japanese, and the General Hospital of the foreigners, there is a Ladies' Benevolent Society. A well-kept and neatly laid out and ornamented cemetery, beautifully situated on the slope of the Bluff, in which sleep the men of many creeds and na- tions, tells many a sad tale of assassination, of murder, and of battle, which took place before the present peaceful residence of the Western strangers in Japan was won. The Russians, the Dutch, the English, and the French compelled the Japanese Government to build the tombs of the slain. Many a mother's darling, many a gallant soldier and sailor, who met his death from disease, accident, drowning, or excess, and many a broken-hearted exile lies here ; and more than one visit to this sad city of the dead has impressed me with the truth that most of the epitaphs are plain historical facts, free from sham and fulsome falsehood ; as though being free from the meretricious ornament that so often miserably accords with the blunt fact of death, the tombs had won the rare adornment of simple truth. From the Yokohama of to-day, with its bustling energies, and old enough in its new life to have its cemetery, we shall glance at Yoko- hama as it was from its forgotten beginning, centuries ago, until A.D. 1854, when a fleet of American steamers began the first epoch in the new life of Japan. On a small arm of the Gulf of Yedo, midway between its mouth and the capital of the empire, stood an insignificant little fishing vil- lage. Evidently it never possessed sufficient importance to be men- tioned, except casually, by Japanese historians or travelers. In its best days prior to 1854, it might have numbered a thousand inhabitants. Nearly all the men were fishers, or worked with the women in the rice swamps surrounding the village on all sides, and stretching toward the base of the Bluff. The great highway to Yedo passed through the town of Kanagawa, which lies on the opposite shore of the bay. Most probably from this fact, the village which supplied the travelers on the great road with fish was called Yokohama ( Yoko, across ; hama, strand). For centuries the simple inhabitants swept the sea with their nets, dug their mud swamps, planted their rice, eat their rude fare, lived their monotonous life, and died in the faith of Buddha and the hope of Nirvana. No seer ever prophesied greatness of Yokohama, but some places, like men, have greatness thrust upon them. When, on the evening of the 7th of July, 1853, the fleet of huge American FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 347 steamers lay at anchor abreast of Uraga, a few miles distant, and the people of Yokohama saw the blazing beacon-fires and heard the breath- less messengers tell the tale of the wondrous apparition of mighty ships moving swiftly without wind, tide, or oars, the first pulses of a new life stirred within them as they talked that night before their huts in the sultry evening. Their idea of a steamer, as I have heard it from their own lips, was, that these Western foreigners, who were not men, but half beasts, half sorcerers, had power to tame a volcano, condense its power in their ships, and control it at will. That night, as the spark-spangled clouds of smoke pulsed out of the fire-breathing smoke-stacks of the steamers, which were kept under steam in readi- ness for attack, many an eager prayer, prompted by terror at the aw- ful apparition, went up from the hearts of the simple people, who anx- iously awaited the issue of the strange visit. During all the eight days during which Commodore Perry's fleet lay at anchor, or steamed at will over their sacred waters, the survey- ing boats were busy extorting the secrets of the water, its danger and its depth. No drunken sailor roamed on the land, none of the quiet natives were beaten, robbed, or molested. The mighty mind of the gentle commodore extended to the humblest minutia3 of discipline, and his all-comprehending genius won victory without blood. The natives had opportunity of gaining clearer ideas as to what sort of beings the strange visitors were. In those eight days even the proudest samurai were convinced of the power of the Western nations. Familiarity bred no contempt of American prowess, while for the first time they saw their own utterly defenseless condition. After delivering the let- ter with the proper pomp and ceremony to the high Japanese com- missioner at Uraga, and having for the first time in history gained several important points of etiquette in a country where etiquette is more than law or morals, the consummate diplomat and warrior, Per- ry, sailed away with his fleet July 17th, 1853. Commodore M. C. Perry inaugurated a policy in his dealings with the Japanese which all thoroughly successful foreigners in Japan have found the safest, quickest, and most certain means of success, in deal- ing with them, in order to win new concessions, or to lead them to higher reforms. Instead of demanding an immediate answer, he al- lowed them seven months to consider the matter, promising them at the end of that time to come again. During that period the authori- ties had time to consult, reflect, and to smoke an unlimited number of pipes, and all of these they did. 348 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. When Perry, with an augmented fleet of nine steamers, returned again in February, the Japanese found him as punctilious, polite, per- severing, considerate, and as inflexibly firm as ever. Instead of mak- ing the treaty at Uraga, he must make it nearer Yedo. Yokohama was the chosen spot, and there, on the 8th of March, 1854, were ex- changed the formal articles of convention between the United States and Japan. Then followed the interchange of presents. The minia- ture telegraph was set up on shore over a space of one mile, and was worked for several days to the delight and wonder of admiring Japa- nese officials. The Lilliputian locomotive and train of cars caused un- bounded interest. American implements and mechanism of all de- scriptions were presented as evidences of American peace and good- will. Matthew Calbraith Perry achieved a triumph grander in results than his brother, Oliver Hazard Perry, oil Lake Erie. He had met the enemy, and they were his friends. The Japanese returned the gifts with their best native productions, and amused their guests with wrestling matches. By the treaty of Yokohama, Hakodate in Yezo, and Shimoda in Idzu, were opened as ports of supply to the Americans. Shimoda, before it fairly began to be of much service, was visited by a terrific earthquake and tidal wave, that hurled a Russian frigate to destruc- tion, overwhelmed the town, sweeping back by its recession into the boiling ocean scores of houses, and about one hundred human beings. The effluent wave plowed the harbor with such force that all the mud was scoured from the rocky bed. The anchors of ships could obtain no grip on the bare, slippery rock bottom, and Shimoda, being useless as a harbor, was abandoned. The ruin of Shimoda was the rise of Yokohama. By a new treaty, and concessions gained from the Japa- nese by Hon. Town send Harris, Kanagawa (three miles across the bay from Yokohama) and Nagasaki were made open ports, not only of entry, but of trade and commerce. By the terms of the treaty, Kanagawa was opened July 1st, 1859. Kanagawa is situated on the western side of the Bay of Yedo, about sixteen miles from the capital. Through it passes the great highway of the empire, along which the proud daimios and their trains of re- tainers were continually passing on their way to and from the capital. These belligerent young bloods were spoiling for war, and a trial of their blades on the hated hairy foreigners! Had Kanagawa been made a foreign settlement, its history would doubtless have had many more bloody pages of incendiaries and assassination than did Yoko- FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 349 hama. Foreseeing this, even though considered by the foreign minis- ters a violation of treaty agreements, the Japanese Government chose Yokohama as the future port, and immediately set to work to render it as convenient as possible for trade, residence, and espionage. They built a causeway, nearly two miles long, across the lagoon and marshes from Kanagawa, so as to make it of easy access. They built the solid granite piers or " hatobas," which we have described, erected a custom- house and officers' quarters, and prepared small dwellings and store- houses for the foreign merchants. Before the opening of the harbor, several ships, with the pioneers of trade on board, lay in the harbor from Nagasaki and China, " eager to try the new port, and, of course, clamorous for instant accommodation and facilities." The merchants insisted on Yokohama, the ministers and consuls were determined on Kanagawa. The strife between the two parties lasted long, and left many roots of bitterness that are not yet entirely grubbed up ; but the merchants carried their point as is believed by all to-day to the advantage of foreign influence in Japan. The red tape which helps to weave a net of misleading and inaccurate statements in regard to Japan is not yet cut, as regards Kanagawa. We frequently read of the United States Consul and Consulate at Kanagawa. There has been neither there since 1861. Both are in Yokohama. Baron Hiibner's statement that Sir R. Alcock was "the official founder of Yokohama" is a ramble round the truth. Yoko- hama was settled in a squatter-like and irregular manner, and the ill effects of it are seen to this day. When compared with Shanghae, the foreign metropolis of China, it is vastly inferior to that " model settlement." To abridge a tedious story, the straggling colony of diplomats, missionaries, and merchants at Kanagawa finally pulled up their stakes and joined the settlement at Yokohama. The town grew slowly at first. Murders and assassinations of foreigners by the ruffian patriots who bravely attacked unarmed foreigners, usually from be- hind, were frequent during the first few years. The intermeddling of Japanese officials threatened to paralyze trade. The lion of civilization was threatened with death in a gigantic net-work of red-tape, in the length, redness, strength, and quantity of which the bakufu excelled the wo^ld. The first foreigners were not specially noted for good morals^ sensitive consciences, sweetness of temper, nor for a hatred of filthy lucre, and the underhand cunning and disregard for truth which seems a part of official human nature in Japan (only ?) were matched by the cold-blooded villainy and trickery of the unprincipled foreign- 23 350 TEE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ers of all creeds and nationalities. A favorite threat of atrabilious Frenchmen, blustering Russians, and petty epaulet-wearers of all sorts, when their demands were refused, was to strike their flag, go on board a man-of-war, and blow up the native town. Yokohama still stands, having survived bombardments in five languages. The Japanese offi- cials became so accustomed to this polyglot snobbery, that they ceased to regard its monotonous recurrence with feelings different from those evoked on beholding snuff-boxes drawn, or on hearing the terrific crash that followed. A less congenial and more expensive employment, at which native officials were kept busy, was the payment of outrageously unjust " in- demnities " a euphemism for civilized theft. A conflagration caused by a kitchen fire, a drunken squabble, an insult resulting in the death of a white -faced villain, terminated in the inevitable and exorbitant mulct. A sailor found dead drunk in the streets was the signal for sending up the price of revolvers one hundred per cent. Every for- eign suicide was heralded as an " assassination." A fire (November 22d, 1866), which laid nearly the whole foreign town in ashes, seemed to purify the place municipally, commercially, and morally. The settlement was rebuilt in a more substantial and regular manner. Banks, newspaper offices, hospitals, post-offices, and consulate buildings re-appeared as with new life. The streets were graded, paved, and curbed. The swamp was filled up. The Japanese village of Homura was removed across the creek. Fire companies were organized. A native police force was formed. The European steamships began to come to Yokohama, and the establishment of the Pacific Mail line of steamers, running monthly between San Francisco and Yokohama, was the final master-stroke that removed the future prosperity of Yokohama from the region of surmise to that of cer- tainty. Other steamers plied to Japanese and Chinese ports. Trade became firmly established. Missionaries unlocked the language, and made it acquirable. The settlement was purged of roughs and gam- blers. The amenities of social life began to appear, as ladies and chil- dren came in scores. Houses became homes. The solitary were set in families. Churches appeared with their beneficent influence. The- atres, concerts, and operettas gave recreation to the mind ; while row- ing, racing, athletic, cricket, and racket clubs, and clubs gastronomic and sociable, made the life of the bachelors less monotonous. Rifle companies kept the eye and hand in practice for the occasional hunts when game was plenty. The telegraph to Tokio and thence around FIRST GLIMPSES OF JAPAN. 351 the globe was opened and used. The railway to the capital, with its ten trains daily, became a familiar fact. Schools for children were es- tablished. The Eurasian children were gathered up by American la- dies and French nuns, to be reared in purity. Christian hymns were translated into Japanese, and sung to the tunes of Lowell and Brad- bury by native children. Teachers of music and languages sent out their circulars. The Sunday-school opened its doors. The family physician took the place of the navy surgeon. Yokohama now boasts of the season, like London. The last slow growth of such a colony the Asiatic Society, established for the encouragement of original re- search, and for the collection of information concerning the history, language, geography, and antiquity of Japan and parts adjacent has been established. It has already done much excellent work, and, though in a trading community, hopes to live. I have neither time nor space to speak of the wonders wrought in the Japanese town ; nor can I tell the story of how a fishing village of a thousand souls has become a city of fifty thousand people, with its streets lighted with gas; rich stores, piled with silk, tea, bronzes, and curios of all kinds whither tourists flock, and naval officers mort- gage their pay for months to come : Japanese curios are as powerful as mercury to attract gold. The railway and station, the many promis- ing industries of all kinds, the native hospital, printing-offices, etc., etc., deserve description, but I must close this already tedious chapter by a summary of a few items of interest not referred to before. At present (1876) the foreign population of Yokohama is reckoned to be about twelve hundred residents, of both sexes and all ages. The men of the merchant marine, sailors, officers, on shore and ship duty, and temporary dwellers, make up a fluctuating population, which is seldom less than three and sometimes as many as six thousand. The Chinese population may number one thousand in Yokohama, and twenty-five hundred in Japan. In their hands are the deep things of finance. All the money-changers and brokers are Chinese, and any unexpected fluctuations in the money market are laid to their charge. Those who are not brokers are " compradores," clerks, or useful artisans. As a class, they form the most industrious national- ity in Tapan. They have their temple, cemetery, guilds, and benevo- lent association, but no consul or mandarin to protect or to grind them. The sight of the fat, well-dressed, cleanly Chinese, so well-oiled in his disposition and physique, so defiantly comfortable in his dress, forces a contrast between him and the Japanese. Some people con- 352 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. sider the Chinaman as the man of superior race. In Yokohama's heterogeneous collection of humanity are several score of children in whose veins flows the blood of two continents. The Eurasian chil- dren, when illegitimate, are still citizens of Japan, in the eye of Japa- nese law ; but when born in wedlock, are citizens of the same country with their father. By the laws of Japan, marriage between Japanese and foreigners is perfectly legal, and several such marriages have been regularly contracted and solemnized. The Fourth Estate in Yokohama is a vast one. The English papers are, The Japan Herald ; The Japan Mail, daily and weekly; The Japan Gazette, daily. All these papers issue also a fortnightly or monthly mail summary. The French paper, L 1 Echo du Japon, is a daily. The Far East is a semi-monthly large pamphlet, of twelve pages, photographically illustrated, with letter -press descriptive of scenes and incidents in Japan. The Japan Punch, which hits the folly and furnishes the fun for the Yokohama public, is printed by lithography, and is a clever monthly production. foward the future Yokohama may look cheerfully and with hope. So near the great capital, practically on the high-road of the empire, with a magnificent harbor, capable of unlimited improvements, with railroad and telegraphic facilities already in use, Yokohama's future must be one of steady prosperity. When Kobe was opened, bold prophets predicted the waning of Yokohama; but their prophecies have long since been forgotten. New land is being reclaimed from the lagoons toward Kanagawa, and in time Kanagawa and Yokohama will be one city. The foreign population may not increase according to the New World ratio, but from all parts of the Sea Empire shall come the wealth and the sinew, the brain and the heart of New Ja- pan, to learn the sources of the power and superiority of the West- erns ; and, returning, the fathers shall teach theii* children to be wiser than they. Whatever be the changes of the future, Yokohama must continue to be the master-teacher and exemplar for good and evil of the civilization of Christendom in New Japan. [The tourist in port who desires to enjoy the scenery and people, and visit some of the places and monuments of historic interest around Yokohama and Tokio, will be greatly aided by three little manuals published by the author, and to be found in Yokohama. They are "The Yokohama Guide," p. 39, with map ; "The Tokio Guide," p. 35; and "Map of Tokio, with Notes Historical and Ex- planatory." These little pamphlets contain skeleton trips, bints to travelers, notes of information, and a short vocabulary, with pronunciation of the Japanese words most needed by a tourist. On Japanese " Pigeon-English," see a pam- phlet entitled " Exercises in the Yokohama Dialect."] A SIDE ON THE TOKAIDO. 353 II. A BIDE ON THE TdKAIDO. January 2d, 1871. A frosty morning. Air keen, bracing, razor- like. Sky stainlessly clear. The Bay of Yedo glinting with unnum- bered sunbeams. Blue sky, blue water, blue mountains, white Fuji. The Yankee has invaded the Land of the Gods. He jostles the processions of the lords of the land. He runs a coach on the great highway, so sacred to daimios and two-sworded samurai. Here on the Bund stands the stage that will carry a man to the capital for two Mexican dollars. Of the regulation Yankee pattern, it is yet small, and, though seating three persons besides the driver, can crowd in five when comfort is not the object in view. A pair of native ponies on which oats are never wasted make the team. A betto (running foot- man and hostler), whose business is to harness the animals, yell at the people on the road, and be sworn at, perches, like a meditative chick- en, by one foot on the iron step. As for the driver, an Australian, who is recommended as " a very devil of a whip," he impresses me at once as being thoroughly qualified to find the bottom of a tumblerful of brandy without breathing. He is not only an expert at driving and drinking, but such an adept in the theology of the bar-room is he, and so well versed in orthodox profanity, that the heathen betto regards his master as a safe guide, and imitates him with conscientious accuracy. The driver converts the pagan better than he knows. Indeed, it is astonishing what prog- ress his pupil has made in both theology and the English language. He has already at his tongue's end the names and attributes of the entire Trinity. Crack goes the whip, and we rattle along the Bund, past the Club- house, around the English consulate, past the Perry treaty grounds, and d"own Benten dori, through the native town. The shops are just opening, and the shop-boys are looping up the short curtains that hang before each front. The bath-houses begin business early. The door of one is shunted aside, spite of the lowness of the thermometer and 354 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. decency. Out steps a man into the street as naked as when he step ped out into the world. His native copper hue, like a lobster's, is in- tensified by the boiling he has just undergone. He walks in a self- exhaling cloud of auroral vapors, like a god in ambrosia. He deigns not to make his toilet while in sight, but proceeds homeward, clothes in hand. My pocket Fahrenheit marks four degrees below the freez- ing-point. Our driver whips up the horses for sheer warmth, and we dash over the " iron bridge." A trifling bit of iron to our foreign eyes, but a triumph of engineering to the natives, who build of wood. We pass it, and then we are on the causeway that connects Yokohama with the great main road of the empire, the Tokaido. The causeway passed, and with foreign sights behind, real Japan appears. I am in a new world, not the Old. Every thing is novel. I should like to be Argus : not less than a hundred eyes can take in all the sight. I should like to be a poet to express, and an artist to paint all I see. I wish I knew the language, to ask questions. What a wonderful picture-book ! A line of villages are strung along the road> like a great illuminated scroll full of gay, brilliant, merry, sad, disgusting, horrible, curious, funny, de- lightful pictures. What pretty children ! Chubby, ros}% sparkling-eyed. The cold only made their feet pink, and their cheeks red. How curiously dressed, with coats like long wrappers, and long, wide, square sleeves, which I know serve for pock- ets, for I just saw a boy buy some rice cracknels, hot from the toasting coals, and put them in his sleeves. A girdle three inches wide binds the coat tight to the waist. The children's heads are shaved in all curious fashions. The way the babies are carried is an im- provement upon the Indian fashion. The Japanese ko is the papoose re- versed. He rides eyes front, and sees Young Girl carrying her Baby Brother. , , , , , . " , , , , n , the world over his mother s shoulder. Japanese babies are lugged pickapack. Baby Gohachi is laid on mamma's back and strapped on, or else he is inclosed in her gar- A HIDE ON THE TOKAIDO. 355 ment, and only his little shaven noddle protrudes behind his mother's neck. His own neck never gets wrenched off, and often neither head nor tiny toes are covered, though water is freezing. In the picture on the preceding page, the fat-cheeked baby is carried by a young, un- married girl, as I can tell by the way her hair is dressed. It is prob- ably an elder sister or hired servant. Her bare feet are on wooden clogs. Here are adults and children running around barefoot. Nobody wears any hats. As for bonnets, a Japanese woman might study a life-time, and go crazy in trying to find out its use. Every one wears cotten clothes, and these of only one or two thicknesses. None of the front doors are shut. All the shops are open. We can see some of the people eating their breakfast beefsteaks, hot coffee, and hot rolls for warmth ? No : cold rice, pickled radishes, and vegetable messes of all unknown sorts. These we see. They make their rice hot by pouring tea almost boiling over it. A few can afford only hot water. Some eat millet instead of rice. Do they not understand dietetics or hygiene better ? Or is it poverty ? Strange people, these Japanese ! Here are large round ovens full of sweet-potatoes being steamed or roasted. A group of urchins are waiting around one shop, grown men around another, for the luxury. Twenty cash, one-fifth of a cent, in iron or copper coin, is the price of a good one. Many of the children, just more than able to walk them- selves, are saddled with babies. They look like two-headed children. The fathers of these youngsters are cool' ies or burden - bearers, who wear a cotten coat of a special pattern, and knot their kerchiefs over their fore- " heads. These heads of families re- ceive wages of ten cents a day when work is steady. Here stands one with his shoulder -stick (tembimbo) with pendant baskets of plaited rope, like a scale-beam and pans. His shoul- der is to be the fulcrum. On his daily string of copper cash he sup- ports a family. The poor man's blessings and the rich man's grief Coolie waiting for a Job. 356 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. are the same in every clime. In Japan the quiver of poverty is full, while the man of wealth mourns for an heir. The mother bears the bairns, but the children carry them. Each preceding child, as it grows older, must lug the succeeding baby on its back till able to stand. The rearing of a Japanese poor family is a perpetual game of leap-frog. The houses are small, mostly one story, all of them of wood, except the fire -proof mud -walled store -houses of the merchant. Most are clean inside. The floors are raised a foot above the ground, covered with mats. The wood-work is clean, as if often scrubbed. Yet the Japanese have no word for soap, and have never until these late days used it. Nevertheless, they lead all Asiatics in cleanliness of persons and dwellings. Does not an ancient stanza of theirs declare that " when the houses of a people are kept clean, be certain that the gov- ernment is respected and will endure 2" Hot water is the detergent, and the normal Japanese gets under it at least once a day. For scrub- bing the floor or clothes, alkali, obtained by leeching ashes, is put in the water. The shop-keeper sits on his hams and heels, and hugs his hibachi (fire-bowl). What shivering memories I have of it ! Every Japanese house has one or more. It is a box of brass, wood, or delf. In a bed of ashes are a handful of coals. Ordinarily it holds the ghost of a fire, and radiates heat for a distance of six inches. A thermo-multi- plier might detect its influence further on a cold day. With this the Japanese warm their houses, toast their fingers for incredibly long spaces of time, and even have the hardihood to ask you to sit down by it and warm yourself ! Nevertheless, when the coals are piled up regardless of expense, a genial warmth may be obtained. The shop- keepers seem to pay much more attention to their braziers than to their customers. What strikes one with the greatest surprise is the baby-house style and dimensions of every thing. The rice-bowls are tea-cups, the tea-cups are thimbles, the tea-pot is a joke. The family sit in a circle at meals. The daughter or house-maid presides at the rice-bucket, and paddles out cupfuls of rice. We pass through Kanagawa, a flourishing town, and the real treaty port, from which Yokohama has usurped foreign fame and future his- tory. We pass many shops, and learn in a half-hour the staple articles of sale, which we afterward find repeated with little variation in the shops all over the country. They are not groceries, or boots, or jewelry, nor lacquer, bronze, or silk. They are straw-sandals, paper umbrellas, rush hats, bamboo-work of all kinds, matting for coats, flint, steel and A RIDE ON THE TOKAIDO. 357 r tinder, sulphur splints for matches, oiled paper coats, and grass cloaks, paper for all purposes, wooden clogs for shoes : fish and radish knives, grass-hooks, hoes, scissors with two blades but only one handle, and axes, all of a strange pattern, compose the stock of cutlery. Vegeta- ble and fish shops are plentiful, but there is neither butcher nor baker. Copper and brass articles are numerous in the braziers' shops. In the cooper shops, the dazzling array of wood-work, so neat, fresh, clean, and fra- grant, carries temptation into housekeepers' pockets. I know an American lady who never can pass one without buying some useful utensil. There are two coopers pound- ing lustily away at a great p: rain-tank, or sake-vat, or soy- tub. They are more intent on their bamboo hoops, bee- tles, and wedges than on their clothing, which they have half thrown off. One has his kerchief over his shoul- der. Coopers hooping a Vut. (By a pupil of Hokusai.) The basket -maker The head-covering In Japan the carpenter is the shoe -maker, for the foot-gear is of wood, weaves the head-dress. Hats and boots are not. is called a " roof " or " shed." I remember how in America I read of gaudily advertised "Japanese boot-blacking," and " Japanese corn- files." I now see that the Japanese wear no boots or shoes, hence blacking is not in demand ; and as such plagues as corns are next to unknown, there is no need of files for such a purpose. The total value of the stock in many of the shops appears to be about five dollars Many look as if one " clean Mexican " would buy their stock", good -will, and fixtures. I thought, in my innocence, that I should find more splendid stores elsewhere. I kept on for a year or more thinking so, but was finally satisfied of the truth that, if the Japanese are wealthy, they do not show it in their shops. The 358 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. prosaic truth is that the people are very poor. Of course, being fresh from the splendor of the fine young fellows, the " princes " of the newspapers, in America, who were noted for their impressive ward- robe, dazzling jewelry, hotel-bills, and carriages, I could not believe the truth about Japan then. My glamoured eyes refused to see it. " I shall see the wealth, but not now," was my thought. Tugging up the steep hill and past Kanagawa, we dash over the splendid road beneath an arch of pines, some grandly venerable, some augustly tall, some like a tottering empire, glorious in decay, but many more scraggy and crooked. We pass all kinds of dress and charac- ters on the road. Now, our betto yells out to a merchant, who ambles along with a pack on his back tied over his neck. Our driver prays his God to damn some poor old priest who was not as nimble as he might have been forty years ago. Anon, the exponent of Christian civilization informs a farm laborer, trudging along, hoe on shoulder, that he will " cut the d d face off him " if he isn't spry. A gawky heathen, leading a pack-horse loaded with an unmentionable article, is made to know, by a cut of the whip over his neck, that he must move faster next time. The priest in his robes, brocade collar, and shaven head ; the merchant, in his tight breeches ; the laborer, with his bare legs ; the samurai, with his two swords and loose trousers ; the pil- grim, in his white dress, are all easily recognized. As for the beggars, we can not understand their " Chabu chabu Jco- marimasu tempo danna san, dozo (Please, master, a penny ; we are in great trouble for our grub) ; but we comprehend the object of their importunity. They are loathsome, dirty, ragged, sore. Now I wish I were a physician, to heal such vileness and suffering. Who would care to do an artist's or a poet's work when the noblest art of healing needs to be practiced ? The children run after us. The old beggars live in straw kennels by the roadside. Some are naked, except dirty mats bound round them. The law of Japan does not recognize them as human : they are beasts. The man who kills them will be neither prosecuted nor punished. There lies one dead in the road. No! Can it be ? Yes, there is a dead beggar, and he will lie unburied, per- haps for days, if the dogs don't save the work from the coroner. "And the beggar died !" Will he be carried by angels to Abraham's bosom ? The driver reins up, and the horses come to a halt. We have stop- ped before a tea-house of whose fame we have heard, and man and beast are refreshed. The driver takes brandy, the betto tea, and the A RIDE ON THE TOKAIDO. 359 horses water. The first drinks from a tumbler, the second from a cup ; the four-footed drinkers must wait. Pretty girls come out to wish us good-morning. One, with a pair of eyes not to be forgotten, brings a tray of tiny cups full of green tea, and a plate of red sweetmeats, beg- ging us to partake. I want neither, though a bit of paper-money is placed on the tray for beauty's sake. The maid is about seventeen, graceful in figure, and her neat dress is bound round with a wide girdle tied into a huge bow behind. Her neck is powdered. Her laugh dis- plays a row of superb white teeth, and her jet-black hair is rolled in a maidenly style. The fairest sights in Japan are Japan's fair daughters. This tea-house has a history. Its proprietress is familiarly known among all foreigners who ride on the Tokaido, and sit on her mats in- side, or her benches in front beneath the trees, as " Black-eyed Susan." Her eyes deserve their renown, and her face its fame. Her beauty is known throughout the land. Many a story is told about princes and noblemen who have tried to lure her to gem their harem. She refuses all offers, and remains the keeper of herself and her fortune. Near by Black-eyed Susan's stands a clump of trees. It was near this place that, in 1863, poor Richardson lost his life (see Appendix). He sleeps now in Yokohama cemetery. It saddens us. to think of it. Our solemn thoughts are dissipated in a moment, for the betto is watering the horses. He gives them drink out of a dipper ! A cup- ful of water at a time to a thirsty horse ! The animal himself would surely laugh, if he were not a Japanese horse, and used to it. " Sayonara !" (farewell) cry the pretty girls, as they bow profound- ly and gracefully, and the stage rolls on. We pass through villages of thatched houses, on which, along the ridge, grow beds of the iris. Between them appear landscapes new to eyes accustomed to grass meadows and corn-fields and winter wheat of Pennsylvania. Far and wide are the fallow fields covered with shallow water, and studded with rice-stubble. All the flat land is one universal rice-ditch. The low hills are timbered with evergreen. The brighter tints of the feathery bamboo temper the intensity of the sombre glory. Bamboo thickets, pine groves, and rice-fields these are the ever-present sights in Japan. A half-hour through such scenery, and the stage stops at Kawasaki (river-point) to change horses. We are to cross the Roku- go River in boats. The road bends at a right angle toward the water, and at each corner is a large tea-house, full of noisy, fat girls, anxious to display a vulgar familiarity with the stranger. Too close contact with hostlers, drivers, and the common sort of residents in Japan has 360 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. made these, doubtless once modest and polite females, a pack of impu- dent wantons. I am not charmed by the too-willing charmers, and, declining the ever-proffered cup of tea, make my way down to the river, passing four toll-men, who squat on their knees at the receipt of custom, pil- ing on upright skewers the square-holed oval and round coins which the travelers deposit. At the river's edge, a flat-bottomed boat, crowd- ed with people of every class, with a horse or two on board, is coming hitherward. and one is just ready to push off. A few strokes of the pole, and we are over. The Japanese have used this river for centu- ries, and have never yet built a bridge.* The company in the boat is sometimes rather mixed. It has not escaped Hokusai's pencil, who made an album of Tokaido sketches. He has jotted down at the side Crossing the Rokugo River at Kawasaki. (Hokusai.) of his sketch the two characters signifying Kawasaki (river -point), which all travelers to Tokio know full well. Strange to say, the same river in Japan often has many local names. A Japanese geography rarely thinks it necessary to describe a river from source to mouth. The people hereabouts call this river the Rokug6, and the foreigners, who are quite sure to get Japanese names upside down, have corrupt- ed it into Logo, or, with apparent impiety, Logos. The stage not being over yet, I go into a straw hut, in which a fire warms twenty-four feet shod with rice-straw sandals, and the smoke of which inflames twenty-four eyes belonging to half that number of such specimens of humanity as constitute the bulk of Japan's popula- tion, and whom foreigners called " coolies." Two arms, two legs, a * An iron bridge now (1877) spans the stream. A RIDE ON THE T OK AID 6. 361 head, and trunk, when added together in an Asiatic country, do not produce the same sum that such factors would yield in America. With us a man is a man. In Asiatic countries he is a wheelbarrow, a beast of burden, a political cipher, a being who exists for the sake of his masters or the government. The men before me wear old, unlined cotton coats and straw sandals as their winter dress. In summer their wardrobe consists of straw sandals and a rag around their loins, in all about thirty-six linear inches of decency. Yet the tax-gatherer visits them, and even the priests glean in this stubble of humanity. Schools, law, thought, freedom, votes ! These are unheard of, unimagined. Yet they were polite and kind. They offer the foreigner room by the fire, until the smoke drives him outside, where the loathsome beggars swarm and importune in the language of the houseless. The stage is ready, and, taking one good look at the bright new railway bridge by which hired English energy and loaned capital have spanned the river, I fold myself beneath the buffalo-robe, and the driver proceeds to tell me of the treat soon in store. The ghastly entertainment was at hand. Just before Shinagawa, the suburb of great Tokio, by the side of the road, is a small patch of grassy soil only slightly raised above the rice-ditches. Here, on a pil- lory about six feet high, two human heads were exposed, propped, and made hideously upright by lumps of clay under each ear. The ooz- ing blood had stained the timber, and hung in coagulated drops and icicles of gore beneath. A dissevered head absent from its body is horrible enough, but a head shaven in rnid-scalp with a top-knot on it has a hitherto unimagined horror, especially Japanese. How pleasant it would be to mention in this book nothing but the beautiful ! How easy to let our glamoured eyes see naught but beau- ty and novelty ! Why not paint Japan as a land of peerless natural beauty, of polite people, of good and brave men, of pretty maidens, and gentle women ? Why bring in beggars, bloody heads, loathsome sores, scenes of murder, assassins' bravery, and humanity with all no- bility stamped out by centuries of despotism? Why not? Simply because homely truth is better than gilded falsehood. Only because it is sin to conceal the truth when my countrymen, generous to be- lieve too well, and led astray by rhetorical deceivers and truth-smoth- erers, have the falsest ideas of Japan, that only a pen like a probe can set right. No pen sooner than mine shall record reforms when made. I give the true picture of Japan in 1871. So we pass these bloody symbols of Japan's bloody code of edicts, 362 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. misnamed laws, by which she terrifies her people into obedience, and drive on through the narrow road past fine, large houses, clean, shin- ing, and pretty. What business is carried on in those edifices, splen- did in Japanese eyes, charming to a foreigner, and appearing, beside the ordinary citizen's dwelling, as palaces beside cottages ? Scores of them are ranged along the road. Shinagawa is the home of harlots, and here is the resort, not only of the ruffian, the rake, and the robber, but of the young men of the land. The finest houses in Japan belong to the woman in scarlet. The licensed government brothel, covering acres of land, is the most beautiful part of the capital. Oriental splen- dor a myth in the streets becomes reality when the portals of the Yoshiwara are crossed. Out in the blue bay stands the chain of forts built by the shogun's government after the arrival of Commodore Perry. Behind them rides at anchor the national navy of Japan, all floating the national flag a red sun on a white field. I easily recognize the old iron-clad Stonewall, now the Adzuma kuan. Half-past ten, and we sweep past the entrance to the British lega- tion. The red flag and crosses of England wave aloft, and the red- coated sentinel paces his round. Britons will long remember the le- gation at Takanawa. Incendiarism and gunpowder plots, murderous attacks by night, and three assassinations by daylight, have made this ground historic. " Killed from behind " are the words that have blot- ted the Japanese escutcheon with scores of stains as indelible as those on Bluebeard's key. Repeated washing in the fountain of indemnity and blood-money can never cleanse it. Not far from the British le- gation are the tombs of the Forty-seven ronins of immortal fame. We have passed the black gate at Shinagawa, and are in the city. I see to the left the Kosatsu a roofed frame of wood, on which hang boards inscribed in Japanese with edicts centuries old, yet renewed by the present government. I can not read the Chinese ideographs, but I know the meaning of one of them the slanderous and insulting edict that denounces the Christian religion as a hateful and devilish sect, and hounds on every bigot and informer to ferret out the Chris- tians. This is the foreigner's welcome to Tokio in 1871. Does the Japanese capital answer to the description in the old geographies " a large, park-like city, with a population of 2,500,000 ?" I shall see. Suburbs are usually unprepossessing, and I reserve my judgment. At eleven o'clock we drive past the splendid Monzeki temple of the Shin sect of Buddhists and into the yard of the Great Hotel at Tsukiji. IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 363 III. IN TOKI6, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. I WAS a stranger in a wilderness of a. million souls. In half an hour I had left the yard of the huge caravansary, which the Japanese who had built it fondly believed to be a comfortable hotel, and was on my way to the distant quarter of the city in which was situated the Im- perial College. I walked by preference, as I had studied the map of Tokio, and some rude native pictures of certain landmarks while in America, and I now determined to test the soundness of my knowl- edge. I had that proficiency in speaking the language which five words badly pronounced could give. Every foreigner who sojourns in Japan for a week learns " Sukoshi matte " (wait a little), " Ikura ?" (how much?), "Doko?" (where?), "Yoroshiu" (all right), and "Ha- yaku " (hurry). With these on my tongue, and my map in my hand, I started. I passed through the foreign quarter, which is part of the old district called Tsiikiji (filled-up land). It faces the river, and is moated in on all sides by canals. It is well paved, cleaned, and light- ed, contrasting favorably with the streets of the native city. The opening of Yedo as a foreign port cost a great outlay of money, but as a settlement was a failure, partly on account of high ground -rent, but mainly because the harbor is too shallow. Almost the only per- sons who live in Tsiikiji are the foreign officials at the consulates, mis- sionaries, and a few merchants. I walked on, interested at seeing novel sights at every step, and at the limits passed a guard-house full of sol- diers of Mae'da, the daimio of Kaga. These kept watch and ward r.t a black gate, flanked by a high black paling fence. For years it was absolutely necessary to guard all the approaches to the foreign quar- ter, and keep out all suspicious two-sworded men. Incendiarism and the murder of the hated foreigners were favorite amusements of the young blades of Japan, who wished both to get the shogun in trouble and to rid their beautiful land of the devilish foreigners. Every ap- proach to Yokohama was thus guarded at this time. From the for- eign quarter into the Yosliiwara is but a step. Handsome two-storied 364 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. wooden buildings, open to the street, were filled with pretty young girls, playing upon the samisen (banjo), having their hair dressed, sit- ting idle, or engaged at their toilet mirrors. Japanese male cynics say that a looking-glass is the mind of a woman. Handsome streets of neat houses extended to a distance of half a mile on each side, from which the same sounds proceeded. Why were these houses so fine ? Why so many young girls gathered ? Here were beauty, tender years, soft smiles, and luxurious houses. Here were little girls trained to do, when grown, as the older girls. For what purpose ? In every port open to foreigners in Japan, in a few of the other large cities, but not in daimios' capitals, there is the same institution. It is Japan's own. Before they opened any port to foreign trade, the Japanese built two places for the foreigners a custom-house and a brothel. The Yoshiwara is such a place. For the foreigners they supposed it to be a necessary good; for themselves, a protection to their people against ships' crews suddenly set free on land : they count- ed it a necessary evil. They believed the foreigners to be far worse than themselves. How far were they wrong ? We proceed through the quarter into streets lined with open shops. Privacy is not at a premium in Japan. One might live at home for years without understanding the mysteries of a lady's toilet. In Japan one learns it in a few days. Here is the human form divine bare to the waist, while its possessor laves her long black hair in warm water. She is about eighteen years old, evidently. Her mirror, powder-box, etc., lie about her. There is a mother shaving her baby's head. The chief occupation of the shop-keepers seems to be that of toasting their digits. I halt at a shop full of ivory carvings. Some of them are elegant works of art. Some are puns in ivory. Some are historical tableaux, which I recognize at once. These trophies of the geological cemeteries, or refrigerators, of Siberia are metamorphosed into what- ever form of beauty and grotesque humor the lively fancy of the carver has elected. The ivory in Japan was anciently brought from India, but in later times, through Corea, from the shores of the Arctic Ocean, where it is said modern dogs feed on the prehistoric meat of mammoths and mastodons frozen hard ages ago. Nearly all the ivory thus imported is put to a single use. It is carved into netsukes, or large buttons perforated with two holes, in which a silken cord is riven, and which holds the smoking apparatus, the vade mecum, of the native. Flint, tinder, and steel in one bag; tobacco in another; tiny -bowled, brass-tipped bamboo pipe, in a case, are all suspended by the IN TdKlO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 365 thrusi up through the girdle. The one represented in the accompa- nying cut shows how a Japanese rider, evidently somebody, from his hempen toque, mounts a horse, i. e., on the right (or wrong) side, while his betto holds the steed. I pass through one street de- voted to bureaus and cabinets, through another full of folding screens, through another full of dyers' shops, with their odors and vats. In one small but neat shop sits an old man, with horn - rimmed spectacles, with the mordant liquid beside him, Netsuke, or Ivory Button, for holding a Gentle- man's Pipe and Pouch in his Girdle, preparing a roll of material tor its next bath. In another street there is nothing on sale but bamboo- poles, but enough of these to make a forest. A man is sawing one, and I notice he pulls the saw with his two hands toward him. Its teeth are set contrary to ours. Another man is planing. He pulls the plane toward him. I notice a blacksmith at work : he pulls the bellows with his foot, while he is holding and hammering with both hands. He has several irons in the fire, and keeps his dinner-pot boiling with the waste flame. His whole family, like the generations before him, seem to " all get their living in the hardware line." The cooper holds his tub with his toes. All of them sit down while they work. How strange 1 Perhaps that is an important difference between a European and an Asiatic. One sits down to his work, the other stands up to it. Why is it that we do things contrariwise to the Japanese ? Are we upside down, or they ? The Japanese say that we are reversed. They call our penmanship " crab-writing," because, say they, " it goes back- ward." The lines in our books cross the page like a craw-fish, instead of going downward " properly." In a Japanese stable we find the horse's flank where we look for his head. Japanese screws screw the 24 Pattern Designer preparing a Roll of Silk for the Dye-vat. 366 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. other way. Their locks thrust to the left, ours to the right. The baby-toys of the Aryan race squeak when squeezed ; the Turanian gim- cracks emit noise when pulled apart. A Caucasian, to injure his ene- my, kills him ; a Japanese kills himself to spite his foe. Which race is left-handed ? Which has the negative, which the positive of truth ? What is truth ? What is down, what is up ? I emerge from the bamboo street to the Tori, the main street, the Broadway of the Japanese capital. I recognize it. The shops are gayer and richer; the street is wider; it is crowded with people. Now, for the first time, comes the intense and vivid realization that this is Japan. Here is a kago, with a woman and baby inside. Two half-naked coolies bear the pole on their shoulders, and hurry along, grunting in Japanese. They bear sticks in their hands, and stop at every few yards, rest the beam on their sticks, and change shoulders. Here comes an officer on horseback, with a lacquered helmet on his head, and bound with white pads over his chin. His two swords pro- trude from his girdle, his feet rest flat in wide iron stirrups, curved up like a skate-runner, and have room to spare. His saddle has enormous flaps of gilt leather. He grasps the reins, one in each hand, at about six inches from the bit, holding his horse's head so that his lower lip is higher than the space between his ears. This is torture and grace combined. It is the stylish thing in Japan. The horse's mane is tied up in a row of stiff pompoons ; his tail is incased in a long bag of silk. Enormous tassels hang from the horse's shoulders. " There is a method in riding," is a Japanese saying. I believe it. Here are soldiers, so I judge. They are dressed in every style of hybrid costume. One, in a broadcloth suit, finishes with bare head and clogs on the feet. Another has a foreign cap, but a Japanese suit. This man has on a pair of cowhide boots, against which his kilt flaps ungracefully, reminding one of an American tycoon going to the well to draw water. This one has a zouave jacket and native kilt. The soldiers look as if they had just sacked New York, and begun on Chatham Street. The braves have a brace of stabbing tools stuck in their belt. They are the two-sworded men, and insolent, swaggering bullies many of them are. As they pass the foreigner, they give him black scowls for a welcome. They are chiefly the retainers of the dai- mios of Tosa, Satsuma, Choshiu, and Hizen, and are pride-swollen with victory over the rebels at Wakamatsu and Hakodate. It is ticklish to walk among so many armed fellows who seem to be spoiling for for- eign blood. Japanese swords are quickly drawn, and are sharp. No IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 369 true man is really afraid when his enemy attacks in front ; but to be cut down by a coward from behind ! Tho thought makes my marrow curdle. With these foolish thoughts, I pass along for about a mile unscathed, for I have not yet learned the Japanese, and have read Al- cock. I arrive at the place renowned in all Japan. The Romans had their golden mile-stone, whence all distances throughout the empire were measured. Here, in the heart of Tokio, is Nihon Bashi (Bridge of Japan), whence, so it is said, all the great roads of the empire are measured. I had heard of it in America. All rural Japanese know of it. All expect, without warrant, to see a splendid bridge, and all are disappointed. It is a hump-backed wooden structure, a crazy mass of old fire-wood. It is lined on either side with loathsome beggars, asleep, gambling, playing, or begging. Mendicant priests in rags chant doleful prayers, pound stiff drums shaped like battledores. The vend- ers of all kinds of trash cluster around it. On the left, as we ap- proach from the south, stands the great Kosatsu.* On the bridge, glorious Fuji is seen in the distance, and near by the towers, moats, * Three of these edicts, and a repetition of the fourth, are given, with dates : "Board No. LLaw. "The evil sect called Christian is strictly prohibited. Suspicious persons should be reported to the proper officers, and rewards will be given. "DAI Jo KUAN, "Fourth year Kei-o, Third month (March 24th-April 22d, 1868), "Board No. II. Law. "Persons uniting together in numbers for any object soever are called leag- uers ; persons leaguing together for tb purpose of petitioning in a forcible man- ner are called insurrectionists ; persons who conspire to leave the ward or vil- lage in which they live are called runaways. All these acts are strictly prohib- ited. "Should any persons commit these offenses, information must at once be giv- en to the proper officers, and suitable rewards will be given. DAI Jo KUAN. "Fourth year Kei-o, Third mouth (March 24th-April 22d, 1868). "Board No. III. Law. " Human beings must carefully practice the principles of the five social rela- tions. Charity must be shown to widowers, widows, orphans, the childless, and sick. There must be no such crimes as murder, arson, or robbery. "DAI Jo KUAN. "Fourth year Kei-6, Third month (March 24th-April 22d, 1868). "Law. "With respect to the Christian sect, the existing prohibition must be strictly observed. "Evil sects are strictly prohibited. "Fourth month of the Firet year of Meiji (November, 1868)." 370 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. and walls of the castle. Up and down the canal cluster hundreds of boats, and a range of fire-proof store-houses line the banks. To the east is seen Yedo Bashi, or Bridge of Yedo. Turning up Suruga Cho, with Fuji's glorious form before me, I pass the great silk shop and fire-proof ware-houses of Mitsui, the millionaire ; I reach the castle moat and wall, and pass by the former mansion of Keiki, the last sho- gun. At noon, precisely, I arrive at the house of the American Superin- tendent of the Imperial College, to whom I bear letters and credentials. Behind black fences, high and hideous, I found the bungalows of the dozen foreign teachers of the college. At the table of the su- perintendent I sat down to take " tiffin," as the noon meal in the East is called. Congratulations and tho news were exchanged. At one o'clock the superintendent returned promptly to his work, and the new- comer remained to revel among the books, curiosities, and pictures of his genial host. When school is over, we are to walk out to Uyeno, to see the ruins of the battle of July 4th, 1868. Two hours of wait- ing pass quickly, and at a little after three o'clock, hearing a strange, noisy clatter, I run out by the gate to see what is going on. The school is being dismissed. What a sight for a school-master ! Hun- dreds of boys, young men, and men of older growth, all on high wood- en clogs, are shuffling and scraping homeward. The noise of their clogs on the rough pebbles of the street makes a strange clatter. They are all dressed in the native costume of loose coats, with long and bag-like sleeves; kilts, like petticoats, open at the upper side; with shaven mid-scalps, and top-knots like gun-hammers. Men and boys carry slates and copy-books in their hands, and common cheap glass ink-bottles slung by pieces of twine to their girdles. Hands and faces are smeared with the black fluid ; but, strangest of all, each has two of the murderous -looking swords, one long and the other short, stuck in his belt. Symbols of the soldier rather than the schol- ar are these ; but the samurai are both. They compose the " milita- ry-literary " class of Japan. A " scholar and a gentleman " is our pet compliment ; but in Japan, to be "a scholar, a soldier, and a gentle- man," is the aspiration of every samurai. A wild-looking set they seem, but the heart kindles to think of the young life of this Asiatic empire being fed at the streams of the science and languages of Chris- tian nations. In spite of the smeared clothes and faces, the topsy-tur- vy top-knots, and average slovenliness, quite natural after six hours' school-boy's work, and quite different from the morning's spruceness, there were so many earnest faces that the school-master abroad was IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 37 1 delighted, and felt eager to join in the work of helping on the rising generation and grand purpose of New Japan. " Education is the basis of all progress." The Japanese found it out. The Home Department of the new imperial government in 1870 reorganized the school, originally founded by the bakufu, and engaged an English and a French teacher to give instruction. Years before, at Nagasaki, an American missionary, whose name I omit only in deference to his sensitive modesty, had taught Japanese young men, sending forth scores who afterward held high place in govern- ment counsels. They called him to take charge of their chief school in Tokio. In January, 1869, there were three French, three German, and five English teachers, and about eight or nine hundred scholars. It was called a " university ;" its proper name was a school of lan- guages. The Japanese had very primitive ideas concerning the fitness of men to teach. The seclusion of Japan for nearly three hundred years had its effect in producing generations of male adults who, compared to men trained in the life of modern civilization, were children. Any one who could speak English could evidently teach it. The idea of a trained professional foreign teacher was never entertained by them. They picked up men from Tokio and Yokohama. The " professors " at first obtained were often ex-bar-tenders, soldiers, sailors, clerks, etc. When teaching, with pipe in mouth, and punctuating their instruc- tions with oaths, or appearing in the class-room top-heavy, the Japa- nese concluded that such eccentricities were merely national peculiar- ities. As for " Japanese wives," they were in many houses, and this the native authorities never suspected was wrong, or different from the foreign custom. In America there was read to me a paper on the subject, and I innocently marveled at the high tone of Japanese mo- rality. I found out afterward that the clause meant that the foreign teachers must not change mistresses too often. One American in To- kio enjoyed a harem of ten native beauties. Yet there were some faithful found among the faithless, and real, earnest teachers. Yet even these were not altogether comprehensible to their employers. One man, a Christian gentleman, but not painfully neat, especially in his foot-gear, having the habit peculiar to a certain great man of never lacing 1 - up his shoes, the Japanese director of the school solemnly in- quired whether the gentleman was angry at the officers. They sup- posed that he had some cause of complaint against them, and was showing it professionally by not lacing up his shoes. They were 372 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. quite relieved on being informed that the unlaced boots neither fore- boded nor expressed dissatisfaction. It was a Herculean, nay, rather a seemingly impracticable, task to reduce that wild chaos of humanity to order and system. Here were gathered together a thousand male Japanese, of every age, and from every quarter of the empire. The middle-aged and old men, who wished to learn merely to read and translate, and not to speak, a for- eign language, were mostly in the " meaning-school." The younger, though some were over thirty, learned the alphabet, spelling, conversa- tions, writing, and, in the higher classes, geography, arithmetic, and simple history. The buildings were rows of sheds with glass win- dows, deal desks and seats, and unpainted wood partitions. A thousand top-knots, two thousand swords; as many clogs, as many suits of cotton dress ; a thousand pairs of oblique eyes that saw not as the eyes of the Teuton, the Frank, the Briton, or the American saw; a thousand rice-filled stomachs; a thousand brains filled with the ideas instilled by the old education of Japan ; a thousand pairs of arms trained to the sword, spear, and bow ; a thousand restless bodies that chafed under foreign school discipline all these together made what seemed chaos to the teacher fresh from the order and neatness of an American school. In the rickety rooms were fire-pots and bam- boo tubes doing duty as ash-boxes ; for at each recess, even during recitation, native scholar and teacher were wont to pull out their pipes and fill the tiny bowls to smoke. An old daimio's yashiki had been transformed by rows of sheds into the "University." According to Japanese etiquette, the officers entered at one door, the teachers at another, the scholars at a third. As the school began somewhere about 9 A.M., the scholars thronged along the stone walk. The scraping clatter of their wooden clogs and pattens was deafening. Each came to school wearing his two swords. Entering a large square room, each delivered his clogs to one of the half-dozen attendant servants, who, hanging them up, gave the owner a wooden check branded with a number. In another room, which looked like an arsenal, he took out his long sword, which was laid on one of the hundred or more racks, and checked as before. Hats they never wore, and so were never troubled to hang them up. There was not a hat in Japan a decade ago, at least in the cylindrical sense of the term. When the Westernized native does begin to wear one, he never knows at first where to put it when off his head, or remembers it when he goes away from where he laid it. IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 373 In rainy weather, their paper umbrellas were stowed away and ticketed in the same manner as their clogs. Thus despoiled, in bare feet, or in mitten - stockings, with short sword in belt, from which wooden checks depended, the scholars entered their rooms. The teacher, not always early, began with his top-knots, and right grandly did the young eyes snap and the young ideas shoot. With such ma- terial the superintendent went on. With officers utterly unacquainted with their duties ; teachers of all sorts, and no sort at all ; undisciplined pupils, having to combat suspicion, ignorance, and, worse than all, Japanese vanity and conceit, he toiled on for years, the final result be- ing morally magnificent. In this school the scholars attended but one session, being divided into morning and afternoon scholars. Half of them messed or boarded in barracks built by the school ; but where they went at night, or how they spent their spare time, was no one's business. The mikado's government had been in operation in Tokio two years, but it was on any thing but a stable foundation. Conspiracies and rumors we had for breakfast, dinner, and supper. To-day, Satsuma was going to carry off the mikado. To-morrow, the " tycoon " was to be restored. The next day, the foreigners were to be driven out of Tokio, and then out of Japan. The city was not only full of the turbulent troops of the jealous daimios, but of hundreds of the Jo-i (or foreigner-haters), the patriot assassins, who thought they were do- ing the gods service, and their country a good, in cleaving a foreigner in the street. Before I left America, my students had told me by all means to take a revolver with me, as I might very likely meet ronins. I had one of Smith & Wesson's best. Few foreign residents ever went far from their houses without one, and many wisely kept indoors at night, except upon urgent duty. About fifty foreigners had been killed in Japan since 1859. For the safety of the teachers, about fifty armed men, called bette, were kept in pay. These knights were dubbed " Brown Betties" a vile pun, evidently by an American, through whose sad memory visions of that appetizing pudding flittered, as he mourn- ed its absence, with that of buckwheat-cakes, pumpkin-pies, turkeys, and other home delicacies. Horses were kept ready saddled, and the bette were always ready to accompany man or horse. It was impossi- ble to slip out without them. By a curious system of Japanese arith- metical progression, one bette accompanied one foreigner, four of them went with two, and eight with three. One would suppose that a sin- 374 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. gle foreigner was in greater danger than when with a companion. The first afternoon I walked to see the ruins of Uyeno, once the glory of the city, with my host. I noticed one guard kept always with us. Not being counted a protege, I often went on my rambles alone. I was never harmed, though I got an occasional scowl, and was often obliged to pass along narrow and lonely streets, in which villainous- looking men, with two murderous-looking swords in their belts, were numerous. Among the many sites in the city from which one can get a view of Fuji from base to summit, are Atago yama, the top of Kudan zaka, and Suruga Dai, or elevation, so named from the fact that you behold the lordly mountain as though you were in Suruga itself. View of Fuji, from Suruga Dai, in Tokio. One afternoon I had been out walking to Asakusa and Uyeno with the only American teacher in the school at that time, and, after a long tramp, returned to recount what I had seen, and to consult my host. We agreed, the morrow being a holiday, to make an excursion to the lovely suburban retreat Oji, just outside, to the north of Tokio. After an evening among maps, note-books, and letters, as usual, I retired to r,est. I was a sound sleeper, and noticed nothing during the night. About 4 A.M. my host appeared at my door, and, in a rather sepulchral tone, informed me that we could not go to Oji that day. There had been great changes during the night, and two teachers of the school had been cut down in the streets. I dressed hurriedly, and at our hasty breakfast by the lamp I learn- ed the story of the night. It was a simple one, but bloody enough. The two men had gone to Tsukiji, and there dismissed their guards. Presuming upon their supposed safety, and being wholly unarmed, they started to another part of the city, not far from the school. From their own story, they were quietly walking along one of the streets. The' tallest of them suddenly received such a blow from be- IN TOKIO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 375 hind that he fell, supposing that some one had knocked him down with a bamboo or club. Almost before he fell, his companion re- ceived a frightful cut on the opposite shoulder. Both then knew they had received sword - wounds, and they both started to run. The first one attacked ran up the street into an open paper-shop, begging the people to bind up his wounds, and send word to the college. The second, being the last on his feet, was overtaken by his pursuer, who dealt him a second sweeping two-handed blow, which cut a canal across his back from right shoulder to left hip, nearly eleven inches long. He gained the paper-shop, however, and begged the people to stanch his wounds with the thick, soft Japanese paper. After giving their address, and bidding the people send for a doctor and a school officer, they fainted away from loss of blood. They were, when I saw them, lying asleep at the paper- shop, native doctors having reached them and skillfully bound up their wounds. We left the college at half-past four, well armed, and accompanied by a servant carrying a lantern. We passed down the street skirting the castle moat to the Tori. It was very dark, and the city was in unbroken slumber. The only sight was the night roundsman pacing his beat, lantern in his left hand, and jingling an iron staff, surmount- ed by bunches of rings on the top, which he thumped on the ground at every few steps, crying out, "Hi no yojin " (look out for fire). Here and there, in nooks and corners, we saw a beggar curled up under his mats. We finally reached the house in Nabe Cho (Rice-pot Street). We entered by a side door, and found in the back-room, sitting and smoking round the hibachi, six or eight interpreters and Japanese teachers from the college. Sliding aside the paper partitions, we look- ed into the front room, and, by the light of our lanterns, saw the two wounded men, one with head bandaged and face upward, the other lying prone, with back tightly swathed, asleep, and breathing heavily. We waited till daylight, when they woke up and told us their story. The skillful surgeon of the English legation arrived shortly after, commending highly the skill displayed by the native surgeons in bind- ing up the wounds. I spent several days and nights in the house, attending the patients. The woands of one were of a frightful character * that of the other was up6n the head and shoulder-blade. The blow had grazed the skull, and cut deeply into the fleshy part of the back. It was not dangerous : in a few days he sat up, and the wound rapidly healed. For several days the weakness arising from the loss of blood and the wound-fever 376 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. threatened to end the life of his companion. One of his ribs was nearly severed, and both gashes were long and deep. He had to be handled very tenderly. After seven days, however, they were able to be removed to their own house, and, as they had provided other nurses, my services were no longer required. I took the early stage on the morning of the attack, and carried the news to Yokohama. The mikado's Government, with astonishing energy, immediately took steps to discover the assassins, using the most strenuous exertions. Every one leaving the city or passing the gates was searched. Every samurai in Tokio was obliged to give an account of his whereabouts from sunset to sunrise of that evenincr. o Every sword worn in Tokio was examined to discover blood - stains, which can not be removed except by grinding. Every sword -maker and grinder was questioned. I know of several small boys who felt highly elated at the great and rare honor of having a posse of pomp- ous government officials gravely examine their swords, according to or- ders. Nothing gave one so real an idea of the sincerity and ability of the Government, and its determination to reform barbarous customs, as their energy on this occasion. The stage which carried me to Yokohama was stopped at the Shinagawa guard-house by a man armed with a barbed hook, to examine any Japanese that might be within. The excitement among the foreigners in Tokio next morning was intense. Prophets went round prophesying that in a week Tokio would be deserted of foreigners. A certain consul posted up a notice in a public place in a bar-room, I believe authorizing any citizen of his nationality, should any Japanese be seen laying his hand on his sword, " to shoot him on the spot." The most violent and inflamma- tory language appeared in the newspapers. Some hot-headed folks at Yokohama held a meeting, and resolved that the Japanese Government should disarm the samurai, by ordering the immediate abolition of the custom of wearing swords. Yokohama residents whose business brought them to Tokio, though belted and with two revolvers, saw in every Japanese boy or coolie an assassin. A nightmare of samurai, swords, blood, bleeding heads and arms, grave-stones, and grim death brooded over the foreigners. " The beaten soldier fears the tops of the tall grass." Amidst this panic of fear, two mild and gentle countrymen of mine one a missionary who had lived in Japan and among the people seven years, and another who for months had gone among them day and night unarmed opened my eyes. Even the sworded samurai became IN TdKlO, THE EASTERN CAPITAL. 377 in my vision as harmless as trees walking. I saw that the affair, which had frightened some men out of their wits, concerned a gentleman about as much as a murder in Water Street, or the Five Points, con- cerns a law-loving citizen of New York, who attends quietly to his business. I soon put away my revolver, and began the study of facts relating to the many cases of " assassination " of foreigners in Japan. In every instance, since the restoration of peace after the troubles of the civil war, it was a story of overbearing insolence, cruelty, insult, the jealousy of paramours, native women, or avarice, or the effect of causes which neither fair play nor honor could justify. During my stay of nearly four years in Japan, several Europeans were attacked or killed ; but in no case was there a genuine assassina- tion, or unprovoked assault. I was led to see the horrible injustice of the so-called indemnities, the bombardments of cities, the slaughter of Japanese people, and the savage vengeance wreaked for fancied in- juries against foreigners. There is no blacker page in history than the exactions and cruelties practiced against Japan by the diplomatic representatives of the nations called Christian in the sense of having the heaviest artillery. In their financial and warlike operations in Japan, the foreign ministers seem to have acted as though there was no day of judgment. Of the Japanese servants kicked and beaten, or frightened to death, by foreign masters ; of peaceable citizens knock- ed down by foreign fists, or ridden over by horses ; of Japanese homes desolated, and innocent men and women, as well as soldiers, torn by shells, and murdered by unjust bombardments, what reparation has been made ? What indemnity paid ? What measures of amelioration taken for terrible excess of bloody revenge at Kagoshima and Shimo- noseki ? What apology rendered ? For a land impoverished and torn, for the miseries of a people compelled by foreigners, for the sake of their cursed dollars, to open their country, what sympathy ? For their cholera and vile diseases, their defiling immorality, their brutal violence, their rum, what benefits in return ? Of real encouragement, of cheer to Japan in her mighty struggle to regenerate her national life, what word ? Only the answer of the horse-leech for blood, blood ; and at all times, gold, gold, gold. They ask all, and give next to nothing. For their murders and oppressions they make no reparation. Is Heaven always on the side of the heaviest artillery ? 378 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. IV. SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. THE temple of Kuanon at Asakiisa is to Tdkio what St. Paul's is to London, or N6tre Dame to Paris. The chief temple of the city, the most popular religious resort, one never sees the Japanese capital till he sees Asakusa. Like N6tre Dame, it is ancient, holy, dirty, and grand, with pigeons and priests, and bazaars and book-stalls near by to match. Asakusa is now the name of a district of the city, which anciently was a village. The temple is about three miles from the centre of the castle, and two from Nihon Bashi, and at the time of its erection was a remote suburb. It is but a short distance from the river, and Asakusa bridge and Asakusa ferry have been made chiefly for the convenience of the pious, gay, and curious, to cross the Sumida River to visit the great temple, gardens, and pleasure-grounds, many acres in extent. These latter a Japanese temple must always have, whether Buddhist or Shinto. In them are fairs, refreshments, booths, eating, smoking, dancing, and every gay sport and pleasure known. To the Japanese mind there is no incongruity in this placing a temple cheek by jowl with a theatre. To cast his cash in the box of offerings, to pray, are but preludes to uproarious mirth or sedate enjoyments. Re- ligion and innocent pleasure join hands in Japan. Are the Japanese wrong in this ? Two grand entrances invite the visitor. One opens to the river. The main approach forms the terminus of an avenue that traverses the city, and joins the broad street fronting Asakusa at right angles. Up and down this street, on either side, for rods, are restaurants and houses where the famed singing-girls of Tokio make music, song, and dance. The path to the temple is of stone, twelve feet wide, with side pavements, upon which are ranged hundreds of booths having on sale a gorgeous abundance of toys, dolls, and every thing to delight the eyes of babydom. Perpetual Christmas reigns here. "Every SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. 379 street in Paris is like Broadway," said a French mademoiselle to a New York lady. Every day at Asakusa is a festival ; but on the great matsuris, or religious holidays, the throng of gayly dressed hu- manity, of all ages, is astonishing. Every one in Japan has heard of Asakusa. One never fairly sees open-air Japanese life, except at a matsuri. There is nothing strange, however, to the Japanese mind in this association of temples and toy-shops. The good bonzes in their sermons declare, as the result of their exegesis and meditations, that husbands are bound to love their wives, and show it by allowing them plenty of pin-money and hair-pins, and to be not bitter against them by denying them neat dresses and handsome girdles. The farmer who comes to town with his daughter, turns from prayer to the purchase of pomatum or a mirror. Every sort of toy, game, hair- ornaments in illimitable variety ; combs, rare and beautiful, and cheap and plain ; crapes for the neck and bosom ; all kinds of knickknacks, notions, and varieties are here ; besides crying babies ; strings of beads for prayer; gods of lead, brass, and wood ; shrines and family altars, sanctums, prayer - books, sacred bells, and candles. Chapels and special shrines, many of them the expiatory gifts of rich sinners, lie back of the booths on each side of the road- way. On their walls hang votive tablets and pictures of various sorts. In one of the booths, an old artist, with his two brushes Artist at work. in one hand > is painting one. His cheap productions will sell for five or ten cents. He looks as though he were laughing at his own joke, for his subject is a pictorial pun on the word " fool " (baka : ba, a horse ; &a, a stag).* * The allusion is to the act of the Chinese prime minister at the court of the. Chinese emperor, who was the son of the illustrious builder of the Great Wall. He declared that a stag could be called a horse, and a horse a stag. The courtiers were compelled to obey him. This is the origin of the Japanese word baka, which the Japanese urchins sometimes cry at foreigners, and one of the first words the latter learn to throw at the natives. The particular digital gesture of sticking the left forefinger in the left side of the mouth is the Japanese equivalent of the soliloquy, " What a fool I am !" or the interrogation, " You think I'm a fool, don't 380 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The incense of smoldering "joss-sticks"* is wafted outward, and blends with the savory odors of baking -sponge and griddle -cakes, roasting nuts, and the disgusting smell of cuttle-fish fried in oil, made from sesame (Sesamum Orientalis). I never knew till I arrived in the Land of the Gods why the door of the cave of the Forty Thieves opened so easily when Ali Baba uttered the potent words, " Open sesame." I know now. Let any one get ten feet to windward of a frying-pan full of sesame oil, and he will find it strong enough to open twenty doors. There, two lusty fellows are pulling away at a colossal rope of barley-sugar candy, now stretching, now twisting, now doubling, until the proper consistence and fibre are obtained. Down on the ground, at intervals, we find an old woman, or a young girl, selling what seem to be little slips of frayed wood, which, dropped on water, open into surprising forms of beauty. The uniform trifles unfold into variety, displaying a flower, a boat, a tree, a bird, a rat, a fisherman, a man, Fuji, a bottle, a cup, a bug, an animal. Some are jokes and comic pictures. Before the temple proper stands a colossal structure, serving merely as a gate-way, of red painted wood, almost seventy feet high. Facing us on either side as we enter are the high colored demons Ni-6 (two kings), whom we must propitiate. Each is higher than Goliath of Gath : one is green, and the other red. "As ugly as sin," is faint praise of their hideousness. Their faces and muscles are contorted into fanciful corrugations, and their attitude is as though they were going to transfix us heretics. Fastened to the grating in front of them are straw sandals, such as laborers and rustics wear. Some of these are big enough to shoe a megatherium. They are hung up by people with sore feet, to propitiate the demons and to seek recovery. In front of the gate and under it, in two rows, sit pious beggars, mostly women, who beat on hollow shells of wood, like enormous stale clams or gaping sleigh-bells, and say prayers for their donors at a low price. The faithful drop a few iron cash, or a single copper, to one or more of these hags as they pass on. Passing within the gate, we are in the temple yard. To the right is a huge lavatory, the people washing their hands, and rinsing their you ?" The artist is thinking how foolish he is thus to spend his days in painting cheap pictures for a precarious means of subsistence. He is thus caricaturing himself. * Joss is the Chinaman's pronunciation of the Portuguese word Deos Latin, Deus. SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. 381 mouths, preparatory to worship. A pagoda rises to the right with its seven stories, its heavy eaves fringed with wind-bells, its beams tipped with carvings, and its roof terminating into a projec- tion called the kiu-do (nine rings), resembling an enor- mous copper turning just rolled from the lathe, or a corkscrew such as might be used to uncork a columbiad. To climb to the top is to run the risk of dislocating the neck, and the view does not repays In time of se- vere earthquake, this pago- da spire will vibrate like a plume on a helmet. Of course, in the picture, the artist must bring in the snow-white cranes, and Fuji. On the top is the jewel, or sacred pearl, so conspicuous in Japanese art and symbol- ism, and which, on the coins and paper money, the dragon ever clutches in his talons. On my left stands a large plain frame of wood, on which hang tal- lies, or tablets, inscribed with names and sums of money. They are those of subscribers to the temple, and the amount of their contribu- tions. One, five, and ten dollars are common gifts, and the one hun- dred-dollar donor is honored with a larger amount of shingle to ad- vertise his religion. Several old women have stands, at which they sell holy beans, pious pease, and sanctified rice. These are kept ready in tiny earthen saucers. The orthodox buy these, and fling them to the cloud of pigeons that are waiting on the temple eaves, and fly, whirring down, to feed. Ten thousand sunbeams flash from their opaline necks as their pink feet move coquettishly over the ground. Two enormous upright bronze lanterns on stone pedestals flank the path, and on these flocks of pigeons quickly rise and settle again. These pigeons have their home, not only without but within the tem- 25 Pagoda Spire, or Kiu-do. (Nishiki-y6.) 382 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. pie, over the very altars of Great Shaka. Even the pigeon hath found a rest where she may lay her young, even thine altars, Great Shaka. Their cooing blends with the murmurs of prayer, and the whirring of their wings with the chant of the bonzes. Besides the pigeons, there are two sacred Albino ponies kept in a stable to the left. They are consecrated to the presiding deity, Kua- non, Goddess of Mercy. A young girl has the care of them, and they are fed by the pious, who, as a religious and meritorious act, buy the beans and pease with which the animals are fed. The most imposing feature of a Japanese temple is the roof of massive black tiles, sweeping up in a parabolic curve of the immense surface, which make enormous gables at the side. One is impressed with the solidity of the timbers and supports, which are set firmly but loosely in stone sockets, and defy the earthquake in a manner that re- calls ^Esop's fable of the oak and the reed. We ascend the broad cop- per-edged steps to the broader porch, and are on the threshold of the great pagan temple, so holy, so noisy, so dirty. Within its penetra- lium, we try to feel reverent. How can we, with a crowd of eager, curious, dirty faces, with dirty babies behind them, with unclean pig- eons whirring above us to the threatened detriment of our hats ? With- in is a chaos of votive tablets, huge lanterns, shrines, idols, spit-balls, smells, dust, dirt, nastiness, and holiness. Immediately within the door stands a huge bronze censer, with a hideous beast rampant upon it. He seeing maddened by the ascending clouds of irritating incense that puff out of numerous holes around the edge. The worshipers, as they enter, drop an iron or copper cash in the lap of the black- toothed crone who keeps the sacred fuel, put a pinch in one of the holes, and pass in front of the altar to pray. Around the top of the censer are th.e twelve signs of the Japanese zodiac, in high relief. These are the rat, ox, tiger, rabbit, dragon, serpent, horse, goat, mon- key, cock, dog, hog. The great main altar is protected in front by an iron wire screen. Each worshiper, before praying, makes a " heave-offering " of a hand- ful of cash into the huge coffer* before the altar. Occasionally one, with pious intent, throws what we would call a spit-ball at the screen. What an idea ! The worshiper writes out his petition, chews it to a pulp in his mouth, and throws it at the idol. If it sticks, the omen is good, the prayer is heard. Hearing, then, depends on the softness of the mass, or the saliva! ability and dexterity of the thrower. Some of the images in the outer shrines are speckled all over with these out- SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. 383 spittings of pious mouths. The coins and balls might injure the al- tar furniture and golden idols, if not protected. The space opposite the altar is filled by praying people of every sort. Mothers, maidens, and children, old men and boys, samurai and merchant and farmer, country boors, city swells, soldiers in French uni- form with sword-bayonets at their side, a la Paris, all fling the coin, bow the head, rub the hands above the head. Many use strings of beads, like the Roman Catholics. Prayers at the main altar over, the devotee may visit one or more of the many side shrines within the building. To the right sits the ugly and worn-out god Binzuru (one of Buddha's original sixteen disciples), reputed to cure diseases. There is a mother with two children rubbing the dirty old wooden head and limbs, and then applying the supposed virtue to their own bodies by rubbing them. The old idol is polished greasy and black by the at- trition of many thousand palms. His nose, ears, eyes, and mouth have long since disappeared. We warrant that more people are infected than cured by their efforts. To the left is a shrine, covered in front by a lattice, to the bars of which are tied thousands of slips of paper containing written prayers. Flanking the coffer on either side are old men who sell charms, printed prayers, beads, prayer-books, and ecclesiastical wares of all sorts. Vo- tive tablets are hung on the walls and huge round pillars. Here is one, on which is the character, cut from paper, for " man " and " wom- an," joined by a padlock, from a pair of lovers, who hope and pray that the course of true love may run smooth, and finally flow like a river. Here is one from a merchant who promises a gift to the tem- ple if his venture succeeds. Scores are memorials of gratitude to Kuanon for hearing prayer and restoring the suppliant to health. The subject of one picture is the boiler explosion on the steamboat City of YedOj which took place in front of the foreign hotel in Tsukiji, Au- gust 12th, 1870, in which one hundred lives were lost. Only a few days ago, in Yokohama, I saw the infant son of the Rev. Mr. and Mrs. Cornes, my fellow-country people, who, with a little English girl, were the only foreigners killed. The devotee was saved by the great mercy of Kuanon, and hangs up the tablet, as a witness of his gratitude, and Kuanon's surpassing favor. Many are from sailors who have survived a storm. On the wire screen hang scores of men's greasy top-knots, and a few braids of women's hair, cut off on account of vows, and of- fered to the honor of Kuanon. Perhaps the deity sees the heart that made the offering, and not the rancid and mildewed grease. Above 384 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. are splendid carvings and paintings of angels. The Buddhist angels are always feminine. Among the crowd of religious emblems, there stares at you a framed picture of the Pacific Mail Steamship China as an advertisement, and near the door of exit, at the left, stands an im- mense mirror in a dazzling gilt frame. It is one of the sensational attractions to the vulgar, and helps to make up the catchpenny collec- tion of miscellanies in this rich temple, whose real estate covers many acres of valuable ground. Beyond the great space devoted to the public are the various altars and gilt images of the deities, sages, and saints of the Buddhist pan- theon and calendar. Candles burn, incense floats, and the sacred books repose here. The privileged faithful can, for a fee to the fat priests who sit behind their account-books, come within the iron wire screen, and, kneeling on the clean matting in front of the great altar, may pray, or read or chant sacred books, canonical or liturgical ; or, having a vow to a particular deity, or wishing to invoke the intercession of a special saint, may enter, to kneel remote from the crowd. It seems curious, even in Japan, to see men dressed in foreign clothes, praying before the gilded and hideous idols, bowing down to foxes and demons, and going through all the forms of paganism. Clothes do not make a Christian, and yet to our narrow vision there seems no agreement between a high hat and a Buddhist temple, no concord between a black-cloth coat and an idol in ancient robes. We leave the temple and descend the steps, glad to get out into the only true God's fresh air. From the unnature of superstition to the purity of nature, from the pent-up closeness of the priests' temple into the boundless freedom of God's glorious creation, how welcome the change ! It stirs the pulses of the divine life within us to behold how priestcraft and sanctified avarice and blind superstition of ages have united, and then to remember how One said, "Have faith in God." To the left of the temple are gardens famed for their displays of flowers in season the plum-blossoms in February, cherry blooms in April, the lotus in July, azaleas in summer, chrysanthemums in Octo- ber, camellias in December, and evergreens always. Here are dwarfed trees in every shape. Fuji appears over and over again in miniature. Tortoises, cats, male foreigners with hats, and females in crinoline, houses, wagons, and what not, appear in living forms of green. Tiny trees, an inch or two high, balmy pines, oaks and bamboo, cacti, striped -grass, rare plants of all varieties known in Japan, are here. SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. 387 An open chrysanthemum, the crest of the emperor, is emblazoned on all the barracks of the soldiers, on their caps, buttons, and banners, and on all buildings devoted to governmental purposes. In the cultivation of these flowers the native gardeners excel. In their limited specialties, the Japanese florists distance those of any other country. The borders of the Asakusa gardens are made of clipped tea-plants. Dwarfing, unnatural local enlargement, variegation of leaf and petal, the encouragement of freaks of nature by careful artificial selection these are the specialties of the natives of Nippon, which have been perfected by the hereditary patience, tact, and labor of a thousand years. The guild of florists in Tokio is large and wealthy. As the florist father, so is the son. Some of the streets of the city are noted for their floral displays and fairs. These are often given at night, the street being lighted by candles, as in the picture. The temple and the gardens are not the only sights at Asakusa. The antiquary may revel in deciphering the scores of inscriptions in Sanskrit, Japanese, and Chinese. Most of these are commemorative of religious events; some are prayers, some are quotations from ca- nonical books, some are sacred hymns. The stones are of granite, of slate, and of gray-stone. Bronze and stone images of Buddha are numerous ; some with aureole, and finger lifted ; some with hands or legs crossed, and thumbs joined meditatively. All wear the serene countenance of the sage in Nirvana. Around the base of nearly all are heaps of pebbles, placed there as evidence of prayers offered. In one shrine little earthen pots of salt are placed as offerings. A " pray- ing machine " a stone wheel in a stone post stands near. In one octagon temple are ranged the stone effigies of the five hundred origi- nal disciples of Buddha. Again we light on a crowd of stone idols, on which are pasted bits of paper, containing a picture or a prayer. Some of them are as full of labels as an apothecary's shop. Many have smoking incense-sticks before them, stuck in a bed of ashes accu- mulated from former offerings. In one building to the south-east of the main temple is a curious collection of idols, which attract attention from the fact of their being clean. Three idols, representing assistant torturers to Em a, the Lord of Hell, painted in all colors and gilded as gorgeously as cheap ginger- bread, stand in theatrical attitudes. One wields a sword, one a pen, and one a priest's staff. All have their heads in an aureole of red flames. The feet of the first, a green monster like a deified caterpillar, rests his foot on an imp of the same color, having two clawed toes on 388 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. his feet, and two fangs in his mouth. Under the second writhes a flesh-colored devil, holding up an ink-stone, ready for the use of the idol, who may be a Japanese Saturday Reviewer. The third, with an indigo face, having a priest's staff, treads on a sky-blue devil. In the middle of the stone-floored room is a revolving shrine, having many closed doors, and containing sacred treasures of some sort. All over the crowded grounds are tea-booths with the usual charcoal fire, copper boiler, kettle, cup-rack, sweetmeats, and smiling, powdered, well-dress- ed damsel, who invites the passer-by to rest, drink a cup of tea, and part with a trifle as gift. At the north end are ranged the archery galleries, also presided over by pretty black-eyed Dianas, in paint, powder, and shining coiffure. They bring you tea, smile, talk nonsense, and giggle; smoke their long pipes with tiny bowls full of mild, fine-cut tobacco ; puff out the long white whiffs from their flat-bridged noses; wipe the brass mouth-piece, and offer it to you ; and then ask you leading and very personal questions without blushing. The bows are of slender bam- boo strips, two feet long, with rests for the shaft. The arrows are of cherry-wood, six inches long, bone-tipped, and feathered red, blue, or white. Two or three targets hang in front of a square drum, flanked by red cushions. A sharp click on the hard target, the boom of the drum, or the deadened sound of the struck cushion, tell the grades of success. Full-grown, able-bodied men are the chief patrons of these places of pleasure, and many can find amusement for hours at such play. Let no one visit Asakusa without seeing the so-called " wax-works," though there is very little wax in the show. In one of the buildings, to the rear and left of the main temple, are thirty-five tableaux, in life* size figures, of the miracles wrought by Kuanon, or wondrous events in the lives of her pious devotees. There are thirty-three great tem- ples in Japan, dedicated to Kuanon, the Goddess of Mercy. Pious pil- grims often make the pilgrimage, visiting each of these shrines. The tableaux at Asakusa are thought by many foreign critics to excel in expression the famous collection of Madame Tussaud in London, an opinion which the writer shares. They are all the handiwork of one artist, who visited the most celebrated shrines of Kuanon, and, struck with the marvelous power and mercy of the god, wished to show to the youth of his country the benefit of trusting in and praying to him or her. The figure of Kuanon is, in some representations, like that of a gentle and lovely lady. In the outside tableau, the image of SIGHTS AND SOUNDS IN A PAGAN TEMPLE. 369 Kuanon is drawn out in public to stay a plague, which is accomplish- ed by the mercy and favor of the god. In the first tableau inside, a learned lady prays to Kuanon, and is heard. The second tableau rep- resents Kuanon appearing in the form of a beautiful woman to reward a diligent priest; the third, a young girl suddenly restored to health by the favor of Kuanon ; the fourth, Kuanon appearing in the form of a little peasant girl to a noble of the mikado's court ; the fifth, a hungry robber desecrating the temple ; and a certain suggestive paint- ing to the left, in which demons and a red-hot cart, with wheels and axles of fire, are pictured above the robber, tells what is to become of him. In the sixth, a noble of the mikado's court overcomes and binds the thunder-god, or demon, through the power of Kuanon. In the seventh, a woman is saved from shipwreck because she sung a hymn to Kuanon during the tempest. In the eighth, a devout priest, fearing yet bold, goes to talk to Ema, the Lord of Hell. The ninth repre- sents an old man, one of the Hojo family, writing a prayer -poem. The tenth represents a pious damsel, who worshiped Kuanon, never killed any animals, and saved the life of a crab which a man was go- ing to kill : afterward, a snake, transforming itself into human shape, came to seize her, but a multitude of grateful crabs appeared and res- cued her, biting the reptile to death : this was by the order of Kua- non. In the eleventh, a devout worshiper, by prayer, overcomes and kills a huge serpent that troubled the neighborhood. In the twelfth, a diligent copyist of the sacred books beguiles his time by rewarding little children with cakes for bringing him pebbles, for every one of which he transcribes a character. The baby on the back of the little girl is asleep ; and the imitation of baby-life is wonderful, and in re- spect to one or two details more truthful than elegant. In the thir- teenth, Kuanon, having appeared on earth in female form, goes to heaven, taking the picture of a boy, who afterward grows up to be a celebrated priest. In the fourteenth, a pious woman falls from a lad- der, but is unhurt. In the fifteenth, a man suffering grievously from headache is directed to the spot where the skull which belonged to his body in a previous state of existence is being split open by the root of a tree growing through the eye-socket. On removing it, he is relieved of his headache. In the nineteenth, a good man vanquishes a robber. In the twentieth, the babe of a holy farmer's wife, who is out at work, is saved from a wolf by miraculous rays defending the child. In the twenty-first, Kuanon appears to heal a sick girl with a wand and drops of water. In the twenty-second, a holy man buys and sets 390 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. free a tortoise about to be killed for food. Three days afterward his child falls overboard, and is apparently lost, but after a while returns safely on the back of the grateful reptile. In the twenty-fourth, a re- tainer of a noble is ordered to kill his master's son for disobedience to him. The servant, unable, through love of his master's son, to do it, kills his own son instead. The tableau represents him mourning over his son's gory head. His master's son, in remorse, became a priest. In the twenty-fifth, a good man is saved from robbers by his dog. In the twenty-sixth, a man who had his cargo of rice confiscated for his refusal to give the priest his share, repented of his obduracy, and re- ceived heavenly evidence of his pardon in a new cargo of rice sent by Kuanon. In the twenty-seventh, the son of a court noble breaks a precious ink-stone. His father, in a fit of anger, kills him. The horrified attendant becomes a priest. In the twenty-eighth, a pious recluse is saved from starvation by a miraculous leg of venison. In the twenty-ninth, a mountain demon pursues an evil-doer. In the thirtieth, a pious wood-cutter hears heavenly music, and Kuanon ap- pears to him. In the thirty-first, a worshiper of Kuanon is wounded by robbers, thrown into the river, and is accidentally brought up in a fisherman's net. Having an image of Kuanon in his bosom, he is re- suscitated, and lives to bless his preserver. In the thirty-third, a mer- maid appears to a passer-by, and prays him to erect a temple to Kua- non. This having been done, the mermaid is reborn into a higher state of existence. In the thirty-fourth, Kuanon appears to a traveler. The last is a moving tableau, representing a court noble and lady. Extreme kindness to animals is characteristic of the Japanese. It is the result of the gentle doctrines of Buddha. Several of the mira- cle-figures teach the law of kindness to brutes. It is sometimes car- ried into a sentimentalism almost maudlin. My jin-riki-sha puller makes a detour, out of his way, round a sleeping dog or bantam, when the lazy animal might fairly take its chances. When a man believes that the soul of his grandfather may be transmigrating through a cur, however mangy, or a chick, however skinny, he is not going to cause another metempsychosis by murdering the brute, if he can help it. Killing a wounded horse to put him out of misery, or in useless old age, is never practiced, the idea being too cruel to be en tertained. STUDIES IN THE CAPITAL. 391 V. STUDIES IN THE CAPITAL. THE foreigner who traces upon his globe or map the outlines of the island empire of Japan, conceives of it as a long, narrow, insular strip of land, stretching from north to south. Seeing that Yezo is in such high, and Kiushiu in such low latitude, he thinks of Yedo and Naga- saki as lying at the two ends of the magnetic needle. To the native, they lie in the line of the sun, the one at its rising, the other at its set- ting. The reason for this conception of the native, which is thus in rectilinear opposition to that of the foreigner, lies, not in the supposed fact that the Japanese do every thing in a contrary manner from our- selves, or because the images on his retina are not reversed as on ours, but because he has a truer knowledge of his country's topography than the alien. The latter knows of Japan only as a strip of land described in his dogmatic text-books, a fraction in his artificial system ; the for- mer knows it as he actually walks, by dwelling on its soil and looking at the sun, the lay of the land, and the pole star. To him, Tokio lies in the east, Choshiu in the west, Hakodate in the north, and Satsuma in the south. The native conception of locality in the mikado's empire is the true one. A glance at the map will show that Yezo and a portion of Hondo lie, indeed, inclosed in a narrow line drawn north and south. Japan may be divided into inhabited and uninhabited land, and Yezo must fall within the latter division. Hence, only that part above the thirty-sixth parallel may be called Northern Japan. From Yedo to Nagasaki is the main portion of the empire, in point of historical im- portance, wealth, and population. Between the thirty-third and thir- ty-sixth, or within three parallels of latitude, on a belt a little over two hundred miles wide, stretches from east to west, for six hundred miles, the best part of Japan. Within this belt lies more than a majority of the largest cities, best ports, richest mines, densest centres of population, classic localities, magnificent temples, holy places, tea - plantations, silk districts, rice- 392 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. fields, and manufactures. Here, also, have been developed, in times past, the nation's greatest treasures the best blood, the commanding minds, and the men that have ruled Japan. It is interesting to note the shifting of the scenes in the drama of Japanese history. In the most ancient times, the ablest men of ac- tion and intellect were produced in Yamato, or in the Kinai. In the Middle Ages, they arose in the Kuanto. At the opening of modern history, they sprung from the Tokaido (Mino, Owari, Mikawa). In the latest decades, they came from Kiushiu and the south (Choshiu, Satsuma, Tosa, and Hizen). An inspection of the map will show a striking configuration of the land, on the southern coast of Hondo, adapting and ordaining it as the site for the great bulk of the nation's intellect, intelligence, popu- lation, and wealth. From Kadzusa on the extreme east, to Choshiu on the extreme west, are found in succession a series of bays, at the head of each of which stands a large city. On the first is the city of Tokio (population, 925,000); on the second, Odawara (20,000); on the third, Hamamatsu (50,000) ; on the fourth, Nagoya (400,000) ; on the fifth, Ozaka (600,000) ; on the sixth, Hiogo (60,000) ; on the seventh, Hiroshima (100,000); on the eighth, Shimonoseki (10,000). These lie east and west of each other. These are and were all flour- ishing cities, but until lyeyasii's time Yedo was but a village. It was a bold stroke of policy to make the obscure place the seat of government. It seemed very much to the people of that day and country as it would to us were our capital removed from Washington to Duluth. The general shape of Tokio is that of an egg, with the point to the south, the butt to the north. The yolk of this egg is the castle, or O Shiro, a work of vast proportions. The traveler in our land of steam, in which men are too few and too valuable to be machines, sees heavy work done by the derrick and the engine, and can reckon to a fraction the equivalent for human muscle stored up in a pound of coal. Before the labor of the medise- val masons, he wonders how the pygmies of those days could build such stupendous works as astonish the tourist in Egypt, India, As- syria, China, and Japan, or raise colossal stones, or transport them in positions hundreds of miles from their home in the quarry. Of architectural works in Japan, the torii, the yashiki, and the shiro, or castle, may be said to be original products. The pagoda is from China. Though far beyond the structures of Egypt or India in aes- STUDIES IN THE CAPITAL. 393 thetic merit, the Japanese castles challenge wonder at their vast extent, and the immense size of the stones in their walls. In the castle of Ozaka, built by Hideyoshi, some of the stones are forty feet long, ten feet high, and several feet thick. In the castle of Tokio, in the cita- del or highest point, the walls have many stones sixteen feet long, six wide, and three thick. These were brought from near Hiogo, over two hundred miles distant. In Asiatic countries labor is cheap and abundant. What the Amer- ican accomplishes by an engine and a ton of coal, the exponent of so many foot-pounds, or horse-power, the Asiatic accomplishes by thou- sands of human arms. A signal instance of the quick triumph of muscle came under my own observation while in Tokio. A foreigner in the employ of the Japanese Government was con- sulted in relation to the choice of a site for a model farm, and was shown several eligible places, one of which was included within the grounds of an ex-daimio, which had been left for years to the rank overgrowth, which, together with the larger trees and bushes, made the soil so rooty, and the whole place so unpromising to the foreigner, that he declared the site was utterly unfit ; that several years would be required to bring it into any thing like proper condition for tillage. He then drove off to examine another proposed site. But American ways of thinking were, in this case, at fault. The Japanese officer in charge immediately and quietly hired eight hundred laborers to clear and smooth the land. They worked in re- lays, night and day. In one week's time he showed the American " a new site," with which he was delighted. It was chosen for the model farm. It was the same site he had first glanced at. The potential energy lay in the fact that the land, worthless as real estate, being the property of the official, could be sold to the Government for a model farm at the highest of fancy prices, paid out of the national treasury. The actual energy of eight hundred pairs of arms developed a wilder- ness into leveled farm-fields within a week. The yashiki is a product of architecture distinctively Japanese. Its meaning is " spread-out house." It is such a homogeneous struct- ure that it strikes the eye as having been cut out of a solid block. It is usual 1 v in the form of a hollow square, inclosing from ten thou- sand to one hundred and sixty thousand square feet of ground. The four sides of the square within are made up of four rows, or four un- broken lines of houses. In the centre are the mansions of the daimio and his ministers. The lesser retainers occupy the long houses which 394 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. form the sides of the square. The space is filled up within with gar- dens, both for use and pleasure, recreation-grounds, target walks, and kura, or fire-proof warehouses. Mito's grounds were of marvelous beauty. The yashiki, on the street front, presents the appearance of a continuous house on stone foundations, with rows of wooden barred or grated windows. The cut represents an " evening view " of Kasumiya Street, a slope between the yashiki of the Daimio of Ogaki, in Mino, on the left, and that of Hiroshima, in Aki, on the right; and of Sakurada Avenue. Each of these proud lords, in erecting his mansion, found that his ri- val was building as high and fine a stone foundation as he was. Aki was determined to get higher than Ogaki, lest a fudai's windows should look down on a kokushiu's lattice ; while Ogaki was bound to " get even " with Aki. The rival masonry might have grown higher, had not the shogun ordered them to desist. All around the yashikis ran a ditch, or moat, from four to twelve feet wide, usually of running water. Most of the walls were faced with square tiles, fastened diagonally, presenting the appearance of .thousands of black lozenges, with rounded ridges of white plaster about three inches high. To break the monotony of the street front, there was one great roofed gate, for the lord and master, flanked with porters' lodges, and a smaller one, or postern, on another side, for serv- ants and retainers. It was a very important point of etiquette as to who should or should not enter through the main gate. On no ac- count would any one, unless of very high rank, be admitted in a ve- hicle of any sort. At a certain gate, called Gejo, leading to the hon marUj or citadel of the Yedo castle, all daimios were obliged to dis- mount from their palanquins and walk. The abbot of the temple of Zozoji, at Shiba, as a mark of high rank, could enter in a palanquin. Such a privilege was equal to a patent of nobility. The castle-moats, on varying levels, to make a current and prevent stagnation, were supplied with water brought in stone-lined aqueducts from the Tonegawa, nine miles distant. In the moats it varied from four to twelve feet in depth. The scarp and counter-scarp were faced with stone, and where the castle was on high ground the sloping em- bankments were sodded, the water flowing scores of feet below. In the shallow parts, lotus-flowers grew luxuriantly in summer, and in winter thousands of water-fowl, ducks, geese, storks, and herons made it their secure home, the people never harming them a statement al- most incredible to a foreign sportsman. A number of the shogun's STUDIES IN THE CAPITAL. 397 swans added grace and beauty to the peaceful scene. It was forbid- den to fire a gun within five ri of the castle. I wondered how for- eign sportsmen could resist the temptation. Let the reader imagine a space of several miles square covered with yashikis. To walk through the streets inside the castle enceinte was a monotonous and gloomy task. There was nothing to break the dull uniformity of black or white tiles and windows, except here and there a sworded samurai or a procession. Occasional variety was obtained in a very large yashiki by erecting a wall around the entire inclosure, and building the houses inside. This made the monotony worse, since the eye had no relief in looking at windows, in which, perchance, might be a pot of flowers, or peeping eyes. It scarcely added to the cheerfulness to meet no common folk, but only proud and pompous men with two swords, the mark of the Japanese gentleman of feudal days. The winter head-dress of the Japanese of both sexes is a black cloth cap, fitting close to the skull, with long flaps, which were tied around over the neck, mouth, and nose, exposing only the eyes. The wearing of this cap made a most remarkable difference, according to sex. The male looked fiendishly malignant, like a Spanish brigand, the effect of two scowling eyes being increased by the two swords at his belt. The phrase " he looked daggers at me " had a new signif- icance. With the women, however, the effect was the reverse. A plump, well-wrapped form lost no comeliness ; and when one saw two sparkling eyes and a suggestion of rosy cheeks, the imagination was willing to body forth the full oval of the Japanese beauty. A dinner given in my honor by the ex-prince of Echizen, in his own yashiki, enabled me to see in detail one of the best specimens of this style of mansion. Like all the large clans and kokushiu daimios, Echizen had three yashikis the Superior, Middle, and Inferior. In the second lived the ordinary clansmen, while to the third the serv- ants and lower grade of samurai are assigned. Some of these yashi- kis covered many acres of ground ; and the mansions of the Go Sanke families and the great clans of Satsuma, Kaga, Choshiu, and Chikuzen are knowji at once upon the map by their immense size and com- manding positions. Within their grounds are groves, shrines, culti- vated gardens, fish-ponds, hillocks, and artificial landscapes of unique and surpassing beauty. The lord of the mansion dwelt in a central building, approached from the great gate by a wide stone path and grand portico of keyaki-wood. Long, wide corridors, laid with soft 26 398 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. mats, led to the master's chamber. All the wood-work, except certain portions, stood in virgin grain like watered silk, except where relieved here and there by a hard gleam of black lacquer-like enamel. The walls, gorgeously papered with gold, silver, or fanciful and colored designs, characteristic of Japanese art among which the pine, plum, and cherry tree, the bamboo, lily, the stork, tortoise, and lion, or fans, were the favorites. The sliding doors, or partitions, of which three sides of a Japanese room is composed, were decorated with paintings. Some of the finest specimens of Japanese art I ever saw were in the yashikis of Tokio. The plan of the city of Yedo, conceived by lyeyasu, was simply that of a great camp. This one idea explains its centre, divisions, and relations. In the heart of this vast encampment was the general's head-quarters a well-nigh impregnable castle. On the most eligible and commanding sites were the tents of his chief satraps. These tents were yashikis. The architectural prototype of a yashiki is a Japanese tent. In time of war, the general's head-quarters are sur- rounded by a roofless curtain of wide breadths of canvas stretched perpendicularly on posts, presenting a square front like a wall outside, and a roomy area within, having in its centre the general's tent. In place of this tent put a house ; instead of the canvas stretch continu- ous long houses, forming a hollow square inclosing the mansion, and you have the yashiki. Shallow observers foreigners, of course on first seeing these stretched canvas screens, supposed they were "forts," and the crests (mon) of the general, "port -holes" for can- non ! Yedo, the camp city of the East, was full of these tents, am- plified and made permanent in wood and stone. These edifices made the glory of old Yedo, but Tokio sees fewer year by year and fire by fire. They were the growth of the necessi- ties of feudalism. The new age of Japan does not need them, and the next decade, that shall see thousands swept away, will see none rebuilt ; and the traveler will look upon a yashiki as one of the many curiosities of Old Japan. Yedo was the city of the Tokugawas, and the camp of clans. Its architectural products sprung from the soil of feudalism. Tokio is the national capital, the city of the mikado, and its edifices are at once the exponents of modern necessities and en- lightened nationality. AMONG THE MEN OF NEW JAPAN. 399 VI AMONG THE MEN OF NEW JAPAN. I SPENT from January 3d to February 16th, 1871, in the new capi- tal of Japan, visiting the famous places in the city and suburbs, seeing the wonderful sights, and endeavoring by study and questioning to reduce to order the myriad impressions that were made upon all my senses like a mimic cannonade. During two weeks I taught as a vol- unteer in the Imperial College. At the house of the superintendent I met many of the officials in the educational and other departments, learning their ideas and methods of thinking and seeing. Among my novel employments was, upon one occasion, the searching of Wheaton's and other works on international law for rules and precedents cover- ing an imminent case of hostilities in Yokohama harbor. The captain of a French man-of-war, resurrecting one of the exploded regulations of the republic of 1795, was threatening to seize a German merchant ship, which had been sold to the Japanese, and the officials of the Foreign Office had come to their long-trusted American friend for ad- vice and the law's precedents. It came to nothing, however. No seiz- ure was made, nor hostile gun fired. The furore of traveling abroad was then at fever-heat, and thousands of young men hoped to be sent to study abroad, at government expense, where tens only could be chosen. I made a call on Terashima Munenori, the Vice-minister of Foreign Affairs, then in Tsiikiji : presenting letters from Mr. Hatakeyama Yo- shinari, I was received very kindly. Iwakura (to whom I bore letters from his son) and Mr. Okubo at that time were on an important political mission to Satsuma, Choshiu, and Tosa, sent thither by the mikado. The ex-Prince of Echizen gave an entertainment in my hon- or at his mansion. The dalmios of Uwajima and Akadzuki, and sev- eral of *heir karos (ministers), were present at the dinner. He present ed me' with his photograph, with some verses, of the making of which he was very fond. Mr. Arinori Mori, a young samurai of the Satsuma clan, and a great friend of Iwakura, called to see me, and received let- ters of introduction to my friends in America. He was then in na- 400 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. live dress, wearing the traditional two swords, the abolition of which he had in vain advocated some months before. He had just received his appointment as charge d'affaires of Japan in the United States. Messrs. Mori, and Sameshima since charge d'affaires at Paris, now (1876) Vice-minister of Foreign Affairs in Tokio stood so high in the confidence of Iwakura that they were dubbed, in the political slang of the capital, " the legs of Iwakura." Mr. Katsii Awa, though absent in Shidzuoka, sent me a very pleasant letter of welcome to Japan. I enjoyed a delightful call on Mr. Kanda, the ex-President or Speaker of the House of Assembly, in which Mr. Mori had argued reforms, the second deliberative body that had been called into existence, ac- cording to the oath of the mikado in Kioto, in 1868, that representa- tive institutions should be formed. I found Mr. Kanda a student of English and American literature, and an earnest thinker. His son, a bright lad, was to accompany Mr. Mori to America. I also met a num- ber of the prominent and rising men of the country, especially those who had been active in the late revolution. The mikado was begin- ning to ride out in public ; and I saw at various times a number of th kuge, both ladies and gentlemen, in their ancient, gorgeous costumes, with their retainers and insignia. I witnessed, also, a grand review of the imperial army, a wrestling -match, exhibitions of acrobatics and jugglery, theatrical performances, and many things in the political, social, and military world that will never again be seen in Japan. I visited the first hospital opened in Tokio, by Matsumoto, and the ex- cellent school of Fukuzawa, rival of the Imperial College. None of the large modern buildings in European style, which now adorn the city, were then built. The city was then more Yedo than Tokio. I repeatedly visited Oji, so often described by Oliphant and others ; Meguro, near which are the graves of the lovers, "Gompachi and Komurasaki ;" Takanawa, the Mecca of Japanese loyalty, where are the tombs and statues of the forty- seven ronins, and of their lord, whom they died to avenge ; Kame Ido, the memorial of the deified martyr, Sugawara Michizane ; Shiba, Uyeno, Mukojima, and the places so well known to residents and tourists, the sight of which but added zest to an appetite for seeing all that is dear to a Japanese, which a residence of years failed to cloy. I was several times at Zempukuji (Temple of Peace and Happiness), one of the oldest shrines of the Shin sect of Buddhists, founded by Shinran himself, who with his own hands planted the wonderful old jinko-tree, which still flourishes. Within the temple grounds were the buildings of the legation of the AMONG THE MEN OF NEW JAPAN. 401 United States of America. Here had dwelt successively Ministers Townsend Harris, Robert H. Pruyn, and General Van Valkenbergh. United States Vice-consul C. O. Shepherd was then occupying the premises. I noticed a somewhat dusty portrait of Franklin Pierce hung on the walls of one of the inner empty rooms. The one bright oasis spot during his barren administration was the success of Perry's mission, and the opening of Japan to the world. The glory of the great United States had been here maintained, by its Government never paying any rent for its tenantry of buildings, and by extorting "indemnities" for every accidental fire, for every provoked injury, and even for every man killed in the open and active hostilities of war, and in joining the governments of Europe in keeping the feeble empire crushed under diplomacy, backed by ships and cannon. One of the most important persons for me was a good interpreter. A tongue was more than a right arm. To procure one of first-rate abilities was difficult. When the embassy, sent out by the ill-starred li Kamon no kami, visited Philadelphia, I had frequently seen a lively young man whom every one called " Tommy," who had made a de- cidedly pleasant impression upon the ladies and the Americans gen- erally. " Tommy " was at this time in Tokio. The Echizen officers went to him and asked him to accept the position of interpreter, at a salary of one thousand dollars, gold, per annum. This was tempting pay to a Japanese ; but the f oreignized Tommy preferred metropolitan life, and the prospect of official promotion, to regular duties in an in- terior province. They then sought among the corps of interpreters in the Imperial College. The choice fell upon Iwabuchi (rock -edge), who, fortunately for me, accepted, and we were introduced. This gentleman was about twenty years old, with broad, high forehead, lux- uriant hair cut in foreign style, keen, dancing black eyes, and blushing face. He was a ronin samurai of secondary rank, and rather well edu- cated. His father had been a writing-master in Sakura, Shimosa, and Iwabuchi was an elegant writer. He wore but one sword. He was of delicate frame, his face lighted by intellect, softened by his habitual meekness, but prevented by a trace of slyness from being noble. He seemed the very type of a Japanese gentleman of letters. He was as gentle as a lady. In his checkered experience at Hakodate and other cities, he had brushed against the Briton, the Yankee, the French- man, and the Russian. At first shy and retiring, he warmed into friendship. In his merry moods he would astonish me by humming familiar tunes, and recall a whole chapter of home memories by sing- 402 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ing snatches of American college and street songs. In his angry moods, when American steel struck Japanese flint, his eyes would snap fire and his frame quiver. For over a year Iwabuchi was inval- uable to me, until my own articulation became bi-lingual ; but from first to last, notwithstanding occasional friction, arising from the dif- ference in American and Japanese psychology, we continued, and re- main, fast friends. My business with the officers of the Echizen clan was finished. I was engaged to teach the physical sciences in the city of Fukui, the capital of the province, two hundred miles west of Tokio, and twelve miles from the Sea of Japan. In accordance with custom observed between foreigners and Japanese, we made a contract, which, after passing the inspection and receiving the approval of the Guai Mu Sho (Office of Foreign Affairs), was written out in duplicate in imposing Chinese characters, and in plain English. I agreed to teach chemistry and physics for the space of three years, and " not to enter into any trading operations with native merchants." The insertion of a comic clause, very funny indeed to the American, but quite justifiable by the bitter experience of the Japanese, was, that the teacher must not get drunk. They, on their side, agreed to pay my salary ; to build me a house after the European style ; and after three years to return me safely to Yokohama ; to hand my corpse over to the United States Consul if I should die, or carry me to him should I be disabled through sickness. Nothing was said concerning religion in any reference whatever, but perfect freedom from all duties whatsoever was guaranteed me on Sun- days ; and I had absolute liberty to speak, teach, or do as I pleased in my own house. As an illustration of the extreme jealousy with which the mikado's ministers guarded the supremacy of the national government, the first draft of the contract, made by myself, was rejected by the Foreign Of- fice because I had written " the government of Fukui," instead of the " local authorities," a correction which appeared in the final docu- ments. I made the acquaintance of several of the daimios, and many re- tainers of various clans. A Fukui samurai, whom I shall call Daremo, and who knew to a rung the exact status of every one on the social ladder, always informed me as to the rank of the various personages whom I met as host or guest. I bought the latest copy of the Bu Kuan (Mirror of the Military Families), which he explained and trans- AMONG THE MEN OF NEW JAPAN. 4Q3 lated for me. In discussing each one, his nose rose and fell with the figures before him. "That gentleman is only a hard of a 10,000 koku daimio." "This is himself, a fudai daimio of 15,000 koku." With profound indifference, I would be informed that the person who called on me to inquire after his brother in New York was " merely a samu- rai of a 30,000 koku clan." That gentleman whose politeness so im- pressed me was " a hatamoto of 800 koku ; but he was very poor since the restoration." Daremo's congratulations were showered thick and fast when I dined with the kokushiu Echizen (360,000 koku), and Uwajima (100,000 koku), with five or six karos. He also translated for me the letters I received from distinguished Japanese officers. With the aid of the Bu Kuan and Daremo, I was soon able to dis- tinguish many of the rising and falling men of Japan. I had seen the great objects of interest to a tourist. I had feasted my eyes on novelty and a new life, yet the freshness of continual glad surprise was not yet lost. I had seen the old glory of Yedo in ruins, and the new national life of Japan emerging from Tokio in chaos. I had stood face to face with paganism for the first time. I had felt the heart of Japan pulsing with new life, and had seen her youth drinking at the fountains of Western science. I had tasted the hospi- tality of one of the " beginners of a better time." I had learned the power of the keen sword. For the first time I had experience of pa- ganism, feudalism, earthquakes, Asiatic life and morality. I had seen how long contact with heathen life and circumstances slowly disinte- grates the granite principles of eternal right, once held by men reared in a more bracing moral atmosphere. I met scores of white men, from Old and New England, who had long since forgotten the differ- ence between right and wrong. I had seen also the surface of Japan. I was glad to go into the interior. I bid good-bye to Tokio, and went to Yokohama to take the steamer to Kobe, whence I should go, via Lake Biwa, and over the mountains to the city of the Well of Blessing, Fukui. Our party made rendezvous at a native hotel. It was to be both my 3scort and following. The former consisted of my interpreter, Iwa- buchi, one of the teachers of English in the university ; Nakamura, the soldier-guard, who had fought in the late civil war ; and the treasurer, Emort, a polished gentleman, and shrewd man of the Japanese world. There were two servants, and, with my own cook and his wife, we made up a party of eight persons, with as many characters and dispo- sitions as faces. The ship to take us to Kobe was one of the fine 404 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. steamers of the Pacific Mail Company's fleet, the Oregonian. As sev- eral days would elapse before her departure, I made a visit to Kanaza- wa, Kamakura, Enoshima, and Fujisawa, with Nakamura, and an Amer- ican friend who spoke Japanese fluently. That visit was afterward re- peated many times. Every spot made famous by Yoritomo, Yoshit- sune, Semman and Kugio, the Ho jo, Nitta Yoshisada, Nichiren, and the Ashikaga, was seen over and over again, until the life of old Japan became as vivid to me as the thrilling scenes of our own late war. Besides the architectural remains of these classic places, is a rich mu- se am of armor, weapons, and other mediaeval antiquities in the temple on Tsuruga-oka, in Kamakura. On our ride back, Fuji, all in white, loomed up grandly. A flurry of snow added to its beauty. In such a snow-shower the artist must have made the spirited sketch here reproduced. Snow rarely falls on the Tokaido to a depth greater than two inches, and usually neither hoof nor sandal, as in the cut, sinks beneath its level. The Japanese, however, make a great fuss over a little cold. They go about with their hands in their sleeves, which stick out like the wings of a trussed turkey, repeating " samui, samui " (cold, cold), until it loses all origi- nality. Travelers on the Tokaido in a Snow-storm. Fuji san. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 405 VII. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. THE weather was rough as we embarked, late in the afternoon of February 22d, on the Oregonian, and steamed down the Bay of Yedo. At night, the fixed white light in the stone tower on Cape Idzu, visi- ble twenty miles, reminded us of the new order of things. Of old a wood-fire blazed on the promontory. The Nil did not yet know the fate to befall her.* The next day was foggy, and mal de mer held high revel among the passengers. The Oregonian was true to the reputation of its namesake given by Bryant " where rolls the mighty Oregon." My own thoughts were less poetic. My feelings are best described by the Japanese proverb, " A sea-voyage is an inch of hell." About midnight we rounded the promontory of Kii, where Jimmu passed centuries ago. Its splendid light-house, on a promontory one hundred and thirty feet high, on Island, holds a revolving white light, alternately flashing and being eclipsed during every minute. is a good harbor for wind-bound junks, and the fishermen here are noted whalers, hunting whales successfully with nets and spears. The light on Cape Shiwo, one hundred and fifty-five feet above water, may be seen for twenty miles. Ships from China make this point night or day. The three officers of our party had been empowered to take cabin passage with their foreign charge ; but such a foolish waste of money was not to be thought of. To pay forty dollars for forty-eight hours, and three hundred and forty-two geographical miles of nausea in a state-room, was not according to their ideas of happiness. Far better * On the night of the 20th of March, 1874, at 10.30 P.M., the French M. M. steamer Ntt, having on board one hundred and eleven persons, and the Japanese articles on exhibition at Vienna, her engines being out of order, and the currents unusually strong, lost her reckoning, struck a rock near the village of Irima, in Yoshida Bay, ten miles from Cape Idzu, and sunk in twenty-one fathoms. Only four persons were saved. A marble monument was erected, and now commemo- rates the accident, which was robbed of many of its saddest features by the kind- ness and energy of the natives. 406 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. to take the steerage, save the money, and have a feast, dance, and song with the gay and charming singing-girls of Ozaka. So to the steer- age they went, and solaced their transient misery with visions of the Ozaka paradise and the black-eyed houris. They suffered " an inch of hell " for a yard of heaven. I woke on the second morning in the harbor of Hiogo and Kobe (the Gate of God), the former the native city, the latter the foreign town. All around the land-locked water were bold walls of green hills. French, English, and American ships of war lay at anchor, and the clumsy junks, with their great, broad sails, plowed across the path of the dancing sunbeams. Native fishing and carriage boats were leaping over the waters, urged on by the stroke of the naked scullers. On shore, glorified by the mild winter's sun, rose the " model settle- ment," a fresh proof of Occidental energy on Oriental soil. Until 1868, the site of the pretty town, laid out in chess-board regularity, was a mere strip of sand.* Under convoy of Iwabuchi and an American friend, to whom I bore letters, I spent a day and a half in Kobe and Hiogo. The latter city was erected in the days of Taira glory. Its name means " arse- nal," but peaceful trade now rules its streets. Near it stands Kiyo- mori's tomb. On the site of the Taira palace stands a great brothel. At Minato gawa, near Kobe, Kusunoki Masashige, the mirror of Jap- anese loyalty, welcomed death. A small temple stands as a historic monument of the act, dedicated to his spirit. In the cheerful home of an American missionary, to whom I bore letters, I spent a few delightful hours. They seemed to have brought the freshness and fragrance of New England hills, as well as the ener- gy and patience of their ancestors, with them. The time for active Christian labor had not yet come ; but the language was being mas- tered, and his morning hours were golden in the study. In the aft- ernoon, we together visited a famous temple, on the site of one first erected by Jingu Kogo, on her return from Corea. Crowds of pil- grims, in white robes, with wallet, staff, rosary, bell, and memorial shell sewed to their sleeve, were on the route or return. We spent the evening at the house of one of the merchant princes of Kobe, in whose establishment Oriental luxuriance and American taste, barbaric pomp and cozy comfort, were combined. * The figures of the official register of Kobe (May, 1874) are: houses, 3846; population, 8554 ; foreign residents, 332 ; in the foreign "concession," 67 houses. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 407 Our party were early on the steamboat, which carried the Stars and Stripes at her stern, and was commanded by a Yankee captain. It was crowded with natives, who rode for ichi bu (twenty-five cents). The five or six foreigners in the cabin paid each two "clean Mexi- cans." These silver eagles are the standard of value in Japan and China, though Uncle Sam's trade-dollars and Japanese gold yen are now contesting their supremacy. We steamed along the coast for three hours ; passed the forts built in 1855, and well mounted and manned; passed the light-house of Tempozan (Hill of Heavenly Peace), and at noon, February 25th, 1871, I stood in the city called, in poetry, Naniwa in prose, Ozaka. Buddhist Pilgrims. All the large daimios formerly had yashikis in Yedo, Ozaka, and in Kioto, as well as in their own capitals, for the use of the clan. They served as caravansaries, at which the lord or his retainers might lodge, when on business or travel, and be treated according to their rank. But one or two samurai and their families occupied the Echi- zen yashiki in Ozaka, which could lodge a hundred or more men. A suite of rooms was soon swept and dusted out, rugs laid on the mat- ting, and dinner, in mixed Japanese and American style, was served. Ozaka is a gay city, with lively people, and plenty of means of amusement, especially theatres and singing - girls. The ladies are 408 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. handsomer, dress in better taste, tie their girdles in a style nearer per- fection, and build coiffures that are at once the envy and despair of Tokio damsels. Ozaka has every sort of gay life. In all the large cities there are geisha, noted for their wit, beauty, skill in playing the three-stringed ban- jo. The daughters of Kioto and Tokio do excellently, but those of Ozaka excel them all. Ozaka is also the greatest commercial city in Japan. I was interested in the metal re- fineries and foundries, where The Swnisen. the rosy copper ingots were cast, and brass cannon of elegant workmanship turned out. With Iwabuchi as guide, I rambled over the city, and stood on many a spot made classic by Nobunaga, Hideyoshi, and lyeyasu. Iwabuchi's fluent tongue and knowledge of history were as spectacles to me, en- abling me to see the past as he summoned it from resurrection. An officer from Fukui brought us word, February 27th, that we were to leave Ozaka that night, and that at Fushimi an honorary es- cort of seven mounted officers of the clan would meet me, they hav- ing come down from Fukui, one hundred and thirty miles, to escort me. We were to proceed up the Yodo, the river that drains six prov- inces, visit the temple of Hachiman or Ojin Tenno, dine in historic Fushimi, and thence proceed on horseback to Lake Biwa. The mor- row was to be a red-letter day. We left Ozaka at night, about ten o'clock. It was very cold, and bright moonlight, but the boat was a " house-boat," and the cabin with- in was neatly matted, and with rugs and hibachi we kept up a genial temperature until bed-time. We passed hundreds of boats like our own, and after making our way through the city, that might be a Venice if it were not wooden, passed the long rows of fire-proof store- houses, and gradually emerged into the country, where, except a scat- tered village here and there, we saw only the grand mountains and pines, and the silent landscape. The boat was provided with four rowers, though after we left the city, the river being shallow, they had to pole along, like Mississippi flat-boat walkers. Throughout the frosty night we slept, waking occasionally to listen to the ripples un- der the bow. The sendo plied their poles, and at day-break we were IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 409 far from Ozaka, with the classic ground of Kawachi on our right, and Settsu on our left. The sun clothed the hills in light, revealing the landscape, and kin- dled the frost on our cabin-roof into resplendent prismatics. We were in the clear water of the Yodo River, which flowed at a gentle current between banks of undergrowth, with groves of firs and bamboo, and here and there a group of thatched villages, through which the Jesuits and Franciscans preached Mary, St. Peter, and Christ, over two centu- ries ago. Along the shores stood white herons, tall storks, and, occa- sionally, huge hawks. While musing on the past, and imagining the Portuguese missiona- ries, crucifix in hand, preaching on that open space, or erecting a cross on that knoll, Nakamura came out and pointed out the villages of Ha- shimoto (foot of the bridge) and Yamazaki (mountain point), where, in 1868, the contest at Fushimi was continued. The Tokugawa army held Hashimoto, while the mikado's troops attacked them by land, and bombarded them from a redoubt in Yamazaki, until they fled, defeated and in disorder, to Ozaka, when the shogun notified the foreign min- isters that he could no longer protect them. I enjoyed Nakamura's talk richly, and, refreshed by the " sweet mother of fresh thoughts and health," body and mind were ready to drink in' the sweet influences of that glorious morning in the heart of Japan. But what of the boat- men? After a hard night's toil, poling and walking in a nipping frost, I wished to see the breakfast by which they laid the physical basis for another day's work. At the stern of the boat, resting on a little fur- nace, was the universal rice-pot, and beside it a small covered wooden tub, full of rice. Some pickled or boiled slices of the huge radish called dai-kon lay in another receptacle. The drink was the cheapest tea. It may possibly be true, what some foreigners assert, that the lower classes in Japan feast on rats. " The daily ration of a Japanese laborer was one mouse per diem ;" so I was once told in America. I never saw or heard of such animals being eaten during all the time I was in Japan ; but I now looked for some stimulating food, some piece of flesh diet to be eaten by these men, who had to make muscle and repair the waste of lubricating their joints. But nothing further was forthcoming, and the sendo whose turn came first sat down to his breakfast. The first course was a bowlful of rice and a pair of chop- sticks. In the second course, history repeated itself. The third course was a dipperful of tea, apparently one-half a solution of tannic acid, 410 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. in which a raw hide might have been safely left to tan. I wondef whether the disease of ossification of the coats of the stomach, so com- mon in Japan, arises from the constant drinking such astringent liq- uor. The fourth course was a bowl of rice and two slices of radish ; the fifth was the same. A dipperful of tea-liquor finished the meal, and the pole was resumed. I noticed grist-mills on scows or rafts anchored in the river, the current turning the huge wheels slowly to grind or hull rice. They were quite similar to those I had noticed on the Rhine and other European rivers. At nine o'clock we came in front of the village Yawata, at which there was a guard-house, which we knew, at a distance, by its peculiar- ly shaped lantern and canvas hangings, like curtains, on which was the huge crest of the mikado an open chrysanthemum flower. Our boat hove to, and Nakamura, the officer of the party, explained who we were, and what our business was, and we then landed in the village. While our boat, with the servants, was sent ahead to Fushimi, we four wended our way up the mountain Otoko yama to the part called Pigeon-peak, where stands the great Shinto temple, on a site first built upon in 860 A.D., and dedicated to Ojin Tenno, the son of Jingu Kogo, who conquered Corea by the divine spirit bestowed on her then un- born son. It was made further famous by the gift from Hideyoshi of a golden gutter, to collect the sacred droppings of the sanctuary. Ascending the last of many flights of stone steps, we stood upon a plateau. A long avenue arcade, with overarching pines, and lined with tall stone lanterns, led to the temple fagade. Two priests, robed in pure white, with high black lacquered caps on their heads, were bear- ing offerings of fish, fruit, and other food, to place upon the altar, each article being laid on a sheet of pure white paper, or ceremonial trays. In the perfectly clean and austerely simple nave of the temple stood an altar, having upon it only the gohei, or wands, with notched strips of white paper dependent. There were no idols, images, or pictures, only the gohei, the offer- ings, and the white-robed priests at prayer. The impressive simplici- ty, the sequestered site on a lofty mountain surrounded with tall trees of majestic growth and of immemorial antiquity, the beauty, the si lence, all combined to instill reverence and holy awe alike in the alien spectator as in the native worshiper. The head of the foreigner un- covered, and his feet were unshod simultaneously with the unsandal- ing of the feet, the bowing of the head, and the reverent meeting of the palms of his companions. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 411 On the porch the priests, having finished their prayer, came out, and politely greeted the American, informing him, through Iwabuchi, that he was the first foreigner who had ever visited the temple. They then showed him the fine carving and ornaments of the eaves and out- er walls, and the portion which remained of the large golden gutter, made of beaten gold, over a foot in diameter. Only a few feet of the once extensive gift have survived the ravages of war and the necessi~ ties of rulers, who, in Japan or elsewhere, replenish their depleted ex- chequers or treasuries from the riches of the temples. The records of this temple declare that it was erected at the sugges- tion of the priest Gio Kio, who wished to dedicate a temple to Ojin Tenno in Bungo ; that it was the desire of the spirit of the god to dwell near the capital, so as to watch over the imperial house. Hence it was located here. The Buddhists had already canonized him as Hachiman Dai Bosatsu, or the Incarnation of Buddha of the Eight Banners. Hence, among the devotees of the India faith, this god of war, and patron of warriors, is called Hachiman, and by those of the native cult Ojin Tenno. Hachi-man (hachi, eight; man, banners) is the Chinese form of Yawata (ya, eight ; wata, banners). We descended the northern side of the mountain toward Fushirni, and passed through Yodo, an old castle town, to which the defeated Tokugawa army retreated after their rout at Fushimi. Nakamura, who was familiar with every foot of ground, having had a hand in many a fight in and around Kioto during the civil war, pointed out the site of the battle that opened the war of the Restoration. For- getting the fact that our dinner hour had come, we went to examine this cock-pit of 1868. There, on the west bank, the Aidzu and Ku- wana clans, that formed the van of Tokugawa's army, landed on the 27th of January, 1868, and, attempting to pass the barriers at Toba, received into their bosoms the canister from the Satsuma cannon. The Tokugawa troops marched along a narrow path in the rice-fields only a few feet wide, like a causeway, through a lake of paddy-field ooze. To move from the path was to sink knee-deep in a glutinous quagmire. To advance was to climb over the writhing, wounded, and slippery dead men, only to face cannon aimed point-blank, while the musketry of the sheltered Southerners enfiladed their long, snake-like lines. Numbers only increased the sureness of the immense target at which Remington riflemen were practicing in coolness and earnest. " That field," at which the long and bony finger of our cicerone point- ed, " was piled with dead men like bundles of fire-wood." 412 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. On the first advance, the Tokugawa men broke and ran ; but, on the second, the fighting began on both the two roads, the Fushimi and the Toba, which lead to Kioto. "Here," said he, "is where the rebels [Tokugawa army] were surprised while eating, at early morning. In that bamboo grove, our men \kuan gun, mikado's army] made an ambuscade, and tore up the rebel ranks dreadfully." Then the village of Toba caught fire, and the rebels fled to Yodo, finding, to their chagrin, that the castle was barred against them. Fushimi was also burned during the fight. " There," said our guide, as we neared the town, " is where the fire began." We walked up the historic streets in which the tramp of armies had so often resounded, through which Nobunaga, Hideyoshi, lyeyasu, and Xavier, had passed, in which the Jesuits had stood preaching to listening crowds of people like those before me. The town itself dis- appointed me. The feeling was the same as that experienced in Washington in 1865. I went thither to behold the demi-gods who, through a hundred battles, had borne the old flag to victory. I saw Grant's and Sherman's legions of one hundred and forty thousand men march up Pennsylvania Avenue. There was no halo round their heads. They were not giants. They were plain men in blue blouses. Fushimi, with all its history, was a poverty-stricken Japanese town. Further recollections of Fushimi are mainly of vulgar and gastro- nomic interest. I remember that a certain man had climbed up a mountain, and then tramped down again at an appetite - sharpening pace, and that his special objects of interest and desire at that time were something to eat. Subordinate to these were a bath and a lounge. The hungry man had shed his tight-fitting skin of boots, coat, and hat, and was tranquil in looser robes over the soothing warmth of a cone of live coals in a bronze hibachi. The dissolving views of his reveries, compounded of what he had seen and yearnings of what he expected, were suddenly broken by the advent of a steaming and fra- grant tray of food cooked by one of the best culinary artists in Japan, a native who had learned the art at the club in Yokohama. It is, of course, too well known to Englishmen and others that the American at his meals is an animal not to be lightly disturbed. After the feed is over, he is placable, and ready for business. I was scarcely through my dish of lily -bulbs, and had not yet touched my rice and curry, and California canned-meats, when Iwabu- chi, my interpreter, announced the arrival of five samurai from Fukui, who had traveled one hundred and thirty miles to meet the American, IX THE HEART OF JAPAN. 413 and wished to see him immediately, to pay their respects, and announce themselves as my escort to Fukui. They would be in the room in a moment. " Can they not wait a few minutes till I finish my dinner ?" I asked. " I am afraid not," replied he ; " they are very eager to see you im- mediately. Such are their orders from their superior at Fukui." " Well, but I am in deshabille. I can't be seen in this style." " Oh ! indeed, they won't care for that. Besides, here they are at the door. They merely sent me to announce them." It was too late to stop the invasion, so the animal must forego his provender for a time. The paper sliding-doors were pulled aside, and five stalwart men entered and stood in line, eyes front, facing me. I mentally waited to see how the ceremonies would proceed. In the twinkling of an eye they all sunk on their knees, spread their hands prone before them, and bowed their heads for full fifteen seconds on the floor. Then, resilient, all sat in a row on their heels, and spread out their robes, with hands in their haJcama. The leader then handed Iwabuchi an imposing paper to read, which set forth that they had been sent by the daimio from Fukui, to bear the congratulations of the authorities, and to escort the American teacher to Fukui. This solemnly done, they bowed profoundly again and departed. It was all over within two minutes. The meal was finished in peace and abundance, and then began the preparations for the ride to Gtsu, eight miles distant. The baggage and servants were dispatched by boat, and at half -past four all were mounted, and we started. Our cavalcade consisted of nine horses and riders. The air was damp, and the sky was leaden, when we started. The whole household were at the gate of the court-yard, to bow low and cry " sayonara" and the whole village was assembled, and stood agape to see the foreigner. Out past the shanties of the village, our path lay over a wooded mountain, and then the snow fell, turning to slush as it touched coat, horse, or earth. In an hour we were all white with cloggy masses of snow, and in places wet to the skin with the cold soaking of sleet. Twilight succeeded the day, and darkness the twilight, until only the gigantic forms of the firs bearded with snow, and so silent, were out- lined through the slow shower of flakes. Far up into vague infinity loomed the mountains, occasionally a beetling rock thrusting out its mighty mass in a form of visible darkness. After five hours of such riding it grew uncomfortable. Every flake, as it fell, seemed to have 27 414 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. weight. To cold, wet, chattering travelers, what comforts could a Japanese inn afford ? The same difference exists in Japan as in highly civilized countries in regard to hotels and their keepers, as concerning unexpected or an- nounced guests. To come suddenly to a Japanese inn in winter is to shiver, as in a refrigerator, and wait cheerlessly for an intolerably long time, and understand all about Greenland, before the fire and food are brought, the thaw sets in, and comfort is attained. At Otsu (now called Shiga), however, a blazing fire was ready as our party rode into the court-yard. Boots and coat off, I was led into the best room, on which a pile of silken quilts was spread for my bed, and in the mid- dle of the room was that sum of delights, a kotatsii. Poor, civilized reader, or Western barbarian, you do not know what a kotatsii is? No? Let me tell you. In the very centre of the room lift up that square foot of matting, and you will find a stone-lined bowl, a few inches deep. In this the fat and red-cheeked chamber-maid puts a shovelful of live coals. Over it she sets a wooden frame, a foot iiigh, called a yagura, after the castle-tower which it imitates. Over this she spreads a huge quilt. It is an extemporary oven, in which you can bake yourself by drawing the quilt about you, and find a little heaven of heat, exchanging shivers for glow. A kotatsii may be safe- ly warranted to change a grumbler, who believes Japan to be a wretch- ed hole of a barbarian country, into a rhapsodist who is ready to swear that the same country is a paradise, within ten minutes. The next morning we were to take steamer, and cross Lake Biwa to Hanoiira, at the north end of the lake. Kioto lay but seven miles distant from us, and I could easily have visited the sacred city ; but I was eager to get to my work. Besides, I wished to study it when I could best appreciate it, and see it with a knowledge of Japanese his- tory for my spectacles. So I postponed the trip till three years later. I glance round Otsu in a short walk. Its name means Great Harbor. I saw some of the very places mentioned by Kaempfer and the Jes- uits. Our hotel was near the steamer's dock. At 9 A.M., our party, twelve in all, were on board, and a lighter, full of our baggage, was in tow. The little steamer screeched once or twice, ending in a pro- longed squeal, and we were fairly out on the bosom of Japan's largest lake. It was a strange sight, here in Inland Japan, to see a steamboat pulsing over the water, and stretching its long scarfs of smoke in the pure air against the white snow and the azure of the mountains. The IN THE HEART OF JAPAX. 415 Golden Age, always alloyed with poverty and ignorance and discom- forts, was past for Japan ; the Iron Age of smoke, of coal, of comfort, of wealth, was coming. The Lilliputian steamer, compared with one of our Hudson River ferry-boats, was as a Japanese tea-cup to a soda-water tumbler, or a thimble to a gill. It was only I am afraid to say how many feet short, and inches narrow. Its engines, like its entire self, were oscil- lating. Captain, engineer, fireman, and crew were all Japanese. The accommodations of the passengers were strictly graded. The cabin, in the stern, was ten feet by six, and four feet high. At one end, a platform, six inches high, three feet wide, six feet long, and covered with a rug, was the "first-class." At the side was a set of sword- racks. The floor of the rest of the same cabin, six inches lower, was " second-class." The promenade-deck was ten feet by six, two square feet being occupied by the refreshment-vender of the boat, who fur- nished tea, boiled rice, rice cracknels, pickles, rice rolls wrapped in sea- weed, boiled cuttle-fish, etc., to those who wished refreshment. He seemed to drive a brisk trade ; for, besides our party of eight, who oc- cupied the cabin and deck, our servants and about a dozen other na- tives filled a hole in the bow, which was "third-class." I preferred first-class air. I kept on deck, watching the snow-clad mountains, and the historic towns, castles, and villages, and now and then a boat under sail or oar. Biwa ko, as the natives call it, is as green and almost as beautiful as a Swiss lake. It is named after the musical instrument called a biwa, because shaped like it. Tradition says that in one night Fuji san rose out of the earth in Suruga, and in one night the earth sunk in Omi, and this lake, sixty miles long, was formed. The monotony of the voyage was broken at four o'clock in the afternoon, when the little boat swung to its moorings at the village of Hanoiira. The place reminded me of Kussnacht, at the end of Lake Lucerne. We stepped out into what seemed a vil- lage of surpassing poverty. The houses were more than ordinarily dilapidated. The streets were masses of slush and mud. The people seemed, all of them, dirty, poor, ragged. I had full opportunities of becoming acquainted with all of them, for every one quickly informed his neighbors that a foreigner was among them, and soon the color of his eyes and hair, his clothes and actions, were discussed, and himself made the nine days' wonder of the village. I began to realize the utter poverty and wretchedness of the people and the country of Japan. It was not an Oriental paradise, such as a 416 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. reader of some books about it may have supposed. I had only a faint conception of it then. I saw it afterward, until the sight oppressed me like nightmare. At present, novelty lent its chromatic lenses, and tinged all rny view. Then, too, I thought that the wretched weather and leaden sky had something to do with my feelings ; and when the servant-maids brought water and waited on my companions, as they took off their wet boots, sandals, and socks, with such hearty cheer, merry smiles, and graceful skill, every thing looked as if sunshine had sifted through a cloud-rift. I was quite restored to myself again by a sight that banished all disgust. A jolly-looking, fat girl was half hobbling, half staggering along on her clogs, her generous physique quivering like heaps of jelly. Her left hand grasped the cross-handle of a bucket of water, which was in a state of general splash, like herself. Her right arm, bared by her bag-like sleeves being bound to her armpits, was extended far over toward the ground to countervail gravity on the other side. I momentarily expected this buxom Gill to stum- ble and tumble ; but not she. She knew her business too well. Her tout ensemble, her face reddened by exercise, her vigorous puffing, her belt flying in the wind, like Mr. Gough's coat-tails, were too Bringing Water to wash Travelers' Feet. funny to resist. My risibilities (Hokusai.) , , , , . , ,. -, V1 exploded ; whereat hers did like- wise. I cheerfully sat down, and let her wash my cold feet in warm water, which being over, I got up, entered the best room in the house, and curled up under a kotatsu. We started off the next morning at eight o'clock. We were to walk eighteen miles before the end of our day's journey to Tsuruga, a sea-port town. Our party prepared for the journey over mountain- paths by taking off their riding sandals or heavy wooden clogs, and girding on the feet a pair of straw sandals, which they bought for eighty-five " cash" (less than one cent) per pair. For myself, a fine, large, IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 417 and very handsome norimono, borne on the shoulders of two men, was provided. It was a fine, large box, like a palanquin, except that the pole by which it rested on the two men's shoulders passed through the top instead of being fastened at the centre, as in India. The one I rode in was gold-lacquered without, and richly upholstered and pa- pered within, with neat curtains of bamboo split into fine threads. Once inside, there was room to sit down. If one does not mind be- ing a little cramped, he can spend a day comfortably inside. For high lords and nobles four men are provided, and the long supporting bar is slightly curved to denote high rank. I entered the norimono in the presence of the entire village, including the small boys. The A Norimono. ride of a few hundred yards sufficed for me. The sights were too novel to miss seeing any thing, and so I got out and walked. I was not sorry for the change. The air was bracing, the scenery inspiring. A double pleasure rewards the pioneer who is the first to penetrate into the midst of a new people. Besides the rare exhilaration felt in treading soil virgin to alien feet, it acts like mental oxygen to look upon and breathe in a unique civilization like that of Japan. To feel that for ages millions of one's own race have lived and loved, enjoyed and suffered and died, living the fullness of life, yet without the relig- ion, laws, customs, food, dress, and culture which seem to us to be the vitals of our social existence, is like walking through a living Pompeii. Our path wound up from the village to a considerable height. On both sides of the mountain path and pass the ground was terraced 418 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. into rice -fields, which were irrigated by the stream that is usually found flowing between two hills. During the day we went through valleys of ravishing beauty. In them the ground was divided into ir- rigated rice-fields, which were now bare, and dotted with the clumps of rice-stubble as it was left when cut by the reaper's hook. At in- tervals were small villages, surrounded by the universal and ever-beau- tiful bamboo. On both sides of the valley, bold hills, thickly clothed with pine and fir and solemn evergreen, rose to the clouds. And all along, with a frequency like that of mile-stones, stood the kosatsu (edict -boards), on which hung the slander and prohibition against Christianity. We were still in the province of Omi. Frequently along the road I observed large, square posts of new wood, plentifully ornamented with Chinese characters, which marked the boundaries of the province, subdivision, or district. At noon we crossed the frontier of Omi and entered the province of Echizen, and at two o'clock that division of it which was under the jurisdiction of the Fukui Han. Being now within the dominions of " our prince," we expected evidences of it, in which we were not . disappointed. At every village the nanushi, or head-men, arrayed in their best dress, came out to meet us, presenting their welcomes and congratulations. Sometimes they would salute us half a mile or more from the village, and after welcoming us, bowing literally to the earth, they would has- ten on before and conduct us through the village to the extreme limit, and there take their adieu, with bows, kneelings, and sayonara. To- ward evening, having lunched and rested two hours at noon, we arrived near Tsuruga, and were met by the officers of the city, and conducted to the best hotel in the place. My eight companions were unusually merry that night, and, to add to their enjoyment, Melpomene, Terpsichore, and Hebe, or, in other words, two geishas, were present to dispense music, dancing, and sake. Several of the samurai danced what might be called stag-dances, from their novelty and vigor. I occupied myself in making notes of the day's trip. Iwabuchi had pointed out many places of historic inter- est, the lore of which I was not then, but was afterward, fully able to appreciate. I found in the room I occupied a work in Japanese, treat- ing of the Opium War in China, with vivid illustrations of the foreign steamers, artillery, and tactics. It was well thumbed and dog-eared, having evidently been read and reread many times. It had been pub- lished in Japan shortly after the war in China, and prepared the Japa- nese mind for what they had to expect. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 419 Tsuruga expects to become a great city some day.* It is to be the terminus of a railroad from Ozaka and Kioto. A canal is to connect its harbor with Lake Biwa a scheme first proposed by Taira Shige- mori, son of Kiyomori, in the twelfth century. It is to become the largest and wealthiest port on the west coast. I think there is good ground for these hopes. Its geographical position is every thing to be desired, and its harbor the best on the west coast. f We made an early start. We were to reach Takefu, a town about seventeen miles distant. We first walked down to the sea-shore, where I caught a splendid view of Tsuruga harbor, two-thirds of a circle of blue sea within rocky and timbered headlands. On the sandy strand were a dozen or more junks beached for the winter, propped and cov- ered with straw mats. In one or two tall sheds made of poles and mats were the keels and frames of new junks, with new timber and copper lying near, and one nearly finished. They were all on the an- cient model. Emerging into the road to Fukui, we came to the stone portal of a large Shinto temple.J Within a grove of grand old giant firs stood the simple shrine, without image, idol, or picture, save only the strips of white paper and the polished mirrors. My guards stop- ped, clapped their hands three times, placed them reverently together, bowed their heads, and uttered a prayer. The act was as touching as it was simple. About seven-eighths of Echizen is mountain-land, and to-day was * Tsuruga was made the capital of Tsuruga ken, including the province of Echizen, in 1873; thus becoming an official seat, leaving Fukui in the back- ground. t A Japanese gazetteer or cyclopedia, in describing a city, is especially minute in regard to the history and traditions. It describes fully the temples, shrines, customs, and local peculiarities, and usually winds up by recounting the "fa- mous scenes" or "natural beauties" of the place, whether it be Kioto or Fukui. Thus the " Echizen Gazetteer " says : " The ten fine scenes ('sceneries,' as the be- ginners in English put it) of Tsuruga are 1st, the red plum-trees in the temple grounds of Kei ; 3d, the full moon at Amatsutsu ; 3d, the white sails of the return- ing junks seen from Kiomidzu ; 4th, the evening bells at Kanegasaki ; 5th, the tea- houses at Iro ; 6th, the dragon's light (phosphorescence) on the sea-shore; 7th, the verdure at Kushikawa; 8th, the evening snow on Nosaka; 9th, the travelers on Michinokuchi ; 10th, the evening glow at Yasudama." \ The gods worshiped at these shrines are Jingu Kogo, mother of Ojin Ten- no ; Ukenochi, the goddess of cereals and food ; Yamato Dake, conqueror of the Kuanto;- Ojin Tenno, or Hachiman, god of war; Takenouchi, prime minister of Jingu ; and Tamahime', sister of the latter. The large granite iwi-i was erected by Hideyasu, first of the Tokugawa daimios of Echizen. Near the city are the ruins of old fortifications of Nitta Yoshisada, and Asakura Yoshikagi, the foe of Nobunaga. 420 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. one of climbing. The snow lay eight and ten feet deep on each side the hard line of path. The path itself was only such as is made by the tramping of human feet and by horses. We were now in full f orce foreigner, interpreter, guards, servants, and porters, about forty of whom carried our baggage. We were strung out over the white landscape in Indian file, numbering fifty -four persons in all. One coolie, the pioneer, had a can of kerosene on his back ; another, my wraps and hand-baggage ; another had his head under the seat of a rocking-chair, the space between the rockers being well packed. Oth- ers bore miscellaneous packages. When a box was too heavy for one man, it was slung on a pole and carried by two. The valleys were ev- idently, judging from their tracks, well stocked with rabbits and foxes, and in the rice-fields flocks of fat wild geese and ducks offered tempt- ing marks, on which one of the samurai, who had a revolver, spent much vain powder. The white heron were plentiful, and occasionally we saw the huge storks, six feet high, stalking along the streams. On the hills where the path wound through the woods the snow had been disturbed by the wild boar. We stopped to rest at the house of a noted hunter, on whose floor lay three huge carcasses and tusked heads. He showed us his long, light spear, with which he had transfixed one hundred and thirteen wild hogs that winter. It had a triangular, bayonet -like blade. The village bought the meat of him, and what he had left over he sent to Tsuruga and Fukui. Monkeys were also plentiful in the woods. In all the villages the people were on the lookout for the coming foreigner. The entire population, from wrinkled old men and stout young clowns, to hobbling hags, girls with red cheeks and laughing black eyes, and toddling children, were out. The women, babies, and dogs seemed especially eager to get a sight of the to-jin, and see what sort of an animal he was. The village houses were built of a frame of wood, with wattles of bamboo smeared with mud, and having a thatch- ed roof. Within, the floor was raised a foot or so above the ground, and covered with mats. When the rooms had partitions, they were made of a frame of wood covered with paper, and made to slide in grooves. In the middle of the floor was the fire - place. From the ceiling hung pot-hooks, pots, and kettles one for tea, one for rice, another for radishes, beans, or bean -cheese. In these villages good- nature and poverty seemed to be the chief characteristics of the peo- ple. The old faces were smoke-dried and wrinkled, and the skin seemed to be tanned on the inside by long swilling of strong tea. IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 421 Amidst this monotony of ug- liness, I was glad to see the merry, twinkling black eyes, and red cheeks of pretty girls, and the sweet faces of chil- dren, rosy and chubby, spite of dirt and slush, as they paused in their work of mak- ing snow-men, to gaze upon the stranger. Most of the people, in addition to the usual Japanese dress, wore long, high boots of plaited straw, admirable for walking in the snow, called " Echizen boots," the worth of which I proved. Our route for the next day lay through a lovely valley formed by a river. The rate of traveling had not been se- Villa s e in vere. The record of each day was very much like a page of the "Anab- asis," and from two to four of Xenophon's parasangs were our daily journey. Long before I arrived at my place of destination, I found the way the Japanese have of doing things was not that of America, and that life in Japan would be a vastly different thing from the split-second life in New York. It took us three days and a half to do what I afterward accomplished easily, by the same means, in a day and a quarter. That large bodies move slowly is true, to an exasperating extent, in Japan. A journey of ten Japanese samurai means unlimited sleep, smoking of pipes, drinking of tea, and drowsy lounging. A little more tea, one more smoke, and the folding of the legs to sit, is the cry of the Japa- nese yakunin. Such things at first were torture, and a threat of in- sanity to me, when I found that time had no value, and was infinitely cheaper than dirt in Japan. Finally, I became, under protest, used to it. On this occasion I rather enjoyed it. My eyes were not full of seeing yet, and, though impatient to reach my field of labor, yet this was the grand manner of traveling, and best for heart and eye and memory. Besides, it would be undignified to make haste in the prince's own dominions, and the porters, under their heavy loads, 422 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. must not be hurried. It also gave me opportunity to learn from my interpreter every thing of historic, local, and legendary interest, and thus fit myself to appreciate what I afterward had read to me from the " Gazetteer of Echizen." Twelve miles from Fukui, I found an officer of the daimio, who had been sent to meet and welcome me. After being introduced, he of- fered me presents of a duck, and a box, handsomely wrapped in white paper, and tied in cord of red and white, and filled with gorgeous- ly colored red, green, and yellow sweetmeats. We were to rest at Takefu for the night, and next morning take horses and ride to Fu- kui. Meanwhile there was to be a grand dinner. Iwabuchi and I sallied out to see the town. It was a poor place. It had formerly been of more importance, and named Fuchiu,* but had declined. It numbered probably twelve thousand people, having thirty -four streets, and two thousand eight hundred and forty-nine houses, and, being a post-relay town, twenty- five houses were kept for hire to travelers. The streets were broad, and a stream of water flowed between stone banks in the middle of the street. There were many iron -workers; and broad knives, hoes, scissors, the rude plow-coulters, and the most useful articles of Japa- nese domestic cutlery were special productions. One of Nobunaga's most famous arrow-makers came from Takefu. Macaroni and vermi- celli, hemp and hempen cloth, were also staples. The Government edicts were posted up conspicuously on a stone platform, with impos- ing roofed frame of substantial timber. Two or three temples, with spacious grounds and lofty trees, the stone path flanked by two im- mense stone or bronze lanterns, were among the adornments of the place. Familiarity, like a leaven, was breeding contempt, as I began to see what actual Japanese life was. I thanked God I was not of the race and soil. Was it Pharisaical ? We returned to the hotel not very inviting without, but attractive within. In two fine large rooms brilliant screens of gold and silver spangled paper, or depicted with battle-scenes, such as the destruction of the Mongol fleet in 1281, and the capture of Kamakura by Nitta * Fuchiu, was formerly the general name of the capital of a province. The word means "interior of the government." After the Restoration, in 1868, the mikado's government changed the names of the many towns all over the empire, named Fuchiu, among which were those in Echizen and Suruga, the latter being called Shidzuoka (peaceful hill). IN THE HEART OF JAPAN. 423 in 1333, and of Kioto court life, were ranged along the wall, and bra- ziers of figured bronze shed a genial glow through the mellow-lighted room. They had placed a new-made table for the foreigner to eat by himself. The officers, now twelve in number, and the chief men of the town sat round the floor in an oval. Four girls, all of them good- looking, brought in, not the dishes, but each time a tableful of dishes, and set one before each guest. Forthwith the meal began. On fourteen little tables, each a foot square, four inches high, made of wood lacquered black, and lustrous as jet, were as many pairs of chopsticks made of new, clean wood, ready bifurcated but unsplit, to show they had not been used. The maids attended, with full tubs of steaming rice and pots of tea, to replenish the rapidly emptied bowls. Fish, boiled eggs, lobster, and various made-dishes were served on enor- mous porcelain plates the size of the full moon. The nimble tapering fingers of the laughing girls handed out their contents. Then came the warm sake. The tiny cups circulated around, the girls acting as Hebes. Smoking and story-telling followed after the candles were brought in. In the evening, after each had enjoyed his hot bath, the quilts were spread, and the top-knotted heads were laid on their wood- en pillows and paper pillow-cases, and sleep, dreams, and snores had at- tained their maximum of perfection before nine o'clock. In my dream, I was at home in America, but failed to catch the train to get back to Japan. Twelve horses, saddled and bridled, were ready next morning, which was the 4th of March. After the last pipe had been smoked, the last cup of tea drank, and the last joke cracked, with swords thrust in gir- dle, wooden helmet tied on head under the chin, and straw sandals in stirrup, the cavalcade moved. We started off slowly through the town and crowded streets, and out into the valley toward Fukui. It was a day of wind, light showers, and fitful flakes of snow, alternating with rifts of sunlight that lent unearthly grandeur to the wrinkled hills. A brisk ride of two hours brought us within sight of Fukui. We were in a level plain between two walls of mountains. Just as Nakamura cried out, " Yonder is Fukui," a burst of sunshine threw floods of golden glory over the city. I shal 1 never forget my emotions, in that sudden first glimpse of the city embowered in trees, looming across the plain, amidst the air laden with snow-flakes, and seen in the light reflected from storm-clouds. There were no spires, golden-vaned ; no massive pediments, fagades, or grand buildings such as strike the eye on beholding a city in the W^est- 424 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. era world. I had formed some conception of Fukui while in Ameri- ca : something vaguely grand, mistily imposing I knew not what. I now saw simply a dark, vast array of low-roofed houses, colossal tem- ples, gables, castle-towers, tufts of bamboo, and groves of trees. This was Fukui. As usual, officers came out at the city limits to meet us. We rode through the streets, thronged with eagerly curious people. The thor- oughfares were those of an ordinary Japanese town, not of my ideal Fukui. In a few minutes we crossed a bridge over a river, suddenly stopped, entered the gate of a handsome court-yard lined with trees, and before the door of a fine large old house dismounted and entered. I was welcomed by several officers, all in their best silks, swords, san- dals, and top-knots, with bows, and such awkward but hearty hand- shakings as men unused to it might be supposed to achieve. I then entered my future abode. It was a Japanese house, foreign- ized by American comforts. All the partitions and windows were of glass. A Peekskill stove, with pipe and fire, was up, and glowing a welcome. I found a handsome bedstead, wash-stand, and good furni- ture. How did all this come here? I soon understood it, for one merry-eyed officer told me, in broken English, " I been in New York. I understand. You like ?" I immediately seized the speaker's hand, and made him my friend. Sasaki (well named Tree of Help) was aft- erward my right-hand man. Then followed the dinner. This feature of foreign civilization was specially attractive to the Japanese. To sit at a huge table on chairs, with plates, knives, forks, casters, and epergne; to experience the pomp and circumstance of soup, fish, vege- tables, flesh, and fowl, with the glittering gastronomic tools ; to tickle the palate and gorge the stomach with meat and wine and luscious sweets, seemed to them a sure proof of the superiority of foreign civil- ization. Eight of us sat down to a foreign dinner of manifold courses of fluid and solid fare, my own cook having arrived in Fukui the day before. The officers left me, and I spent the day in unpacking trunks, and adorning my room so as to give an American home-look to my quarters. In the evening I had a call from an officer who came to pay his re- spects to the foreign instructor. I invited him to stay to supper. He did so. Fortunately he understood a little English, having spent some time in Yokohama. He gave me much useful information. He invited me to make, his home a place of daily resort. He offered to assist me in the choice of a good servant, a good horse, the best flow- THE HEART OF JAPAN. 425 ers, pictures, curiosities, and whatever I might wish to buy. He also taught me the value, symbols, and denominations of the local paper money of Fukui. I was already familiar with the national kinsatsii (money cards). A fac-simile of a nishiu piece, worth about twelve cents, is given in the cut. The ten and one rio (dollar), and bu (quarter) pieces are much larger. The dragons with horns, hair, scales, claws, and mustaches, jewel and mikado crests, are very conspicuous. The Chinese char- acters read " Money, nishiu," and u Mim Bu Sho, Currency Office." For centuries past, every great daimio has issued paper money current only in . his han. There are over one hundred local varieties in the empire, of varied col- ors, values, and sizes. The Fukui denom- inations were one -tenth, one -fifth, one- half : one, three, five, ten, and fifty cents. The designs on them are the God of Wealth, the treasure-ship which every Jap- anese hopes to have " come in," the pile of kobans (oval gold coins) which he ex- pects to " raise," bags of rice the stand- Fac-simiie of Kinsat^u. issue of a rd of value dragons, flowers, birds, and the zoology of the zodiac. The officer further said I must have relaxation. He x offered to show me the fairest and brightest maiden, whom I might bring to my house, and make my playmate. I thanked him, and accepted all his offers but the last. The night was clear and cold. The same familiar stars glittered overhead as those seen in the home sky. The wild geese sailed in the bright air, the moon bathing their plumage in silver. The temple-bell boomed solemnly as I lay down to rest. 426 TBS MXKAJ)0'S EMPIRE. VIII. RECEPTION' BY THE DAIMIO.MY STUDENTS. THE next day was a Sabbath in a Sabbathless land. I awoke to find a perfect day a heaven of cloudless blue, and every thing quiet and still. How should I spend Sunday here ? There were no church- bells pealing, no church, no pews, no pulpit, no street -cars, no pave- ment, no Sunday-school, no familiar friends. I walked to the gate of the court-yard and looked out upon the street. Business and traf- fic were going on as usual. The samurai on clogs, in his silk and crested coat, swords in girdle and cue on clean -shorn crown, was walking on, in his dignity, as the lord of society. The priest, in his flowing crape and brocade collar, with shaven head, and rosary on On the Tow-path. (Hokusai.) wrist, was on his way to the temple. The merchant, in his plain, wadded cotton clothes, tight breeches, and white -thonged sandals of straw, was thinking of his bargains. The laborer, half naked and half covered in the fabrics of Eden, in sandals of rice-straw, tunic, and hat, making himself a fulcrum for his scale-like method of carrying heavy burdens, passed staggering by. A file of his brethren, with hats in the shape of inverted wash-bowls, engaged on some heavy work at the river-side, were resting on a log, looking, in the distance, like a row of exaggerated toad-stools. The seller of fish, vegetables, oil, and RECEPTION BY THE DAIMIO.MY STUDENTS. 427 bean-cheese, each uttering his trade-cry, ambled on. On the opposite shore, with ropes over their shoulders, a gang of straw-clad men not mules were towing a boat up stream, against the current. I returned indoors. Breakfast over, I sought the companionship of my dear, silent friends, which I had brought with me, and which had not yet been arranged, though I had already made my plans for a book-case. It was about half-past nine, when the gate at the end of the court-yard opened, and in rode Nakamura, my guard of yesterday. Behind him came three of the daimio's grooms, one of them leading a gorgeously caparisoned horse. The grooms were dressed in only one garment, a loose blue coat coming to a little below the hips, with socks on his feet, and the usual white loin-cloth around his waist. On the back of his coat was the crest of his prince. The horse was the most richly dressed. It was decked as if for a tournament or ball. Its tail was incased in a long bag of figured blue silk, which was tied at the root with red silk cord and tassels. The hair of the mane and top-knot was collected into a dozen or more tufts bound round with white silk, and resembling so many brushes or pompons. The saddle was an elaborate piece of furniture, lacquered and gilded with the crests of Tokugawa. The saddle-cloths and flaps were of corrugated leather, stamped in gold. The stirrups were as large as shovels, and the rider, removing his sandals when he mounted, rested the entire soles of his feet in them. The material was bronze, orna- mented with a mosaic of silver and gold. The bridle was a scarf of silk, and the bit and halter different from any I had seen elsewhere. From the saddle, crupper, and halter depended silken cords and tassels. Altogether, it reminded me of one of the steeds on the Field of the Cloth of Gold. The horse had been sent to convey me to meet the prince and his chief officers, who were to receive me in the main room of the Han Cho, or Government Office. Nakamura was to escort me, and Iwabuchi was to be present, to speak for us. We mounted and rode along the wide street facing the castle-moat, which was lined on one side by the yashikis of the chief men of the clan, and called Daimio Avenue. A few minutes' ride brought us to one of the gates called Priests' Gate, and, riding inside of another wall and moat, we reached the main entrance to the Han Cho, and dis- mounted. The gate was the same as that seen in front of all large yashikis and official places in Japan, like two massive crosses with their arms joined end to end. We passed up the broad stone path through a yard covered with pebbles. Before the door was a large 428 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. raised portico or vestibule. Kneeling pages waited to receive us, and an officer in rustling silk came out to welcome us. We removed our shoes and entered. Passing along a corridor of soft and scrupulously clean mats, we reached the hall of audience, into which we were ushered with due ceremony. The pages and attend- ants kneeled down, while the daimio and his six ministers rose to re- ceive us. Tables, chairs, and hand - shakings were new things then, yet they were there. I advanced and bowed to the prince, who ap- proached me and extended his hand, uttering what I afterward learned were words of welcome. After shaking hands, he put an autograph letter in my hand. Iwabuchi from the first had fallen down on his hands, knees, and face, and talked with uplifted eyes. I was next in- troduced to his long-named high retainers, and then we all sat down to the table. It was piled up with tall pyramids of half -peeled oranges and sliced sponge-cake the usual orthodox Japanese refresh- ments. In the centre was a huge bouquet, composed entirely of twigs of plum blossoms and the steely, silver-glossy shoots of a wild plant, surrounded at the base with camellias of many tints, both single and double. The little pages pretty boys of ten or twelve brought us tiny cups of tea in metal sockets. As we lifted out the cups, they bowed low, and slid away. The prince and his ministers handed me their cards, imposing slips of white paper, inscribed with their names and titles in Chinese char- acters. They were as follows : Matsudaira Mochiaki, Governor of the Fukui Han ; Ogasawara Morinori, Daisanji (Great Minister) ; Murata Ujihisa, Daisanji (Great Minister) ; Sembon Hisanobu (Vice-great Minister) ; Otani (Minister) ; Omiya Sadakiyo (Chamberlain). Then followed a lively conversation, which kept Iwabuchi's two tongues busy for nearly an hour. Icy etiquette melted into good-hu- mor, and good -humor flowed into fun. At the end of that time we had made the mutual discovery that we could get along together very well American freedom and Japanese ease made strangers friends. Ed- ucation and culture easily bridge the gulf that lies between two races, religions, and civilizations. I felt perfectly at home in the presence of these courtly and polished gentlemen, and an hour passed very pleasantly. The daimio's autograph letter ran as follows : " It is a matter of congratulation that the President of your com* try is in good health. DECEPTION BY THE DAIMlO.MT STUDENTS. 429 " I greatly rejoice and am obliged to you that you have arrived so promptly from so great distance over seas and mountains, to teach the sciences to the youth of Fukui. " Concerning matters connected with the school and students, the officers in charge of education will duly consult you. " As Fukui is a secluded place, you will be inconvenienced in many respects. Whenever you have need of any thing, please make your wants known without ceremony. "MATSUDAIRA, Fukui Han-CMji" These words struck the key-note of my whole reception in Fukui. During the entire year of my residence, unceasing kindnesses were showered upon me. From the prince and officers to the students, citizens, and the children, who learned to know me and welcome me with smiles and bows and " Good-morning, teacher," I have nothing to record but respect, consideration, sympathy, and kindness. My eyes were opened. I needed no revolver, nor were guards necessary. I won the hearts of the people, and among the happiest memories are those of Fukui. Among those whom I learned to love was the little son of the dai- mio, a sprightly, laughing little fellow, four or five years old, with snap- ping eyes, full of fun, and as lively as an American boy. Little Mat- sudaira wore a gold-hilted short sword in his girdle ; while a lad of thirteen, his sword-bearer, at- tended him, to carry the longer badge of rank. His head was shaved, except a round space like a cap, from which a tiny cue pro- jected. The photograph which his father gave me and the wood- cut do but scant justice to the exquisitely delicate brown tint of his skin, flushed with health, his twinkling black eyes, his rosy cheeks, and his arch ways, that convinced his mother that he was A nttle Daimi6 ' (From a P hot g ra P h -> the most beautiful child ever born of woman. I often met him in Fukui and, later, in Tokio. He is to be educated in the United States. 28 430 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. As yet I had seen little of the city in which I expected to dwell for three years. I had reached the goal of my journey ings. Hitherto, in all my travels, Fukui loomed up in my imagination, and, spite of my actual experience of Japanese towns, the ideal Fukui was a grand city. All the excitement of travel was now over, and I was to see the actual Fukui. I rode around the castle circuit, and out into the city, and for a long distance through its streets. I was amazed at the utter pover- ty of the people, the contemptible houses, and the tumble-down look of the city, as compared with the trim dwellings of an American town. I rode through many streets, expecting at last to emerge into some splendid avenue. I rode in vain ; and, as I rode, the scales fell from my eyes. There was no more excitement now to weave films of gla- mour before my vision. I saw through the achromatic glasses of act- uality. I realized what a Japanese an Asiatic city was. All the houses of wood, the people poor, the streets muddy, few signs of wealth, no splendid shops. Talk of Oriental magnificence and luxu- ry ! What nonsense ! I was disgusted. My heart sunk. A desper- ate fit of the blues seized me. I returned home, to chew the cud of gloomy reflections. Servant before his Master. Fukui was the home of Kusakabe, my former student, who died in New Brunswick. His father had heard of my coming. In the after- noon he called to see me. A lacquered trayful of very fine oranges, on which lay the peculiarly folded paper, betokening a gift, and a slip of paper written with Chinese characters the visiting-card was handed me by Sahei, who, as usual, fell down on all fours, with face on his hands, as though whispering to the floor. It was the Oriental way 'of visiting with a gift in the hand. He had come to the house by way of the rear instead of the front gate, in token of humility on RECEPTION BY THE DA1MIO.MY STUDENTS. 431 his part and honor to me, I bid my servant, usher him in, and a sad-looking man of fifty or more years entered. Through Iwabuchi his story was soon told. His wife had died of grief on hearing of her son dying a stranger in a strange land. Two very young sons were living. His other children, five in number, were dead. His house was left unto him desolate. I gave him the gold key of the Phi Beta Kappa Society, of Rutgers College, into which his son had been elected, he having stood at the head of his class. His father re- ceived the emblem reverently, lifting it to his forehead. On the next day my regular work was to begin. Horses were sent again, and I rode to the school, a building which was the citadel of the castle, and was once the residence of the old prince. I was met by the officers of the school in the room I was to occupy. On the table were sponge-cake, oranges, and plum-blossom bouquets, as usual, while the omnipresent tea was served, and the tiny pipes were smoked. It was very evident that the men who had been desirous of a teacher of chemistry had very nebulous ideas about what that science was. However, they were ready, with money and patience, to furnish the necessary apparatus and lecture - room ; and our preliminaries being agreed on, I was conducted through the other rooms to see the sights of the school. I was surprised to find it so large and flourishing. There were in all about eight hundred students, comprised in the English, Chinese, Japanese, medical, and military departments. A few had been study- ing English for two or three years, under native teachers who had been in Nagasaki. In the medical department I found a good collec- tion of Dutch books, chiefly medical and scientific, and a fine pair of French dissection models, of both varieties of the human body. In the military school was a library of foreign works on military subjects, chiefly in English, several of which had been translated into Japanese. In one part of the yard young men, book, diagram, or trowel in hand, were constructing a miniature earthwork. The school library, of En- glish and American books among which were all of Kusakabe's was quite respectable. In the Chinese school I found thousands of boxes, with sliding lids, filled with Chinese and Japanese books. Sev- eral hundred boys and young men were squatted on the floor, with their teachers, reading or committing lessons to memory, or writing the Chinese characters. Some had already cut off their top-knots.* * In one of the popular street-songs hawked about and sung in the streets of 432 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. Student burning the Midnight Oil. (Photograph from life.) At one end of the buildings were large, open places devoted to physical exercise. Several exhibitions of trials of skill in fencing and wrestling were then made for my benefit. Six of the students repair- ed to the armory and put on the defensive mail, to shield themselves in the rough work before them as Japanese swords are for use with both hands, having double-handed hilts without guards. The foils for fencing are made of round, split bamboo, and a good blow will make one smart, and bruise the flesh. So the fencing -master and students first donned a corselet, with shoulder-plates of hardened hide padded within, and heavily padded gauntlets. On their heads were wadded caps, having a barred visor of stout iron grating. Taking their places, with swords crossed, they set to. All the passes are cut Fukui, Ozaka, and Tokio, at this time was a stanza satirizing the three fashions of wearing the hair : in Western style ; in the fashion of the Osei, or ante-feudal era ; and the orthodox samurai mode. One's political proclivities were thus expressed by his hair. An unshaven head with all the hair worn, but made into a top-knot cue, marked the wearer as a " mikado -reverencer," or believer in the princi- ples of the Osei era. A head shaven on the mid -scalp and temples, with cue, denoted one who clung to the mediaeval ideals of feudalism. A short-haired head, clipped and cueless, like a Westerner, was a sign of foreignizing tenden- cies. The students led this fashion. The cut represents one at night, studying by the light of his paper lantern, inside which is a dish of oil, with pith wick. To the right of his little study-table are his brush-pens, in their usual porcelain receptacle; and behind him is his library or book-case, in which the books are ranged, with their edges outward. In a Japanese library, the titles of all works are marked on their edge as well as the cover. RECEPTION BY THE DAIMIO.MY STUDENTS. 433 ting blows, thrusting being unknown. Pretty severe whacks are given, and some bruising done, spite of armor. Foils are used up like lances in a tournament. The young men kept up the mimic battle for fif- teen minutes, or as long as their wind and muscle lasted, and the se- vere ordeal was over, the victory being won by those who had given what would have been disabling wounds had swords been used. Then followed, by another set of students, the spear exercise. Long spears were used first, and several fine passes in carte and tierce were made ; the offensive and defensive were tried alternately, to show me all the various thrusts and foils of the science. The party having short spears succeeded, the manoeuvres being dif- ferent. So far it was mere scientific display, no one being severely punched. At a signal of the clappers another set took blunt spears, leaped into the arena, and a sham fight began, the thrusts being real lunges that knocked down and bruised the limbs or damaged the breathing apparatus of the man put hors du combat quite badly. In about five minutes half the party were down, and the remainder, all crack lances, continued the battle for several minutes longer, with some fine display, but no mortal thrusts. They were called off, and the men with sword and cross-spear began a trial of skill. The cross- spear is long, like a halberd, with a two-edged blade set at right an- gles across it within six inches from the top. It is intended especially for defense against a sword, or a horse soldier. In this instance, one or two of the swordsmen were jerked to the floor or had their helmets torn off; while, on the other side, the halberdiers suffered by having their poles struck by severing blows of their opponents' swords or actually received the " pear-splitter " stroke which was supposed to cleave their skulls. Next followed wrestling. Though a cold day in winter, the stu- dents were dressed only in coarse sleeveless coats of hemp cloth. Ap- proaching each other, they clinched and threw. The object seemed to be to show how an unarmed man might defend himself. Wrest- lings and throwings were followed by sham exhibitions that bore a frightful resemblance to real choking, dislocation of arm, wringing of the neck, etc. Throughout the exhibition, the contestants, while at- tacking each other, uttered unearthly yells and exclamations. I was highly impressed with the display, and could not fail to admire the splendid, manly physique of many of the lads. I waited to see the school dismissed, that I might see my pupils in the open air. At the tapping of the clapperless bell, the students put 434 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. away their brushes, ink -stones, and sticks of ink, wrapped up their books and portable matter in square pieces of silk or calico, making neat bundles ; put their short swords, which lay at their sides, in their girdles ; and each and all bowing low, with face to the floor, to their teachers, rose up and went, first, to the sword -room to put on their long swords. This was a large apartment near the entrance, in which were rows of numbered racks, containing seven hundred or more swords. Each student presented his check or ticket of branded pine wood, and his sword was handed him by one of the keepers. Thrust- ing it in his girdle, and adjusting the pair, each scholar passed to the clog-room, where seven hundred pairs of clogs or sandals were stow- ed in numbered order. These set on the ground, and the owner's toes bifurcating into the thong, the student added a half-cubit to his stature, and trudged homeward. The scraping and clatter of hundreds of wooden clogs over the long stone bridge were deafening. All were bare -headed, with the top -knot, cue, and shaven mid -scalp, most of them with bare feet on their clogs, and with their characteristic dress, swagger, fierce looks, bare skin exposed at the scalp, neck, arms, calves, and feet, with their murderous swords in their belts, they impressed upon my memory a picture of feudalism I shall never forget. As I walked, I wondered how long it would require to civilize such "barbarians." Here were nearly a thousand young samurai. What was one teacher among so many? Could it be possible that these could be trained to be disciplined students ? These were my thoughts then. A few months later, and I had won their confidence and love. I found they were quite able to instruct me in many things. I need fear to lose neither politeness nor sense of honor among these earnest youth. In pride and dignity of character, in diligence, courage, gen- tlemanly conduct, refinement and affection, truth and honesty, good morals, in so far as I knew or could see, they were my peers. Love is always blind, they say. Was it so in this case ? LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 435 IX. LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. Now that the excitement of travel was over, I settled down to my duties, to survey the place and surroundings, and to try and under- stand the life around me. I first examined my quarters. The old mansion assigned to me was one hundred and ninety-seven years old. It had been in possession of the same family during that period. The house had been built on part of the site of Shibata's old castle, in which he and his band committed hara-kiri and underwent voluntary cremation. Across the river rose Atago yama. On this hill, Hideyoshi encamped with his army. A few score feet to the west of my gate was a stone on which tradition says Shibata stood when he drew an arrow to the head, and shot it into his enemy's camp, splitting the pole of the canopy, or mammoth umbrella, under which Hideyoshi sat. The moat which bounded the north side of my estate was part of the old fortress, and a few rods eastward stood a gate-way still intact, though no "harsh thunder" could be grated from its hinges, which rust had long united together. My whole estate was classic soil, and I suspect more than one old conservative growled to see the foreigner on the spot made sacred by Echizen's greatest hero, whose devotion to Yamato damashi ideals had been at- tested in blood, fire, and ashes. It was a grand old house of solid timber, with spacious rooms, and long, well-lighted corridors. It was sixty feet broad, by one hundred feet deep. Though of one story, it had an immense and lofty sloping roof and shaggy eaves. The rooms numbered twelve in all. The floors were laid with soft neat mats, and the paper sliding screens could all be taken out, if need were, to make a hall of vast area with many square columns. The corridors, which were ten feet wide, passed outside the rooms, yet were part of the house. The walls, where solid, were papered. The ceiling, of fine grained wood, was twelve feet from the floor. In the rear were the kitchen and servants' quarters. The entire estate comprised about ten acres, the sides of which, ex- 436 THE MIKADO'S UMPIRE. tending inward to a depth of thirty feet, were lined with the dwellings of the former retainers and servants. In the central area had been gardens and stables. All these accessories to the mansion were in the rear. The front of the house looked out upon a long, beautiful garden. To the left was a wall of tiles and cement, too high for any inquisitive eyes to peep over, which extended all around the inclosure. Along the inner side was a row of firs. These trees had been planted by the first ancestor of the family that had followed Hideyasii to Fukui in the sixteenth century. They were now tall and grave sentinels, of mighty girth and wide-spreading limbs, that measured their height by rods and their shadows by furlongs. By day they cast grateful shade, and at night sifted the moonbeams, over the path. Near the end of the court-yard was the main gate, made of whole tree-trunks, and crowned by an im- posing roof. Just within it was the porter's lodge, where a studious old mom-ban (gate- keeper) kept watch and ward over the port- al, through which none could enter except men of rank and office. He usually had his nose inside a book when I saw him, for he was a great reader, and near-sighted. Near the lodge was a clump of trees, and The studious Gate-keeper, beneath their shadow and protection had been the family shrine. It was an ark cut out of solid stone, four feet high. Within it had been the sacred vases, mirror, and white paper, all holy symbols of the Shinto faith, which the family pro- fessed. All around the now neglected garden were blossoming ca- mellias, red as maiden blushes, or white as unstained innocence. On another hillock, tufted here and there with azaleas and asters, were several dwarfed pines. The rockery and fish-pond, long neglected, were overgrown and scarcely perceptible. Evidently it had been a charming place of great beauty, for the traces were yet to be seen of former care and adornment. To the right was an arm of one of the castle moats, full of running water. Beyond its banks and mossy and flower-decked stone walls were the gardens of several samurai families, in which sweet rosy-cheeked children played, or boys fished, or pretty girls came down to look at the lotus -flowers. The echo of their merry laugh often reached me. In the deep parts of the stream, clear as crystal, darted the black, silvery, or speckled fish ; while in the shallower portions great turtles crawled and stuck their LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 437 wedge-like noses above the water. In summer the lotus-flowers grew and bloomed, slowly rising from the long roots in the ooze, unfolding their first emerging tips into glorious concave shields of green, two feet in diameter, corded beneath like the veins of a gladiator, and hold- ing on their bosses translucent pebbles of dew. Then rose the closed bolls, like a clasped hand that trembled with the trembling water, giv- ing no sign of the beauty within the mighty flower in its bosom. Then, as the sunshine of summer fell aslant the cool water, the boll, tenderly and shyly, as if afraid, unfolded day by day until the splen- did revelation of the lotus was complete. Massive shield and glorious flower made a picture of unearthly loveliness to the child who strove to pluck the remote beauty, or to the adult to whom the lotus-flower is the emblem of eternal calm. The little Japanese child who first, with the glorifying eyes of childhood, looks upon its purity, finds in it an object of unspeakable delight. The mature believer in Buddha sees in it shadowed forth creative power, universe, and world-growth. The " lotus springs from the mud " is ever the answer of the Asiatic to him who teaches that the human heart is corrupt, and unable to cleanse itself. The calyx of the lotus is a triangle whose base is a cir- cle symbols of spirit and form, of eternity and triunity. In Nirvana, Buddha sits on a lotus-flower. As the mortal body of the believer ap- proaches the cremation house, that the borrowed elements of his body may be liberated from their fleshly prison and returned to their pri- mordial earth and air, a stone carved to represent a lotus-flower re- ceives the bier. To the Buddhist the lotus is a thing of beauty, a joy forever, because the constant symbol of poetic and religious truth. I was glad they had put me in this old mansion. It was full of suggestive history. It had been a home. Pagan, heathen, Asiatic it mattered not ; it was a home. Here in this garden the infant had been carried until a child growing up, the playmate of the flowers and birds, amidst Nature, until it knew her moods, and loved her with the passionate fondness for her which is so intense in the people of these islands. Here children played among the flowers, caught their first butterflies, began their first stratagem by decoying the unwary fish with the hook, and picked off the lotus petals for banners, the leaves for sun-shades, and the round seeds to eat, or roll like marbles. Then, as the boys grew up, they put on the swords, shaved off their fore-hair, and progressed in the lore of Chinese sages and native historians, and were fired with the narratives of the exploits of Taiko and Yoritomo and lyeyasu ; while the girls grew in womanly grace and beauty, and 438 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. perfected themselves in household etiquette and studied the " Woman's Great Learning." Then had come the marriage ceremonial, with no spoken vows, and made without priest or official, followed by festal cheer, wine, music, dance, and exchange of presents. Here the bride became mother. Hence, after one hundred days, she went with her child to the temple, where the robed and shaven bonze wrote a name- charm, and put it in the child's prayer-bag. In this house had been The Wedding Party. (From a Japanese painting on silk.) celebrated many a household festival. These rooms had echoed with merry laughter, or resounded with the groans and sobs of grief. Hence had gone out the funeral procession, when the bodies of loved parents were borne to the grave or the cremarium. The funeral cortege, with lanterns, and hearse of pure white wood borne on four men's shoulders, with robed bonzes and men in ceremonial dress and muffled swords, and women in pure white robes and half-moon-like caps of floss silk, LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 439 had passed out this gate. Prayers had been read, candles lighted, bells tinkled, the corpse laid on the pyre, and the fire lighted by the broth- er of the deceased, and the ashes deposited in the vase in the family monument in that cemetery beside the mountain yonder. In this fam- ily oratory a new black tablet, gilt-lettered, was set among the ances- tral names, to be honored through coming generations. Every day some new discovery showed me that this had been a home. Birth, marriage, death, sickness, sorrow, joy, banquet all the fullness of life, though not like ours, had sanctified it. I thought of the many journeys to Yedo and Kioto of the father on business, the sons on travel for culture and education, and the daughter for relig- ion's sake, or to the distant home of her husband. I pictured the festival days, the feast of dolls for the girls, when the great nursery- room was decked with all the rich toys with which girls delight to mimic the real life of motherhood and housekeeping, which is but a few years off. There stood the bamboo poles on which was hung the huge paper carp, to show that a boy had been born during the year, or that the heir of the house would rise in the world and surmount all difficulties, like a carp leaps the water-fall. New-year's-day had come to this house, the only time when profound Sabbath reigns in Japan. Then the servants and retainers pledged anew their loyalty, congratulated their master, and received gifts of money and clothes. I thought of the religious festivals when the mansion and all the ten- antry of the estate hung out gay lanterns, and the master's household, like a great heart, sympathized in the birth, death, marriage, sorrow, or joy of the tenantry. Thus, for centuries in this dwelling, and on this ancestral estate, lived the family in peace and prosperity. Then came foreigners and many troubles civil war, revolution, the overthrow of the shogun, the restoration of the mikado, the threaten- ed abolition of the feudal system. Great changes altered the condi- tion of Fukui. The revenues of the estate were reduced, the family moved to humbler quarters, the retainers and tenantry dispersed, and now the foreigner was here. All this I found out gradually, but with each bit of revelation the old mansion wore new charms. I loved to walk in the grand old gar- den at night, shut in from all but the stars and the faint murmur of the city, and the few glimmering lights on the mountain across the river, or when the moon sifted her beams through the tall firs, or bathed her face among the lotus-flowers in the moat, or silvered the ivy on the wall. I had come hither to be a builder of knowledge, to 440 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. help bring the new civilization that must destroy the old. Yet it was hard to be an iconoclast. I often asked myself the question Why not leave these people alone ? They seem to be happy enough ; and he that increaseth knowledge increaseth sorrow. The sacredness of human belief and reverence had consecrated even the old shrine, and other hands than mine must remove the stones of the deserted fane. What vulgarity to make a dining-room of the family oratory, where the ancestral tablets once stood, and the sacred lights and incense burn- ed ! I found tied to the front of the house a case of light wood, con- taining an amulet, written in Sanskrit and Chinese, for the protection of the house. I took it down, for I had no faith in its protection; but I kept it carefully as a curious memento, because others had trust- ed in it, and every thing human is sacred, even faith, if our own is. I found nailed on the inner lintel of the great gate a pile of charms of thin wood, to ward off disease and evil. One had been added every year, like strata upon strata, until the deposit was a half-foot thick. They had on them the name and seal of the temple in which they had been written, and were inscribed with Sanskrit quotations from the sacred books. Under the new administration, the personnel of my establishment was as follows: My interpreter, Iwabuchi, occupied a pleasant little house in the rear and within call, so as to be ready to assist me when visitors came, though most of them went first to Iwabuchi's house. I found that even in the kitchen the feudal spirit of grades and ranks was strictly observed. My cook had an assistant, who himself had a small boy, who often hired other small boys to do his work. My "boy," or body - servant, had another man to help him. Even the betto, or groom, employed an underling to do all the actual manual work. Theoretically, it required a large force of men to guard and wait on the foreigner, and I was amazed to find myself so famous and surrounded. To begin at the height of rank and honor : first, there was the dai- mio's officer, who had been appointed to look after my wants. He had an office for daily use in one of the distant rooms of the building. Under him was a subofficial, and also a clerk. These three men were considered necessary, as foreigners were known to have many wants, to require troublesome attention. Then, the foreigner was a stranger in the city and neighborhood, and as the people were unfamiliar with men of his strange breed, some of them might insult him, or a wan- dering jo-i (foreigner -hater) might kill him, in which case an in- LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 441 demnity of fifty thousand dollars would have to be paid by the Gov- ernment. Hence, four stalwart samurai, each with their two swords, were set apart for my protection. These escorted me to and from school, and went with me in my walks and rides, and at first were very serviceable guides, until my familiarity with the language and people, and my perception of their perfectly harmless character, made these armed men bores. They performed duty on alternate days, and occupied a part of the long house to the left. Then, there were five or six of the larger students, who wished to live near their teacher. They occupied another room under the same roof with the four guards. At the rear entrance to the inclosure of my house was an- other gate and porter's lodge, in which a man kept watch and ward, admitting none but the privileged, though all who entered here were of much lower rank than those who came to the front gate. To man the two gates front and rear a corps of eight men were appointed, who did duty alternately. Their duties were not onerous. They con- sisted in reading, eating, sleeping, drinking tea, bowing to me as I passed, and keeping out stragglers. The long house, stretching away to the eastward, was full of folks of the humbler sort, with many chil- dren and babies, and of dogs not a few. These youngsters, with their quaint dress, curiously shaved heads, and odd ways, were often a source of great amusement to me. The fun reached its climax when they attempted to walk bamboo poles or turn somersaults on them, Boys playing on Bamboo Bars. (Hokusai.) 442 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. often in the latter motion becoming real gynmasts, in the etymolog- ical sense of the word. In imitating wrestling-matches, they made a small arena of sand ringed by twisted rice-straw, and then the nude little dumplings of humanity, some of them less than four years old, stamped their feet, eat their salt, rinsed their mouths, slapped their knees, and then clinched in mimic rage, tugging away until victory was declared for one or the other, by the Lilliputian judge with fan in hand. Even the applause, to the casting in the ring of fans and garments to be redeemed, as in the real triumph of the elephantine fat fellows, who look as though stuffed with blubber by means of a sau- sage-blower, were given with comical accuracy of imitation. When the infant Hercules got hold of his antagonist's clout the master- grip of the game, which put the unlucky one " in chancery," a shout The Grip of Victory. went up from the spectators like the Roman "habet" or the modern prize-fighter's cheers. Even the dogs seemed to enjoy the fun, while mothers and nurse -maids, with babies strapped on their backs, over- flowed in a new stream of palaver. Of the inmates of my house I must not omit mention. My serv- ant was selected and brought to me on the first day of my arrival, and shown his future master. Falling down upon his hands and knees, and bowing his forehead to the floor, he murmured something which was meant to be a promise of good and faithful service. Then, rais- ing his body, he sat upon his knees and heels, and waited further or- ders. I own I was not prepossessed. Sahei was less than sixty inches high, with a remarkably ugly phiz, thick protruding lips, flat nose not always scrupulously attended to and eyes of the dull, alligator hue so common among the lower classes. His skin was of the most unsatis- LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 443 factory tint. His motions were ungraceful. His hands and feet, for a Nilionese, were clumsy. His scalp and cue strong points in the tout ensemble of a handsome native were not attractive. My first sight of him awakened regrets that Sasaki had not selected a hand- somer specimen of his people to wait on me. When one has a stran- ger daily under his nose and eyes, the aesthetics of physical form and face assume a vast degree of importance. I yearned for a more comely form, more attractive face, and more delicately tinted skin. I thought of the pretty pages in the prince's palace, and the fine-looking boys with smooth, cafe-au-lait skins and rosy cheeks in school. " I shall keep Sahei a few weeks in deference to the official who recommended him ; then I shall get a handsomer boy," thought I, as I dismissed him for a while. I was also at first disappointed in my new servant, supposing him to be single. I had intended to have a married man with a family, that I might be able to see more of actual Japanese life under my own roof. A bachelor's quarters afford a poor field for the study of the home life of a people. I was greatly and pleasantly dis- appointed. Sahei was not from the rice-fields. He had traveled to Tokio, had been in the war as a page, and was intelligent and fit to wait on a gentleman. He had once been a carpenter by trade, and could do handy jobs about the house, and he did help me greatly to make things comfortable when it would cost too much time and trou- ble to set the whole official machinery of Fukui in motion to drive a nail, or put up a shelf for flower-vase, or a little Paris clock. Sahei was more comely in character than in person. Cheerful, faithful, dili- gent, careful of his master, quick to answer his call, tender of him as to a child, and though a heathen, Sahei was, according to Pope's defi- nition, the noblest work of God. He was not only honest in handling his master's money, but as alert as a watch-dog to guard against im- position, or loss through ignorance. Furthermore, Sahei had a family wife, baby, and child's maid. This I did not learn until a week aft- erward, when he came to announce with shame, and as if expecting my displeasure, that he had a wife ; she waiting behind the entry door-way to hear what the danna san (master) would say. Might he present her to me ? His delight at my pleased surprise betrayed itself in a broad grin, and in a moment more he was leading his baby by the hand, while his wife waddled forward, accompanied by her little maid. Mother, baby, and maid, in succession, fell on their knees, and polished their foreheads on their hands laid prone on the matting. Then, sit- ting on their heels, they bashfully looked up at their new master. I 444 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. bid them all stand up, and took their photograph in my eye. The imposing physique of Mrs. Sahei utterly dwarfed her insignificant lord, and suggested a contrast between a pudding and a tart. She was of healthily tinted skin of lighter shade, with black eyes that sparkled as though her head were a voltaic battery and her eyes the terminals. Closer acquaintance confirmed my impressions of her. She was an af- fectionate mother, and a jealous and careful wife. Continually bub- bling over with fun, she reminded me, when laughing, of a bowl full of jelly when well shaken. She was a diligent worker. Her tongue was as sharp as a freshly honed razor, especially after her liege lord had spent too much money on geishas and sake ; for the otherwise exem- plary Sahei had two weaknesses, which were evident even to his mas- ter. He would occasionally make his throat a funnel for sake, and he delighted to spend an occasional evening amidst the fascinations of the singing girls, coming home late at night, with flushed veins and a damaged purse, to meet with a Caudle lecture on his return. Here was the bakufu, or " curtain government," of a sort quite different from that we read of at Kamakura. I always knew, by Sahei's sheepish looks and the general flavor of demoralization in his appearance next morning, when he had been eating forbidden and costly fruit. The baby was as pretty and bright-eyed a morsel of flesh as one could wish to see. His name was Sataro (first-born darling of Sahei). He was two years old, just able to keep his centre of gravity, and voy- age across the rooms and through the house, with only an occasional sprawl on the matting. Baby, on his first introduction, bobbed his head in adult style, and chirped out, " Ohaio, sensei " (good-morning, teacher), his baby talk making it sound like " chen-chey." I immedi- ately dubbed him " Chenkey." Let me give his photograph. Chen- key was a chubby boy, with rosy cheeks, sparkling black eyes, skin al- most as light in tint and as soft and smooth as an American mother's darling. His head was shaved entirely, except a round spot on the back part; his mother shaved his diminutive pate once a week, and usually kept him so sweet and wholesome that a romp with him rare- ly involved damage from sticky lips or soiled baby hands. I must not forget Obun (tea-tray), the little maid who attended to Chenkey, carried him about, dressed him, and made her back a seat for him. Obun was eleven years old, a thin, frail, sad-looking child, that freshened up under a kind word like a wilted flower when touched by rain-drops. Obun evidently had heard the dreadful stories about the foreigners, and believed them. Timidly, and with suppressed fear, LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 445 she had come to greet the sensei, and only after days and weeks of fa- miliar intercourse and serving me at table could she lay aside her fears. Even then she was a sad-eyed, dreamy child, always looking down deep- ly and solemnly into flowers, or gazing at the blue sky or the distant mountains, or watching the stars at evening. Obun had had a hard life of it. Her mother had died in giving her birth, and the orphan was then bandied about among nurses and relatives until she was old enough to take care of a baby, when she was given as a servant to Sahei for her food and clothes. The personnel of Sahei's establishment did not end with wife, baby, and maid. It was not for the lord of the kitchen to draw water, clean fish, and do the work of the scullery. Not he. For this he must have a boy. "That boy" was Gonji. Gonji's wages were his rice and robes two of the lat- ter per annum. He was scarce- ly worth his full rations. Lazy, and uniquely stupid in some things, and bright enough in others, the keenness of his ap- petite kept pace with the capac- ity of his stomach. His favorite occupations were worrying dogs, playing with Chenkey, on whom he doted, and amusing himself at watching the sensei, whose very existence was a profound mystery to him, and whose every motion was a subject of wondering cogi- tation. Sometimes, when spruced up, he enjoyed the honor of waiting on the danna san. To see the white man eat, threw Gonji in a brown study at once, as on knees and heels, with waiter before him, he an- ticipated my wants. Every day of my life in the old mansion was full of novelty. Ev- ery trivial event was a chink to let in a new ray of light upon Japa- nese life character, or ideas. One day Obun came into the dining- room after dinner, looking around for something, and answering my inquiring eye with the words "0 mama" "What do you mean, child ? Do you think your mother is alive, and where did you learn that English?" While I was pondering the problem of the possible 29 Gonji iu a Brown Study. 446 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. affinity of the Japanese with the Aryan languages, the little maid seized an empty plate, appearing surprised at its emptiness, and went out. I afterward found that o mama meant " boiled rice," which I had used to feed a flock of sacred pigeons belonging to the big temple near by, which sometimes flew into my garden. Sahei's family had no sooner comfortably installed themselves in the servants' quarters than their evening bath must be got ready. The old mansion, like all Japanese houses, was provided with a huge caldron and furnace quite near the house, for heating water for the bath taken daily by every member of every Japanese family. Although somewhat familiar with the sight of Eves, innocent of fig-leaves, tub- bing themselves in the open street in broad daylight, I had supposed the presence of the foreigner and stranger would deter any exhibi- tion of female nudity in or about my house in Fukui. Vain thought ! The good wife innocently disrobed, unmindful of the cold air, im- mersed and made her bath and toilet, with Chenkey in her arms. Having finished, she was followed by Obun, then by her husband, brother, uncle, and Gonji, in succession, who had been about and around, heating and carrying the water. I can not call them specta- tors, for they took no interest whatever, except as assistants, in the spectacle, which to them was an ordinary sight, awakening no other emotions than those we feel in seeing a female face or hand. Night came glorious moonlight nights they were in Fukui. In the kitchen the servants lighted their lamps a long slender wick of pith, in a dish of oil, set half-way up in a square paper-shaded frame, three feet high a standing lantern, in the base of which were sulphur- tipped chips, or matches, and flint, steel, and tinder. Or, they set a hollow paper -wicked candle, made of vegetable tallow, in a copper, bronze, or wooden candlestick two feet high. " These people have a theory of candles," thought I, " as Symmes had about the earth. Both theories are opposed to orthodoxy. Syrnmes's world and a Japanese candle both have a hole through them ; but the former theory is representative of a fact, while the lat- ter is not yet proved to be so." These hollow candles are stuck on a spike, not set in a socket like ours. The French and English buy this vegetable tallow in Japan, bleach it, and import the " wax " candles made from it, selling to the Japanese at an advanced price. It hap- pened once, so I have read, that a Japanese junk drifted to the shores of California. A newspaper reporter announced in type, with sensa- tional intent, next day, that the junk had been salt-water-logged so LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 447 long that the wick had been entirely corroded by the action of the water, until the candle had a hole entirely through it ! In ray own room, I had my Connecticut lamp, well fed with Penn- sylvania petroleum. The snow had begun to melt, and, at intervals, a heavy, thunderous noise overhead told of a huge snow-slide the accumulation of winter sliding off. Over the castle and city and yashiki gates, and over the doors of houses, I had noticed a long timber bar riveted to the roof, which prevented the snow from falling on the heads of people below, while it slid freely in other places. Anon the whirring of wings, and the screaming of the flocks of wild geese as they clove the air, told how these restless birds enjoyed the night as well as the day. These geese were my nocturnal barometer. I could tell from the height or lowness of their flight, and the volume of sound of their throats, what were the " weather probabilities " for the morrow. A view from my garden-gate included the street, the river-flats, a few boats like black spots on the water, the bridge, and the masts ris- ing spectrally beyond Atago yama with its twinkling lights, people returning home, and coolies hurrying along with belated travelers. The moon shone overhead, but yet, dimly seen, reminded me vividly of a sketch by one of the native artists, whose great merits and pe- culiarities I was then beginning to appreciate and distinguish. I could 448 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. hear the voices outside, the women's chatting, the children's prattle, and the coolies' grunt. The crows of Fukui were as numerous, merry, audacious, and ab- surd as their black brethren in the pine-roosts of New Jersey or the corn-fields of Pennsylvania. I wondered who it was who had lived in Japan three months, and then innocently asked if there were any crows in the country. These filthy feeders amused me daily with their noisy conventions, or their squabbles around the kitchen refuse. Occasionally they ventured on bolder raids. On one occasion a state- ly raven, seeing through the window a morsel of bread on the break- fast-table, meditated a theft. A Japanese crow of the olden time ought not, in the nature of things, to be expected to understand either the chemical composition or the physical properties of that familiar alkaline silicate called glass. Viewing with his raven eye from his eyrie in the firs that morsel of bread, and knowing well the virtues of wheat, our crow made a dash with outspread wings and beak at the bread. The result was a badly stunned bird with a bumped head and nearly broken beak. Nothing daunted, my " Nevermore " gathered himself up, and proceeded to survey the situation. Here was a new and puzzling subject of study. Glass was evidently a new phenome- non. It was transparent and hard, yet there was the bread, and the crow's craw was empty. What was it, this invisible and pervisual barrier ? It was not water, nor yet air. Perhaps it was ice, and Mr. Crow laid his eye against the pane to test the temperature flattening it like a child its nose on a rainy Sunday. Ah ! happy thought ! per- haps it would yield to blows. Perseverantia omnia vincit. Tap, tap, tap, sounded the pick- like beak on the tough glass pane with a regularity less gentle than that of Poe's ebony visitor. All in vain, however; the pane yielded not, the tantalizing bread had to be yielded, and the black Tantalus flew off with its dismal " Nevermore," to report adversely to its comrades, and hold a debate on the subject of the unknowable. Despair brood- ed, not on wisdom, but on a pine-tree. The black rascals were sometimes more successful. With impu dence almost human, and with cheek quite as hard, they would even occasionally fly into the house. One day Chenkey was standing on the veranda next the garden, eating a rice - cracknel, called kaminari sembei (thunder-cake). A vigilant karasu (crow) hopped from a tree- branch to the fence, and, pretending to be asleep, calmly watched his opportunity with one eye. Chenkey had just taken a bite, and turned LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. . 449 his head around for a moment. In a trice the black thief had swoop- ed and stolen the cake. An incredible uproar of caws in the tree- tops, a few tears from Chenkey, and it was all over. Strange to say, the natives, as their poetry attests, hear in the hoarse notes of this sable bird the plaintive sounds of love. " Concerning tastes," and associations also, " it is not to be disputed." With us a lamb is an emblem of mildness; with the Japanese, of stupidity, or even obstinacy. Should I call a native a goose (gan), he would see no more point in the allusion than if I called him a turkey or a pheasant. In Japan, sheep and tame geese are unknown, except from reading of them. The wild goose is one of the swiftest, most graceful, and alert birds. It is rather a compliment to be called a (Japanese) goose. There was a goodly number of rats in the old mansion, though they rarely disturbed me in the day-time. Their favorite place of playing what seemed to be foot-ball, or Congress, was ov^r the ceilings, run- ning along the beams immediately above the rafters. The builder of the mansion had foreseen the future, and, with wise benevolence, had cut square holes through certain portions of the fine lattice-work that might be spoiled by irregular gnawing, and thus earned the gratitude of all rodent generations. I determined to be rid of these ancient pests, and went out in search of a cat. I saw a number of fat Tabi- thas and aldermanic Thomases which I asked for, or offered to pur- chase, in vain. I preferred a lean feline specimen that would seek the rats from motives of hunger, but I could get none. The people loved their pets too well. But one day, on passing a hemp shop, I saw a good-natured old lady sitting on her mats, with a fine tortoise- shell tabby, and instantly determined to get that cat. Accosting her with the usual bow, I said, in my best Japanese, " Good-morning, old lady. Will you sell me that cat? I should like to buy it." The American reader will question the propriety and my politeness in using the adjective old. Not so the Japanese. It is an honor to be addressed or spoken of as old. Every one called me " sensei " (elder- born, or teacher). One of the first questions which a Japanese will ?,sk you is, " How old are you ?" It is a question which American la- dies do not answer very promptly. But the questioner masks no in- sult. . It is not in the same spirit as that of the young men who re- fer to their maternal parent as the " old woman." The old lady was pleased. Concerning the sale of her cat, however, she demurred. Her neko was a polite, well-bred animal. I was a foreigner from some out- landish place beyond the sea. Could she trust Puss with me ? With 450 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. head inclining forty-five degrees over her left shoulder, she considered. Looking up, she said, " I will not sell you the cat ; but if you love it, you can have it." Of course, I loved it on the spot. Taking the name of the street, and number of the house, I sent Sahei for it. In- stalled in my dwelling, it proved to be handsome and lazy, disturbing but little the ancient population, which, however, never troubled me except by their frisky noise. My repeated invitations to a banquet of arsenic were as often declined, with thanks and squeals ; but on wrap- ping up a piece of seasoned meat in a small box in a tight bundle of Father aud Children. paper, they partook luxuriantly and subsided. The old lady came oc- casionally to see her former pet, and found in the foreigner's house un- limited delight over photograph-album, stereoscope, and wall pictures, and endless food for wonder and subsequent gossip, at the home of her son and grandchildren a very affectionate family, as I had occa- sion to witness, but with a weakness for sake. The most remarkable fact concerning the majority of cats in Japan is that they have no tails, or, at least, a mere stump or tuft, like a rab- LIFE IN A JAPANESE HOUSE. 451 bit's. They resemble the Manx cat in this respect. Whether wholly natural, or the long result of art, I could never satisfactorily determine. It always struck me as a great feline affliction, since the chief play- thing of a kitten is its tail. To run around after their caudal stumps was a sorry game in the Japanese cats, compared with the lively revo- lutions of those boasting twelve inches of tail. An American gentle- man once took one of these bob-tailed cats to California. The creat- ure had evidently never made the acquaintance of the long -tailed brethren of its species, and the unwonted sight of their terminal ap- pendages seemed to incite the feline nature of Japan to the highest pitch of jealousy and rage. It was continually biting, scratching, howl- ing, and spitting at other cats, invariably seizing their tails in its teeth when practicable. My other dumb companion in Fukui was a black dog, with but one eye. It was an American dog that had strayed away from Yokohama, and had followed the daimio's retinue across the country. Happen- ing to pass some farmers, who, reversing the proverb " Love me, love my dog," and hating foreigners, whom they believed to be descend- ants of these brutes, one of them struck the poor creature in the eye with a grass-hook, and made him a Cyclops from that moment. He was an affectionate animal, and apparently fully understood, as I could tell from the language of his tail, that I was one of his own country creatures, concentrating all his affection in his remaining orb. I was most amused at the name given him by the people. The Japanese word for dog is inu. Some of the young men who had been to Yo- kohama had heard the " hairy foreigners " calling their dogs by crack- ing their fingers and crying " Come here." This the Japanese sup- posed to be the name of the dog. Frequently in Fukui those who wished to display their proficiency in the barbarian language would point to my canine Cyclops, and cry out "Look at that ' Come-here ;' how black he is !" " Oh ! see how fast the American man's * Come- here ' is running !" With a cat, a one-eyed dog, gold-fish,* home flowers, and plenty of human life behind and about me, the city in view, the mountains round about, and the lovely solitude of garden and trees in front of me, and my books, I was happy in my immediate surroundings. * These were the kin-giyo (gold-fish) with triple tails, like lace, and variegated brilliant colors, which have been recently introduced into the United States. 452 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. X. CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPOUTS* THE aim of the Asiatic Society of Japan is, as I understand it, to endeavor to attain any and all knowledge of the Japanese country and people. Nothing that will help us to understand them is foreign to the objects of this society. "While language, literature, art, relig- ion, the drama, household superstitions, etc., furnish us with objects worthy of study, the games and sports of the children deserve our notice. For, as we believe, their amusements reflect the more serious affairs and actions of mature life. They are the foretastes and the prophecies of adult life which children see continually ; not always understanding, but ever ready to imitate it. Hence in the toy-shops of Japan one may see the microcosm of Japanese life. In the chil- dren's sports is enacted the miniature drama of the serious life of the parents. Among a nation of players such as the Japanese may be said to have been, it is not always easy to draw the line of demarka- tion between the diversions of children proper and those of a larger growth. Indeed, it might be said that during the last two centuries and a half, previous to the coming of foreigners, the main business of this nation was play One of the happiest phrases in Mr. Alcock's book is that " Japan is a paradise of babies ;" he might have added, that it was also a very congenial abode for all who love play. The contrast between the Chinese and Japanese character in this respect is radical. It is laid down in one of the very last sentences in the Tri- metrical Classic, the primer of every school in the Flowery Land, that play is unprofitable ! The whole character, manners, and even the dress, of the sedate and dignified Chinamen,, seem to be in keeping with that aversion to rational amusement and athletic exercises which characterizes that adult population. In Japan, on the contrary, one sees that the children of a larger * Read by the author before the Asiatic Society of Japan, March 18th, 1874. CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPOUTS. 453 growth enjoy with equal zest games which are the same, or nearly the same, as those of lesser size and fewer years. Certain it is that the adults do all in their power to provide for the children their full quota of play and harm- less sports. We frequently see full-grown and able-bodied natives indulging in amusements which the men of the West lay aside with their pinafores, or when their curls are cut. If we, in the conceited pride of our superior civ- ilization, look down upon this as childish, we must remember that the Celestial, from the pinnacle of his lofty and, to him, immeasura- bly elevated civilization, looks down upon our manly sports with contempt, thinking it a condescension even to notice them. A very noticeable change has passed over the Japanese people since the modern advent of foreigners, in respect of their love of amusements. Their sports are by no means as numerous or elaborate as formerly, and they do not enter into them with the enthusiasm that formerly characterized them. The chil- dren's festivals and sports are rapidly losing their importance, and some now are rarely seen. Formerly the holidays were almost as numerous as saints' days in the calendar. Ap- prentice-boys had a liberal quota of holidays stipulated in their indentures ; and as the chil- dren counted the days before each great holi- day on their lingers, we may believe that a great deal of digital arithmetic was being con- tinually done. We do not know of any country in the world in which there are so many toy-shops, or so many fairs for the sale of the things which delight children. Not only are the streets of every city abundantly supplied with shops, filled as full as a Christ- mas stocking with gaudy toys, but in small towns and villages one or more children's bazaars may be found. The most gorgeous 454 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. display of all things pleasing to the eye of a Japanese child is found in the courts or streets leading to celebrated temples. On a matsuri, or festival day, the toy -sellers and itinerant showmen throng with their most attractive wares or sights in front of the shrine or temple. On the walls and in conspicuous places near the churches and cathe- drals in Europe and America, the visitor is usually regaled with the sight of undertakers' signs and grave-diggers' advertisements. How differently the Japanese act in these respects, let any one see by visit- ing Asakusa, Kanda Miojin, or one of the numerous Inari shrines in Tokio on some great festival day. We have not space in this chapter to name or describe the numer- ous street -shows and showmen who are supposed to be interested mainly in entertaining children ; though in reality adults form a part, often the major part, of their audiences. Any one desirous of seeing these in full glory must ramble down Yanagi Cho (Willow Street), from Sujikai, in Tokio, on some fair day, and especially on a general holiday. Among the most common are the street theatricals, in which two, three, or four trained boys and girls do some very creditable acting, chiefly in comedy. Raree-shows, in which the looker-on sees the in- side splendors of a daimio's yashiki, or the fascinating scenes of the Yoshiwara, or some famous natural scenery, are very common. The showman, as he pulls the wires that change the scenes, entertains the spectators with songs. The outside of his box is usually adorned with pictures of famous actors or courtesans, nine-tailed foxes, devils of all colors, dropsical badgers, and wrathful husbands butchering faithless wives and their paramours, or some such staple horror in which the normal Japanese so delights. Story-tellers, posturers, dancers, actors of charades, conjurers, flute - players, song -singers are found on these streets ; but those who specially delight the children are the men who, by dint of breath and fingers, work a paste made of wheat-gluten into all sorts of curious and gayly smeared toys, such as flowers, trees, noblemen, fair ladies, various utensils, the " hairy for- eigner," the same with a cigar in his mouth, the jin-riki-sha, etc. Nearly every itinerant seller of candy, starch-cakes, sugared pease, and sweetened beans, has several methods of lottery by which he adds to the attractions on his stall. A disk having a revolving arrow, whirled round by the hand of a child, or a number of strings which are con- nected with the faces of imps, goddesses, devils, or heroes, lends the excitement of chance, and, when a lucky pull or whirl occurs, occasions CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS. 455 the subsequent addition to the small fraction of a cent's worth to be bought. Men or women itinerants carry a small charcoal brazier un- der a copper griddle, with batter, spoons, cups, and shoyu sauce, to hire out for the price of a cash each to the little urchins, who spend an afternoon of bliss making their own griddle-cakes and eating them, The seller of sugar-jelly exhibits a devil, taps a drum, and dances for the benefit of his baby -customers. The seller of mochi does the same, with the addition of gymnastics and skillful tricks with balls of dough. The fire-eater rolls balls of camphor paste glowing with lambent fire over his arms, and then extinguishes them in his mouth. The bug-man harnesses paper carts to the backs of beetles with wax, and a half-dozen in this gear will drag a load of rice up an inclined plane. The man with the magic swimming birds tips his tiny water- fowl with camphor, and floats them in a long narrow dish full of wa- ter. The wooden toys, propelled from side to side and end to end by the dissolving gum, act as if alive, to the widening eyes of the young spectators. In every Japanese city there are scores, if not hundreds, of men and women who obtain a livelihood by amusing the children. Some of the games of Japanese children are of a national character, and are indulged in by all classes. Others are purely local or exclu- sive. Among the former are those which belong to the special days, or matsuri, which in the old calendars enjoyed vastly more importance than under the new one. Beginning with the first of the year, there are a number of games and sports peculiar to this time. The girls, dressed in their best robes and girdles, with their faces powdered and their lips painted, until they resemble the peculiar colors seen on a beetle's wings, and their hair arranged in the most attractive coiffure, are out upon the street, playing battledore and shuttlecock. They play, not only in twos and threes, but also in circles. The shuttlecock is a round seed, often gilded, stuck round with feathers arranged like the petals of a flower. The battledore is a wooden bat ; one side of which is of bare wood, while the other has the raised effigy of some popular actor, hero of romance, or singing-girl in the most ultra-Japa- nese style of beauty. The girls evidently highly appreciate this game, as it gives abundant opportunity to the display of personal beauty, figure, and dress. Those who fail in the game often have their faces marked with ink, or a circle drawn round their eyes. The boys sing a song that the wind may blow ; the girls sing that it may be calm, so that their shuttlecocks may fly straight. The little girls, at this time, 456 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. play with a ball made of cotton cord, covered elaborately with many strands of bright varicolored silk. Inside the house, they have games suited, not only for the day-time, but for the evenings. Many foreigners have wondered what the Jap- anese do at night, and how the long winter evenings are spent. On fair and especially moonlight nights, most of the people are out-of- doors, and many of the children with them. Markets and fairs are held regularly at night in Tokio, and in the other large cities. The foreigner living in a Japanese city, even if he were blind, could tell, by stepping out-of-doors, whether the weather were clear and fine or disa- greeable. On dark and stormy nights, the stillness of a great city like Tokio is unbroken and very impressive ; but on a fair and moonlight night, the hum and bustle tell one that the people are out in throngs, and make one feel that it is a city that he lives in. In most of the castle towns in Japan, it was formerly the custom of the people, espe- cially of the younger, to assemble on moonlight nights in the streets or open spaces near the castle-gates, and dance a sort of subdued dance, moving round in circles and clapping their hands. These dances oft- en continued during the entire night, the following day being largely consumed in 'sleep. In the winter evenings, in Japanese households the children amuse themselves with their sports,, or are amused by their elders, who tell them entertaining stories. The samurai father relates to his son Japanese history and heroic lore, to fire him with en- thusiasm and a love of those achievements which every samurai youth hopes at some day to perform. Then there are numerous social en- tertainments, at which the children above a certain age are allowed to be present. But the games relied on as standard means of amusement, and seen especially about New-year's, are those of cards. In one of these, a large, square sheet of paper is laid on the floor. On this card are the names and pictures of the fifty-three post-stations between To- kio and Kioto. At the place Kioto are put a few coins, or a pile of cakes, or some such prizes, and the game is played with dice. Each throw advances the player toward the goal, and the one arriving first obtains the prize. At this time of the year also, the games of cards called, respectively, Iroha Garuta (Alphabet Cards), Hiyaku Nin Isshiu Garuta (One-Verse-of-One-Hundred-Poets Cards), Kokin Garuta, Gen- ji, and Shi Garuta are played a great deal. The Iroha Garuta (Karuta is the Japanized form of the Dutch Karte, English card) are small cards, each containing a proverb. The proverb is printed on one card, and the picture illustrating it upon another. Each proverb begin* CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS. 457 with a certain one of the fifty Japanese letters, i, ro, ha, etc., and so on through the syllabary. The children range themselves in a circle, and the cards are shuffled and dealt. One is appointed to be reader. Looking at his cards, he reads the proverb. The player who has the picture corresponding to the proverb calls out, and the match is made. Those who are rid of their cards first win the game. The one hold- ing the last card is the loser. If he be a boy, he has his face marked curiously with ink. If a girl, she has a paper or wisp of straw stuck in her hair. The Hiaku Nin Isshiu Garuta game consists of two hundred cards, on which are inscribed the one hundred stanzas, or poems, so cele- brated and known in every household. A stanza of Japanese poetry usually consists of two parts, a first and second, or upper and lower clause. The manner of playing the game is as follows : The reader reads half the stanza on his card, and the player having the card on which the other half is written calls out, and makes a match. Some children become so familiar with these poems that they do not need to hear the entire half of the stanza read, but frequently only the first word. The Kokin Garuta, or the game of Ancient Odes, the Genji Garuta, named after the celebrated Genji (Minamoto) family of the Middle Ages, and the Shi Garuta are all card-games of a similar nature, but can be thoroughly enjoyed only by well-educated Chinese scholars, as the references and quotations are written in Chinese, and require a good knowledge of the Chinese and Japanese classics to play them well. To boys who are eager to become proficient in Chinese, it oft- en acts as an incentive to be told that they will enjoy these games after certain attainments in scholarship have been made. Having made these attainments, they play the game frequently, especially dur- ing vacation, to impress on their minds what they have already learn- ed. The same benefit to the memory accrues from the Iroha and Hi- akunin Isshiu Garuta. Two other games are played which may be said to have an educa- tional value. They are the Chiye no Ita and the Chiye no Wa, or the " Wisdom Boards " and the " Ring of Wisdom." The former consistL of a number of flat, thin pieces of wood, cut in many geomet- rical shapes. Certain possible figures are printed on paper as models, and the boy tries to form them out of the pieces given him. In some cases, much time and thinking are required to form the figure. The Chiye no Wa is a ring-puzzle, made of rings of bamboo or iron on a 458 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. V bar. Boys having a talent for mathematics, or those who have a nat- ural capacity to distinguish size and form, succeed very well at these games, and enjoy them. The game of check- ers is played on a raised stand or table, about six inches in height. The number of go, or checkers, including black and white, is three hundred and sixty. In the Sho-gi, or game of chess, the pieces number forty in all. Back- gammon is also a favorite play, and there are several forms of it. About the time of the old New-year's, when the winds of February and March are favorable to the sport, kites are flown ; and there are few sports in which Japanese boys, from the infant on the back to the full-grown and the over-grown boy, take more delight. I have never observed, how- ever, as foreign books so often tell us, old men flying kites, and boys merely looking on. The Japanese kites are made of tough paper pasted on a frame of bamboo sticks, and are usually of a rectangular shape. Some of them, however, are made to represent children or men, several kinds of birds and animals, fans, etc. On the rectangular kites are pict- ures of ancient heroes or beautiful women, dragons, horses, monsters of various kinds, or huge Chinese characters. Among the faces most frequently seen on these kites are those of Yoshitsune, Kintaro, Yoritomo, Benke, Daruma, Tomoye, and Hangaku. Some of the kites are six feet square. Many of them have a thin tense ribbon of whalebone at the top of the kite, which vibrates in the wind, making a loud, humming noise. The boys frequently name their kites Genji or Heike, and each contestant endeavors to destroy that of his rival. For this purpose, the string, for ten or twenty feet near the kite end, is first covered with glue, and then dipped into pounded glass, by which the string becomes CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS. 459 covered with tiny blades, each able to cut quickly and deeply. By getting the kite in proper position, and suddenly sawing the string of his antagonist, the severed kite falls, to be reclaimed by the victor. The Japanese tops are of several kinds ; some are made of univalve shells, filled with wax. Those intended for contests are made of hard wood, and are iron-clad by having a heavy iron ring round as a sort of tire. The boys wind and throw them in a manner some- what different from ours. The object of the player is to damage his adversary's top, or to make it cease spinning. The whipping-top is also known and used. Besides the athletic sports of leaping, running, wrestling, slinging, the Japanese boys play at blind-man's-buff, hid- ing-whoop, and with stilts, pop-guns, and blow- guns. On stilts they play various games and run races. In the Northern and Western coast prov- inces, where the snow falls to the depth of many feet and remains long on the ground, it forms the material of the children's playthings^ and the theatre of many of their sports. Be- sides sliding on the ice, coasting with sleds, building snow-forts, and fighting mimic battles with snow-balls, they make many kinds of im- ages and imitations of what they see and know. In America the boy's snow-man is a Paddy with a damaged hat, clay pipe in mouth, and the shillalah in his hand. In Japan the snow- man is an image of Daruma. Daruma was one of the followers of Shaka (Buddha) who, by long meditation in a squatting position, lost his legs from paralysis and sheer decay. The im- ages o^ Daruma are found by the hundreds in toy -shops, as tobacconists' signs and as the snow-men of the boys. Occasionally the figure of Geiho, the sage with a forehead and skull so high that a ladder was required to reach his 460 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. pate, or huge cats and the peculiar-shaped dogs seen in the toy-shops, take the place of Daruma. Many of the amusements of the children indoors are mere imita- tions of the serious affairs of adult life. Boys who have been to the theatre come home to imitate the celebrated actors, and to extempo- rize mimic theatricals for themselves. Feigned sickness and " playing the doctor," imitating with ludicrous exactness the pomp and solem- nity of the real man of pills and powders, and the misery of the pa- tient, are the diversions of very young children. Dinners, tea-parties, and even weddings and funerals, are imitated in Japanese children's plays. Among the ghostly games intended to test the courage of, or per- haps to frighten, children, are two plays called respectively " Hiyaku Monogatari " and " Kon-dameshi," or the " One Hundred Stories" and "Soul -examination." In the former play a company of boys and girls assemble round the hibachi, while they, or an adult, an aged per- son or a servant, usually relate ghost - stories, or tales calculated to straighten the hair and make the blood crawl. In a distant dark room, a lamp (the usual dish of oil), with a wick of one hundred strands or piths, is set. At the conclusion of each story, the children in turn must go to the dark room and remove a strand of the wick. As the lamp burns down low, the room becomes gloomy and dark, and the last boy, it is said, always sees a demon, a huge face, or something terrible. In the " Kon-dameshi " or " Soul-examination," a number of boys, during the day plant some flags in different parts of a grave- yard, under a lonely tree, or by a haunted hill - side. At night, they meet together, and tell stories about ghosts, goblins, devils, etc. ; and at the conclusion of each tale, when the imagination is wrought up, the hair begins to rise and the marrow to curdle, the boys, one at a time, must go out in the dark and bring back the flags, until all are brought in. On the third day of the third month is held the " Hina matsuri." Thife :'s the day especially devoted to the girls, and to them it is the greatest day in the year. It has been called, in some foreign works Dn Japan, the "Feast of Dolls." Several days before the matsuri, the shops are gay with the images bought for this occasion, and which are on sale only at this time of year. Every respectable family has a number of these splendidly dressed images, which are from four inches to a foot in height, and which accumulate from generation to generation. When a daughter is born in the house during the previ CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS. 463 ous year, a pair of hina, or images, are purchased for the little girl, which she plays with until grown up. When she is married, her hina are taken with her to her husband's house, and she gives them to her children, adding to the stock as her family increases. The images are made of wood or enameled clay. They represent the mikado and his wife ; the Kioto nobles, their wives and daughters, the court min- strels, and various personages in Japanese mythology and history. A great many other toys, representing all the articles in use in a Japa- nese lady's chamber, the service of the eating-table, the utensils of the kitchen, traveling apparatus, etc., some of them very elaborate and costly, are also exhibited and played with on this day. The girls make offerings of sake and dried rice, etc., to the effigies of the em- peror and empress, and then spend the day with toys, mimicking the whole round of Japanese female life, as that of child, maiden, wife, mother, and grandmother. In some old Japanese families in which I have visited, the display of dolls and images was very large. The greatest day in the year for the boys is on the Fifth day of the Fifth month. On this day is celebrated what has been called the " Feast of Flags." Previous to the coming of the day, the shops dis- play for sale the toys and tokens proper to the occasion. These are all of a kind suited to young Japanese masculinity. They consist of effigies of heroes and warriors, generals and commanders, soldiers on foot and horse, the genii of strength and valor, wrestlers, etc. The toys represent the equipments and regalia of a daimio's procession, all kinds of things used in war, the contents of an arsenal, flags, stream- ers, banners, etc. A set of these toys is bought for every son born in the family. Hence, in old Japanese families, the display on the Fifth day of the Fifth month is extensive and brilliant. Besides the display indoors, on a bamboo pole erected outside is hung, by a string, to the top of the pole, a representation of a large fish in paper. The paper being hollow, the breeze easily fills out the body of the fish, which flaps its tail and fins in a natural manner. One may count hundred* of these floating in the air over the city. The nobori, as the paper fish is called, is intended to show that a son has been born during the year, or, at least, that there are sons in the family. The fish represented is the carp, which is able to swim swiftly against the current and to leap over water-falls. This act of the carp is a favorite subject with native artists, and is also typical of the young man, especially the young samurai, mounting over all diffi- culties to success and quiet prosperity. 464 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. One favorite game, which has now gone out of fashion, was that in which the boys formed themselves into a daimio's procession, having forerunners, officers, etc., and imitating, as far as 1 possible, the pomp and circumstance of the old daimio's train. Another game which was very popular was called the "Genji and Heike." These are the names of the celebrated rival clans, or families, Minamoto and Taira. The I boys of a town, district, or school ranged them- | selves into two parties, each with flags. Those of the Heike were red, those of the Genji white. Sometimes every boy had a flag, and the object of the contest, which was begun at the tap of a drum, was- to seize the flags of the enemy. The party securing the greatest number of flags won the victory. In other cases, the flags were fast- ened on the back of each contestant, who was armed with a bamboo for a sword, and who had fastened, on a pad over his head, a flat,, round piece of earthenware, so that a party of them looked not unlike the faculty of a college. Often these parties of boys numbered several hundred, and were marshaled in squadrons, as in a battle. At the given signal, the battle commenced, the object being to break the earthen disk on the head of the enemy. The contest was usually very exciting. Whoever had his earthen disk demolished had to retire from the field. The party having the greatest number of broken disks, representative of cloven skulls, was de- clared the loser. This game has been forbidden by the Government as being too severe and M cruel. Boys were often injured in it. if There are many other games, which we simply mention without describing. There are three games played by the hands, which every observ- ant foreigner, long resident in Japan, must have seen played, as men and women seem to enjoy them as much as children. One is called " Ishi- ken," in which a stone, a pair of scissors, and a CHILDREN'S GAMES AND SPORTS. 465 wrapping-doth are represented. The stone signifies the clenched fist, the parted fore and middle finger the scissors, and the curved forefin- ger and thumb the cloth. In the " Kitsune-ken," the fox, man, and gun are the figures. The gun kills the fox, but the fox deceives the man, and the gun is useless without the man. In the " Osama-ken," five or six boys represent the various grades of rank, from the peasant up to the great daimios, or shogun. By superior address and skill in the game, the peasant rises to the highest rank, or the man of highest rank is degraded. From the nature of the Japanese language, in which a single word or sound may have a great many significations, riddles and puns are of extraordinary frequency. I do not know of any published collec- tions of riddles, but every Japanese boy has a good stock of them on hand. There are few Japanese works of light, perhaps of serious, lit- erature in which puns do not continually recur. The popular songs and poems are largely plays on words. There are also several puz- zles played . with sticks, founded upon the shape of certain Chinese characters. As for the short and simple story-books, song 'books, nursery-rhymes, lullabys, and what, for want of a better name, may be styled Mother Goose literature, they are as plentiful as with us^ but they have a very strongly characteristic Japanese flavor, both in style and matter. In the games, so familiar to us, of " Pussy wants a Cor- ner " and " Prisoner's Base," the oni, or devil, takes the place of Puss or the officer. I have not mentioned all the games and sports of Japanese chil- dren, but enough has been said to show their usual character. In general, they seem to be natural, sensible, and in every sense benefi- cial. Their immediate or remote effect, next to that of amusement, is either educational or hygienic. Some teach history, some geogra- phy, some excellent sentiments or good language, or inculcate reverence and obedience to the elder brother or sister, to parents or to the em- peror, or stimulate the manly virtues of courage and contempt for pain. The study of the subject leads one to respect more highly, rather than otherwise, the Japanese people for being such affectionate fathers and mothers, and for having such natural and docile children. The character of the children's plays and their encouragement by the parents have, I think, much to do with that frankness, affection, and obedience on the part of the children, and that kindness and sym- pathy on that of the parents, which are so noticeable in Japan, and which form one of the good points of Japanese life and character. 466 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XI. HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS. HOUSEHOLD, as distinct from religious, superstitions may be defined as beliefs having no real foundation of fact and a narrower range of in- fluences. TKey act as a sort of moral police, whose rewards and pun- ishments are confined entirely to this life. Religious superstitions af- fect all mankind alike ; those of the household may be said to influ- ence mainly women and children, and to have no connection with re- ligion or the priests. Screened from criticism, humble in their sphere, they linger in the household longer than religious superstitions. Ev- ery nation has them ; and according to the degree of intelligence pos- sessed by a people will they be numerous or rare. In most cases they are harmless, while many have a real educational value for children and simple-minded people, who can not, by their own intelligence, foresee the remote good or bad results of their conduct. These per- sons may be influenced by the fear of punishment or the hopes of re- ward, embodied in a warning told with gravity, and enforced by the apparently solemn belief of him who tells it. As children outgrow them, or as they wear out, those who once observed will laugh at, and yet often continue them through the force of habit. Others will be retained on account of the pleasure connected with the belief. Oth- ers, again, become so intrenched in household customs that religion, reason, argument, fashion, assault them in vain. Thus, among many of us, the upsetting of a salt-cellar, the dropping of a needle that stands upright, the falling of a looking-glass, the accidental gathering of thir- teen people around the dinner-table, will give rise to certain thoughts resulting in a course of action or flutter of fear that can not be ration- ally explained. I once heard of a Swedish servant-girl who would not brush away the cobwebs in her mistress's house, lest she should sweep away her beaux also. As in our own language, the fancies, poetry, or fears of our ancestors are embalmed in the names of flowers, in words and names, so the student of the picture-words of the Japanese Ian- HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS. 467 guage finds in them fragments of poems, quaint conceits, or hideous beliefs. So far as I could judge, in Japan, the majority of the lower classes implicitly believe the household superstitions current among them ; and though, in the upper strata of society, there were many men who laughed at them, the power of custom enslaved the women and chil- dren. The greater number of those I give below are believed by the larger portion of the people, particularly in the country. In this, as in others of a more serious nature, the belief varies with the mood and circumstances of the individual or people. Many of them I have seen or heard referred to in conversation or in my reading ; others I have had noted down for me by young men from various parts of Ja- pan. I find that a few of them are peculiar, or local, to one province ; but most of them form the stock of beliefs common to mankind or the Japanese people. From hundreds, I give a few. Some have an evident moral or educational purpose to inculcate lessons of tidiness, benevolence, and to form good habits of cleanliness, nicety in house- keeping, etc. Some are weather prognostics, or warnings intended to guard against fire or other calamities. They never sweep the rooms of a house immediately after one of the inmates has set out upon a journey, or to be absent for a time. This would sweep out all the luck with him. At a marriage ceremony, neither bride nor bridegroom wears any clothing of a purple color, lest their marriage -tie be soon loosed, as purple is the color most liable to fade. It would be as if a couple from New Jersey would go to Indiana to spend their honey-moon. If, while a person is very sick, the cup of medicine is upset by acci- dent, they say it is a sure sign of his recovery. This looks as though the Japanese had faith in the dictum, " Throw physic to the dogs." There are some curious ideas in regard to cutting the finger-nails. The nails must not be trimmed just previous to going on a journey, lest disgrace should fall upon the person at the place of his destina- tion. Upon no account will an ordinary Japanese cut his nails at night, lest cat's nails grow out from them. Children who cast the clippings of their nails in the brazier or fire are in danger of calamity. If, while any one is cutting the nails, a piece springs into the fire, he will die soon. By burning some salt in the fire, however, the danger is avoided. It seems that the bore is not unknown in Japan, and the Japanese are pestered with visitors who sit their welcome out, and drive their 468 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. hosts into a frenzy of eagerness to get rid of them. The following is said to be a sure recipe to secure good riddance : Go to the kitchen, turn the broom upside down, put a towel over it, and fan it lustily. The tedious visitor will soon depart. Or, burn a moxa (Japanese, mo- gusa) on the back of his clogs. A Japanese, in entering a house, al- ways leaves his clogs or sandals outside the door. The American host, bored by tedious callers, is respectfully invited to try his method of hastening departures. Japanese papas, who find, as other fathers do, how much it costs to raise a large family, will not let an infant, or even a young child, look in a mirror (and thus see a child exactly like itself, making apparent twins) ; for if he does, the anxious parent supposes the child, when grown up and married, will have twins. When small-pox prevails in a neighborhood, and parents do not wish their children attacked by it, they write a notice on the front of their houses that their children are absent. This is said to keep out the disease. Many have reference to death or criminals. A Japanese corpse is always placed with its head to the north and feet to the south. Hence, a living Japanese will never sleep in that position. I have often noticed, in the sleeping-rooms of private houses, where I was a guest, and in many of the hotels, a diagram of the cardinal points of the compass printed on paper, and pasted on the ceiling of the room, for the benefit of timid sleepers. Some Japanese, in traveling, carry a compass, to avoid this really natural and scientific position in sleep. I have often surprised people, especially students, in Japan, by telling them that to lie with the head to the north was the true position in harmony with the electric currents in the .atmosphere, and that a Frenchman, noted for his longevity, ascribed his vigorous old age mainly to the fact that he slept in a line drawn from pole to pole. I used to shock them by invariably sleeping in that position myself. The plaintive howling of a dog in the night-time portends a death in some family in the vicinity of the animal. The wooden clogs of the Japanese are fastened on the foot by a single thong passing between the largest and next largest toe. The stocking, or sock, is a " foot-glove," with a separate compartment for the " thumb of the foot," and another mitten-like one for the " foot- fingers." This thong, divided into two, passes over the foot and is fastened at the sides. If, in walking, the string breaks in front, it is the sign of some misfortune to the person's enemies ; if on the back part, the wearer himself will experience some calamity. HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS. 469 When, by reason of good fortune or a lucky course of events, there is great joy in a family, it is customary to make kowameshi, or red rice, and give an entertainment to friends and neighbors. The rice is colored by boiling red beans with it. If, for any cause, the color is not a fine red, it is a bad omen for the family, and their joy is turned to grief. When a person loses a tooth, either artificially at the hands of the dentist (Japanese, " tooth-carpenter "), or by forceps, or by accident, in order that another may grow in the empty socket, the tooth, if from the upper jaw, is buried under the foundation of the house ; if from the lower jaw, it is thrown up on the roof of a house. Many are founded upon puns, or word -resemblances, making the deepest impression upon the native mind. There are many instances in Japanese history in which discreet servants or wise men gave a hap- py turn to some word of sinister omen, and warded off harm. At New-year's-day, paterfamilias does not like any one to utter the sound shi (death), or any word containing it. This is a difficult mat- ter in a household, since the syllable shi has over a dozen different meanings, and occurs in several hundred Japanese words, some of them very common. Thus, let us suppose a family of husband, wife, child, and servant, numbering four (shi). A visitor calls, and happens to use the words Shiba (a city district in Tokio), shi (teacher, poem, four, to do, etc.). The host, at first merely angry with the visitor who so forci- bly uses the sinister words, is incensed when the latter happens to re- mark that his host's household consists of four (sKi), and wishes him gone. Moodily reflecting on his visitor's remark, he resolves to dis- miss his servant, and so make his household three. But the shrewd servant, named Fuku, remonstrates with his master for sending away fuku (blessing, luck) from his house. The master is soothed, and keeps his "boy." Many Japanese worship the god Kampira for no other reason than that the first syllable of his name means gold. If a woman steps over an egg-shell, she will go mad ; if over a ra- zor, it will become dull ; if over a whetstone, it will be broken. If a man should set his hair on fire, he will go mad. A girl who bites her finger-m.ils will, when married, bring forth children with great diffi- culty. Children are told that if they tell a lie, an oni, or an imp, called the tengu, will pull out their tongues. Many a Japanese urchin has spoken the truth in fear of the oni supposed to be standing by, ready to run away with his tongue. No such watchman seems to be set be- 470 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. fore the unruly member of the scolding wife. Of these " edge-tools that grow sharper by constant use " there is a goodly number in Ja- pan. When husband and wife are quarreling, a devil is believed to stand between them, encouraging them to go on from bad to worse. Salt is regarded as something so mysterious in its preservative pow- er, that it is the subject of several household superstitions. A house- wife will not, on any account, buy salt at night. When obtained in the day-time, a portion of it must first be thrown in the fire to ward off all dangers, and especially to prevent quarreling in the family. It is also used to scatter around the threshold and in the house after a funeral, for purificatory purposes. Many are the imaginary ways of getting rich, so numerous in every land. One of the most important articles of Japanese clothing, in both male and female, is the obi, or girdle. If, in dressing, the obi gets entangled, and forms a knot or knob, the wearer never unties it himself, but proposes to some one else to do it for him, promising him a great sum, as the wearer is sure to be rich. There is usually a great deal of laughing when this " superstition " is observed. All Japanese seem to have a desire to attain full stature. Stunted growth is a great grief to a man, and every thing of ill-omen calculated to restrain growth must be avoided. If a boy rests a gun on the top of his head, he will grow no taller. Children must not carry any kind of basket on their heads, nor must they ever measure their own height. Such a sight as men or women carrying burdens on their heads, so common in Europe, is rarely seen in Japan. If a man, while going to fish, meets a bonze on the road, he will catch no fish, as the [strict] bonzes eat no fish. A person who, when eating, bites his tongue, believes that somebody begrudges him his food. It often happens that boys and girls like to eat the charred portions of rice that sometimes remain in the pot when the rice has been burn- ed. Young unmarried people who persist in this are warned that they will marry persons whose faces are pock-marked. Many people, especially epicures, have an idea that by eating the first fruits, fish, grain, or vegetables of the season, they will live sev- enty-five days longer than they otherwise would. It is an exceedingly evil omen to break the chopsticks while eating. Children are told that if they strike any thing with their chopsticks while at their meals, they will be struck dumb. People who drink tea or water out of the spout of the vessel, in- HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS. 47 1 stead of out of a cup, are told that they will have a child with a mouth shaped like the spout of the vessel. This terror is kept fresh before the mind by masks and pictures of human beings with spout- shaped mouths. In Japan the dwellings are universally built of wood, and conflagra- tions very frequently destroy whole towns or villages in a single day or night, leaving nothing but ashes. Hence it is of the greatest im- portance to provide against the ever-ready enemy, and every " sign " is carefully heeded. The following prognostics are deemed unfailing: When the cocks crow loudly in the evening; when a dog climbs up on the roof of a house or building of any kind. If a weasel cries out once, fire will break out: to avert it, a person must pour out three dipperfuls of water, holding the dipper in the left hand. A peculiar kind of grass, called hinode (sunrise), grows on many Japanese houses : this must not be pulled up, otherwise the house will take fire. In regard to visitors, they believe the following : In pouring tea from the tea-pot, it sometimes happens that the stem of a leaf comes out with the tea, and stands momentarily upright. From whatever direction the stem finally falls, they expect a visitor. If a bird, 4 in fly- ing, casts its shadow on the partition or window (which is of paper, and translucent), a visitor will surely call soon. A person, when ab- stracted or in trouble, while eating, will often pour out his tea from the back of the tea-pot, instead of through the spout. In such case it is a sure sign of the near visit of a priest to the house. Many are intended to teach the youth to imitate great, good, or wise men. If the rim (fuchi, also meaning " salary ") of a cup is broken (hana- reru, also meaning is " lost ") in presence of an official while he is eat- ing, he will be unhappy, for he will understand it to mean that he will lose his office or salary. Even among the educated samurai, with whom the maintaining of the family name and dignity is all -important, there are many danger- ous seasons for travelers, and the number of lucky and unlucky days is too numerous to be fully noted here. Many people of the lower classes would not wash their head or hair on " the day of the horse," so named after one of the signs of the zodiac, lest their hair become red. Any other capillary color than a deep black is an abomination to a Japanese. During an eclipse of the sun or moon, people carefully cover the wells, as they suppose that poison falls from the sky during the period 472 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. of the obscuration. Seeds will not germinate if planted on certain days. Many people will not build a house fronting to the north-east, else it will soon be destroyed : this is the quarter in which especial evil lurks ; it is called the " Devil's Gate." Young men must not light their pipes at a lamp : it should be done at the coals in the brazier. If they persist in violating this precaution, they will not get good wives. Many people even now, in the rural districts, think it wrong to eat beef, and believe that a butcher will have a cripple among his descendants. When a maimed or deformed child is born, people say that its par- ents or ancestors committed some great sin. After 5 P.M. many peo- ple will not put on new clothes or sandals. There are several years of life called the yaku-doshi (evil years), in which a person must be very careful of himself and all he does. These critical years are the seventh, twenty-fifth, forty- second, and sixty-first in a man's, and the seventh, eighth, thirty-third, forty-second, and sixty-first in a woman's life. In Japan, as with us, each baby is the most remarkable child ever seen, and wondrous are the legends rehearsed concerning each one ; but it is a great day in a Japanese home when the baby, of his own accord^ walks before his first birthday, and mochi (rice pastry) must be made to celebrate the auspicious event. Young girls do not like to pour tea or hot water into a cup of kawameshi (red rice), lest their wedding-night should be rainy. The common belief in Japan is that the dream is the act of the soul. As soon as a person falls asleep, the soul, leaving the body, goes out to play. If we wake any one suddenly and violently, he will die, because his soul, being at a distance, can not return to the body before he is awakened. The soul is supposed to have form and color, and to be a small, round, black body ; and the adventures of the disembodied soul, i. e., the black ball apart from its owner, form a standard subject in Japanese novels and imaginative literature. In general, dreams go by contraries. Thus, if one dreams that he was killed or stabbed by some one with a sword, the dream is considered a very lucky one. If a person dreams of finding money, he will soon lose some. If he dreams of loss, he will gain. If one dreams of Fuji no yama, he will receive promotion to high rank, or will win great prosperity. If on the night of the second day of the First month one dreams of the takara-bune (treasure-ship), he shall become a rich man. In order to dream this happy dream, people often put beneath their pillows a picture of it, which operates like bridal-cake. All these beliefs and hundreds of others that I noted in Japan are HOUSEHOLD CUSTOMS AND SUPERSTITIONS. 473 comparatively harmless. The Japanese fancy does not seem to have reached that depth of disease, to have suffered with that delirium tre- mens of superstition, such as inthralls and paralyzes the Chinese, and prevents all modern progress. Feng Shuey is not a national curse in Japan, as it is in China ; and whereas, in the latter country, telegraph poles and wires are torn down because they cast a shadow over the ancestral tombs, and railroads can not be built because they traverse or approach grave-yards, in Japan both these civilizers are popular. In a few years many of the household superstitions I have enumer- ated will be, in the cities of Japan, as curious to the Japanese as they are to us. Among these are the following, with which this long chapter may be closed : All over the country, in town or city, are trees specially dedicated to the kami, or gods. Those around shrines also are deemed sacred. They are often marked by a circlet of twisted rice-straw. Several times in the recent history of the country have serious insurrections broken out among the peasantry, because the local authorities decided to cut down certain trees held in worshipful reverence by the people, and believed to be the abode of the tutelary deities. Nature, in all her forms, is as animate and populous to the Japanese imagination as were the mountain stream and sea to the child and peasant of an- cient Greece. Many a tale is told of trees shedding blood when hew- ed down, and of sacrilegious axe-men smitten in death for their temer- ity. In popular fiction the mirror as well as nurse of popular fancy a whole grove of trees sometimes appears to the belated or guilty traveler as a whispering council of bearded and long-armed old men. In Fukui and Tokio, and in my numerous journeyings, many trees were pointed out to me as having good or evil reputation. Some were the abodes of good spirits, some of ghosts that troubled travel- ers and the neighborhood ; while some had the strange power of at- tracting men to hang themselves on their branches. This power of fascinating men to suicide is developed in the tree after the first vic- tim has done so voluntarily. One of these, standing in a lonely part of the road skirting the widest of the castle moats in Fukui, was fa- mous for being the elect gallows for all the suicides by rope in the city. Another tree, near the Imperial College in Tokio, within half a mile of 'my house, bore a similar sinister reputation ; and another, on the south side of Shiba grove, excelled, in number of victims, any in that great city. A singular superstition, founded upon the belief that the kami will 474 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. visit vengeance upon those who desecrate the sacred trees, or for whom they are desecrated, is called the " Ushi toki mairi " literally, " to go to the shrine at the hour of the ox." Let us suppose that a man has made love to a woman, won her affections, and then deserted her. In some cases, sorrow culminates in suicide ; usually, it is en- dured and finally overborne ; in rare cases, the injured woman becomes a jealous avenger, who invokes the gods to curse and annihilate the destroyer of her peace. To do this, she makes a rude image of straw, which is to represent her victim. At the hour of two o'clock in the morning, ushi toki (the hour of the ox), she proceeds (mairi) to the shrine of her patron god, usually the Uji-gami (family or local deity). Her feet are shod with high clogs, her limbs are lightly robed in loose night-dress of white, her hair is disheveled, and her eyes sparkle with the passion within her. Sometimes she wears a crown, made of an iron tripod reversed, on which burn three candles. In her left hand she carries the straw effigy ; in her right she grasps a hammer. On her bosom is suspended a mirror. She carries nails in her girdle or in her mouth. Reaching the sacred tree, which is encircled with a garland of rice-straw, before the shrine, and near the torii, she impales upon the tree with nails, after the manner of a Roman crucifier, the straw effigy of her recreant lover. While so engaged, she adjures the gods to save their tree, impute the guilt of desecration to the traitor, and visit him with their deadly vengeance. The visit is repeated nightly, several times in succession, until the object of her incanta- tions sickens and dies. At Sabae, which I visited, a town twenty-five miles from Fukui, before a shrine of Kampira stood a pine-tree about a foot thick, plentifully studded with nails, the imperishable parts of these emblems of vicarious vengeance. Another, and a smaller, tree hard by, wounded unto death by repeated stabs of the iron nails driv- en home by arms nerved to masculine strength, had long since with- ered away. It stood there, all scarred and stained by rust, and gut- tered into rottenness, a grim memorial of passions long since cooled in death, perchance of retribution long since accomplished. What tales of love and desertion, anguish, jealousy, and vengeance could each rusty cross of iron points tell, were each a tongue ! It seemed but another of many proofs that the passions which thrill or torment the human soul are as strong in Japan as in those lands whose chil- dren boast that to them it is given to reach the heights of highest hu- man joy, and to sound the depths of deepest human woe. In Japan, also, " Love is as strong as death ; jealousy is cruel as the grave." THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 477 XII THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. As if to make amends for the poverty of the actual fauna in Japan, the number and variety of imaginary creatures in animal form are re- markably great. Man is not satisfied with what the heavens above and the waters under the earth show him. Seeing that every effect must have a cause, and ignorant of the revelations of modern science, the natural man sees in cloud, tempest, lightning, thunder, earthquake, and biting wind the moving spirits of the air. According to the pri- mal mold of the particular human mind will the bodying of these things unseen be lovely or hideous, sublime or trivial. Only one born among the triumphs of modern discovery, who lives a few years in an Asiatic country, can realize in its most perfect vividness the definition of science given by the master seer " the art of seeing the invisible." The aspects of nature in Japan are such as to influence the minds of its mainly agricultural inhabitants to an extent but faintly realized by one born in the United States. In the first place, the foundations of the laud are shaky. There can be no real estate in Japan, for one knows not but the whole country may be ingulfed in the waters out of which it once emerged. Earthquakes average over two a month, and a hundred in one revolution of the moon have been known. The national annals tell of many a town and village ingulfed, and of cities and proud castles leveled. Floods of rain, causing dreadful land-slides and inundations, are by no means rare. Even the ocean has, to the coast-dweller, an added terror. Not only do the wind and tempest arise to wreck and drown, but the tidal wave is ever a possible visitor. Once or twice a year the typhoons, sometimes the most dreadful in the dreadful catalogue of destructive agencies, must be looked for. Two- thirds o* the entire surface of the empire is covered with mount- ains not always superb models of form like Fuji, but often jagged peaks and cloven crests, among which are grim precipices, frightful gulches, and gloomy defiles. With no religion but that of paganism and fetichism, armed without by no weapons of science, strengthened 31 478 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. within by no knowledge of the Creator-father, the Japanese peasant is appalled at his own insignificance in the midst of the sublime myste- ries and immensities of nature. The creatures of his own imagination, by which he explains the phenomena of nature and soothes his terrors, though seeming frightful to us, are necessities to him, since the awful suspense of uncertainty and ignorance is to him more terrible than the creatures whose existence he imagines. Though modern science will confer an ineffable good upon Japan by enlightening the darkened in- tellect of its inhabitants, yet the continual liability to the recurrence of destructive natural phenomena will long retard the march of mind, and keep alive superstitions that now block like bowlders the path of civ- ilization. Chief among ideal creatures in Japan is the dragon. The word dragon stands for a genus of which there are several species and va- rieties. To describe them in full, and to recount minutely the ideas held by the Japanese rustics concerning them, would be to compile an octavo work on dragonology. The merest tyro in Japanese art in- deed, any one who has seen the cheap curios of the country must have been impressed with the great number of these colossal wrigglers on every thing Japanese. In the country itself, the monster is well- nigh omnipresent. In the carvings on tombs, temples, dwellings, and shops on the Government documents printed on the old and the new paper money, and stamped on the new coins in pictures and books, on musical instruments, in high-relief on bronzes, and cut in stone, metal, and wood the dragon (tatsu) everywhere " swinges the scaly horror of his folded tail," whisks his long mustaches, or glares with his terrible eyes. The dragon is the only animal in modern Ja- pan that wears hairy ornaments on the upper lip. I shall attempt no detailed description of the Japanese dragon, presuming that most foreign readers are already familiar with its ap- pearance on works of art. The creature looks like a winged crocodile, except as to the snout,, which is tufted with hair, and the claws, which are very sharp. The celebrated Japanese author, Bakin, in his master- piece of Hakkenden (" The Eight Dog Children, "), describes the mon- ster with dogmatic accuracy. He says: "The dragon is a creature of a very superior order of being. It has a deer's horns, a horse's head, eyes like those of a devil, a neck like that of a snake, a belly like that of a red worm, scales like those of a fish, claws like a hawk's, paws like a tiger's, and ears like a cow's. In the spring, the dragon lives in heav- en ; in the autumn, in the water ;, in the summer, it travels in the THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 479 clouds and takes its pleasure ; in winter, it lives in the earth dormant. It always dwells alone, and never in herds. There are many kinds of dragons, such as the violet, the yellow, the green, the red, the white, the black, and the flying dragon. Some are scaly, some horned, some with- out horns. When the white dragon breathes, the breath of its lungs goes into the earth and turns to gold. When the violet dragon spits, the spittle becomes balls of pure crystal, of which gems and caskets are made. One kind of dragon has nine colors on its body, and an- other can see every thing within a hundred ri ; another has immense treasures of every sort; another delights to kill human beings. The water dragon causes floods of rain ; when it is sick, the rain has a The Rain Dragon. (From a Japanese drawing, by Kano.) fishy smell. The fire dragon is only seven feet long, but its body is of flame. The dragons are all very lustful, and approach beasts of ev- ery sort, The fruit of a union of one of these monsters with a cow is the kirin ; with a swine, an elephant ; and with a mare, a steed of the finest breed. The female dragon produces at every parturition nine young. The first young dragon sings, and likes all harmonious sounds, hence the tops of Japanese bells are cast in the form of this 480 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. dragon ; the second delights in the sounds of musical instruments, hence the koto, or horizontal harp, and suzumi, a girl's drum, struck by the fingers, are ornamented with the figure of this dragon ; the third is fond of drinking, and likes all stimulating liquors, therefore goblets and drinking-cups are adorned with representations of this creature ; the fourth likes steep and dangerous places, hence gables, towers, and projecting beams of temples and pagodas have carved images of this dragon upon them ; the fifth is a great destroyer of living things, fond of killing and bloodshed, therefore swords are decorated with golden figures of this dragon ; the sixth loves learning and delights in litera- ture, hence on the covers and title-pages of books and literary works are pictures of this creature ; the seventh is renowned for its power of hearing ; the eighth enjoys sitting, hence the easy -chairs are carved in its images : the ninth loves to bear weight, therefore the feet of tables and of hibachi are shaped like this creature's feet. As the dragon is the most powerful animal in existence, so the garments of the emperor or mikado are called the ' dragon robes,' his face the ' dragon counte- nance,' his body the ' dragon body,' the ruffling of the * dragon scales' his displeasure, and his anger the ' dragon wrath.' " Whence arose the idea of the dragon ? Was the pterodactyl known to the early peoples of the East ? Did the geologic fish-lizard wander at night, with teeth unpicked and uncleansed of phosphorescent frag- ments of his fish-diet, and thus really breathe out fire, as the artists picture him ? The kirin, referred to above, is an animal having the head of a drag- on, the body of a deer, and the legs and feet of a horse, with tail and streaming haL or wings peculiar to itself, though native poets never bestride it, nor is it any relative of Pegasus. On its forehead is a single horn. It is found carved on the wood-work of the tombs of the shoguns and other defunct worthies in Japan. It is said that the kirin appears on the earth once in a thousand years, or only when some transcendently great man or sage, like Confucius, is born. It never treads on a live insect, nor eats growing grass. The kirin is of less importance in Japan than in China, whence its origin, like that of so much of the mythology and strange notions current in Japan. There is another creature whose visits are rarer than those of an- gels, since it appears on the earth only at millennial intervals, or at the birth of some very great man. This fabulous bird, also of Chinese or- igin, is called the howo, or phenix. The tombs of the shoguns at Shi- ba and Nikko have most elaborate representations of the howo, and THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 481 the new and old paper currency of the country likewise bears its im- age. It seems to be a combination of the pheasant and peacock. A Chinese dictionary thus describes the fowl: "The phenix is of the essence of water ; it was born in the vermilion cave ; it roosts not but upon the most beautiful tree (Wu-tung, Elceococcus oleifera) ; it eats not but of the seeds of the bamboo ; it drinks not but of the sweetest spring ; its body is adorned with the Five Colors ; its song contains the Five Notes ; as it walks, it looks around ; as it flies, the hosts of birds follow it." It has the head of a fowl, the crest of a swallow, the neck of a snake, the tail of a fish. Virtue, obedience, justice, fidelity, and benevolence are symbolized in the decorations on its head, wings, body, and breast. Some of the ultra-conservatives, who cherish the old superstitions, and who look with distrust and contempt on the present regime in Japan, await the coming of the kirin and the howo with eagerness, as the annunciation of the birth of the great leader, who is, by his pre- eminent abilities, to dwarf into insignificance all the pigmy politicians of the present day. This superstition in Japan takes the place of those long in vogue in Europe, where it was supposed that such lead- ers as Charlemagne, Alfred, and Barbarossa were sleeping, but would come forth again at the propitious moment, to lead, conquer, and reign. The kappa is a creature with the body and head of a monkey and the claws of a tortoise. There are various representations of it, gravely figured in native works on reptilology. In some of these, the monkey type seems to prevail ; in others, the tortoise. There is a pe- culiar species of tortoise in the waters of Japan, called by the natives suppon. Its shell is cartilaginous, its head triangular, and its probos- cis elongated and tapering. Imagine this greenish creature rising up, shedding its shell, and evolving into a monkey-like animal, about the size of a big boy, but retaining its web-footed claws, and you have the kappa. It is supposed to live in the water, and to seize people, espe- cially boys, who invade its dominions. It delights in catching well- favored urchins, and feasting upon choice tidbits torn out of certain parts of their bodies. The kappa, fortunately, is very fond of cucumbers, and parents hav- ing promising sons throw the first cucumbers of the season into the water it is supposed to haunt, to propitiate it and save their chil- dren. In Fukui, I was warned not to bathe in a certain part of the river, as the kappa would infallibly catch me by the feet and devour 482 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. me ; and more than one head was shaken when it became known that I had defied their warnings. A woman was riding in a jin-riki-sha, and the coolie was coursing at full speed on the road at the side of the castle-moat, where the water is four feet deep. Suddenly, and, to the coolie, unaccountably, he and his vehicle were upset, and the precious freight was thrown into the moat. She was fished out in a condition that might have helped even a passing foreigner to believe in the existence of the mer- maid. The coolie was puzzled to account for the capsizing of his ma- chine, and immediately attributed it to the agency of the kappa. By venturing insultingly near the domain of this local Neptune, he had been punished by his muddy majesty. Though the woman had no mark of claw or teeth, she doubtless congratulated herself on her lucky escape from the claws of the monster. I have heard, on several occasions, of people in Tokio seeing a kap- pa in the Sumida-gawa, the river that flows by the capital. Numer- ous instances of harm done by it are known to the orthodox believ- ers, to whom these creations of diseased imagination are embodied ver- ities. The native newspapers occasionally announce reported cases of kappa mischief, using the incidents as texts to ridicule the supersti- tion, hoping to uproot it from the minds of the people. Among the many ideal creatures with which the native imagina- tion has populated earth and air is the Jcama-itachi, believed to be a kind of weasel, that, in the most wanton sport, or out of mere delight in malignity, cuts or tears the faces of people with the sickle which it is supposed to carry. This creature is not known to trouble any ani- mal except man. Every one knows that at times, in moments of ex- citement, cuts or scratches are received which are discovered only by the appearance of blood. In Japan, where the people universally wear clogs often high, heavy blocks of wood, the thong of which is lia- ble to break and the ground is covered with loose pebbles or sharp stones, falls and cuts are very frequent. The one thought, to the ex- clusion of every other, in an instance of this kind, is about the failing thong or the outslipping support. The pedestrian, picking himself up, with probably a malediction on the thong or the clog-maker, finds, on cooling off, that his face is cut. Presto ! " ' Kama-itachi ni kirare- ta " (" cut by the sickle-weasel "). The invisible brute has passed and cut his victim on the cheek with his blade. I have myself known cases where no cut appeared and no blood flowed, yet the stumbler who broke his clog-string fell to cursing the kama-itachi for tripping THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 483 him. This creature is also said to be present in whirlwinds. It is a most convenient scape-goat for people who go out at night when they ought to stay at home, and who get cuts and scratches which they do not care to account for truly. A case recently occurred in the port of Niigata, which illustrates both the mythical and scape-goat phases of this belief. A European doctor was called to see a native woman, who was said to be suffering from the kama-itachi. The patie*nt was found lying down, with a severe clean cut, such as might have been caused by falling on some sharp substance ; but to all questions as to how she got the wound, the only answer was, " Kama-itachi." By Futen, the Wind-imp. (From a Japanese drawing.) dint of questioning the servants, it appeared that there was more in the facts than had met the doctor's ears. It seemed that, during the night, she had risen and passed out of the house, and had been absent for a considerable time. Whether there was a "love-lorn swain in lady's bower" awaiting her coming was not developed during the pumping process she was subjected to by the student of imaginary zoology, who was the catechist t)f the occasion. Japanese gardens are nearly always paved with smooth stones, which often have sharp edges. These might easily have inflicted just such a wound in case of a fall on 484 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. their slippery surfaces, especially if the fall occurred in the darkness. For reasons of her own, most probably, the blame was laid on the ka< ma-itachi. The wind and the thunder, to a Japanese child or peasant, are some- thing more than moving air and sound. Before many of the temples are figures, often colossal, of the gods of the wind and of thunder. The former is represented as a monstrous semi-feline creature, holding an enormous bag of compressed air over his shoulders. When he loosens his hold on one of the closed ends, the breezes blow ; when he partly opens it, a gale arises ; when he removes his hand, the tornado devastates the earth. At times, this imp, as the fancy seizes him, sal- Raiden, the Thunder-drummer. (From a native drawing.) lies forth from his lair away in the mountains, and chases terrified travelers or grass-cutters ; often scratching their faces dreadfully with his claws. Sometimes, invisibly passing, he bites or tears the counte- nance of the traveler, who, bearing the brunt of the blast, feels the wound, but sees not the assailant. There are not wanting pictures and images representing the deliverance of pious men, who, trusting in the goddess Kuanon, have, by dint of nimbleness and prayer, escaped, as by a hair-breadth, the steel-like claws of Futen, the wind-imp. The " thunder-god " is represented as a creature that looks like a THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 485 human dwarf changed into a species of erect cat. His name is Raiden. He carries over his head a semicircle of five drums joined together. By striking or rattling these drums, he makes thunder. With us it is not the thunder that strikes ; but in Japanese popular language, the thunder not only strikes, but kills. According to Russian supersti- tion, thunder kills with a stone arrow. Among the Japanese, when the lightning strikes, it is the thunder-cat that leaps upon, or is hurled at, the victim. Often it escapes out of the cloud to the ground. A young student from Hiuga told me that in his native district the paw of a thunder-imp that fell out of the clouds several centuries ago is still kept, and triumphantly exhibited, as a silencing proof to all skep- tics of the actual occurrence of the event asserted to have taken place. Tradition relates that a sudden storm once arose in the district, and that, during a terrific peal of thunder, this monster leaped, in a flash of lightning, down a well. Instead, however, of falling directly into the water, its hind paw happened to get caught in a crack of the split timber of the wooden well-curb, and was torn off by the momentum of the descent. This paw was found after the storm, fresh and bloody, and was immediately taken to be preserved for the edification of future generations. It is not known whether any of the neighbors missed a cat at that time ; but any suggestions of such an irreverent theory of explanation would doubtless be met by the keepers of the relic with lofty scorn and pitying contempt. One of the miracle figures at Asakusa, in Tokio, until 1874 repre- sents a noble of the mikado's court, with his hand on the throat, and his knee planted on the back of the thunder-imp that lies sprawl- ing, and apparently howling, on the ground, with his drums broken and scattered about him. One hairy paw is stretched out impotently before him, and with the other he vainly tries to make his conqueror release his hold. The expression of the starting eyes of the beast shows that the vise-like grip of the man is choking him ; his nostrils gape, and from his mouth extrude sharp teeth. His short ears are cocked, and his body is hairy, like a cat. On each of his paws are several triangular bayonet - shaped claws. The human figure is life- size ; the thunder-cat is about three feet from crown to claws. The creature does not appear to have any tail. This, however, is no curtailment of his feline dignity, since most of the Japanese pussies have caudal appendages of but one or two inches in length, and many are as tailless as the Darwinian descendants of the monkey. This tableau is explained as follows by the guide-book to the exhibition: 486 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. " In the province of Yamato, in the reign of Yuriyaku Tenno, when he was leaving his palace, a sudden thunder-storm of terrific violence arose. The mikado ordered Sugaru, his courtier, to catch the thun- der-imp. Sugaru spurred his horse forward and drove the thunder- god to the side of Mount Abe, where the creature, leaping high into the air, defied the attempts of his pursuer. Sugaru, gazing at the sky, cried out to the imp, ' Obey the emperor !' But the roll of the thunder ceased not for a moment. Then Sugaru, turning his face to the temple, prayed earnestly to Kuanon, and cried out, ' Dost thou not hear and protect thy faithful ones when they cry unto thee ?' Im- mediately, as the prayer ended, a splendor of radiant light shot out from the temple, and the thunder -imp fell to the earth. Sugaru seized him in a trice, bound him securely, and took him to the em- peror's palace. Then all men called him the ' god-catcher.' " Decidedly, the animal of greatest dimensions in the mythical menagerie or aquarium of Japan is ihejishin uwo, or "earthquake fish." Concerning the whereabouts and haunts of this monster, there are two separate opinions or theories, held respectively by the dwell- ers on the coast and those inland. The former believe that the jishin- uwo is a submarine monster, whose body is from half a ri to one ri in length. This fish strikes the shore or ocean-bottom in its gam- bols or in its wrath, and makes the ground rock and tremble. In times of great anger it not only causes the solid earth to quiver and crack, leveling houses in ruin, and ingulfing mountains, but, arching its back, piles the waters of the ocean into that sum of terror and calamity a tidal wave. Among the people in the interior, however, the theory obtains that there exists a subterranean fish of prodigious length. According to some, its head is in the northern part of the main island, the place of fewest and lightest earthquakes, and its tail beneath the ground that lies between Tokio and Kioto. Others as- sert that the true position is the reverse of this. The motions of the monster are known by the tremors of the earth. A gentle thrill means that it is merely bristling its spines. When shocks of extraor- dinary violence are felt, the brute is on a rampage, and is flapping its flukes like a wounded whale. The limits of this chapter forbid any long description of the less important members of that ideal menagerie to which I have played the showman. Not a few instances have fallen under my own imme- diate notice of the pranks of two varieties of the genus tmgu, which to the learned are symbolical of the male and female essences in THE MYTHICAL ZOOLOGY OF JAPAN. 487 Chinese philosophy. These are in the one case long-nosed, and in the other long-billed goblins, that haunt mountain places and kidnap wicked children. Their faces are found in street shows, in picture- books, on works of art, and even in temples, all over the country. The native caricaturists are not afraid of them, and the funny artist has given us a sketch of a pair who are putting the nasal elongation to a novel use, in carrying the lunches. One is being " led by the nose," in a sense even stronger than the English idiom. The scrap of text, "hanami" ("to see the flowers"), is their term for junketing ra Tengu going on a Picuic. (Hokusai.) the woods ; but the hindmost tengu is carrying pleasure to the verge of pain, since he has to hold up his lunch-box with his right, while he carries his mat to sit on and table-cloth in his left hand. He of the beak evidently best enjoys the fun of the matter. I might tell of cats which do not exist in the world of actual observation, which have nine tails, and torment people, and of those other double-tailed felines which appear in the form of old women. A tortoise with a wide- fringed tail, which lives ten thousand years, is found portrayed on miscellaneous works of art, in bronze, lacquer-ware, carved work, and in silver, and especially represented as the emblem of longevity at 488 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. marriage ceremonies. The mermaid is not only an article of manufact- ure by nimble - fingered native taxidermists, but exists in the belief of the Japanese fishermen as certainly as it does not exist in the ocean. Among the miracle -figures or tableaux at Asakusa, to which we have already referred, is one representing a merman begging the prayers of a pious devotee. The Japanese guide-book says: "One day when a certain Jogu Taishi was passing the village of Ishidera, a creature with a head like a human being and a body like a fish ap- peared to him out of the rushes, and told him that in his previous state of existence he had been very fond of fishing. Now, being born into the world as a merman, he eagerly desired Jogu Taishi to erect a shrine to the honor of Kuanon, that by the great favor and mercy of the goddess he might be reborn into a higher form of life. Accord- ingly, Jogu Taishi erected a shrine, and carved with his own hands a thousand images of Kuanon. On the day on which he finished the carving of the last image, a ten-jin (angel) appeared to him and said, ' By your benevolence and piety I have been born into the regions of heaven.' " Little boys, tempted to devour too much candy, are frightened, not with prophecies of pain or threats of nauseous medicines, but by the fear of a hideous huge worm that will surely be produced by indul- gence in sweets. The Japanese bacchanals are called shojo. They are people who live near the sea, of long red hair, bleared eyes, and gaunt faces, who dance with wild joy before a huge jar of sake. On picnic boxes, sake cups, vases and jars of lacquered work, bronze, or porce- lain, these mythical topers, with the implements of their mirth and ex- cess, are seen represented. The associations of a Japanese child who first looks upon a man of red beard or hair may be imagined. So goes through all ages and ranks of life a more or less deep-rooted ter- ror of non-existent monstrosities ; and although many Japanese people in the cities and towns laugh at these superstitions, yet among the inalca, or country people, they are living realities, not to be trifled with or defied. In company, round the hearth, one fellow may be bold enough to challenge their existence ; but at night, on the lonely road, or in the mountain solitudes, or in the presence of nature's more awful phenomena, the boor, the child, and even the grown men who reason, are awed into belief and fear. That they are fading away, how- ever, year by year, is most evident. Science, the press, education, and Christianity are making these mythical animals extinct species in the geology of belief. FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 491 XIII. FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. THE liibachi, or fire-brazier, is to the Japanese household what the hearth or fire-place is in an Occidental home. Around it friends meet, the family gathers, parents consult, children play, the cat purrs, and the little folks listen to the fairy legends or household lore from nurse or grandame. I have often, in many a Japanese home, seen children thus gathered round the hibachi, absorbing through open eyes and ears and mouth the marvelous stories which disguise the mythology, philosophy, and not a little of the wisdom of the world's childhood. Even the same world, with its beard grown, finds it a delight to listen now and then to the old wives' fables, and I propose in this chapter to give a few of the many short stories with which every Japanese child is familiar, and which I have often heard myself from children, or from the lips of older persons, while sitting round the hibachi, or which I have had written for me. The artist Ozawa, at my request, sketched such a scene as I have often looked upon. The grandmother has drawn the attention of her infantile audience to the highest tension of interest. Iron-bound top, picture-book, mask of Suzume, jumping- jack, devil in a band-box, and all other toys are forgotten, while eyes open and mouths gape as the story proceeds. Besides the gayly colored little books, containing the most famous stories for children, there are nu- merous published collections of tales, some of which are centuries old. Among those current in Japan are some of Indian, Chinese, and per- haps of other origin. The wonderful story of " Raiko and the Oni " is one of the most famous in the collection of Japanese grandmothers. Its power to open th^ mouths and distend the oblique eyes of the youngsters long after bed-time, is unlimited. I have before me a little stitched book of seven leaves, which I bought among a lot of two dozen or more in one of the colored print and book shops in Tokio. It is four inches long and three wide. On the gaudy cover, which is printed in seven col- 492 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. ors, is a picture of Raiko, the hero, in helmet and armor, grasping in both hands the faithful sword with which he slays the ghoul whose frightful face glowers above him. The hiragana text and wood-cuts within the covers are greatly worn, showing that many thousand cop- ies have been printed from the original and oft-retouched face of the cherry-wood blocks. The story, thus illustrated with fourteen engrav- ings, is as follows : A long while ago, when the mikado's power had slipped away into the hands of his regents, the guard at Kioto was neglected. There was a rumor in the city that om, or demons, frequented the streets late at night, and carried off people bodily. The most dreaded place was at the Ra-jo gate, at the south-western entrance to the palace. Hither Watanabe, by order of Raiko, the chief captain of the guard, started one night, well armed. Wearily waiting for some hours, he became drowsy, and finally fell asleep. Seizing his opportunity, the wary demon put out his arm from behind the gate-post, caught Watanabe by the neck, and began to drag him up in the air. Watanabe awoke, and in an instant seized the imp by the wrist, and, drawing his sword, lopped the oni's arms off, who then leaped into the cloud, howling with pain. In the morning Watanabe returned, and laid the trophy at his master's feet. It is said that an oni's limb will not unite again if kept apart from the stump for a week. Watanabe put the hairy arm in a strong stone box, wreathed with twisted rice -straw, and watched it day and night, lest the oni should recover it. One night a feeble knock was heard at his door, and to his challenge his old aunt's voice replied. Of course, he let the old woman in. She praised her nephew's exploit, and begged him to let her see it. Being thus pressed, as he thought, by his old aunty, he slid the lid aside. " This is my arm," cried the hag, as she flew westward into the sky, chang- ing her form into a tusked and hairy demon. Tracing the oni's course, Raiko and four companions, disguised as komuso (wandering priests), reached the pathless mountain Oye, in Tango, which they climbed. They found a beautiful young girl washing a bloody gar- ment. From her they learned the path to the oni's cave, and that the demons eat the men, and saved the pretty damsels alive. Ap- proaching, they saw a demon cook carving a human body, to make soup of. Entering the cave, they saw Shu ten doji, a hideous, tusked monster, with long red hair, sitting on a pile of silken cushions, with about a hundred retainers around him, at a feast. Steaming dishes were brought in, full of human limbs, cooked in e.very style. The FOLK-LOME AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 493 young damsels had to serve the demons, who quaffed sake out of human skulls. Raiko and his band pretended to join in the orgies, and amused the demons by a dance, after which they presented them with a bottle of sake which had been mixed with a narcotic. The chief drank a skullful and gave to his retainers. Soon all the demons were asleep, and a thunder-storm of snores succeeded. Then Raiko and his men threw off their disguise, drew sword, and cut off their heads, till the cave flowed blood like a river. The neck of the chief demon was wider than Raiko's sword, but the blade miraculously lengthened, and Raiko cut the monster's head off at one sweep. They then destroyed the treasure, released all the prisoners, and re- turned to Kioto in triumph, exposing the huge head along the streets. The red-haired, red-faced, or red-bearded aliens in Japan, who drink brandy out of tumblers, and then in drunken fury roam in the streets of Yokohama and Nagasaki, are not unfrequently compared to the in- toxicated monster beheaded by Raiko. The Japanese child who sees his parents indulge in sake from a tiny cup, and to whom black eyes and hair, and the Japanese form, face, and dress constitute the true standard, is amazed at the great size of the mugs and drinking-glasses from which the men of red beards and faces drink a liquid ten times stronger than sake. Very naturally, to the Japanese imagination and memory the drunken sailor appears a veritable shu ten doji. Never- theless, the Yokohama coolie does not call him by so classic a name. He frames a compound adjective from the imprecation which most frequently falls from the sailor's lips. In the "Yokohama dialect," the word for sailor is dammuraisu hito (" d n-your-eyes " man). The story of " The Monkey and the Crab " has as many versions as that of " The Arkansas Traveler." It is continually re-appearing in new dress and with new variations, according to the taste and abili- ties of the audience. Its flavor, as told by the chaste mother instruct- ing her daughters, or by the vulgar coolie amusing his fellow-loafers while waiting for a job, is vastly different in either case. The most ordinary form of the story is as follows : Once upon a time there was a crab who lived in a hole on the shady side of a hill. One day he found a bit of rice-cake. A mon- key who was just finishing a persimmon met the crab, and offered to exchange its seed for the rice cracknel. The simple-minded crab ac- cepted the proposal, and the exchange was made. The monkey eat up the rice-cake, but the crab backed off home, and planted the seed in his garden. 32 494 THE MIKADOES EMPIRE. A fine tree grew up, and the crab was delighted at the prospect of soon enjoying the luscious fruit. He built a nice new house, and used to sit on the balcony, watching the ripening persimmons. One day the monkey came along, and, being hungry, congratulated the crab on his fine tree, and begged for some of the fruit, offering to climb and gather it himself. The crab politely agreed, requesting his guest to throw down some of the fruit that he might enjoy it him- self. The ungrateful rascal of a monkey clambered up, and, after filling his pockets, eat the ripest fruit as fast as he could, pelting the crab with the seeds. The crab now determined to outwit the mon- key, and, pretending to enjoy the insults as good jokes, he dared the monkey to show his skill, if he could, by descending head foremost. The monkey, to show how versatile were his accomplishments, ac- cepted the friendly challenge, and turning flank not tail for Japa- nese monkeys have no tails he began to come down head foremost. Of course, all the persimmons rolled out of his pockets. The crab, seizing the ripe fruit, ran off to his hole. The monkey, waiting till he had crawled out, gave him a sound thrashing, and went home. Just at that time a rice-mortar was traveling by with his several ap- prentices, a wasp, an egg, and a sea -weed. After hearing the crab's story, they agreed to assist him. Marching to the monkey's house, and finding him out, they arranged their plans and disposed their forces so as to vanquish their foe on his return. The egg hid in the ashes on the hearth, the wasp in the closet, the sea -weed near the door, and the mortar over the lintel. When the monkey came home he lighted a fire to steep his tea, when the egg burst, and so bespat- tered his face, that he ran howling away to the well for water to cool the pain. Then the wasp flew out and stung him. In trying to drive off this fresh enemy, he slipped on the sea-weed, and the rice-mortar, falling on him, crushed him to death. Wasn't that splendid ? The wasp and the mortar and sea-weed lived happily together ever after- ward. The moral against greedy and ungrateful people needs no pointing. In one of the recently published elementary works on natural philoso- phy, written in the vernacular of Tokio, I have seen the incident of the bursting egg utilized to illustrate the dynamic power of heat at the expense of the monkey. Another story, used to feather the shaft aimed at greedy folks, is that of the elves and the envious neighbor. The story is long, but, condensed, is as follows : A wood -cutter, overtaken by a storm and darkness among the FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 495 mountains, seeks shelter in a hollow tree. Soon he saw little creatures, some of a red color, wearing blue clothes, and some of a black color, wearing red clothes. Some had no mouth ; others had but one eye. There were about one hundred of them. At midnight the elves, hav- ing lighted a fire, began to dance and carouse, and the man, forgetting his fright, joined them and began to dance. Finding him so jolly a companion, and wishing him to return the next night, they took from the left side of his face a large wen that disfigured it, as pawn, and disappeared. The next day, having told his story in high glee, an envious neighbor, who was also troubled with a wen on the right side of his face, resolved to possess his friend's luck, and went out to the same place. At night the elves assembled to drink and enjoy a jig. The man now appeared, and, at the invitation of the chief elf, began to dance. Being an awkward fellow, and not to be compared with the other man, the elves grew angry, and said, " You dance very bad- ly this time. Here, you may have your pledge, the wen, back again." With that an elf threw the wen at the man. It stuck to his cheek, and he went home, crying bitterly, with two wens instead of one. Stories of cats, rabbits, dogs, monkeys, and foxes, who are born, pass through babyhood, are nursed, watched, and educated by anxious parents with all due moral and religious training, enjoy the sports proper to their age, fall in love, marry, rear a family, and live happy ever afterward to a green old age, form the staple of the tiny picture- books for tiny people. When told by garrulous nurses or old gran- nies, the story becomes a volume, varied and colored from rich imagi- nation or actual experience. A great many funny stories are told about blind men, who are often witty wags. They go about feeling their way with a staff, and blow- ing a double-barreled whistle which makes a peculiarly ugly noise. They shave their heads, and live by shampooing tired travelers at hotels, or people who like to be kneaded like a sponge or dough. They also loan out money at high rates of interest, public sympathy being their sure guard against loss. Even among these men the spirit of caste and rank prevails, and the chief blind man of a city or town usually holds an official diploma. On the occasion of such an award the bald-pates enjoy a feast together. After imbibing freely, they sing songs, recite poetry, and crack jokes, like merry fellows with eyes, and withal, at them because having eyes, some can not see to read. Here is a sample. An illiterate country gawk, while in the capital, saw a learned man reading with eyeglasses on. Thereupon, 496 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. he hastened to an optician's, and bought a pair. He was both an- noyed and surprised to find he could not make out a word. A story is told of two men who were stone-deaf, who met together one morning, when the following dialogue took place : First Post. " Good-morning. Are you going to buy sake V Second Post. "No. I am going to buy sake." Third Post. "Oh, excuse me, I thought you were going to buy sake." I heard the following story from one of my students from Fukui. It is a favorite with the professional story-tellers in Tokio. It reminds one of the Spaniard who is said to have put on magnifying spectacles while eating grapes, or the Yankee who strapped green eyeglasses on his horse w r hile feeding him on shavings : A very economical old fellow, named Kisaburo, once took lodgings near a shop to which the elite of the epicures of Yedo resorted daily for the delicacy of eels fried in soy. The appetizing odor was wafted into his quarters, and Kisaburo, being a man of strong imagination, daily enjoyed his frugal meal of boiled rice by his palate, and the sa- vory smoke of eels through his olfactories, and thus saved the usual expense of fish and vegetables. The eel-frier, on discovering this, made up his mind to charge his stingy neighbor for the smell of his eels, and paid him a visit with his bill made out. Kisaburo, taking it in good humor, called his wife, who brought out the cash-box. After jingling the bag of money, he touched it on the bill, and replacing it in the box under lock, ordered his wife to return it to its place. The eel-man, amazed at such finan- ciering, cried out, " Well, are you not going to pay me ?" " Oh no !" said Kisaburo, " you have charged me for the smell of your eels ; I have paid you back with the sound of my money." A story very similar to this, which I have transcribed as I heard it, is given by Rabelais, Third Book, thirty-seventh chapter. Stories illustrating the freaks of absent-minded men are very nu- merous. Here is one, told me by a village lad from near Takefu, in Echizen. A farmer's wife about to enjoy the blessing of addition to her family besought her husband to visit a famous shrine of Kuan- on, the Goddess of Mercy, and make an offering and pray for easy deliverance of her offspring. The good wife packed up a lunch for her husband in a box of lacquered wood, and took out one hundred cash (about one and a half cents) from their hoard, which was kept in an old bag made of rushes, in a jar under the floor, as a gift to be FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 497 thrown into the temple coffer to propitiate the deity. At early morn the man prepared to start, but in a fit of absent-mindedness, instead of his lunch-box, he took the pillow (a Japanese pillow is often a box of drawers holding the requisites of a woman's coiffure, with a tiny bol- ster on the top), and, carefully wrapping it up, set off, and in due time arrived at the shrine. Now, the husband was less devout than his spouse, and, being ten miles away from her tongue and eye, he decided to throw but ten cash into the sacred coffers, and spend the remaining ninety on a bottle of sake, to be served by a pretty waiter-girl at the adjoining tea-house. So he divided his money into two packages, but in his absent-mindedness he unintentionally flung the larger amount into the temple box. Annoyed on discovering his bad luck, he offered his prayers in no very holy frame of mind, and then sat down to en- joy his lunch. Not being able to eat the hair-pins, pomatum, etc., in the pillow-box, he made his way to an eating-shop to buy a bit of mochi (rice-dough) to satisfy his hunger. Again his greed and absent- mindedness led him to grief, for, seeing a large round piece of what he thought was good dough for short-cake for only five cash, he bought it and hurried of, thinking the shop-girl had made a mistake, which she would soon discover at her cost. When he went to eat it, how- ever, he found it was only a plaster show-piece for the dough. Chew- ing the cud of bitter reflections, the hungry man at dark reached, as he supposed, his home ; and seeing, as he thought, his wife lighting a lantern, greeted her with a box on the ear. The woman, startled at such conduct, screamed, bringing her husband to her relief, and the absent-minded man, now recovering his senses again, ran for his life ; but when beyond danger he relapsed into his old habits, and reaching his own dwelling, found himself begging pardon of his own amazed wife for having boxed her ears. One of the many tales of filial revenge (see page 222) told to chil- dren is that of " the Soga boys." In the time of Yoritomo, while on a hunt in the mountains, one Kudo shot and killed Kawadzu. Of the slain man's two sons, one was sent to a monastery in the Hakone mountains, to be educated for the Buddhist priesthood. There, as he grew up, he learned all about the death of his father, and who his murdere." was. From that time, he thought of nothing but how to compass his death. Meanwhile, the other son was adopted by one Soga, and became a skillful fencer. At Giso, on the Tokaido, the two orphans finally meet, lay their plans, feast together, and prepare to join the great hunt of Yoritomo on the slopes of Mount Fuji. On 498 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. the night after, they attack the quarters where the tired Kudo lies asleep. They beat down the servants who try to defend him, and sate their revenge by cutting off his head. Of foxes and badgers I have written elsewhere. I have in this chapter of folk-lore, given only a few specimens from a great store- house. This last is called " The Boy of Urashima." In the reign of the Empress Suiko (A.D. 593-628) there lived, on a small island off the coast of Tango, a poor fisherman and his wife. Though too poor to provide more than the barest necessaries of life, they managed, being pious folks, to keep the lamp always burning in the shrine of Riu Jin, the sea-god, their patron. Night and morn- ing they offered up their prayers, and, though their meals might be scanty, they never failed to burn a stick of incense at the shrine. To this good couple a dear son was born, who grew up to be pious and dutiful, and to be the staff of his aged parents. When they were too 'old to go out to fish, Taro, the son, caught enough fish to sup- port himself and them. Now, it happened that one day in autumn Taro was out, as usual, in his boat, though the sea was rough and the waves high. The increasing storm finally compelled him to seek shel- ter in his hut. He uttered a prayer to the sea-god, and turned his prow homeward. Suddenly there appeared, on the crest of the waves, a divine being, robed in white, riding upon a large tortoise. Approach- ing the wearied fisherman, he greeted him kindly, and said, " Follow me, and I will make you a happy man." Taro, leaving his boat, and mounting the tortoise with his august companion, the tortoise sped away with marvelous celerity ; and on they journeyed for three days, passing some of the most wonderful sights human being ever beheld. There were ponds of perfectly transparent water filled with the fish he daily caught, and others with strange species. The roads were lined with rare and fragrant trees laden with golden fruit, and flowers more beautiful than he had ever seen or imagined. Finally, they came to a great gate of white mar- ble, of rare design and imposing proportion. Richly dressed ladies and pages were waiting to welcome him. He entered a golden pa- lanquin, and amidst trains of courtiers was borne to the palace of the king, and treated with honor and courtesy. The splendors of this palace it is not possible to describe in the language of earth. Taro was assigned to one of the fairest apartments, and beautiful girls waited upon him, and a host of servants were ready to do his bid- ding. Feasts, music, songs, dancing, gay parties, were given in his hon- FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 499 or. Many of the people around him seemed very remarkable beings. Some had heads made of shells, some of coral. All the lovely colors of nacre, the rarest tints which man can see beneath the deep-blue sea when the ocean's floor is visible, appeared on their dresses and or- naments. Their jewels of pearls and precious stones and gold and silver were profuse, but wrought in exquisite art. Taro could scarce- ly tell whether the fascinating creatures were human or not ; but he was very happy, and his hosts so kind that he did not stop to notice their peculiarities. That he was in fairy -land he knew, for such wealth was never seen, even in king's palaces, on earth. After Taro had spent, as he supposed, seven days at the king's pal- ace, he wished to go and see his parents. He felt it was wrong to be so happy when he was uncertain of their fate in the upper world. The king allowed his request, and, on parting with him, gave him a box. " This," said he, " I give you on condition that you never open it, nor show it to any one, under any circumstances whatever." Taro, wondering, received it, and bid adieu to the king. He was escorted to the white marble gate, and, mounting the same tortoise, reached the spot where he had left his boat. The tortoise then left him. Taro was all alone. He looked round, and saw nothing on the strand. The mountains and rocks were familiar, but no trace of his parents' hut was seen. He began to make inquiries, and finally learn- ed from an old gray -headed fisherman that, centuries before, the per- sons he described as his parents had lived there, but had been buried so long ago that their names could be read only by scraping the moss and lichens off the very oldest stones of the grave-yard in the valley yonder. Thither Taro hied, and after long search found the tomb of his dear parents. He now, for the first time since he had left his boat as he thought, a few days ago felt the pangs of sorrow. He felt an irresistible longing to open the box. He did so. A purple vapor, like a cloud, issued and suffused his head for a moment. A cold shiver ran through him. He tried to rise ; his limbs were stiff and bent. His face was wrinkled ; his teeth dropped out ; his limbs trembled ; he was an old man, with the weight of four centuries on him. His infirmities were too great for flesh to bear ; he died a few days afterward. I have given the story as it was current in Echizen. I have also heard it told with the location on the shores of the Bay of Yedo. Another version makes the strand of a river in Shinano the place of Taro's departure and return. In another form of the story, Taro re- 500 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. turns to find his parents dwelling in a glorious mansion. After greet- ings are over, the old folks are curious to know what the box con- tains. Taro, persuaded, opens it, to find himself, alone and old, on a desolate shore. The story is undoubtedly very old. It is found in several books, and has been often made the subject of art. The fish- ermen in various parts of Japan worship the good boy of TJrashima, who, even in the palaces of the sea-gods, forgot not his old parents. The four following stories are a few of many told of a famous judge, named Oka, who, for wisdom, shrewdness, and judicial acumen, may be called the Solomon of Japan. I first heard of his wondrous decisions when in Tokio, but there is a book of anecdotes of him, and a record of his decisions, called the Oka Jinseidan. I suppose they are true narrations. A certain man possessed a very costly pipe, made of silver inlaid with gold, of which he was very proud. One day a thief stole it. After some vain search, Oka heard that a man in a certain street had such a pipe, but it was not certain whether it was his own or the stolen article. He found out the truth concerning the pipe in the following ingenious manner. Japanese Pipe of Bamboo and Brass, Pipe-case, and Tobacco-pouch. A Japanese pipe is usually made of a tiny bowl, or bowl-piece, fit- ted to a mouth-piece with a bamboo tube. Sometimes all the parts are in one, the material being metal or porcelain. The mild tobacco, cut into finest shreds, like gossamer, is rolled up in pellets, and lighted at a live coal in the brazier. After one or two whiffs, a fresh ball is FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 501 introduced. A native will thus sit by the hour, mechanically rolling up these tobacco pills, utterly oblivious of the details of the act. Like certain absent-minded people, who look at their watches a dozen times, yet can not tell, when asked, what time it may be, so a Japanese, while talking at ease, will often be unable to remember whether he has smoked or not. After long mechanical practice, his nimble fingers with automatic precision roll the pellet to a size that exactly fills the bowl of the pipe. The shrewd judge found an opportunity to see the suspected man a short time after the theft. He noticed him draw out the golden pipe, and abstractedly roll up a globule of tobacco from his pouch. It was too small. On turning to the brazier, and turning the mouth of the bowl sideward or downward, the pellet rolled out. Here was positive proof to Oka that the golden pipe was not his own. The thief, on be- ing charged with the theft, confessed his guilt, and was punished. On another occasion a seller of pickled vegetables of various sorts, a miserly old fellow, being rich, and fearing thieves, kept his gold in a deep dish full of dai-kon (radishes), preserved in a liquid mixture composed of their own fermented juice, salt, and the skin of rice- grains. When long kept, the mass has a most intolerable odor, and to remove the smell from the hands after working in it stout scrub- bing with ashes is necessary. Now, it so happened that one of the neighbors found out the whereabouts of the pickler's savings, and, when his back was turned, stole. The old pickler kept his heart at the bottom of his radishes, and on his return, on examination, found his treasure gone. Forthwith informing the judge, Oka called in all the neighbors, and, after locking the doors, began, to the amazement of all and the horror of one, to smell the hands of those present. The unmistakable odor of dai-kon clung to one man, who thereupon con- fessed, disgorged, and received punishment. Cases which other judges failed to decide were referred to Oka. Often the very threat of bringing a suspected man before this Solomon secured confession after other means had failed. A young mother, being poor, was obliged to go out to service, and to leave her little daughter at the house of another woman to bring up for her. When the child grew up to womanhood, the mother was able to leave service, expecting to live with her daughter, and enjoy her love. To her surprise, on going to the house of the woman who had charge of her daughter, the woman claimed the girl as her own child, and refused to give her up. 502 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. When brought before Oka, there being no evidence but the con- flicting testimony of the women, who both claimed maternity, the judge ordered them each to take hold of an arm of the young girl and pull. Whoever was the strongest should have her. Not daring to disobey, the true mother reluctantly took gentle hold, while the other claimant seized a hand, and, bracing herself for the struggle, pulled with all her might. No sooner did the girl utter a cry of pain than the true mother dropped her hand, refusing to try again. Her friends urged her to continue the trial, and her antago- nist dared her to go on, but the mother was firm. The judge, silent and attentive the while, then angrily addressed the cruel woman as a deceiver, void of all maternal feeling, who regarded not the pain of her pretended offspring. He then ordered the girl to be restored to her true mother. The false claimant was dismissed in disgrace. Mother and child were overjoyed, and the witnesses astonished at such judicial wisdom. In another case, a rich merchant of Yedo went to Kioto on busi- ness, and was absent thirteen months. On his return he found that his wife had been unfaithful to him. After fruitless efforts to extort her secret and find her paramour, he went to Oka. On a certain day, all the male relations, friends, and neighbors assembled, and, one by one, were called into the judgment -hall, and questioned. Oka told the husband to bring with him his cat, which had for years been a pet in the house. With the cat quietly nestled at his side, he leisurely questioned each person. No clue could be obtained, until one young man appeared and took his seat, as usual, on his heels and knees, on the matting. The cat, now interested, ran briskly up, rubbed itself against his knees, and, being stroked by the man, finally climbed up in his lap, and cuddled itself up as if perfectly familiar with that comfort- able place. All this time the young man was looking in the judge's face, and answering his questions, forgetful of the cat. The question- ing being finished, the judge ordered the officers to bind the man and conduct him to prison. The man, who was inwardly congratulating himself on his clever answers, and his freedom even from suspicion, thought Oka was helped by the gods, and confessed his crime. I have an ivory and a wood carving, both nitsuki, representing the Japanese form of the story of Rip Van Winkle, which is, perhaps, a universal myth. The ivory figure is that of an old man leaning on the handle of an axe. His hair is long and white, and his snowy beard sweeps his breast and falls below his girdle. He is intently watching FOLK-LORE AND FIRESIDE STORIES. 503 two female figures playing a game of checkers. The story (of Chinese origin) is, as told by Japanese story-tellers, as follows : Lu-wen was a pious wood-cutter, who dwelt at the base of the ma- jestic and holy mountain Tendai, the most glorious peak of the Nan- lin range, in China. Though he thought himself familiar with the paths, he for some reason one day lost his way, and wandered about, having his axe with him. He did not care, however, because the beauty of the landscapes, the flowers, and the sky seemed to possess his senses, and he gave himself up to the ecstasy of the hour, enjoy- ing all the pleasant emotions of holy contemplation. All at once he heard a crackling sound, and immediately a fox ran out before him and into the thickets again. The wood -cutter started to pursue it. He ran some distance, when suddenly he emerged into a space where two lovely ladies, seated on the ground, were engaged in playing a game of checkers. The bumpkin stood still and gazed with all his sight at the wonderful vision of beauty before him. The players ap- peared to be unaware of the presence of an intruder. The wood-cut- ter still stood looking on, and soon became interested in the game as well as in the fair players. After some minutes, as he supposed, he bethought himself to return. On attempting to move away, his limbs felt very stiff, and his axe-handle fell to pieces. Stooping down to pick up the worm - eaten fragments, he was amazed to find, instead of his shaven face of the morning, a long white beard covering his bosom, while, on feeling his head, he discovered on it a mass of silken white hair. The wrinkled old man, now dazed with wonder, hobbled down the mountain to his native village. He found the streets the same, but the houses were filled with new faces ; crowds of children gathered round him, teasing and laughing at him ; the dogs barked at the stranger ; and the parents of the children shook their heads and won- dered among themselves as to whence the apparition had come. The old man, in agony of despair, asked for his wife and children and relatives. The incredulous people set him down as a fool, knowing nothing of whom he asked, and treating his talk as the drivel of luna- tic senility. Finally, an old grandam hobbled up, and said she was a descendant of the seventh generation of a man named Lu-wen. The old man groaned aloud, and, turning his back on all, retraced his weary steps to the mountain again. He was never heard of more, and it is believed he entered into the company of the immortal hermits and spirits of the mountain. 504 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. XIV. JAPANESE PROVERBS. THE proverbs of a nation are mirrors of its character. Not only the genius and wit, but the prejudices, the loves, the hates, the stand- ards of actions and morals, are all faithfully reflected in the condensed wisdom of their pithy phrases. Most proverbs are of anonymous au- thorship. " The wisdom of many and the wit of one," a proverb is saved from death because clothed in brevity, rhythm, or alliteration. Every man hails it as his own, because he recognizes his own heart in it. Proverbs are often tell-tale truths, for a nation sometimes out- grows its prejudices and becomes ashamed of its own familiar beliefs. Proverbs thus become the labels of antiquities in the museum of speech. They are fossils which show how opinions which had life and force long ago are now defunct and forgotten. Unexplainable to latter generations, they, as the fossils of geology once were, are thought to be lusus naturae. The delver among the treasures of Japanese lore finds proverbs both new and old, and in them sees ancient landmarks and modern finger- The proverbs of a nation so long isolated from the world must needs have peculiar interest to the rest of that world. We shall see in most of them, however, the clear reflection of that human heart which beats responsive beneath the toga, the eamel's-hair raiment, the broadcloth, and the silk haori. It has often been a delightful feeling, when stumbling upon some untranslatable but tickling morsel of wisdom, to reach its heart by quoting one of our own homely and pretty proverbs. Many of our old friends may be recognized in Japanese costume. Nothing so touches the Japanese heart and nature as the unexpected quotation of one of their old proverbs. Especially in the lecture-room does it give point and clinching force to a statement or explanation. When be- fore his class, the teacher sees no response or sympathy in the earnest JAPANESE PROVERBS. 505 but stolid faces of his Japanese pupils, and when every chosen arrow flies the mark, let a shaft feathered with one of their own proverbs be sent : instantly a gleam of intelligence, like a sunburst, or an assuring peal of merry laughter, proclaims the centre struck and success won. I shall arrange together a few of the most familiar of Japanese proverbs. Lest some might think the Japanese plagiarize from us, or lest some " resemblance "-monger should catch a few to put in his " In- dex Rerum," or " familiar quotations," I would remark that, apparent- ly, many of these proverbs were current in Japan before Csesar was born or America discovered. The following are expressions for what is impossible: To build a bridge to the clouds. To throw a stone at the sun. To scatter a fog with a fan. To dip up the ocean with the hand. Like our " No rose without a thorn," is their There's a thorn on the rose. Good doctrine needs no miracles, is the Japanese rationalist's arrow against the Buddhist bonzes. The fly seeks out the diseased spot, as people do in their neighbors' character. As different as the moon is from a tortoise. (Cheese, green or oth- erwise, is not made or eaten by the Japanese.) The natives of the Islands in the Four Seas are better boatmen than cooks, too many of whom spoil the broth, but, With too many boat- men, the boat runs up a hill. The universal reverence of youth for age is enjoined in this : Regard an old man as thy father. The fortune-teller can not tell his own fortune. The doctor does not keep himself well. Some men can do more than Goldsmith's school-master : They can argue until a crow's head becomes white. A narrow-minded man or bigot looks at the heavens through a reed, or a needle's eye. Our "cat in a strange garret" is metamorphosed into the more dignified figure of A hermit in the market-place. The dilatory man seeing the lion, begins to whet his arrows. The beaten soldier fears even the tops of the tall grass. Fighting spar^ rows fear not man. Only a tidbit to a ravenous mouth. (Said when the little tidbit Denmark flies down the huge gullet of Prussia; or when Saghalin falls into Russia's maw.) 506 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. By losing, gain. Give opportunity to genius. To give an iron club to a devil is to give riches to a bad man. While the hunter looks afar after birds, they fly up and escape at his feet. The ignorant man is gentle. Don't give a ko-ban to a cat. Akin to " The heart knoweth its own bitterness " are The sage sickens ; The beautiful woman is unhappy. Every one suffers either from his pride or sinfulness. Even a calamity, left alone for three years, may turn into a fortune. No danger of a stone being burned. Even a running horse needs the whip. An old man's cold water i.e., out of place, unreasonable. The Japanese nearly always wash their hands and faces with hot water, and old men invariably do so. For an old man, then, to wash with cold water, or for one to bring him cold water, is decidedly mal a propos. Birds flock on the thick branches. The fox borrowed the tiger's power. Giving wings to a tiger. Dark as the lantern's base, while the light streams far abroad. (People must go to a distance to learn the news about things at home. This is emphatically true about residents in Japan who read home newspapers.) Heaven does not kill a man. (No one is utterly crushed by calam- ity.) A curse comes not from a god with whom one has no concern. (Men are not to be punished by a god of whom they have never heard.) Like jumping into the fire with a bundle of wood. (Especially used of a small nation going to war against a large one, only to be " gob- bled up.") Having inquired seven times, believe the common report. Even the worm that eats smart-weed, to his taste. (" Every one to his liking." " No accounting for taste.") Was it a wife comparing the attentions of her husband before and after marriage who coined this proverb, or heaved it as a sigh ? It tells a sad tale of a woman who has borne mother-pain and marriage cares only to be rewarded by coldness. In Japan, the unmarried girls only wear the red petticoat, which peeps out so prettily at times, or JAPANESE PROVERBS. 507 glistens through the summer dress of silken crape. After marriage, they doff this virginal garment ; and as it was with Whittier's, so with the Japanese Maud Muller, "care and sorrow and childbirth -pain" leave their trace on the once blooming face and willowy form, in which her partner no longer delights. Alas ! what a tale does this proverb tell : Love leaves with the red petticoat ! When people say "as ugly as sin," meaning thereby as ugly as Milton's hag, and suppose that the blind bard's conception of ugliness eclipses every other, they have, most evidently, never looked upon the face of the Japanese lord of Jigoku, or the hells, of which the Bud- dhists count one hundred and twenty-eight. To say that his face is hideous or describe it in adjectives, is to damn with faint praise the native imagination that could conceive such a terror. What I mean by reference to this demon, who is called Ema, is to give point to the Japanese version of our homely reference to the man who will have his fun, but " must pay the fiddler." The proverb by which every steady-going Japanese exults at the end of the fast and, perhaps fine- looking young man who sports on credit, is, When the time comes to settle up, you'll see Ema's face. Which does the following recall the ostrich, which, hiding its head, thinks itself safe, or the youth who reads ghost-stories till his blood curdles, but who, by covering up in the bedclothes, feels safe ? The proverb, The head is concealed, but the back is exposed, is ap- plied by the Japanese to all who, to flee from spooks, and to guard against lightning, hide in the dark or under their coverlets. Here is an exquisite bit of philosophy, which shows that " travels at one's fireside," or what Emerson has taught of seeing at home all that travelers behold abroad, are not strange ideas in Japan : The poet, though he does not go abroad, sees all the renowned places. Some one has said of the sage : " He keeps his child's heart." All know Wordsworth's line, which is approximated in this : The child of three years keeps his heart till he is sixty. The idea contained in the saying, " Talk of an angel, and you will hear the rustling of his wings," or " Speak of the Devil," etc., is con- fined only to the genus Homo in the Japanese proverb : Talk of a person, and his shadow appears. Sydney Smith condensed a volume of dietetic hygiene in his exact statement that " Some men dig their graves with their teeth." The complement of that is found in this : Disease enters by the mouth ; or, The mouth is the door of disease. 508 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. The following are all in the form of a simile : Like walking on thin ice (like a politician before election - day). To give a thief a key. Like scratching the foot with the shoe on (can not reach the seat of trouble). Like placing a child near a well. One hair of nine oxen (small fraction). Like the crow that imitated the cormorant (he tried to dive in the water, and was drowned). Like spitting against the wind (said of a wicked slander against a good man). The decree of the mikado is like perspiration ; it can never go back (" Firm as the laws of the Medes and Persians "). Proverbs, like certain kinds of money, vary in the amount and ra- pidity of their circulation. A class of Japanese proverbs, such as " The frog in the well knows not the great ocean," which lay almost forgotten in the national memory for centuries, has come forth, and is now the circulating medium of those who bandy the retorts applica- ble to old fogies and old fogyism. The conservatives who impede or oppose reform in Japan, claiming that Japan is all-sufficient in herself, are usually styled " frogs " by the young blades who have been abroad and seen the world beyond Japan, who also refer to the past as the time when that country was " in a well." There are several other proverbs like that of the " well-frog ;" but they depend for their interest upon references to things not easily ex- plained by mere translation. The " great ocean," however, mirrors it- self in the Japanese mind ever as the symbol of immensity. Thus : A drop of the ocean is our " drop in the bucket." To dam up the great ocean with the hand. The ocean does not mind the dust (a great man lives down slander). The ocean, being wide, can not be all seen at once (a great subject can not be treated fairly by a bigot). To dip out the water of the ocean with a small shell. The Japanese have a lively sense of the iniquity of ingratitude: Better nourish a dog than an unfaithful servant. To have one's hand bitten by the dog it feeds. That paternal solicitude is not unknown in the land of Great Peace, is evinced by these : Childbirth is less painful than anxiety about children. It is easier to beget children than to care for them. Catch- ing a thief to find him your own son. Don't trust a pigeon to carry grain. (Don't send one man to bring back another from a place of pleasure, lest he also be tempted.) If in a hurry, go round. (" The longest way round is the shortest way home." " The more hurry, the less speed.") The spawn of frogs will become but frogs. JAPANESE PROVERBS. 509 By saving one cash (one one-hundredth of a cent) lose a hundred (one tempo). Cash wise, tempo foolish. Only a tailor's (dyer's) promise. The walls have ears. Pitchers have spouts. Deaf men speak loudly. There is no medicine for a fool. You can not rivet a nail in potato custard. He wishes to do both to eat the poisoned delicacy and live. By searching the old, learn the new. Once I asked some of our students whether there was any Japanese proverb which answered to the old English one, " Happy is the man whose father has gone to the devil." Several of them answered with this familiar one: Jigoku no sata mo, Jcane shidai the tortures of hell are graded according to the amount of money one has ; or, briefly and literally, even hell's judgments are according to money. The Buddhists, like the mediaeval priests in Europe, sell their masses at a high price. Happy the dying rich man, but woe betide the poor ! In most Japanese Buddhist temples, as in Roman churches in Europe, a box hangs up to receive cash for the mutual benefit of the damned and the priests especially the latter. The rat-catching cat hides her claws. If you keep a tiger, you will have nothing but trouble. An ugly woman shuns the looking-glass. Poverty leads to theft. To aim a gun in the darkness. In vain. The more words, the less sense. Like the peeping of a blind man through a hedge. A charred stick is easily kindled. Who steals money, is killed ; who steals a country, is a king. If you do not enter the tiger's den, you can not get her cub. In mending the horn, he killed the ox. The best thing in traveling is a companion ; in the world, kindness. To draw off water to his own field. (Most of the fields in Japan are irrigated rice-fields. Water is always a desideratum. This proverb is like our " Feather his own nest.") Famous swords are made of iron scrapers. Like learning to swim in a field. Though the magnet attracts iron, it can not attract stone. Here is something almost Shakspearian : The gods have their seat on the brow of a just man. 33 510 THE MIKADO'S EMPIRE. If you say to him " gently," lie will say " slam." A sixth-day camellia. (A great flower festival comes on the fifth of a certain month. To bring your flower on the sixth day is to bring it a day after the fair.) Now sinking, now floating. (" Such is life.") Poke a canebrake, and a snake will crawl out. Like carrying a cup brimful. To feed with honey ; i. 8 170,572 Shizoku (samurai of high- er grade) Sotsu (samurai of lower Chishi (retired samurai).. Priests (Buddhists) Shinto officials Common people Population of Saghalin 6,326,571 Residents (from Summa- ry of Foreign Trade of H. B. M. Legation, Au- gust, 1ST5) : Americans and non- British Europeans. British Chinese . Males. 14 and under 4,590,915 15 to 21 2,030,051) 21 to 40 .- 5,005,747) 40 to 60 3,655,564) 60 to 80 1,435,507) AG Females. 4,465,393 ES. SO and above Males. Females. 75,530 118,248 1 844 1 890 6,638,063 Total .. .. . 16 796,158 16 314 687 5,091,070 Total population . . .. 33.110,825 OCCUPATIONS, TRADES (ADULT POPULATION), ETC. Males. Farmers 8,004,014 Artisans 521,295 Merchants 819,782 Miscellaneous occupations 1,218,266 Females. 6,866,412 180,121 489,409 911,256 Total. 14,870,426 701,410 1,309,191 2,129,522 Total 10,563,357 8,447,198 19,010,555 Maimed, blind, deaf, dnmb, etc 63,759 Criminals in prison 2,311 Criminals in penal settlements 962 Criminals at hard labor 2,726 Females. 37,828 119 NOTES AND APPENDICES. 623 CENSUS ACCORDING TO PROVINCES.* Province*. Houses. Population. Provinces. Houses. Population. (" 1. Yamashiro.. 108,030 429,030 i5. Hoki 45,121 174,158 a 2. Yam a to 3. Kawachi.... 95,866 53,168 418,326 237,678 ^ 6. Idzumo 7. Ivvaini 77,493 61,626 340,042 259,611 2 4. Idzumi 50,853 209 174 2 i 8 Oki 5,943 28,531 5. Settsu f 1 I "a 197,137 "1 415 729,444 07 164 1. Harima 156,931 50 609 635,791 215 602 2. Iso 3 Shima 126,456 8 974 585,988 37 439 I 3. Bizen 4 Bitchiu 83,362 90 769 33l|s78 396 880 4. Owari 175,315 727 437 >> 99 168 456 461 5. Mikawa 110,S37 482,931 6. Aki . . . 152,645 667,717 3 6. Tutumi 7. Simiga 88,945 71,735 414,928 368,505 05 7. Suwo i 8. Nagato .. . 113,658 75,5S4 497,034 330,502 . ,S. Kai 75,793 360 068 136 964 613 925 ; | 9 Idzu 30 570 149 749 >C 2 Awaji 34 460 164 939 H 10. Salami 69,377 356 638 3 Awa 125 704 586 046 11. Musashi 434,232 1,943,211 -i4 < 4. Sauuki 125,662 559,712 12. Awa 27,535 154 6S3 cS 5 lyo 171,020 775 974 13. Kadzusa 82,973 419,969 fc 6. Tosa 112,447 524,511 14. Shimosa 115. Hitachi f i. Onri 121,776 124.752 136,221 645,029 648,674 576 554 " 1. Chikuzen ... 2. Ohikugo 87,139 77,254 66,385 411,175 391,535 314 574 2. Mino 143, S86 660,896 T) 4. Bungo 120,250 562,318 3. Hida 18,555 98 378 03 5 Hizen 229,441 1 074 461 4. Shinauo 200,968 919 115 M 6 Hio'o 192,752 953,037 . 5. Kodztike 121,010 507,235 02 7. Hiuga 90,412 376,527 -6 0. Shimotsuke . 96,068 498,520 8. Ozuini 37,235 172,877 a , 7. Ivaki .. 60 251 34S 60S 136,467 633 379 C-l 8. Iwashiro.... 9. Riknzen 10. Rikuchiu.... 11. Mutsn 78,580 88,129 92,658 S3 868 427,933 534,60!) 570,521 473 244 irl f 1. Ishikari . . . ! ! 2. Shiribesbi... 3. Iburi 1,896 4,793 1,614 18,392 6,003 19,098 6,251 75 830 12. Uzen 97,578 560 984 T3 5 Hitaka 1,601 6,574 / o 1 113. Ugo r 1. Wakaaa 2. Echizen 3. Kaga 115,939 16,994 96,568 95027 630,036 85,487 461,032 403 357 Hokka 6. Tokachi 7. Kushiro 8. Nemuro 9 Chishima. 288 407 244 103 1,464 l 1,734 832 43-7 *c - 1 !4. Noto 5. Etchiu 6. Echigo... 51,539 138,829 263,C-*2 262,486 615,663 1,368,428 10. Kitami (11. Teshiwo ( 1. Tki 486 569 8,757 1,511 1,567 33,010 4 s 7. Sado. 1. Tamba 2. Tango 3 Taj i nil 22,259 68,581 57,071 40 769 103,098 295,359 160,932 187 086 ( 2. Tsushima . . . Liu Kin Saghalin 6,302 27,167 Not known. 29,684 166,789 2,358 i 4. Inaba. !!!!!.' 37 367 162 842 r fotal 7 107 841 33,110,825 02 Total Population. Kinai 2,023,652 TOkaido 7,392,411 Tdzando 6,816,563 Total Population. Hokurikudo 3,299,551 Sanindo 1,608,561 Sauyodo 3,431,865 Total Population. Nankaidd 3,225,107 Saikaido 4,889,883 Hokkaido 121,301 The Bureau of Official Statistics in the Nai Mu Sho has charge of the census, and the registers of births, marriages, and deaths. The result of the second enumeration of the population of Japan following that given above, which was completed after two years' labor, is as follows : Total population, 33,300,675 souls ; of whom 16,891,729 are males, and 16,408,946 are females. This shows an increase over the former census of 189,850; of whom 95,571 are males, and 94,279 are fe- males. During the year 1874, 290,836 males and 278,198 females were born ; and 108,292 males and 197,312 females died. The number of kuazoku, or nobles, was 2829. The number of shinto officials was 76,119; of Buddhist religious, 207,669; and of nuns or priestesses, 9326. ' See pages 74 and 84. The numerals to the left of the province refer to their order on the map of Dai Nippon, which faces page 17. 624 NOTES AND APPENDICES. MINES AND MINERAL RESOURCES. BY far the best statements of Japan's mineral wealth are presented in the Report of Mr. F. R. Plunkett, of the British Legation, to Sir Harry Parkes, and published in The Japan Weekly Mail of January 27th, 1876. Most of the matter given below is from official data. "In almost every portion of Japan are found ores of some kind, and there is scarcely a district in which there are not traces of mines having been worked. Most of these, however, are abandoned, or worked in a very slovenly manner." The methods still pursued are, with few exceptions, the same as those followed in ancient times. Mines are still attacked by adits. The Japanese hardly ever sink a shaft ; and as the water gains upon the miners, the mine is abandoned. No mines can be worked without special license of the Government, and foreigners are excluded from any and all participation in the mining industry of the country. No foreigner can hold a share in a mine, nor lend money on the security of a mine. Foreigners may, however, be employed as engineers, and a number are already in such employment. The mining laws of Japan are based on those of Prussia and Spain. Twenty- three foreigners, mostly Europeans, the superintendent being Mr. H. Godfrey, are in the service of the Mining Department ; and a number of natives have begun to study the modern systems of engineering, both practically at home, in America and Europe, and in the Imperial College of Engineering in Tokio. The right to work a mine does not belong to the owner of the soil ; for in Ja- pan possession of the surface does not carry with it the right to the mineral wealth below. That belongs by law to the Government, which exacts from the worker of the ores a varying royalty, and a surface rent of one yen per eighteen thousand square feet, for all mines except iron and coal, which pay half the sum. The ordinary land tax is also charged to the miner. The Dutch and Portuguese in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries exported from Japan precious metals as follows : By the Portuguese, gold and silver 59,500,000 By the Dutch gold, 15,482,250 ; silver, 28,000,000 43,482,000 Nearly 103,000,000, or $500,000,000. From 1609 to 1858, 206,253 tons of copper were exported by the Dutch. The yearly average of Dutch trade at Deshima was 660,000. Gold was first discovered in Japan A.D. 749. As Japan was closed to the world, the gold remained in the country, and augmented every year. Its abundance was thus no test of the relative wealth of the country. The relative value of gold to silver was, until 1860, as 6 to 1. Japan seems to be fairly well, but not richly, pro- vided with mineral wealth. Below are tables from Mr. Plunkett's Report, which relates only to Hondo, Kiushiu, and Shikoku. 1. MINES WORKING BY LEASE UP TO 1874. Gold mines 55 Gold and silver mines 3 Silver 13 Copper mines (containing silver) 2 Silver and copper mines C9 Silver, copper, and lead 4 Silver and lead 6 Copper mines 126 Copper, lead, and silver 1 Copper and tin 1 Copper and lead T Copper and lead, antimony, and arsenic mines 2 Iron mines 9 Iron sand 416 Tin mines 2 Tin and lead 1 Lead 11 Lead and copper 2 Plumbago 1 NOTES AND APPENDICES. 625 Copperas 8 Antimony 2 Yellow realgar, arsenic, and lead mine. 1 Arsenic mine 1 Cobalt 14 Agate 3 Quartz 9 Marble quarries (spotted) 6 Marble quarries (white) 3 Marble quarries (striped) 1 Steatite mines 5 Flint 7 Mica 2 Amber 1 Sulphur 21 Realgar (orpiment) 1 Manganese 1 Alum 18 Salt mines 2 Fire-clay. 8 Kaolin 110 Mineral resin 1 Coal mines 708 Petroleum 197 Total number of leases granted 1856 2. LIST OF MINES WORKING FOR EXPLORATION. Gold mines 28 Gold, silver, copper, and lead mine 1 Gold sand (alluvial gold) 2 Silver mines 31 Silver and copper 24 Silver, copper, and lead mines 2 Silver and lead 1 Lead mine (containing silver) 1 Quicksilver mine 1 Copper mines 187 Copper and lead 13 Copper, tin, and lead 2 Iron 15 Iron sand 12 Stream tin mines 2 Stream tin and lead 1 Lead 29 Ochre... 1 Smoky quartz 1 Marble quarries (white) 5 Marble quarries (striped) 2 Agate mines 4 Steatite 9 Flint 3 Rock crystal 9 Amethyst 1 Quartz 1 Sulphur 5 Copperas (sulphate of iron) 1 Salt 1 Antimony 4 Coal 163 Petroleum 77 Total number of mines working for exploration 637 ESTIMATE OF MINERAL PRODUCTION OF JAPAN IN 1874.* Mineral. Total Produced. Price Each. Total Value. Total Value. CoaL 390 000 tons $1 950 000 .398 125 Os Od Copper 3 000 " 300 " 900*000 183 750 Silver 2 600 kwamme 150 " 390 000 79 625 Gold 100 " 2 500 u 250 000 51 041 13 4 Iron 5 000 tons 30 " 150 000 30 625 Coal-oil 575 000 eho 23 000 4 695 16 8 Lead 175 tons 115 yen 21 275 4 343 12 11 Tin . . 71 " 400 " 3 000 612 10 $3,687,275 752,818 12 11 ACTUAL PRODUCTION OF COAL IN JAPAN IN 1847. Tong Takashima 72,430 Mieke 66,324 Imabuku district 32,667 Taku 22,198 ^aratsu, in Hizen Hirado Rest of Japan, estimated at 74,933 Total 390,000 * See in The Engineering and Mining Journal, New York, Dec. 2d-30th, 1876, an exhaust- ive article, with map, on " The Mineral Wealth of Japan," by Henry S. Mnnroe, E. M. 626 NOTES AND APPENDICES. The total coal production of Japan is thus put down at 390,000 tons, of which no less than 315,067 tons come from the consular district of Nagasaki. ESTIMATE OF THE PROBABLE EXTENT OF THE COAL-FIELDS IN KIUSHIU, NEAR NAGASAKI. Takashima 133 acres. Mieke 16 (?) square miles. Imabuku district 70 " Taku 36 Karatsu district 40 Hirado " 120 " Total. The total exportation of coal from Nagasaki has increased in a wonderful pro- portion of late years ; for whereas in 1866 it was only 10,185 tons, and in 1867 36,170 tons, it amounted in 1870 to 56,200 tons; 1871, to 102,700 tons; 1872, to 137,499 tons. Near Tokio there is a coal field thirty miles long by seven and a half miles wide. In Kii and in Echigo are also large coal fields. For lack of good roads, these are nearly useless. A geological survey of Japan has not yet been made, and the Government does not yet possess a correct map of the empire. In 1874, 107,243 gallons of excellent petroleum were produced. With American methods of drilling, pumping, and refinery, the yield and area of trial are increasing. Copper is of very good quality, and found in numberless places. Ordinary ores yield from two and a half to twelve per cent, pure metal, always free from anti- mony and arsenic. In 1874, two hundred mines turned out only three thousand tons. Foreign machinery and methods would in all probability greatly increase this yield. Ozaka is the chief depot for copper. In the export of copper, old idols, bells, Buddhas, etc., etc., figure largely. VALUE OF COPPER, ETC., EXPORTED FROM JAPAN FROM 1870 TO 1873. Year. Yokohama. Hiogo and Ozaka. Nagasaki. Total in Mexi- can Dollars. Total. 1870 18T1 1872 1873 $25,250 107,471 443,378 206,945 $117,280 288,504 896,992 490,025 $1,463 20,655 12,740 68,845 $143,993 416,630 1,353,110 765,815 29,998 10s. lOd. 86,797 18 4 281,897 18 4 159,545 2 6 The following is an estimate of the average cost of producing a ton of Japanese copper according to the present native methods, viz., 100 yen per ton, of which Per Cent. Cost of ore 23 Explorations 3 Subsequent treatment of ores, viz. : Labor 46 Material . IS Superintendence 10 100 GOLD AND SILVER. In 1874, 21,666 pounds of silver, 833 pounds of gold, were produced in Japan from 346 silver and 89 gold mines. At four places, foreign engineers work the mines. The Sado mines, it is said by a traveler to that island, cost $75,000 to work them in one year (1874), but produce only $60,000 worth of gold and silver. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 627 Probably the expense of improved machinery and tram-ways was not taken Into account. The cost of production of gold is $2 for every 58J- grains, and for silver $96 for 85 pounds. Next to coal, iron is most commonly found in many varieties of ore. In Hita- chi, a bed of iron-stone, eighteen to eight feet in thickness, is worked by English engineers with blast furnaces. Magnetic iron ore is very abundant; heretofore the cost of production of this ore has been nine dollars per ton. The total out- put in Japan in 1873 was but three thousand tons. The future yield may be vast- ly increased. Lead is found in twenty provinces, but only one hundred and eighty-five tons were produced in 1874. In 1873, $84,693 worth of lead was im- ported from abroad. The tin mines in Satsuma, Bungo, and Suwo are not worked. Quicksilver in Hizen and Rikuchiu await miners. Sulphur is abundant, but most of that mined comes from Awomori. THE HOKKAIDO. The geological reconnoissances and surveys of Yezo have been under the su- pervision of American engineers. Professors Blake and R. Pumpelly, who were engaged for one year by the bakufu, visited Yezo in 1862. (See "Across America and Asia," by R. Pumpelly, New York: Leypoldt & Holt.) They made a re- port, and introduced blasting and some other improvements. In 1871, Thomas Antisell, M.D., and, in 1873, Professor Benjamin J. Lyman, and Henry S. Munroe, E.M., all on the staff of the Department of the Development of Yezo, made exam- inations. From their reports, coal and iron sand seem to be abundant, well dis- tributed, and of fair quality; gold and silver occur in small quantities; copper, zinc, and lead are found, but not in rich deposits. Petroleum issues in a few places. The result of their labors seems to show that Yezo is poor in mineral wealth, except iron and coal, in which it is very rich. The outcome of the high- ly creditable labors of these gentlemen will be a vast saving to the Japanese of money for useless mining. From the nature of the case, the limited time, and small number of the staff, the greater part of the interior of Yezo and the Kurile Islands is as yet unexplored. For maps, reports, etc., see "Reports of General Capron and his Foreign Assistants," Tokio, 1875. The undoubted wealth of the Hokkaido is in timber, fisheries, furs, and agricultural products. LAND AND AGRICULTURE. THE exact area of Japan is not known, though computed at from 140,000 to 150,000 square miles, with a population of from 200 to 210 persons to a square mile. The number of acres under cultivation is about 9,000,000, or one-tenth of the entire area, supporting a population of 3 persons to the acre. Not one- fourth of the fertile area of Japan is yet under cultivation. Immense portions of good grass land and fertile valleys in Hondo, and almost the whole of Yezo, await the farmer's plow and seed, to return rich harvests. For centuries the agrarian art has been at a stand-still. Population and acreage have increased; but the crop, in bulk and quantity, remains the same. The state records of lye*- yasu's time give 29,000,000 koku as the yield of the empire. The present esti- mate of an average crop is still under 30,000,000 koku. In spade-husbandry, the Japanese have little to learn. In stock-rearing, fruit- growing, and the raising of hardier grains than rice, they need much instruction. On the best soils they raise two crops of wheat, rice, other grains, or root vege- NOTES AND APPENDICES. tables. Fifty bushels to the acre is a good average, though much of the land never gives so large a return. The great need in Japanese farming is live stock. The people are slowly changing their diet of fish and vegetables, and becoming meat-eaters a return to their ancient pre-Buddhistic habits. Material for the new food supply and for the raw material of shoes and clothing must be provided for. At present, Japan imports 55,000,000 pounds of woolens and mixed goods, which in time she may dispense with. Her pastures are capable, judging from known data, of keeping 28,000,000 sheep, yielding an average weight of five pounds per fleece. Sheep farms, by fertilizing the soil, will prepare it for mul- berry and tea plantations, thus increasing the supply of silk, and bringing in a train of new industries. Hitherto, human manure has been almost exclusively used, costing twelve dollars per acre. The system of land tenure and taxation has differed in ancient and modern times. Theoretically, all the soil belongs to the mikado. Anciently, the land was divided into squares, which were subdivided into nine smaller squares, eight of which were cultivated, each by one man, and the ninth reserved for the mi- kado was worked by the nine collectively. The tan is still the unit of meas- urement. Each man held two tan, or half an acre. In time, this system fell out of use. Farmers in debt would sell their land to a richer one, and thus gradually the land became, in actuality, the people's by an ownership approaching fee sim- ple. The land-owners of the present day have either bought their holdings or have reclaimed their lands; and no one has now the power of taking these away from them. The peasants, holding their land as absolute property, are easily governed ; but as soon as an attempt is made to touch their land, redistribute it, or shift ownership, the passive peasants, who submit like children to finan- cial or political despotism, rise in rebellion to violence and blood. The taxes, which were very light under the ancient mikado's rule, increased greatly under the dual system, and under feudalism were extremely onerous. In Hideyoshi's time, the Government tax was two-fifths of the crop; in the Toku- gawa period, often fifty per cent. The landlord took twenty-five per cent, for rent ; so that the farmer got but one-fourth of the crop for his labor, seeds, and profits. In a very bad year, the whole crop went for taxes ; and the farmers then, becoming paupers, were fed from the public store by the "benevolence" (!) of the rulers. The system of land-holding and taxation varied in almost every dai- mio's territory, often in villages near each other. The first attempt of the mika- do's Government, in 1872, to correct the abuses of ages of feudalism, and to place the system of land taxes and tenure on one uniform national basis, led to many local insurrections. Bands of peasants in certain sections, jealous of local rights, wedded to long custom, knowing little, and suspecting much, of the policy of the rulers in the distant capital, resisted what was an act of beneficence and jus- tice to millions of people in the whole empire. They were easily subdued. The tax on the soil is the chief source of Government revenue. Four classes of land good, medium, inferior, and bad are reckoned. Paddy, or rice-land, is worth five times as much as arable land, and an investment in rice -land pays about eight per cent, per annum. The peasant's houses are rarely built in the fields, but on yashiki land, paying a slightly higher tax, and the rural population is thus clustered entirely in hamlets or villages. The true wealth of Japan consists in her agricultural, and not in her mineral or manufacturing, resources. The Government and intelligent classes seem to be alive to this fact. Many of the samurai and nobles have begun farming. The Nai Mu Sho has begun a survey of the empire, with special relation to the re- sources and capabilities of the soil. A number of American gentlemen of experi- NOTES AND APPENDICES. 629 ence have been engaged as theoretical and practical fanners and stock-breeders. In Tokio, model and experimental farms, gardens of trial and acclimation, cat- tle-runs and plantations, and training schools and colleges have been established, in which the upper class of land-holders have taken much interest ; nearly two hundred acres of many varieties of grass are being cultivated and tested; a large number of foreign works on stock-raising and agriculture have been translated into Japanese ; two thousand cattle and ten thousand sheep have been introduced from the United States and Australia. About eight hundred beeves are now slaughtered per week in Tokio to supply meat food, and six thousand cattle were sold to natives in Kobe" in 1875. In the Kai Taku Shi, farms of two hundred and fifteen acres in Tokio, arranged under General Capron's superintendence, the excellent breeds of horses, sheep, cattle, and pigs, in spite of all drawbacks first felt from inexperienced keepers and dis- ease, are thriving and multiplying. Over one hundred thousand young apple, pear, and other fruit trees, from American grafts, are set out, and yielding well. Improved implements are also made on the farm-smithy, from American models, by Japanese skilled hands. Besides making its own tools, the Nai Mu Sho dis- tributes seeds, cuttings, models, etc., throughout the country, and the Kai Taku Shi, in the Hokkaido. Model farms have also been established in Sapporo and Hakodate. It has been demonstrated that Yezo is capable of yielding good crops of hardy cereals and vegetables, that Japan is a country eminently adapted to support sheep and the finest breeds of cattle, and has a climate suited to develop to per- fection cereals, leguminous plants, and artificial grasses, such as red and white clover, alfalas, and the rye family. Time and steady perseverance are, however, needed before national success is achieved. It is gratifying to know that, in the improvement of this mother of all arts, Americans have been the pioneers, and have done so much and so well. Next to the uprooting of superstition and gross paganism by pure religion and education, there is nothing more important for Japan than the development of her virgin land and the improvement of her an- cient agricultural resources. For detailed information, see The Japan Mail of November 2od, and December 5th, 1874 ; F. O. Adams's " History of Japan," vol. ii., chap. xii. ; and "Reports of General Capron and his Foreign Assistants," To- kio, 1875. MINT AND PUBLIC WORKS. The Ozaka mint is a series of fine and substantial buildings, in the Roman style of architecture, equipped with twelve first-class English coining-presses, thirty-seven melting-furnaces, and a sulphuric and nitric acid manufactory. The mint makes its own tools, cuts its own dies, and performs the usual bullion, as- saying, refining, and analyzing business of a mint in other countries. The estab- lishment was organized by Major T. W. Kinder, who was the efficient superin- tendent from 1870 to 1875. To his energy and ability are due the success and reputation of the mint, which it devolves upon the Japanese to maintain. Three hundred and eighty natives and several Englishmen are employed in it. The coins minted are gold, silver, and copper, and of the same weight, fineness, de- nomination, and decimal division as the American coinage. They are round, with milled edges. They are stamped with the devices of the rising sun, coiled dragons, legend of date and denomination, in Chinese and Roman numerals, 630 NOTES AND APPENDICES. chrysanthemum, and Paulownia imperlalis leaves and flower. Japanese preju- dices are against the idea of stamping the mikado's image on their coins. This dislike will probably pass away before many years. From 1871 to 1875, the num- ber of pieces coined was 136,885,541, their value being $62,421,744. The denomi- nations are fourteen : five being gold, five silver, and four copper. The average metal money now in circulation is nearly two dollars per head of the population, and of gold about seven-eighths of that sum per head. The coasts of Japan, once the most dangerous, are now comparatively safe by night and day. The statistics of 1873 (below the maximum in 1876) show that there are thirty-one light-houses, two light-ships, five buoys, three beacons, and two steam tenders in operation. Over three million dollars have been expended by the Light-house Bureau (To Dai Rio). All the modern improvements dictated by advanced science and mechanical skill have been made use of. The coast of Japan now compares favorably with any in Europe. Mr. R. H. Brunton, the cap- able foreign superintendent, was in the Government service from 1868 to 1876. The railway from Yokohama to Tokio, eighteen miles long, carried, in 1873, 1,435,656 passengers ; and, in 1874, 1,592,314 passengers. The railway from Ozaka to Kobe", twenty - two miles long, began operations in 1873. The railway from Ozaka to Kioto is nearly finished, and will probably open in autumn, 1876. From Kioto the road is surveyed to Tsuruga. Steam-transit lines are also projected from Kioto into Kii, from Kioto to Tokio and thence to Awomori. The excel- lence and convenience of transit by sea, and the fact that the mass of the people follow the agricultural life and habits, more than the lack of capital, will delay the completion of these enterprises for years. The great need of Japan is good wagon roads : comparatively few of these exist. Telegraphs are now completed from Nagasaki to Sapporo, in Yczo. The main line connects the extremities, through the centre of the empire. A number of branch lines are also in operation. All the kens will probably soon be in electric communication with the capital. Two submarine cables cross the Sea of Japan to Asia, and two wires the Straits of Shimonoseki and Tsugaru. The material used is English, and the Wheatstone system and katagana letters are used. All the above are Government enterprises and property. The Public Works Depart- ment also has charge of mines (see page 602), dock-yards, and foundries. A num- ber of steam paper -making, weaving, spinning, sawing, planing, printing, type- casting, and other establishments, representing a great variety of new industries, are being established by natives with foreign assistance. Many of these are assist- ed or encouraged by the Government. SILK CROP OF 1875. THE following notes of raw silk arriving in Yokohama for export in 1875 will show the principal localities in which this staple is produced: In Hitachi, 139,000 pounds ; Shinano, 237,000; Iwaki and Rikuzen, 210,000; Musashi, 175,000; Kodzuke, 70,000; Hida, 21,000; Echizen, 17,000 ; Echigo, 12,500; various places, 18,900 ; total, 1,190,000 pounds. Only a certain portion of silk raised in Japan is spared for export. The total export of silk from 1862 to 1874 was 12,567,000 pounds, or 1,048,000 pounds per annum. The percentage of silk production in the world is-Italy, 37; China, 36; France, 8; Bengal, 7; Japan, 6; Spain, 2; Persia and the Levant, 4. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 631 WEIGHTS AND MEASURES. LONG OR TIMBER MEASURE. THE unit of timber measure is the shaku, which is equal to the English foot, and is divided into tenths (sun), hundredths (&M), and thousandths (rin). This foot is called the kane-shaku (metal foot). 1 rin = .012 English inch. 1 bu = .12 " " or one-tenth of a "Japanese foot." 1 sun = 1.2 " inches, or one " Japanese inch.''. 1 shaku = 12 " or ^ai Japanese, inches. 3 " =1 yard. 6 " = 1 ken, or fathom. 60 ken = 1 cho. 36 chO = 1 ri, or 2.45 English miles. Nice comparisons of Japanese metal measures in use in Tokio have shown the iron carpenter's measure, which is bent at a right angle (kiyoku-shaku, or bent- foot), to be equal to 0.305 metre, or 0. 11" 11'", or .994 of an English foot. (See "Tables of Comparisons of Japanese, English, and French Measures, and of Useful Properties of Materials, compiled for the Engineering Classes of Kaisei- gakko," by Prof. R. H. Smith, Tokio, 1876.) CLOTH MEASURE. The cloth shaku (" whale-foot," because made of whalebone, or bamboo) is three inches longer than the foot of timber measure. It is also decimally divided. 1 rin = .015 English inch. 1 bu = .15 " 1 sun = 1.5 " inches. 1 shaku = 15 " " A tan, or piece of cloth, varies in length from 25 to 30 or more feet. A hiki is 2 tan, or about 52 feet. SQUARE OR SUPERFICIAL MEASURE. The unit of this measure is the square ken of long measure, or 36 English square feet x or 3.2779 metres, called a tsubo. 1 tsubo = 3G square feet, English. 1 sc = SOtsnbo, or 1,080 square feet. Itan = 300 " or 10,SOO 1 cho = 3000 " or 108,000 " 1210 tsubo = 1 acre. A tan is the usual size of a rice-field, 20 tsubo in length, 15 in breadth. A s6 is a rectangle of 6 tsubo in length, and 5 in breadth. A cho is 60 tsubo in length, and 50 in breadth. In Japanese houses, rooms are measured by, and their area spoken of, in mats (tatami), which are made of rice straw tightly bound together, and covered on the upper surface with matting; each piece being 6 feet long, 3 feet wide, and 2 inches thick, the edges being neatly bound with cloth. A mat is half a tsubo, and 2 mats make 1 tsubo. A tsubo is also called a pw, or po. MEASURES OF CAPACITY. The unit is the masu or sho, a wooden box, usually with a transverse bar of iron across the top for a handle. It is used for measuring both dry and liquid BUD- 632 NOTES AND APPENDICES. stances, such as rice, beans, salt, grain, and soy, oil, vinegar, sake", etc. It is decimally divided into go, shaku, sai, satsu, and ke. "The go bearing the Gov- ernment stamp measures just 2.50 inches square by 1.75 inches deep, and, conse- quently, contains 10.9375 cubic inches. The sho would then be 109.375 cubic inches, the to 1093.75 cubic inches, and the koku 10,937.50 cubic inches. Accord- ing to this, the koku equals 39.447 imperial gallons, or 4.93 bushels, or a little less than 5 imperial bushels, and the to a little less than half a bushel." DR. J. C. HEPBURN, in The Japan Nail, November 25th, 1876, in answer to criticisms made upon the statement in his dictionary (and in many books) that a koku con- tains 5.13 bushels. 10 shaku = 1 gO. 10 go =1 sho. 10 sho = 1 to. 10 to =1 koku. Go-go is the name of a measure of 5 go. A tawara is a sack or bag made of straw for holding rice, charcoal, or grain. A Myo is a straw bale or bag, contain- ing about 2}- bushels, or half a koku, for holding rice, which is always stored and handled in hiyo. In the Government granaries, as the salaries of officials, or in allegory, or the symbols of art, the full hiyo is the emblem of wealth. MEASURES OP WEIGHT. Weights are divided on the decimal scale, with the exception of the kin or "catty." The unit is the momme, which, carefully weighed by Dr. J. C. Hep- burn in November, 1876, is equal to 57 grains troy. The precious metals are also weighed by this scale. 10 mo = 1 rin, or .51 grain troy. 10 rin = 1 fun, or 5.T " 10 fun = 1 momme, or 57 grains troy. 100 momme = 100 momme, or " hiyaku-me." Weights of the precious metals are expressed in me or "mace," up to 1,000,000. Ten momme" or "mace" of silver make the imaginary coin, the "tael." A kin is 160 momme", equal to about 1% pounds avoirdupois. MONEY. THE only officially recognized currency now in Japan is that founded on the values of the new coinage of the imperial mint at Ozaka of which the unit is the yen. 10 riu =1 sen, or cent. 10 sen = 1 yen, or dollar. The old money paper, gold, silver, copper, brass, bronze, and iron is still in circulation, though it is gradually being withdrawn. In popular language, the terms hiyaku (hundred), fun, momme, and even rid (4 momme", 5 fun), do not rep- resent any coin, but are used to denote values. They are expressions belonging to the period when money was computed by weight only. I have in my posses- sion several ancient stamped lumps of uncoined silver, which formerly circulated as money in Echizen. The names of the old coins and paper money, satsu or kitte, are zeni, shiu, bu, and rid. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 633 Names. Value in Mon. Value in Cents. Rttnarks. Mon . . 1 0.01 {Round cast -iron coin?, rusty, often chipped and cracked. Of fame size and bearin**' Shi-mon 4 0.04 same Chinese characters as Chinese " cash " Jiu-mon 10 0.1 of the sarue denomination. (Of bronze. Size of an English farthing. -< Smooth back. Raised Chinese characters on Jiu-go-inou . . 15 0.15 ( front. /Round. Larger than the above. Waved lines Ni-jiu-mon Tempo. 20 SO 0.2 8 ( on the back. Chinese characters. (Round. Larger and thicker than the above. ( More brassy. Chinese characters. Is-shiu 625 6.25 Oblon" paper card (See pa^e 425 ) Ni-shiu 1 250 12 5 Bn,or Ichi-bu Ni-bu 2,500 5 000 25 50 U 44 * 44 Rio 10,000 100 44 44 44 44 The new copper coins have no holes in the centre. The old zeni, or cash, were strung on straw twine, in strings of one hundred each, or stuck on skewers or pins in shops or at the toll-gates. The inscription on the cash is usually that of the year-name, and "TSUBO" (current money). "Tempo" is the name of the year in which that coin was issued. Of the square silver coins, ichi - bu and is-shiu, the former was first cast in 1837, and the latter in 1854. The is-shiu, being largely used to pay the laborers employed to build forts (dai-ba) in Yedo Bay in front of Tokio, were called "dai-ba." The gold koban, with its divis- ions of halves, quarters, eighths, and sixteenths, the coins made of an alloy of gold and silver, and the issues of the 6-bans, or oval sheets of gold, from two and a half to six inches in length, and worth from ten to sixty dollars, have passed out of circulation, to be melted up and recoined, or be kept as curiosities. On the subject of Japanese money, see pp. 88-97, " Memoires clu Congres In- ternational des Orientalistes," Paris, 1873; Dr. S. R. Brown's and J. J. Hoffman's "Japanese Grammar;" and the various Japanese works on numismatics, and the official pamphlets, with rich illustrations and full descriptive text. For weights and measures, see Smith, Brown, Hoffman, and Hepburn. NOTATION OF TIME. THE first systematic attempt at marking and recording time was in A.D. 603, when a Buddhist missionary from Corea, named Kuanroku, brought to Japan a Chinese almanac, and taught its use. From this time, the years, lunar months, and days are counted, and the years named after the characters in a cycle of sixty years, which is made up of one series often, and another series of twelve, charac- ters. The cycle of ten series is called from "the five elements," Wood, Fire, Earth, Metal, and Water, each of which is taken double, or masculine and femi- nine. The cycle of twelve series is formed, according to the division of the zodiac, into twelve equal parts, to each of which the name of some Japanese animal is assigned. These are the Rat, Ox, Tiger, Hare, Dragon, Serpent, Horse, Goat, Ape, Cock, Dog, Hog. By making a square, in which twelve lines are drawn horizontally, and ten 634 NOTES AND APPENDICES. perpendicularly, we have one hundred and twenty squares, of which sixty are used. Place the ten-series at the top, and the twelve-series on the left side, and the numerals from 1 to 60 in diagonal lines in the spaces from left to right, and from top to bottom. Thus the cyclical name of the year 1711 (see page 288) is "water" -"dragon," or the ten -series name, "water," and the twelve -series name, "dragon." The first year of the current cycle is 1864, and the cyclical name of 1877 is " fire "-"bull," the first belonging to the ten-series, and the sec- ond to the twelve-series cycle. (See diagram in Hoffman's "Grammar," page 156.) This method of reckoning time is still in use among the Chinese, Coreans, and the Japanese Buddhist world and priesthood. All Japanese literature is full of it, and it will be printed in the native almanacs for some years to come. As it is the offspring of Chinese philosophy, so the doctrines of in (female principle) and yo (male principle), feng-shuey ("air and water" a system of gross Chinese superstition) are involved in it, and from its very nature it is the mother of superstitions innumerable. No severer blow has been dealt at priestcraft, nec- romancy, and the thousand forms of delusion, than the abolition of the lunar cal- endar, and no greater evidence of the desire of the rulers of Japan to break from Asiatic trammels has been given than their adoption of the solar calendar. The measurement of apparent time in hours and minutes was, for centuries, by the clepsydra. The first is said to have been made by Tenchi Tenno when still a prince, and was re-mounted in 671 A.D. Time-keepers after the European fashion were introduced from China during the time of Taiko. In ordinary Japanese clocks the dial is perpendicular, and the hour and minute hand, being one, de- scends, while seconds are beaten by an escapement, and shown on a small round dial at the top. At present, many thousand New England clocks and foreign watches are in use, and even the common people are learning the meaning of a "second" of time. ENUMERATION OF YEARS BY YEAR-PERIODS. From 645 A.D., under the mikado Kotoku, the system of reckoning the years by chronological periods called nen-go, or year-names, has been in use. In his- torical works, and in Japanese literature generally, these year-periods are always referred to, and formerly many natives committed the entire list to memory. Others used little reference-tables, kept in their pocket-books or near at hand. No special rule or system was observed in changing the names, though the acces- sion of a new sovereign, the advent of war or peace, a great national calamity or blessing, a profound social change or great national event, was made the pretext for adopting a new name. It thus results that from 645 to 1868 A.D. there have been 249 year-names, including those used by the "northern dynasty" during the period 1336-1392, treated of in Chapter XIX. The year-names are appointed by the mikado, and are chosen from sixty-eight Chinese words or characters spe- cially reserved for that purpose. They are often very poetic and striking. (See in Dr. J. J. Hoffman's "Grammar," page 157.) In the following list, it will be no- ticed that the same syllables recur often. The dates can not exactly correspond to our years, since the Japanese New-year's-day was often as much as six weeks later than January 1st. A few years ago 1872 the Government fixed upon the year 660 B.C. as that in which Jimmu Tenno " ascended the throne," and Christ- mas, December 25th, as the day. Hence, in the newspapers, official documents, and books printed since 1872, the time is expressed in "years of the Japanese empire," or "from the foundation of the empire," or "from the accession of Jimmu Tenno." These phrases have a value at par with the Roman "Ab urbe condita," the date of Jimmu's "ascension" being purely arbitrary. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 635 LIST OF YEAR-PERIODS. Taikua A.D. 645 Otoku A.n. 1084 Einin A.D. 1293 Hakuchi 650 10S7 Shoan 1299 Sujaka 672 Kaho 1094 Reuben. .. 1302 CT3 Eicho 1096 Ka^eu 1303 Shucho 686 Shotoku 1097 Tokuji 1306 Taikua 695 1099 Enkei 1308 Taicho 697 Choji 1104 Ocho . 1311 Taiho . .. 701 Kajo 1106 Showa 1312 Keiun 704 Teunin 1108 Bumpo 1317 Wado 70S Tenyei 1110 Geuwo 1319 Hoki 715 Eikiu 1113 Genko 1321 Yoro 717 Geiivei 1118 Shochiu... 1324 Jinki 724 1120 Kareki 1326 Tempio 729 Teuji 1124 Gontoku 1329 Tenipio Shoho 749 Daiji 1120 Genko 1331 Tempio Hoji 757 Tensho 1131 Keiumu 1334 765 Cho^ho 1132 767 1135 Hoki 770 Eij'i 1141 Teno 781 Koji 1142 Eileen 1330 Eureki 782 Tenyo. . 1144 Kokoku 1340 Daido 806 1145 Shohei 1346 Konin 810 Nimpei . 1151 Kentoku 1370 Tencho 824 1154 Buuchiu 1372 Jowa. 834 Hogen 1156 Tenjiu 1375 S4S Hem 1150 Kowa 1381 Ninjiu 851 Eireki 1160 Genchiu 1384 Saiko 854 1161 Teiian 857 Chokuan 1163 859 1165 Genkei 877 Ninau 1166 Rekiwo 133S Ninna sa-5 K a wo 1169 Kovei 1342 Kuampei .... 889 Shoan 1171 Teiwa 1345 Shotai 80S 1175 1350 Engi 901 1177 Bun\vji . . 1352 923 Yo\va 1181 Ernbun 1356 Shohei 931 1182 Owa 1361 038 Mooji 1185 Toii 1362 Tenreki 947 Kenkin 1190 Oaii . 136S Tentokn 957 Shoji 1199 Eiwa. * 1375 O\va 961 Keunin 1201 Koreki 1379 Koho 964 Geukin 1204 Kitoku 1381 Anwa 968 Kenvei 1206 Shitoku 1384 Tenroku 970 1207 Kakei 1387 Tenyen 973 Ken'reki. 1111 Kowo 1389 076 1213 Meitokn 1300 Tengeu 978 jokiu 1219 Oven 1304 Eikuan Kuaiiwa 983 985 Jowo Geiinin 1222 12*>4 Seicho Eikio 142S 14*>9 Ejyen 987 1225 Kakitsu 1441 Eiso 980 Antei .... 1227 Bnu an 1444 Shoreki 990 1229 Hotoku 1449 Chotoku 995 joyei 1232 Kiotokn 1452 Choho 990 Tembnku 1233 1455 Kuanko 1004 Bnnreki 1234 C'horoku 1457 Chowa 1012 Katei 12S5 1460 Knanuin 1017 Rekinin 123S Bunsho 1466 Chian 1021 1230 On in 1467 Manjin . . 1024 Ninji 1240 1460 Chosen 102S 1<>43 Chokio . . 14S7 Choreki 1037 Hoji K 1247 14S9 Chokiu 1040 1240 1402 1044 1256 Bunki 1501 Ejo -. 1046 Shoka. 1257 Eisei 1504 Tenki 1053 Shogen 1259 Taivei 1521 Kohei 1058 1260 152S Chireki 1065 Kocho r>6i Tembun 1532 Enkiu 1069 1 1 >64 Koji 1555 1074 Kenji 1275 Eiroku 1558 Joreki 1077 1278 Genki 1570 Eiho . . . 1061 128S Tensho . . . 1573 636 NOTES AND APPENDICES. A.D. Bunroku 1592 Keicho 1596 Genwa 1615 Kuanyei 1624 Shoho 1644 Keiau 1648 Shovvo 1652 Meireki 1655 Mnnji 1658 Kuarabnn 1661 Empo... 1673 Tenwa 1681 Jokio 16S4 A.D. Geuroku 1688 Hoyei 1704 Shotoku 1711 Hokio 1716 Gembnn 1736 Kuampo 1741 Eukio 1744 Kuanyeu 1748 Horeki 1751 Meiwa 1764 Anyei 1772 Temmei 1781 Kuansei... .. 1789 A.D. Kiowa 1801 Btinkua 1804 Bnusei 1818 Tempo 1830 Kokiui 1844 Kayei 1848 Ausei 1854 Manyen 1860 Boutin 1861 Genji 1864 Keiwo 1865 Meiji 1868 Meiji (tenth year) 1877 FOREIGN TRADE OF JAPAN. Year. Imports. Exports. Total. 1871 $17 745 605 $19 184 805 $36 930 410 1872 26 188,441 24 294,532 50 482 973 1873 27 444 068 20 660 994 48 105 062 1874 24 23 629 18 014 890 44 225 266 1875 29,467,067 20,001,637 47,481,957 CHIEF ARTICLES OF EXPORTS AND IMPORTS IN 1875. Imports. Exports. Cotton goods $8,974,037 Raw silk. $5 620 315 Woolen " 3846635 731 275 Mixed cotton and woolen goods 2,026,532 Tea s . 7 792 244 Metals 1,164903 559 397 Arms and ammunition 44,586 Miscellaneous* 8,546 835 Tobacco 259,687 215 642 Eastern produce 4 863 488 119 812 Coal' 551 360 Total $29 467 067 Dried fish 901 5S3 Rice 839,619 * In the above " miscellaneous," the chief American 2 573 651 articles are clocks, petroleum, leather, medicines, flour, provisions, watches, nails, books, shoes, dyes, lead, Total $20 001 637 mac mery, an FOREIGN SHIPPING ENTERED AT THE OPEN PORTS IN 1875. Kobd Hakodate. T )tal. Ships. Tonnage. American (feneral) 21 9 43 3 76 42,687 " (mail steamers) British (general) 79 128 89 55 87 120 20 255 323 574,644 225,914 " (mail steamers Danish 27 2 '9 27 11 26,232 4 ^55 Dutch o 2 374 French (general) ' ' (mail steamers) . . . German 2 28 33 2 ii 5 17 10 9 2S 71 2,705 43,964 21,881 5 3 9 3 20 6547 Swedish 3 3 6 1,163 Other flags 3 3 1,427 Total 330 169 296 36 831 951 ,523 NOTES AND APPENDICES. 637 FOREIGN RESIDENTS AND FIRMS AT THE OPEN PORTS. R., residents; F., firms. Yokohama. Tokio. Ozaka and Kobe. Nagasaki. Hakodate. Total. R. F. R. R. F. R. F. R. R. F. American Austrian 185 20 15 3 41 6 83 7 5 38 3 7 6 353 30 33 3 Belgian. 17 1 17 1 British 620 65 285 235 32 129 9 13 1282 109 Danish Dutch 18 1 61 3 2 IT 58 S 11 6 1 33 1 142 12 French . 12T S3 24 3 18 2 254 42 German 150 49 61 12 15 4 279 43 Hawaiian 19 6 6 2 27 6 Peruvian. . Portuguese Russian . 27 16 3 14 6 '3 35 35 42 42 Swedish Swiss . 15 23 7 '4 6 3 3 18 33 10 Total 1335 106 510 474 65 234 19 22 2583 258 In the above tables (from the British Consular Trade Report for 1876) all the nations with which Japan has treaty relations are represented, except China; and no return of Chinese commerce is made, except in the totals of imports and ex- ports, in which the value of Chinese merchandise is included. In the table of foreign residents, the children are not reckoned. Of these, there must be about 400 in Japan. Probably 100 foreigners, in the employ of the Japanese., reside in the interior, beyond treaty limits. LEGENDARY ART AT THE CENTENNIAL EXPOSITION. ON the rotunda of Main Hall, south side, were painted representative Asiatic scenes, objects, and persons. Verging on the centre of the group was a Japanese "poem-card," inscribed in Mragana, with the following stanza from a very an- cient poet, by one of the Japanese commissioners : "Waga kuni no Yamato* shima ue ni idzuru hi wa, Morokoshit hito mo, awoga zara- meya ;" or, in English, "In the ancient Yamato island, my nalfve land, the sun rises: must not even the West- ern foreigner reverence ?" or, " When the foreigner comes to my country, tne diaen Isle or Japan, must lie not re- spect it?" Of the two platforms in the Japanese section, one was devoted to porcelain of * Yamato is the ancient name of Japan. t Morokoshi is an archaic geographical term applied to China, India, or the Western world generally. The penman evidently meant, "Even when Christendom's sight-seers at the Centennial Exposition come into the Japanese section, will they not nay, must they not admire our art and country?"/ 638 NOTES AND APPENDICES. Arita and Karatsu, in Hizen ; the other, to the bronzes of Etchiu, Kaga, and Kioto, and the cloisonnee enamel of Owari. Between these two platforms, in the aisle, were gold inlaid bronzes in glass cases. On the eastern side of the sec- tion were : 1. Tokio porcelain and Satsuma faience (white, cream, buff, and dead gold surfaces) ; 2. Kutani (Kaga) porcelain (red and bright gold) ; 3. Se'to (Owari) porcelain (blue, white, and liver-colored). In the centre of the section were the gold lacquered work, Kioto porcelain and faience, screens, wood and ivory carv- ings, weapons, armor, and ancient copper bronzes and jewels. It was in these articles chiefly that legendary art found its best illustration. Most of the myth- ical, legendary, poetical, and historical incidents noted in previous pages of this work were portrayed, some of them many times over. The same ideas or sym- bols were repeated, with slight variations, in bronze, porcelain, lacquer, ivory, wood, silk, or in plastic forms. I have space to notice but a very few of the subjects most frequently treated. 1. The Sea -god rising out of the Deep. Riu Jin (Dragon -god), or Kai Riu O (Dragon-king of the Sea), page 498, is the personification of the dragon ; and the monarch of the world under the sea appears in many fairy tales and very ancient legends, his palaces being located under the ocean, the Inland Sea, or Lake Biwa, He is a reality still to millions of Japanese people. He is represented in terrible majesty, and of awful mien, rising out of the deep. His helmet and mail is a living dragon the symbol of irresistible might, motion, and ubiquity. His robes are gold and jewels. Around him the waves mount, part, roll, and churn into white foam-edges, their translucent green curves flecked with silvery foam-bells. He holds in his hands a casket, in which are the jewels that control the ebb and flow of the tides (the powers of the sun and moon[T]), significant of victory, lon- gevity, valor, and invulnerability to Ojin (page 79), the infant god of war, whom he offers to endow with them. "Quick; take this casket: the opportunity is brief. I deign not long to remain in this upper world," is the expression on his face. In pictures, Takenouchi is holding the infant god when the Dragon- king appears. In several bronzes and ivory carvings his queen (page 498) is represented in robes of shell and coral, with diadem of rare shells. 2. Endo, the Penitent under the Water-fall. On three of the largest and finest bronzes was portrayed this story of mad love, murder, remorse, and penance. Endo, one of the captains of the Kioto garrison during the Taira rule, a brave and gallant soldier, contracted an unlawful affection for the young and beautiful wife of a fellow-officer. The lady, made aware of his passion, steadily rejected his advances, when the foiled lover threatened to kill her aged mother if she did not yield to his wishes and consent to the death of her husband, or even if she informed on him. In the agony of conflict between wifely and filial love, she finally resolved on a plan whereby she should vindicate her own and her hus- band's honor, and save her mother's life. This was nothing less than to make herself the victim. Pretending to yield to Endo's suit, she fixed a certain night when she would have him secretly admitted into her sleeping-chamber. On that night she persuaded her husband to be absent; and dressing her hair after the male fashion, she donned her husband's dress, and lay down in his place. The assassin entered through the door left open, slid aside the partitions, and in the dimly lighted chamber saw, as he supposed, the unconscious form of his victim. With one blow he severed the head, but, on holding up the bleeding trophy, saw that it was a woman's, and the object of his passion. In horror and remorse, he rushed to the temple, confessed his sin, shaved his hair, and, though in the midst of winter, went out and stood during twenty-one days under the icy flood. After due suffering by remorse and emaciation, the messengers of the god Fudo appear NOTES AND APPENDICES. 639 in the cloud, or in the foliage above the crags, and declare his penance complete, and grant him pardon. He became a learned and holy monk, and built the great temple of Todaiji at Nara, in Yamato, which Yoritomo endowed, and visited in 1195. His priestly name is Mongaku Shoniu (His Exalted Reverence Mongaku). In the bronzes, the shorn monk, his body bound with straw rope, and bared to the waist, with rosary in hand, stands under the icy waters, while snow burdens the dense foliage, and caps the gloomy crags. Remorse, torture, and fear are de- picted in his face ; while peering through the boughs is Fudo's gentle messenger bearing the flowery wand of peace and pardon ; while below, with his frightful scowl relaxed, and his iron-spiked club at rest, the demon avenger proclaims that justice is satisfied, and henceforth the sufferer is to be the holy bonze. 3. Fish leaping the Water-fall. Once, when Kiyomori was on his way to view Kumano water -fall (near Kioto), in his state barge, surrounded by his cham- berlain, nobles, and sword-bearer, a white koi (carp) leaped up out of the river upon the deck of the boat. All rejoiced at this auspicious omen. The koi leaping the water-fall is a symbol of aspiration and ambition, and an augury of renown. The origin of the symbol is Chinese. In an old book it is said that " the sturgeon of the Yellow River make an ascent of the stream in the third moon of each year, when those which succeed in passing above the rapids of the Lung Men become transformed into [white] dragons." 4. Takamochi (page 109), the founder of the Taira family, one night accompa- nied the mikado on a visit to one of his concubines, who lived at a distance from the palace. As the imperial night-walker was passing what is now Gihon Street, in Kioto, he met what appeared, in the gloomy darkness and drizzling rain, to be a demon with horns, and rays of fire streaming from its head. The emperor was greatly frightened, but Takamochi boldly seized and threw down the apparition. It proved to be an old priest, going out to light the shrine. He had on a grass rain coat, and a straw cone-shaped hat over his head, under which he carried a lamp, holding his pitcher of oil in his hand. Both parties apologized, and a famous subject for artists was the result. 5. "Tlie Water -fall of Foro" is an ancient story. An aged wood -cutter, no longer able to work, was supported by his dutiful son, who daily set out with axe and cord to cut fagots. These he sold to buy rice and sake, the latter being a necessity to the old man. Finally, times were so hard in winter, and the snow so deep, that the son could not earn enough to buy even a gourdful. One day, while filially grieving over this, as he passed a water-fall near Takada in Mino, with his empty gourd in hand, he looked up, when some of the spray touched his tongue, and he beheld the water-fall turned to sake". His filial piety was rewarded. Joy- fully filling his vessel, he returned home, and thenceforward kept the old man's veins warm, and supported him in comfort. Hearing of this wonderful reward of filial piety, the emperor and his train went out to see it ; and in honor of the event the year-name (page 613) was changed to Yoro (nourishing old age). 6. No is a kind of pantomimic opera, or "lyrical drama," in which the chief actor performs a variety of dances, while a band of musicians, usually behind a looped curtain, plays, and a precentor recites the words and leads the chorus, both of which contain much ancient poetry. The No depicts, by word and dance, the ancient mythology and legendary and historic lore. The dancers wear mag- nificent brocade dreses with long trails, suits of feathers, burnished armor, huge red wigs, and a variety of masks, which represent mirth, sorrow, wrath, serene old age, wicked old age, blooming youth, beauty, deformity, benevolence, malignity, and the various passions. In February, 1872, in Tokio, I witnessed a No perform- ance by four dancers, twenty musicians, and a singer. All of these belonged to 640 NOTES AND APPENDICES. the mikado's palace bard, and wore their ancient gorgeous robes of crimson and gold brocade. The four sets of No, which were first composed in the sixth cent- ury, were: 1. "Great Peace," intended to propitiate the gods. 2. "The Joy-at- tracting Dance," representing the dance of Suzume and. the mirth of the gods before the cave in which the sun -goddess hid herself. These were by four masked performers. 3. "The Dance of the Dragon-god" was by one person in dragon mask and helmet, and robes of resplendent brocade, representing Riu Jin. 4. "The Mountain -god's Dance" was by a very handsome Japanese, in silver baldric and flowing opaline silk dress. In one of the cases at the Centen- nial Exposition, a collection of the No masks in miniature were shown. Most of those in actual use in Japan are many centuries old. The No dances and the sub- jects illustrated in them are repeatedly depicted on Japanese art-products. 7. The Cock on the Drum is often chosen by the artist in cloisonnee, lacquer, porcelain, and bronze. It refers to the ancient custom in China of stationing a drum on a stand in front of the magistrate's office. Any one oppressed or mal- treated could come, and, by beating the drum, call attention to his plaint, and receive redress. In time of peace and good government, the drum was neglected and never sounded; hence the fowls would mount it fearlessly, and the rooster would use it as a favorite crowing-place. The hen would lead her brood around it. In one of Hokusai's sketches, a vine and leaves have entwined it, and doves are cooing and making love on it. Hence, an emblem of peace. 8. On many of the bronzes one or two horsemen are depicted riding through the waves. In the campaign against the Taira, Yoritomo gave to Takatsuna his fleetest and best charger from the stables of Kamakura, the same for which Kagesuye", his rival, had vainly asked. At the battle of Fujikawa, the Taira be- ing on the west and the Genji on the east bank, Yoshitsune ordered the bridge to be cleared of the planks, and the soldiers to unclasp their armor, and swim over. Two horsemen whipped up their horses, and plunged into the stream. The foremost was Kage'suye', the last was Takatsuna. Takatsuna, from behind, "lied to Kage'suye"," and cried out, "Your horse's girth is loose." Kagesuye stopped his steed, and tightened the strap ; upon which Takatsuna rode up, passed him, landed first, and shouted out his own name in defiance at the enemy and for cheer to his friends. In the report of the distinguished sent to Kamakura, Taka- tsuna was mentioned first, and Kagesuye second. Both heroes rode through a shower of arrows, and their fame is as immortal as Japanese art can make it. At the battle of Ujikawa, near Kioto, Sasaki, a noted Genji knight, plunged into the river, and in the face of a hail of arrows rode to the opposite shore. He is usually represented brandishing his sword, the arrows being cut in two by his strokes. He may be easily recognized by his crest of four hollow squares, ar- ranged so as to form a lozenge, with a space between each square. Another famous equestrian feat is that of Yoshitsune whipping his horse into a headlong gallop down the precipitous sides of the hills facing Ichinotani, in which the Taira were besieged (page 145, note). He was told that only deer and the wild boar could descend the path. Yoshitsune' thereupon clapped his stir- rups against his horse's flanks, gave loose rein, dashed down, and the cavalry after him, and reached the lower ground in safety. When Hideyoshi marched to defeat Akechi Mitsuhide (page 238), the brother of the latter, named Samanosuke, could not in honor fight against his brother, nor could he disobey his lord, Hideyoshi. Coming to the shore of Lake Biwa, he galloped into the water, rode across the arm of the lake, slew his family, set his house on fire, and then performed hara-kiri, to save his name and honor, as one who could fight neither against lord nor brother, yet was not afraid of death. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 641 TEA CROP OF 1875. THE total export of tea amounted to 22,583,152 pounds, of which 16,546,289 pounds were shipped from Yokohama, 4,292,159 pounds from Kobe, and 643,159 pounds from Nagasaki. All Japanese tea is green, and the United States is the chief customer for this tea. About 400,000 pounds were sent to England from Nagasaki in 1875. Some consignments are also made to China for conversion into black tea. The tea is picked in the spring and fall. About nine per cent, weight is lost by refiring or redrying for export. The best tea-producing prov- inces are Ise, Suruga, Inaba, and Yamashiro, which produce for foreign export 28,000, 26,000, 23,500, and 22,000 pounds respectively. Kiushiu sent 22,000; Yama- to, Kawachi, Iga, and Kii sent 12,000; Omi, 9000; Mino, 9000; Shimosa and Kad- zusa, 6000; Tamba, 5000; E'chizen and Echigo, 3500; and sundry small districts, 5000 pounds for export in 1875. The area of plantations and crop of tea is in- creasing steadily every year. THE CERAMIC ART OF JAPAN. The first historic notice of the ceramic art in Japan is that of the terra-cotta figures set in the earth in a circle round the dead, in place of the living victims formerly buried up to their necks. After death by starvation, a circle of skulls marked the site of the illustrious dead, like the cairns of Britain. Ancient graves occasionally opened in the vicinity of Nara and Kioto are found surrounded by a circle of clay images. At the death of the wife of one of the ancient mikados, who had been grieved at hearing the groans of the dying victims buried alive to their necks with the dead Prince Yamato hiko no inikoto, he permitted his ad- viser to bring a hundred workmen in clay from Idzumo, who made clay images of men, horses, and other things, which were buried in lieu of men with the empress. Potters, brick and tile makers, came over from Corea with other artificers (p. 83) in the seventh century ; and in A.D. 724 progress in the ceramic art began by the introductiou of the potter's wheel, and continued for five centuries in the work- ing of faience only, pure Japanese porcelain being unknown till the time of Hideyoshi. In the days of the Hojo, Kato Shirozaemon having visited China to study the art, came back and erected his wheels and kilns in Seto, Owari, making, however, only pottery of an improved sort. "Seto-mono" (Seto ware, or seto, like our term " china") is the common name for household crockery in Japan. The making of real porcelain in Japan was begun by the Corean potters brought into Japan by the Japanese who invaded Corea (1592-1597). These captives were settled in Buzen, Higo, Hizen, Ozumi, and Satsuma, in Kiushiu, where are still the oldest seats of the ceramic industries, and at Yamaguchi, in Nagato, and near Kioto. About the same time a Japanese from Ise, who had studied the clays, pigments, and methods of the Chinese, settled in Hizen, where he found beds of clay with the varied qualities necessary to produce the famous Hizen wares. It is only in very recent times that the potteries of Owari, Mino, and Kaga have become celebrated ; and those near Tokio and Yokohama only within the last decade. At present it is notorious that the " old " Satsuma, Hizen, and Kioto wares are Imitated in scores of kilns all over the country. Very few pieces of the highest artistic merit have been produced since the Restoration, as the making of porcelain and faience in Japan has since 1868 degenerated from an art to a trade. In the days of feudalism, masterpieces of the ceramic art were made for princes and lords, for presentation to fellow-daimios, the shogun and court no- bles. Such things were not bought and sold. There were, properly speaking, no shops for their sale. Only household crockery was seen in the shops. Fino 642 NOTES AND APPENDICES. pieces were not in the trade : a fact which explains what foreigners have so often wondered at ; namely, that until eight or ten years ago the rarest porcelain was made in Japan, and occasionally found its way to Europe, yet the keenest-eyed visitor in Japan never saw it on sale. Formerly the artisan was an artist, and worked for low wages and honor. He lived on a few bronze cash per day, yet enjoyed the presence and friendship of his lord. The daimio visited the potter at his wheel, and the potter sat in honor before his master on the mats of his palace a place in which the richest trader in the province could not so much as enter. To imprint his stamp, or to scratch with his little finger-nail his name or mark on the bottom of a tea-bowl, or " clove-boiler," or vase, over which he had spent a year or three years, and which should adorn for generations the tokonoma, or nooks of a daimio's chamber, was sufficient reward to the workman already proudly happy in his own work. Of this contented happiness in work which found its reward in honor, not gain, I was more than once a witness. It is to be hoped that the efforts of the government and native art -lovers, and the proper foreign influence, will be able to arrest the downward tendency of Jap- anese art in ceramics, and restore it to its former glory, even though the social atmosphere and environment are now so wholly changed. The villages in which faience and porcelain are made, whose names are house- hold words in America and Europe, look like any other Japanese villages. In the dingy, weather-beaten cottages, made of wood, mud, reed, and thatch, the pot- ters work before their paper windows, the force in each "establishment" usually consisting of father and son, rarely of more than three or four men. The kiln or kilns are the common property of a village, built up the sides of a hill, and fired with pine wood, the workmen taking turns in noting the temperature and watch- ing the melting of sample enamels on bits of clay set near the plug-hole. Often the biscuit is made in one place, and the glazing clone at another. Many potters now sell their baked wares to artists in Tokio and the large cities, who lay on the colors, decorate, and tire in their own furnaces a process I have often watched in Tokio. New designs are wrought by the artist from a drawing, but stock subjects (p. 581) are laid on from memory, and for the cheaper wares dabbed on. In the potteries the principle of division of labor is well understood, one man making bodies, another spouts, another handles or ears, his specialty. Of late years companies employing capital have centralized labor, and collected workmen in large establishments, improving their fortunes, and, in rare cases, the art. Japanese porcelain or faience takes its name from the name of the trading town, the place of manufacture, the port whence it is shipped, the name of the province, or the place where it is decorated. The following wares are the most celebrated : SATSUMA. The oldest specimens have no colored decoration, and date from about 1624, those of the latter part of the century being but slightly adorned in colors. From the beginning of the eighteenth century, appear figures, landscapes, and the general style of decoration in gold and bright tints called nishiki (flow- ered silk, or brocade). The rich gilding, the harmony of colors, and the delicacy of drawing, have united to give "old Satsuma" ware, which is mostly in small pieces, its renown. Most of it is crackle, called hibiki (snake porcelain), the cracks imitating a serpent's skin. The body of nearly all fine Satsuma ware is white, or cream, or buff color, though red, green, chocolate, purple, blue, white, and black glazes, made of native minerals and metallic oxides, are used. All sorts, qualities, and colors are now made and exported from Satsuma. Nearly all Satsuma ware is faience, semi-porcelain, or stone-ware not true porcelain. NOTES AND APPENDICES. 643 HIZEX. Arita and Karatsu are the chief places of manufacture in this province, Arita alone having over two hundred kilns. The wares made for home use are called Sometsuki (dyed in patterns, or figured), which has blue paintings under the glaze. The whole design is traced by the artist in black lines, the shades be- ing indicated merely by a stroke. The colored enamels are then laid on ; thin when opaque, thick when to be transparent after fusion. Usually the entire dec- oration is fused at one firing. Hizen porcelain and faience have usually lively tints in the style called saiahiki (many-tinted). Imari is the sea-port. OWARI and MINO. Most of the work of these two provinces is Sometsuki por- celain or blue ware. The finest deep cobalt glazes are from Owari. Vases, flower- holders, tables, wall-pieces, screens, fan and poem-plaques, and large pictures are wrought in faience, coated with a film of finest kaolin, on which artistic sj-mbols and figures are wrought. Se'to is the chief place of manufacture, and Nagoya of sal-?. Owari also is famous for its cloisonne work, both on copper and porce- lain. The application of this delicate art of applying enamel in cells or between threads of metal, producing the effect of shining silver or gold among dead tints of minerals, or of metallic outlines with opaque shadings in color, to porcelain, is, in its development, at least, a recent Japanese art. KAGA. The characteristic color of Kaga ware is red, produced by rouge or oxide of iron, with bands and lines of gold, and much figure decoration. Five miles from the town of Terai are the clay beds of Kutani (nine valleys), whence the ware is marked and named. The colors and paintings are not done by one firing as in Hizen, but the clay form, the black tracing of the design, the red glaze, and the gold lines receive each a baking. KIOTO. At Awata, a village in the suburbs of Kioto, faience having a yellower tint than the buff wares of Satsuma, but crackled, is made, called tamago yaki (egg-pottery), the decoration being usually a few sprays of grasses or flowers, with birds and insects. Eraku ware has gold figures of poets, warriors, Chinese sages, or mythical heroes and creatures, upon a red glaze or dead surface. All kinds of faience and true porcelain are made in Kioto, the "pierced," the "net- ted," "sieve," "rice-grain," "egg-shell," "moku-me," "watered," "wood-grain- ed," "marbled," "wicker-work," "woven," "veined," "shell-pink," cloisonne", celadon, lacquered, figured in high relief, and in imitation of inlaid gold and bronze work, called zogan, etc., etc. " Yaki " is the general native term for baked clay. On Awnji island are made delicate buff crackle and celadon faience. Bariko- yaki is made of a tough brown clay in Ise, taking its name after the inventor. The ware (usually teapots and small utensils) is very light and thin, having sprays and splashes, and perfect designs in opaque colored enamels slightly raised from the surface. TOKIO and YOKOHAMA. Very little work is produced in the neighborhood of these places, except imitations, though some are very fine, and will puzzle any one, except a real expert, to tell them from "old Satsuma" or "old Hizen" wares. Scores, if not hundreds, of artists and decorators live in these cities who buy baked ware from Owari, Mino, Hizen, Kaga, and local potteries, and decorate and sell it to foreign customers. Most Japanese pottery and porcelain is stamp- ed, scratched, or marked in color with the name of the place where made, the name of tLe decorator, or the company which sells it. There is an excellent na- tive work of Japanese faience, in five volumes, by the learned antiquary Ninagawa Noritane. For some good notes, see Official Catalogue of the Japanese Section, International Exhibition, Philadelphia, 1876. A work on the History, Ideals, Symbolism, and Technique of Japanese Art is in preparation by the author. 644 NOTES AND APPENDICES. DR. J. C. HEPBURN'S METEOROLOGICAL TABLES, FROM OBSER- VATIONS MADE FROM 1863 TO 1869 INCLUSIVE, READ BEFORE THE ASIATIC SOCIETY OF JAPAN, JUNE 17TH, 1874. MONTHLY AND YEARLY AVERAGE (1863-1869) OP THE THERMOMETER (FAHR.). Yearly Average. Monthly Average. 1863 . Kft January.. February. March .. 40.28 .. 41.22 47 03 July 75 31 1864 58 02 78 49 1865 59 13 September. October . . . November. December.. . 70. 48 . 61. 58 . 52 . 43.45 1S66 .... 57 01 56 15 1S67 5ft.26 May ... . .. 64.07 1868 ... 58 46 June 69 44 1869 KS ns Average of 1863-1869 ... 5S.22 Highest monthly maximum (August, 1865) 91 Lowest monthly minimum (January, 1864) 20* " Yokohama is situated in lat. 35 26' N., and long. 139 39' E. from Greenwich. It is about thirty-seven miles from Cape King, the nearest point on the Pacific. The Bay of Yedo at Yokohama is about twelve miles wide. The city is, for the most part, built on a plain, about from two to ten feet above high-water mark, at the mouth of a valley opening on the bay. The valley is about a mile wide, and extends back in a westerly direction some three miles, gradually narrowing to a quarter of a mile. It is bounded on each side by a row of hills, about one hun- dred and twenty feet wide. It is cultivated in paddy fields, is consequently wet and marshy, and is exposed to the sweep of north-east and easterly winds from across the bay, and to south-west and westerly winds through the valley. "The winds of Japan are at all seasons exceedingly irregular, frequently vio- lent, and subject to sudden changes. The north-east and easterly winds are gen- erally accompanied by rain, with a high and falling barometer, and are usually not violent. The south-west and westerly winds are generally high, often vio- lent, and accompanied with a low barometer. It is from the south-west thai; he cyclones or typhoons almost invariably come. On clear and pleasant days, which are in excess of all others, there is a regular land and sea breeze at all seasons. " The rain-fall is above the average of most countries, varying greatly, howev- er, in different years. About two-thirds of the rain falls during the six months from April to October. "The steady hot weather, when it is considered safe to change to light sum- mer clothing, does not generally set in till the latter decade of June or 1st of July, and ends, often very abruptly, about the middle of September. " The snow-fall is for the most part light, not often exceeding two or three inches. In 1861, on one occasion, it fell to the depth of twenty inches. The ice seldom exceeds one inch or one and a half inches in thickness. Fogs are rarely noticed, so also is hail. Thunder-storms are neither frequent nor severe. Earth- quake shocks are frequent, averaging more than one a month; but hitherto, Bince the residence of foreigners in Yokohama, no very severe or dangerous shocks have occurred." INDEX. A in Japanese, pronounced as a in arm. See also under Ha. Abacus. See Illustration, 281. Abbe Sidotti, 262, 263. Abbot, 394. Abdication, 114, 122. Ablutions, 92, 97, 98, 506. Aborigines of America, 29, 31, 299, 5T9-581. Aborigines of Japan, 26-35, 55, 65, 68-70, 86, 87, 105, 20G. Absent-minded man, 496. Abusive names, 512 (note). Actors, 87, 455, 515. Acupuncture, 20C, 207. Adams, Mr. F. O., author of "History of Ja- pan," 573, 586, 593, 595, 607. Adams, Will, 261, 262. Adoption, 277, 584. Adzuma, 72, 264, 265, 362. Agate, 603. Age of persons, 58, 60, 93, 449, 600. Agricultural class, 106, 107, 280, 600. Agriculture, 49, 10G, 107, 523, 578, 605-607. Aidzu, Prince of, 309, 310, 313, 411, 412. Aino, 2G-35, 55, 206, 565. Akadzuki, 399. Akamagaseki. See Shimonoseki. Akamatsu, 564. Akechi, 231,238,618. Alaska, 15, 579. Albino ponies, 382. Alcock, Sir Rutherford, 305, 349, 369, 594, 595. Aleutian Islands, 117, 579, 580. Alkali, 356. Almshouses, 550. Alphabets, 91, 92, 162. Alum, 603. Ama. See A r un, and 139 (note). Amaknsa, 253. Amatcrasii, 45, 47, 48, 50. 553. Amber, 603. America, relations with Japan, 29, 31, 299, 324, 579-581, 591. See, under Perry, United States. America, P. M. S. S., 550. American geographical names, 329. Americans in Japan, 327-352, 533, 545-548, 550, 561, 577, 578, 605, 607. Amethyst, 603. Amida, 252. Amulets, 228, 440. Amusements. See Games, Sports, Theatre, Cards. Audo, 155, 156. Angels, 384, 489. Animals, domestic, 23-25, 111 (note). Animals, wild, 24, 420, 542. Anjiro, 249. Antimony, 22, 602, 603. Antisell, Thomas, Dr., 19 (note), 26 (note). 605. Antoku, 134, 136, 139 (note), 188. Aqueducts, 286, 394. Arabic numerals, 591. Arata, 83. Arbitration, 567. Archers, 121, 136, 137, 388. Archery, 22. 227, 388. Architecture, 89, 90, 392-398, 532, 533, 563. Area of Japan, 17, 605. Armor, 219, 220. Armorer, 132. Armorial bearings. See Crests. Arms. See Military weapons. Army, 104, 105, 595-597. Arrows, 33, 121, 136, 137, 189, 190, 227, 3SS, 422, 575 ; poison, 35. Arsenic, 550, 602, 603. Art, 92, 94, 123, 334, 388, 389, 390, 398, 581, 582. Artisans, 46, 63, 280, 281 ; guilds, 227, 512, 600. Artists, 92, 123, 379, 388, 522. Asakura, 419 (note). Asakusa, 435-488. Asama yama, 21. Asano family, 275. Ashikaga, 154, 188, 189, 192, 249, 309. 646 INDEX. Ashikaga Takanji, 15G, 182, 183, 184, 185, 189, 190. Ashikaga Yoshiaki, 230. Asiatic Society of Japan, 351. Aspects of nature, 25, 55, 83, 132, 154, 473, 477. Assassinations, 121, 148, 222, 231, 309, 346, 349, 362, 374, 377, 574. Association of ideas, 449, 581, 582. Asters, 436. Aston, Mr. W. G., quoted, 213. Atago yam a, 239, 374, 435. Atsumori, 145. Augury, 46, 449, 581, 582. Angustiuian friars, 250. Austin, Don. See Konishi. Avalanches, 540, 542. Awa, 131, 329, 573. Awabi, 521. Awaji, 44. Awodo, 149. Awomori, 608. Ayuthaya, 246. Azai, 241, 242. Azaleas, 436, 565. Aztec, 299, 580. Azuchi yama, 231, 233. E, from the Japanese h or/, by nigori, or in. combination. Baboon, 582. Baby, 32, 354-356, 444, 472, 570. Bacchus, 488. Backgammon, 458. Badgers, 521. Bakin, 478. Bakufn, 141, 296, 349, 444. Ball, game of, 209, 455, 456, 529, 530. Bamboo, 23, 132, 359, 365, 417, 418, 432, 441, 514, 519, 531, 537, 582. Banishment, 115, 110, 121, 127, 148, 151. Bank-notes, pictures from, 121, 136, 153, 155, ISO. Banks, 591. Banner of Taira, 136 ; of Minamoto, 136 ; of Nitta, 154 ; of Hideyoshi, 238 ; of lyeyasu, 220, 228, 267, 315. Barbers, 334. Bark, 33, 46, 89, 90. Barley-sugar, 380. Barriers, 68 (note), 206. See Gates. Barrows, 28, 245, 269, 545. Bates, Mr., 549. Baths, 64, 77, 94, 446, 549, 550. Battledore and shuttlecock, 455. Bay of Yedo, 70, 329, 330. Beans, 49, 420, 427, 454, 469. Beards, 31, 32, 93, 217, 523 ; cute, 37, 62, 564. Beds, 423. Beef, 472, 607. Beggars, 358, 513. Beggary, abolition of, 552. Bellows, 365. Bells, 88, 200, 201, 206, 290, 381, 433, 479. Benkei, 206, 458. Beri-beri. See Kakke. Bette : 373, 374, 546. Betto, 236, 353, 359, 427, 512, 574. Binzuru, 385. Birds, 24, 177. Bishamou, 190. Biwa, Lake, 177, 414, 415, 419. Black-eyed Susan, 359. Blakiston, Captain, 23 (note). Blacksmith, 46, .365. Blind men, 495, 509, 511, 600. Boats, 31, 63, 331, 332, 360, 408, 409, 427, 521. B5zu, 41. Bombardments, 309, 311, 350, 592, 594. Bombay, P. and O. S. S., 329. Bonzes, 162,175, 198, 204, 207, 231-235, 250, 253,. 379, 426, 470, 510, 513, 525, 538. Botany, 22. Bows, 226. Bread, 260, 448. Breakfast, 424, 355, 409, 410, 544. Breath-sucking, 211 (note), 222. Breech-loaders, 246, 411, 524, 573, 596. Bridgeford, Captain, 26 (note). Bridges, 44, 354, 563. Brinckley, Lieutenant, 533 (note). Brocade, 315, 562. Bronzes, 199, 203, 423. Brooks, Hon. Charles Wolcott, 579, 580. Brown, Rev. S. R., 160, 263. Brunton, Mr. R. H., 608. Bryan, Mr. S. W., 591. Buddhism, SO, 84, 114, 158, 175, 198, 228, 251, 297, 554, 555. Bugs, 157. Bund, 330, 353. Bungalows, 330, 370. Bungo, 248, 249, 250, 253. Buuio, 586. Burial, 92, 437, 438, 439, 463. Burmab, 246. Butchers, 332, 357, 472, 607. J. y?e nr .""er K or /S. Cactus, 386. Calendar, 113, 122. California, 299, 579-581. Camellia, 265, 290, 333, 428, 436, 510, 514, 565. Camphor-trees, 190, 455, 576. Canals, 419. Candles, 446 % 447. C'anuon, 243, 257, 408, 411. Cape, King, 328. INDEX. 647 Capital, 57, 110, 111. Capron, General Horace, 19 (note), 550, C05, 607, 619 (note). Cards, 428, 430 ; games, 456, 457. Cars, 197 (note), 212. See Railway. Carp, 463, 439, 017. Carpenters, 46, 227, 357, 365, 443. Carts, 332, 333. Carving, 33, 94, 157, 203, 2S8-290, 523. Cash, 243, 332, 355, 360, 496, 587, Oil. Castira. See Sponge-cake. Castles, 217, 283, 392, 393, 545, 547, 550. Catapults, 177. Cats, 128, 449, 451, 4S7, 495, 502, 505, 509. Cemeteries, 287, 290, 346, 513, 514. Censer, 382. Censors, 295, 299, 587. Census, 174, 600, 601. Centennial Exposition of the United States, 576, 592, 598. Centipedes, 550. Cereals, 48, 608. Chamberlain, 116, 527. Character of the Japanese, 65, 106, 107, 251, 257, 312, 343, 539, 542, 550, 569, 570. Charcoal, 22, 33, 356, 519, 549. Charity, 369. Charlevoix quoted, 247, 2C3. Checkers, 458, 503. Cheese, 505. See Beans. Cherry blossoms, 384, 582. Chess, 458. Children, 354, 421, 429, 437, 452-465. Children's books, 491, 492. Children's games and sports, 45-2-465. Chin (lap-dog), 209, 210. China, 170, 180, 242, 418, 552, 572, 575, 576. Chinese, 54, 58, 242, 452, 453, 473, 512, 572, 576, 600. See Preface. Chinese in Japan, 331, 338, 351, 352, 566, 567. Chishi, 600. Chishima (Kuriles), 601. See Map. Chinzenji, 284, 285. Chopsticks, 221, 470, 514. Choshiu clan, 267, 209, 277, 301, 309, 310, 311, 312, 313, 321, 593-595. Chdteki, 1S3, 184, 310, 313, 315. Christianity, 247-263, 57S. Christians, native, 243, 247, 203, 266, 531, 552, 573, 578. Christmas-day, 537, 538. Chronology, 59, 122, 123, 599. Chrysanthen.nm, 67, 384, 582, 608. Cipango. See Jipan/jn. Cities of Japan, 392. Civil officials, 103, 110, 116, 141, 196 (note), 214-210, 526. Civil wars, 119, 122, 130-139, 151, 154-157, 182- 196, 230-235, 238-240, 266-269, 316-319, 575. Civilization, 59, 75, 80-84, 202, 318-324, 352, 572, 579, 590. Clans, 216, 217. See tinder names of military families. Clark, Mr. E. W., 527, 546, 547, 548. Classes of society, 280, 540, 552. Cleanliness, 97, 350. Climate, 25, 588, 590. Clocks, 546. Clogs, 118, 370, 372, 468, 482. Cloistered emperor, 120, 134. Clothing, 90, 106, 107, 208, 331, 361, 366, 370, 383, 384, 427, 520, 524, 534, 546, 550, 562-565, 572, 596. Cloud-cluster, 49, 58, 69. Coal, 516, 602-605. Coasts of Japan, 18, 25, 56, 405, 608. Cobalt, 603. Cocks, 40, 618. Cocks, Mr. Richard, 261. Codes of law, 361, 362, 508, 569, 583. Coinage, 40, 280, 547, 607, 60S, 610. College. See Imperial College. College of Engineering, 307, 602. Columbus, 247. Commandments, 96, 194, 195. Commerce, 63, 246, 597. Compradores, 338. Conchs, 220, 269. Concubines, 108, 556, 557. Confucianism, 80, 83, 160, 297, 557, 559. Conquerors, 28, 55, 68-70, 75, 91. Conquest of ancient Japan, 28. Consul, United States, 349, 402, 568. Consulate, United States, 331, 333, 349. Consuls, 349, 350, 376, 567. Contracts, 402, 577. Convents, 199. Coolie traffic, 566-567. Coolies, 331, 355, 360, 361. Coopers, 357, 365. Copper, 22, 111 (note), 199, 201, 602-605. Copperas, 603. Corea, 63, 79, S3, 241-246, 286, 324, 364, 571< 570. Cormorants, 209. Comes, Rev. Mr., 383. Corpse, 468. Cosmogony, 43-45. Cotton, 91, 230, 361. Councils, 103, 140, 149, 286. Court noble, 93, 101-114, 216, 217, 321. Courtesans, 139, 555, 556. Cranes, 381. Creation, 43, 44. Cremation, 175 (note), 198. ^37, 513, 514. Crests, imperial, 66, 67, 271, 274, 275, 410. Crime, 568. Criminals, 568, 569,600. 648 INDEX. Crocodiles, 511. Cross of Satsuma, 274. Cross-trampling, 257. Crow, 58, 448, 449, 505. Crucifixion, 255, 554. Crystal, 3S1, 479, 603. Cnckoo, 5S1. Cucumbers, 481. Curios, 351. Currents, 27, 579-581. Curtains, 102, 114, 141, 211, 212, 353, 39S, 410. Custom-houses, 332, 349, 3(54 ; receipts, 51)8. Cutlery, 224, 225, 357, 422. Cuttle-fish, 415, 521. Cyclopedias, 41, 78 (note), 247 (note). D, from t, by nigori, or in combination. Dai Butsu, 199, 200. Dai Jo Dai Jin, 103, 119, 309, 598. Dai Jo Kuan, 103, 577. Dai Koku, 49, 425. Dai-kon. See Radishes. Daimio, 217, 321, 322, 402, 403. "Dai Nihon Shi," 40, 122 (note), 298. Dai Nippon, 17, 85. Dairi, 197. Daizaifu,177. Dancing, 47, 48, 53, 378, 456, 528, 529, 573, 618. Dannoura, 135. Daruma, 458-460. Darwinian theory, 9, 542. Datte family, 274, 586. Dazaifu. .See Daizaifu. Deaf men, 496. Debt, national, 598. Decima. See Deshima. Deformed persons, 472, 570. De Long, Hon. Charles E., 340, 573. Dentist, 469. Departments of government, 103, 104, 577, 598. Deshima, 240, 257, 258, 260, 566, 602. DeVa, 74, 142. Dezima. See Deshima. Dice, 456. Dickens, Charles, 533. Diet, 90. Dikes, 531,571, 605, 607. Dinner, 340, 341, 423, 424, 542, 543, 548, 550. ^Diplomacy, foreign, 347, 348, 349, 350, 377, 592, 595. Dirk, 221, 222, 515, 534. Diseases, 258, 259, 410, 570, 571. Disinheritance, 584. Divination, 46, 148. Divinity of the mikado, 36, 59, 88, 94, 95, 562, 566. Divorce, 557. Dixon, Dr. Walter, quoted, 253, 583. Do, or circuits, 65, 84. See Map. Doctors, 207, 571. See Physicians Dogs, 33, 209, 358, 390, 451, 468, 471. Dominicans, 250. Dosha, 207. Dosia. See Do-sha. Dr in Japanese words. See under Hi. Dragon, 49, 381, 425, 478-480, 582, 616. Dreams, 472. Dress. See Clothing. Dual system of government. See Duarchy. Duarchy, 140, 146, 182, 185, 186. Ducks, wild, 420, 422, "17, 537. Dumb persons, 600. Dungeons, 165, 184. Dutch, 254, 257, 258, 311, 319, 431, 571 (note), 577, 593, 596, 602. Dwarfed trees, 384, 386. Dyers, 365, 509. Dynasties, 185, 187. I E, pronounced as e in prey; before a final liquid, or double consonant, as e in men. Ear-monument, 245. Earthquake-fish, 4S6. Earthquakes, 21, 477, 486, 547, 589. Eastern Japan, 68-70, 391, 392. Ebisu, 28, 29, 52. Echizeu, Prince of, 305, 307, 308, 313. Echizen, 176, 271, 272, 276, 300, 307, 310, 313, 586, 5S7. Eclipses, 52, 471, 472. Edicts, 369. Edinburgh and Yedo, 279. Education, 150, 199, 200, 202, 205, 294, 297, 371, 373, 558-561, 563 (note), 573, 578. Eels, 496. Eggs, 494, 517, 527, 528. Elephant, 479. Elephantiasis, 570. Elves, 494, 495. Ema, Lord of Hell, 387, 389, 507. Embassies, 63, 83, 84, 176, 195, 242, 250, 323, 324, 572, 576. Embassy of 1872, 25, 323, 324, 540, 550, 572-574, Emori, Mr., 403, 530, 531. Emperors, list of, 123. Empresses, list of, 123. Enamel-ware, 203, 546. English, 254, 261, 262, 341, 342, 343, 577. Enomoto, 319, 564. Enoshima, 154, 404. Entails, 277. Eructation, 11 (note). Escheat, 585. Espionage, 295, 349, 369. See Spies. Eta, 279, 324, 540, 567. Etiquette, 210, 211, 218, 222-225, 518. See Manners. INDEX. 649 Eto Shimpei, 563, 5T4, 575. Eurasian children, 351, 352. Evenings, 450. Evergreens, 22, 23, 359. Execution ground, 361. Executions. See Laws. Exile, 115, 12T, 148, 25G, 305. See Banish- ment. Extra-territoriality, 31G, 572. Eyes, 29, 30, 208 (note), 442, 444, 455. P, for words in Dutch books, or in writings copied therefrom, see under H, or A. In foreign books,/ or ff is often inserted, or made terminal in a Japanese word which ends in an open vowel. Thus Shikokii and Hokusai, appear as Shikokf, Hokffsai, etc. Faces, AIno and Yamato, 29, SO, 401. Falconry, 209, 280. Families, noble, 101-114. Family, 584, 585. Family names, 109. Famine, 195, 513. Fans, 87, 518-520, 527, 529, 548. Farmers, 10G, 107, 513, 600. Fauna, 24, 581. Faxiba. See HuUyosM. Feast of Dolls, 460. Feast of Flags, 4C3. Female characters Tatara, 58 ; Yamato hime, 61 ; Jiugu kogo, chap. viii. ; Haruko, 81 ; Tokiwa, 123 ; Tadamori's wife, 125, 126 ; Masago, 126 ; Tomoye, 135 (note) ; Taigo, 137 ; Tokiko, 137 ; Tamayori, 170 ; Kadoko, 183 ; Ise no Taiyu, 210 ; Murasaki Shikibn, 212 ; Shibata Katsuiye's wife, 238, 240; Adzuma girl, 265. Female divinity, 45. Fencing, 432, 433. Feng Shuey, 473. Festivals, 92, 97, 520, 525, 526, 538. Feudalism, 57, 58, 94, 95, 104, 214-228, 270-290, Fends, 216, 217, 222, 223. Filial piety, 123, 124, 147, 555. Fillmore, President, 329, 347. Finances, 573, 574, 598. Finger-nails, 407, 469. Firando. See Hirado. Fires, 375,398,471,563. Fire-clay, 603. Fire-lookouts, 286. Fire-omens, 471. Fire-proofs, 310, 356, 370, 368, 394. Fire-works, 521. Fish, 24, 25. Fishermen, 328, 329, 521, 522, 546. Fishing, 70, 209, 470, 521. Fish-ponds, 397, 436. Flag of Japan, national, 362, 536, 564. Fleas, 544, 550. Flies, 505, 5-28. Flint and steel, 356, 357, 364, 446, 603. Flirting, 211 (note). Flowers, 23, 384, 386, 387, 397, 514, 581. Fogs, 589, 505. Folk-lore, 491-503. Food, 23, 24, 49, 90. See Diet. Foot-ball, 148. Foreigner-haters. See Jo-i. Foreigners, 327-352, 493, 513, 549, 578, 600, 615 Forests, 22, 418, 543, 548. Forfeiture, 585. Formosa, 218, 257, 258, 571, 572, 575, 576. Fortifications, 179, 362, 407. Fortune-tellers, 505. Forty-seven rOnins, 362, 400. Fox myths, 495, 580, 582. Foxes, 420, 495, 503. Franciscans, 249, 254, 255, 256, 409. Francis Xavier, 249, 250, 251, 412. Freeman, Captain, J.H.,32S. French, 259, 261, 331, 346, 350, 351, 383, 399, 5TT. French relations with Japan, 331, 593-596. Frogs, 508. Fuchiu, 422, 547. Fudai, 275, 394, 403, 585, 586. Fuji san, or Fuji yama (mountain), 18, 142, 330, 374, 404, 415, 472, 530, 546, 582. Fuji River, 132. | Fujiwara, 109, 115, 116, 150, 237, 270. j Fukui, 170, 189, 190, 238, 423, 536. j Fukni Han, 418, 526, 587. i Fukuwara, 120, 135, 406. I Fuknzawa Yukichi, 192 (note), 320, 400, 548. Funerals, 438, 439, 513. Fusau, 243, 580. Fushimi, 240, 266, 313, 408, 411-413. Fushimi no Miya, 563. Fusi yama. See Fuji san. Futeu, 484. G, pronounced hard. From k by nigort, or in combination. Few pure Japanese words begin with .7. Gambling, 344, 50,369. Games, 209, 210, 452-465, 529, 530. Gardeners, 384-386. Garlic, 73. Gas, illuminating, 21, 333, 384. Gates, 206, 219, 394, 411, 421, 427. Gate-keepers, 436, 441. Gazetteers, 41 ; of Echizen, 176, 419, 422. Geese, 425, 447, 449, 537, 582. Geiho, 459. Geisha, 209, 408, 418, 526, 573. Gen. See Minamoto. 650 INDEX. Genghis Khan, 145. Genji. See Minamoto. Genji and Heike, 458, 464, 492, 529. Genji Monogatari, 212. Geography of Japan, 1T-25, 56, 68-74, 84, 85, 329, 360, 391, 392, 419 (note), 596, 601,607, 60S. See Map. Geology of Japan, 18, 19, 602-605. Germans, 247 (note), 331, 332, 399. 571 (note). Ghosts, 138, 460-473. Ghouls, 492, 493. Gifn, 267. Girdles, 354, 359, 379, 408, 416, 470. Glass, 44S. Glass-sponges, 521. Globe-trotters, 339. Go, honorary prefix. See under letters fol- lowing go. Goa, 249. Goat, 582. Goddesses, 44-53, 553. God-letters, 92. Go-Daigo, 152, 182, 183, 184, 189. Gohei, 46, 285, 410. Go-Kameyama, 192. Gokeuin, 277. Go-Komatsn, 192. Gold, 602-605, 608. Golden fish, 546. Golden gutter, 410, 411, 546. Goldsborough Inlet, 262. Gompachi and Komurasaki, 400. Gongen, 198, 284. Goroza, 230. Gosauke. See Santo. Go-Shirakawa, 119, 134. Goto Shojiro, 312, 317, 322, 574. Gotoba, 134, 151. Gourds, 238. Government, 58, 94, 103, 104, 577, 578, 598. Gray, Dr. Asa, 24. Griffin, 340. Grigsby, Prof. W. E., 583. Guard-houses, 363, 376, 410, 550. See Gates. Guards, 105, 133. See Betti. Gun-ken system, 103, 104, 577, 600. Gunpowder, 248, 258, 362, 513. Guns, 248, 258. H. In Dutch and Portuguese books / oft- en takes the place of h. See under I\ In combination, or by nigori, becomes b, /, or p. Hachiman. See Ojin Tenno. Hachiman, temple of, 131, 410,411. Hachiman Taro, 117. Hachijo,121. Hair, 31, 217, 329, 354, 431, 432 (note), 471, 508, 520, 523. Hakama (kilt or loose trowsers), 366, 370, 413, 534. Hakodate, 590. Hakkeuden, 478. Hakone, Lake, 64; Pass, 206, 548. Hakuzan, IS, 21, 514, 530, 532. Hamamatsu, 392, 546. Han, clan, or local feudal government, 418, 425., 522, 535 (note), 586, 5S7, 600. tlanoura, 4" 4-416. Hand or head kerchief, 107 (note), 201, 211 (note), 355. Haori (dress-coat embroidered with crests), 504, 534. Hara-kiri. See Scppuku. Harbors, 25, 329-331, 348, 352, 363, 405, 406, 419, 608. Hare, 582. Harima, 250. Harris, Townsend, Hon., 283, 348, 401, 577, 595 ; , Haruko, 36 (note), 80, SI. Hashiba. See Hideyoshi. Hashimoto Sanai, 306 (note). Hashimoto, Dr., 306, 514, 535. Hashimoto village, 409. Hatakeyama Yoshiuari, 399. Hatamoto, 270, 403, 586, 587. Hats, 355, 356, 357, 372, 426, 511, 546. 550. Hatoba, 331, 349. Hawaii, 567, 579-581. Hawking, 209. Hawks, 409. Hayashi, Dai Gaka no Kami, 303, 304 Headache, 389. Head-dress, 397. See Hair. Headless horsemen, 537. Heating apparatus, 356, 414. Hei. See Taira. Heike Monogatari, 122. Heishi. See Taira. Heir, choice of, 64, 557, 584. Heko, Mr., 548 (note), 5SO, 581. Helmets, 219, 366, 423. Hemi village, 262. Hemp, 46, 422, 449, 531. Hepburn, Dr. J. C., 160, 577, 588-590. Hero-worship, 87, 88, 160. Heron, 24, 177, 511. Hibachi. See Heating apparatus. Hidenobu, 266. Hidetada, 256, 284, 285, 289, 290. Hideyasu, 272, 419 (note), 436. Hideyori, 245, 255, 256, 266, 284. Hideyoshi, 230, 236-246, 254, 255, 270, 410, 435. Higashi Kuze, 317. Higo, 42 (note), 274, 277, 523. Hikone, 231, 267, 310. Hildreth, 247 (note), 256, 271. Hime, 61 (note). INDEX. 651 Himeshima, 593. Hinin,2SO,540. IT logo, 120, 133, 190, 312, 393, 405, 406. Hirado, 254, 256, 2G1. Hiragana, 1G2, 1T4, 492. Hirata, 300. Hiroshima, 392, 394. Hirozawa, 312. History, materials of, 36-42, 293, 299. Hitotsiibashi, 563 (note). See Keiki. Ilinga, 55. Hiyeizan, 134, 232, 233. Hizeu clan, 321, 571, 5T5, 5S6. Hoffman, Dr. J. J., qnoted, 59. Hoffman, J. J., 59 (note). Hogs, 382, 420, 513, 580. Hojo family, 12T, 12S, 146-157, 165-181, 404. Hojo of Odawara, 217, 265. Hojo Tokimasa. See Tokimasa. Hokkaido, 601, 605, 607. Hokke, classic, 285. Holidays, 453. See Festivals. Hollanders, 258-260, 512 (note). See Dutch. Hoknsai, 30, 91, 107, 223, 236, 333, 357, 360, 365, 379, 416, 426, 441, 442, 447, 487, 524, 528. Homio, 114, 2SS, 514. Homnra, 350. Hondo, 17, IS, 19, 27, 28, 29, 69, 84, 85, 100, 602- 605. Honen, 145, 170. Honey, 510. Hongs, 337, 338. Honndji, 231. Honor, code of, 156, 157, 191, 192, 221-225, 569. Horseback game. See Polo. Horses, 340, 365, 366, 382, 427, 471, 512, 516, 522, 619. Hosokawa family, 274. Hosokawa Yoriynki, 193. Hospitals, 346, 400, 571. Hotels, 283, 414, 544, 550. Hot spring?, 21. Household customs. Houses, ancient, 90, 420, 435 ; number of, 600. See Yashiki. Hiibner, Baron, 349. Hunting, 537. Hymn, national, 387, 524, 565. Hymns, Christian, 351, 577. I, pronounced as i in machine; before a final liquid, as i. in tin. For names in Dutch books, see nnder Y or E. I (rank), 139 (note). Ibukiyama, 73,207, 231. Ice, 589. Idols, 387, 388, 510, 526, 541. Idzu, 121, 129, 164, 405. li, Kamou no Kami, 305, 307, 401, 550. Ike Island, 243. Ikeda, 230. Ikegami, 165. Ikko. See Shin sect. Immortality of the soul, 97, 161, 555. Imperial College of Tokio, 117 (note), 370-37?, 562, 563. Inaka, 488, 578. Icamura Saki, 154. Incense. See Censer. Indemnities, 311, 350, 377, 401, 575, 592-595. India, 34 (note), 111 (note), 159, 164, 174, 175. Indians of North America, 29, 31, 299 ; origin of, 579-581. Indigo, 531. Informers, 369. See Spies. Ink-stone, 390, 512. Inns. See Hotels. Inland Sea, 55, 56, 57, 118, 119, 120. Inquisition, 252, 259, 263. Insects, 157, 550. Insurrections, 58, 65, 76, 105, 215, 216, 473, 075, 606. Intemperance, 526. Interpreters, 213, 401, 548. Iris, 359. Iron, 22, 125, 602-605. Iron Duke, ship, 567. Irrigation, 63, 64, 90, 417, 418. Irving, Washington, 524 (note), 537. See Rip Van Winkle myths. Ise, Mr., 523. Ise (shrines), 01, 73, 99, 179, 181. Miida, 255. Ivory, 364, 502. Ivy, 439. Iwabuchi, 401, 402, 412, 422, 428, 440, 516, 57? Iwakura Tomomi, 312, 313, 321, 322, 399, 400, 527, 573, 574. lyemitsu, 256, 285, 286, 287. lyemochi, Prince of Kii, 289, 305, 312. lyesada, 273, 305. lyeyasu, 230,244, 255-257, 264-269, 270-272, 275, 276, 280-286, 287, 323, 547, 583-585. lyeyoshi, 273. Izauagi, 44. Izanami, 45. J, derived from chi or shi by nigori, or in com- bination. See, also, under Y, E, or Z. Jamestown, United States corvette, 593. Japouica. See Camellia. Jealousy, 451, 475, 557. Jean Baptiste, 262, 263. Jeughiz Khan. See Genghis Khan. Jesuits, 197, 247-263, 293, 409, 57 1. Jewels, 46, 50. Jews, 35, 337, 346. Ji. See Shi. 652 INDEX. Jimmn, 40, 51, E5, 56, 5S, 59. Jill Gi Kuan, 103. Jiugu, 75-84, 406. Jiuko tree, 400. Jin-riki-sha, 334, 335, 54S, 570. Jito, 141. Jipangu, 247. JodO sect, 162, 233, 290. Jo-i, 316, 373, 440. Joss-sticks, 380, 387, 498. Journey, 439, 467, 471. Judges. See Laws, Oka. Jugglers, 519, 525. Junks, 136, 419, 579-581. Jun-shi, 92, 272, 273. Jurisprudence. See Laws. Justice, department of, 103. See Laws. K becomes g by nigori, or in combination. Ka. See, also, Kua. Kadoko, 183. Kadzusa, 131, 329, 573. Kaempfer, 5G (note), 293, 414. Kaga, 241, 530, 586. See MaMa. Kago, 264, 36G, 544. Kagoshima, 249, 302, 309, 377, 592, 593. Kai Taku Shi, 26 (note), 31, 605, 607. Kakke, 548 (note), 570. Kama-itachi, 482, 483. Kamakura, 131, 140, 143, 155, 156, 165, 176, 184, 241, 261, 404. Kame Ido, 400. Kami, 43, 72. See Shinto. Kami-shimo, 525, 534. Kano, pictures of, 479, 522. Kamo River, 240. Kampira, 469, 474. Kanagawa, 346, 34S, 349. Kauda MiO Jin, 188, 454, 493. Kanda, 188. Kanda, Mr., 400. Kanazawa, in Sagami, 150, 404. Kaolin, 603. Kappa, 481 ,482, 525. Karafto. See Saghalin. KarOs, 310, 399, 403. Kashiwabara, 57. Kasiitera. See Sponge-cake. Katagana, 16, 162, 608. Kato Hiroyuki, 320. Kato Kiyomasa, 163, 220, 223, 243, 274, 311, 315, 322. Katsn Awa, 302, 303, 548, 564, 574. Katsuki Keguro, 575. Katsniye. See Shibata. Katsuyama, 536, 5S6. Kawasaki, 359, 360. Keiki, 274, 305, 310, 312, 313, 314, 315, 370. Hemperman, Mr. P., 96 (note). Ken, or prefectures, 526, 577, 578, 600. See Chiji. KenchO, 538, 598. Kerai, 217. Kerosene, 420. See Petroleum. Kido, 312, 319, 324, 574. Kii family, 273, 586. Kii promontory, 56, 57, 405, 608. Kiuamera Shirato, 523. Kinder, Major T. W., 607. Kin-giyo, 451. Kings, 195, 196 (note). Kioto, 110, 111, 134, 139, 156, 174, 185, 192, 194, 249, 294, 307, 310, 317, 318, 573, 600, 608. Kin Take, 285. Kiriu, 479, 480. Kirishima, 50, 55. Kirishitan, zaka, dane, gui, 262. Kishiu. See Kii. KisokaidO. See Nakasendo. Kisses, 208, 210. Kita Mandocoro, 241. See Azai. Kitchen, 445, 446. Kites, 221, 458. Kiushiu, 19, 42, 255, 277, 601, 604, 605. Kiyomidzu, 242. Kiyomori, 118, 119, 120, 133, 157. Koban, 425, 506. Kobe, 405, 406. KObO Daishi, 162, 175, 284. Kodzuke, 72 (note). . Kogen, 188, 189. Kojiki,39,42,51,54. Kojima Takanori, 152, 153. Kokll, 273-275,586, 605, 606. Kokura clan, 277, 309. Kokushiu daimiOs, 141, 274, 275, 288, 394 397, 407. Komatsn, 312. Komei TennO, 36, 303, 312. Kominato, 163. Kouishi, 243, 244, 255, 267, 269. Kosatsu, 259, 362, 368, 369, 418, 573. KOshi no knui, 42 (note). Kotatsu, 414, 416, 542. Kuambaku, 109, 196 (note), 237. Kuammn, 232. Kuan-gun, 184, 233. Kuanon, 378. Kuanrei, 194. KuantO, 68, 117, 129, 141, 142, 392. Kublai Khan, 176, 177. Knbo sama, 193, 196 (note). Kudan zaka, 374. Kuge. See Court noble. KugiO, 148. Kumagaye. See Naozane. Kumamoto, 523. Kiiuo Zan, 284, 235, 296. INDEX. 653 Kuriles, 17, 32, 24G, 579, 580. Kuro Shiwo, 25, 27, 299, 579^581. Kuroda family, 274. Kuroda Kiyotaka, 576. Kusakabe" TarO, 430, 431. Kusanojiro, 177. Kusunoki Masashige, 152, 182, 190, 191, 40C. Kusunoki Masatsura, 191, 219. Kinvana, 313, 411. L. There is no letter I in Japanese. The name Liu Kin is Chinese ; Japanese, Riu Kin. The Kurile, or Kuril, Islands derive their name from the Russian Kuril, to smoke, from the active volcanoes on them. Saghalin is Russian. See under R. Laborers, 132, 280, 355, 3C1, 393, 426, 529. See Coolies. Lacquer, 99, 157, 204, 219, 220, 360, 398, 527, 549. Lake Biwa. See Biwa. Lamps, 446, 447, 460, 525. Land, 107, 194, 216, 272, 277, 583-586, 605-607. Landscape. See Scenery. Language, 211, 212, 213, 260, 338, 580. Language, AinO, 29, 33. Lanterns, stone, or bronze, 273, 287-290, 381, 507. Lanterns, paper, 375, 439, 495, 507, 528, 541. Lavatory, 288, 380. Laws, 149, 369, 568, 569, 583-585. Lawyers, 569. Lead, 602-605. Lecky, Mr., 197, 259. Legacy of lyeyasii, 583-585. Legation, 340, 400, 401, 567, 598. Legends, 491-503. See Mythology. Leprosy, 570. Letters, 80, 83, 91, 92, 162, 212, 213. Libraries, 111, 150, 431, 432. Lies, 295, 304, 469. Liggins, Rev. J., 512. Light-houses, 405, 60S. Lilies, 132, 412. Lions, 510, 582. Lips, painted, 455. Lists of shOguns, 156, 197, 273. Literature, 92, 213, 320. Liu Kin, 122, 248, 276, 565, 571. Locks, 366. Longevity, 58, CO, 93, 102, 487. " Lost Tribes of Israel," 35, 56 (note). Lotus, 163, 384, 394, 437, 439. Love, 208, 211, 474. Lowder, Mr. J. F., 583. Lucky clays and signs, 466-473* Lucy, Mr. Alfred, 533. Lu-wen, 503. Luzon, 246. Lyman, Prof. B. S., 19 (note), 26 (note), 605. Mabuchi, 300. Macao, 566, 567. Macaroni, 422. Maeda, 241. Maeda family, 274. McDougall, Captain, 593. Magatama, jewels, 46, 53, 93. Magistrates, 584. See Laws. Magnet, 509. Mails, 590, 591. See Postman. Maimed persons, 472, 570, 600. Main island. See Hondo. Malays, 26 (note), 27, 87, 246. Males and females, 600, 601. Mandokoro, 140. Manganese, 603. Manners, 211, 223, 224, 361, 413, 423, 428, 430, 517, 524, 528, 570. Manufactures, 202-204, 224, 225, 598, 606, 607, 608. Manure, 25, 546, 606. Maple-tree, 211 (note), 582. Maps, 17, 27, 55 (note), 66, 84 (note), 243, 286, 363, 391, 392, 519, 547, 586, 588, 601, 605, 609. Marble, 603. Marco Polo, 176, 177, 247, 249, 512. Maria Luz, ship, 567. Marine. See Naval. Marriage, 32, 44, 58, 93, 94, 108, 110, 115, 117, 277, 352, 438, 467, 552, 560, 585. Martyrs, 256-259, 263, 305, 306, 554. Maruoka, 531, 532, 586. Masago, 127, 147, 148, 150. Masakado, 187, 188. Masses, Buddhist, 252, 285, 509. Matches, 357, 446. Matsuclaira, 271. Matsudaira, Echizeu no kami, 305, 308, 313, 397, 403. Matsudaira, Mochiakl, 428, 429, 525, 527, 528, 533-535. MatsumaO, 299. Matsumoto, Dr., 400. Matsuri, 513, 525. Matsuyama, 547. Maxims. See Proverbs. Mayeda. See Maeda. Mayeshima,H.,591. Meals. See Diet. Mechanical arts, 202, 203, 225, 227, 355-358, 364-366, 408, 513, 516-523, 607, 608. Medicine, 80,206, 207, 467, 571. Medusa, Dutch man-of-war, 593. Melons, 510. Memorial tablets, 439. Mendez Pinto. See Pinto. Merchants, 125, 132, 278, 337, 338, 426, 565, 566, 600. Mermaid, 390,488, 521. 42 654 INDEX. Merman, 488. Metals, 22, 125, 199-204, 408, 602-605. Metempsychosis, 161, 169, 251, 390. Meteorology, tables, etc., 588-590. Mexican dollars, 332, 353, 357, 407. Mexico, 299 ; Appendix I. Miako. See Kioto. Mica, 207 (note), 603. Mice, 521. Michiari, 179. Michizane,115,116. Miidera, 134, 200. Mikado, 39, 101, 102, 113, 123, 185, 186, 187, 480. See Mutstihito. Mikuni, 176, 521, 522. Military arts, 65. Military classes, 104, 595-597. Military establishment, 595-597. Military families. See Clans, Taira, aud Mi- namoto. Military government, 141. See Bakvfu, Mi- namoto. Military system, 65, 104, 141, 218, 595-597. Military tactics, 218, 595-597. Military weapons, 59, 214, 228, 366, 595-597. Millet, 355. Mills, 410,513,592,608. Mimidznka, 245. Minamoto family, 109, 124, 146, 147, 148, 188, 214, 215, 216, 270, 271, 585. Minatogawa, 190. Mineral wealth, 22, 602-605. Mines, 283, 602-605. Mining laws, 602. Mino, 230, 392, 544, 545. Miuobn mountain, 165. Mint, 286, 607, 60S. Miracle-figures, 388-390. Mirror, 46, 364. Mishima, 548. Missionaries, Buddhist, 83, 159, 160, 162, 174, 175. Missionaries, Christian, 247-263, 344, 345, 577, 578. Mississippi Bay, 330, 340. Mitford, Mr. A. B., quoted, 287. Mito family, 273, 274, 298, 305, 394. Mito, Prince of, 298, 301, 394. Mito, city. See on map, Ibaraki. Mitsukuri, 320. Mitsuoka, 526, 536, 538, 563, 574. Miya,61,99. Moats, 240, 280, 370, 394, 396. Mochi, 455, 472, 497. Mom-ban, 436. Monasteries, 140, 199, 232, 233, 234. Money, 104, 236, 425, 495, 496, 547, 607, 008, 610. Money-order system, 591. Mongols, 176-181, 422. Monkey and crab, 493, 494. Monkeys, 24, 237, 382, 420, 495, 511, 542. Monks, 140, 199, 525. Monogatari, 40, 122, 213. Monto. See Shin sect. Monuments, 41 , 157, 200, 203, 514. See Tombs, Memorial Stones. Monzeki temple, 362, 563. Moon-goddess, 49, 582. Morality, 80, 94, 209, 515, 569, 570, 573. Morality in Yokohama, 209, 344. MOri Ariuori, 100 (note), 399, 400, 576. MOri family, 238, 241, 275, 309, 310, 311, 313. Moriyoshi, 152, 183, 184, 188. Mosquito-nets, 528. Mother's memorial, 168, 169, 170. Mothers, examples of, 163, 164, 181, 190, 444, 445, 502, 559. Mountains, 18, 477. Mourning dress, 438. Motoori, 100, 300. Moxa, 207, 468. MukOjima, 400. Mulberry, 46, 544, 582. Munemori, 139. Mnugero Nakahama, 580. Munroe, Prof. Henry S., 19, 26 (note), 605. Murray, Dr. David, 563 (note). Music, 47, 523, 525. Muskets, 248. Mustaches, 31, 217, 425, 478. Mutsu, 126. Mutsuhito, 36, 38, 313, 317, 318, 400, 562-566. Mythical creatures, 477^88, 525, 549. Mythology, 43-53, 54-58, 72, 73, 526. Nagare KanjO, 168, 169, 170. Nagasaki, 240, 255, 256, 299, 391, 576. Nagato. See Choshiu. Nabeshima, 586. Nagoya, 546. Nai Dai Jin, 103, 230. Naiguai, 66, 67. Nakamura (soldier), 403, 404, 410^12, 423, 427. Nakamura (village), 236. Nakamura Masauawo, 320, 548. NakasendO, 266. Nakatomi, 51, 103. Names of Japan, 17, 44, 59 ; of mikados, 113, 123 ; of provinces, 42, 74, 601 ; of the peer- age, 109 ; of families, 117, 236 ; of feudal families, 216, 217, 271-276 ; of shOguus, 156, 197, 273 ; of Government departments, 598 ; of horses, 512 ; of Hideyoshi, 236, 237 ; of ships, 597 ; titles of mikado, 39 ; of shOgun, 197, 286, 295 ; of daimiOs, 276. Nauiwa, 56, 407. Nantai/an, 18, 284. Nauushi, 418, 428. INDEX. 655 Naozane, 144, 145. Nara, 110, 111, 199, 213. Nature, 4T3, 4T7. Naval architecture, 136, 1T7, 246, 256, 419, 579, 597. Naval battles, 136, 137, 128, 139, 177. Naval enterprise, 246, 597. Navy, 343, 362, 397, 564, 597. Needles, 207, 210, 505. Nepotism, 110, 119, 120, 147, 577. Neutrality, 331. Newspapers, 319, 337, 342, 352, 568, 590, 591. New-year's-day, 340, 352, 562. Ng ; for this combination, see under G. Nichireu, 163, 164, 165, 166. Nichireu sect, 233, 404. NichizO, 165. Night scenes, 447, 456, 460, 528, 529. Nigori, the impure or soft sound of a conso- nant, expressed in Japanese by two dots or a circle. Chi or shi by nigori become ji; ho, bo, po ; tsu, dzu; su, zu; ku, gu; fo, l)o ; etc., etc. Nigrito, 86, 87. Ninon Bashi, 369, 378. Nikon Guai Shi, 298, 299, 545. Nihongi, 39, 42, 51. Niigata, 573. Nikkn, 284, 285, 287, 480. Ml, M.M. S. S.,405. Ningpo, 195. Ninigi, 50, 51. Ni-0, 380. Niphou. See Hondo. Nippon, 17. Nirvana, 158, 160, 161, 340, 387, 437. Nitsuki, 364, 365. Nitta Yoshisada, 154, 155, 182, 184, 189, 190, 404, 419 (note), 422. No, Japanese particle o/, sometimes omitted, sometimes expressed. E. g., Fuji yama or Fuji no yama. Nobles, 1)3; orders of, 103; families, 108; number, 600. Nobori, 439, 463. Nobunaga, 236, 238, 260, 270, 275, 276. Norimouo, 417. North-east, 472. Northern dynasty, 189, 192. Numadzu, 548. Numagawa, Mr., 523. Nunneries. See Convents. Nuns, 13(Hnote), 175 (note), 199, 600. Nursery rhymes, 405. O, pronounced as o iu bone. <3 denotes pro- longed o. 0", prefix, meaning great, large, imperial, 39 (note). (king), 39 (note), 196, 295, 380. O, honorary prefix, to be neglected in ana- lyzing a word. (5 Island, 405. See Oshima. O Kura ShO, 103, 104. Oak, 78. Oath, 226, 256, 286, 316. Obedience, 390, 465, 559, 570. Obiko, 65. Occupations, 32, 33, 63, 194, 198-20S, 279-281, 600. Ocean, 18, 24, 508. Ochre, 603. Odani, 544. Odawara, 265, 392, 549. Odes. OdOri. See Tori. Officials, 103, 104, 140, 141, 196 (note), 295, 322, 349, 526, 536. Ogaki, 267, 268, 394, 545. Ogasawara Morinori, 428, 536. Oho. See O. Oils, 22, 446, 513. Oj i, 374, 400, 548 (note). Ojin, TennO, 79, 117, 410, 411, 419 (note), 616. Oka, the judge, 500-502. Okasaki, 265. Oki Island, 151. Oki, minister of education, 1872, 1873 ; coun- selor of state, 322, 586. Okubo, Governor of Sado, 256. Okubo IchiO, 315, 548. Okubo Toshimiti, 302, 303, 312, 317, 318, 319, 321, 322, 399, 574-576. Omens, 46, 56, 57, 64, 77, 242, 243, 267, 449, 466- 473. Ometsuke. See Spies. Omi, 418, 544, 545. Omura, 250, 253. Oneida, U. S. S., 329, 592. Onna Dai Gaku. See "FFoman's Great Stu~ _dy." Ono, 531. Oo, sound of oo in boot. See under U. Open ports, 306, 312, 317, 348, 349, 352, 598, 599, 604. Opium, 570. Opium War, 418. Oranges, 331, 428, 430, 431, 517, 546. Ordeal, 92. Oregonian, P. M. S. S., 404, 405. Origin of AiuO, 28 ; of North American In- dians, 479. Osei era, 103, 104, 300, 578. Oshima, 121, 122, 154. Ota, 229. See Nobunaga. Ota Dokuau, 264, 265. Otani, 255. Otoko yama, 410. 656 INDEX. Otokodate, 279. Otsu. See Shiga. Owari family, 273, 546, 646. Owo. See O. Ox, 24, 382, 497, 49S, 509, 580, 607. Oyama, 154. Oye no Hiromoto, 141, 143. Oye Taku, 338. Ozaka, 56, 232, 233, 234, 240, 256, 2C6, 269, 277, 313, 314, 407, 408. P is the second modification of h or /, and the first of b. Probably no pure Japanese word begins with p except onomatopes, or children's words. Double p (pp) in a compound word is the strengthening of a vowel and an aspirate into two explosives, a sign of careless speaking, and lack of cultivation. The repetition of the vowel and aspirate is the mark of good lingual breeding. Nihon and Yohodo of the Japa- nese gentleman are far more elegant than Nippon and Yoppodo of the common peo- ple. One can tell a person of cultivation by this one sound. Pacific Mail S. S. Company, 327, 328, 350, 384. Pacific Ocean, 327, 328, 546. Paddy-field. See Agriculture. Page, 428. Page, Leon, 247 (note). Pagodas, SS, 114, 165, 175, 204, 381, 392, 480. Paintings, 379, 383. Palace, 61, 62. Palm-trees, 88. Paper, 221, 375, 582. Paper money, 425, 598. Pappenberg (island), 240, 258. Parental authority, 123, 124, 147. Pariahs. See Eta. Parkes, Sir Harry, quoted, 100, 317, 577. Paulownia imperialis, 67, 581, 608. Peach, 521, 582. Peachling, 521. Pears, 510, 51 7, 607. Pear-splitter, 220, 433. Pearson, Lieutenant, U. S. N., 593. Peasantry, 106, 107, 266, 257, 606. Pease, 381, 454. Pembroke, steamer, 593-595. Penal settlements, 600. Peony, 582. Perfumes, 210, 520, 527. Perry, Commodore, 181, 303, 304, 329, 347, 348, 577. Perry island, 329. Persecution of the Christians, 257, 531. Persimmons, 331, 494, 517, 543. Peru, 299, 566, 567. Pet animals, 210, 449. Petitions, 110, 574. Petroleum, 21, 525, 546, 604. Phallic symbols, 33. Pheasants, 582. Phenix, 480, 481, 581. Philip II. of Spain, 250. Philippine Islands, 246, 257. Physicians, 207, 571, 505. Physique, 329-332, 570, 571. Pickapack riding, 354, 543. Picnics, 205, 487, 521, 523. Pierce, Franklin, Hon., 401. Pigeon, 127, 128 (note), 381, 508. Pilgrims, 200, 205, 252, 337, 358, 388, 406, 407. Pillory, 190, 309, 361, 581. Pillows, 423, 497. Pine-trees, 358, 581. i Pinto, 247, 248, 249. ! Pipes, 30, 33, 347, 421, 423, 500, 501, 515, 528. ! Pirates, 119, 246. i Pith flowers, 380. j Plows, 607. Plum-tree blossoms, 384, 428, 431, 582. Plumbago, 602. Poetry, 145, 210, 265, 457, 511, 519, 581. Police, 350, 550, 598. Polo, 529, 530. Polygamy, 32, 108, 209, 211, 241, 556, 557. Pope, 250. Population, 600, 601, 605. Porcelain, 423, 517, 530, 546, 616. Portman, Mr., 340. Portuguese, 243, 247-263, 545, 577, 602. Postal cards, 591. Postal statistics, 590, 591. Posthumous names and titles, 285, 288. Postman, 542, 546, 590, 591. Post-offices, 590, 591. Post-relays, 264. Potatoes, 355. Prayers, 34, 89, 92, 98, 99, 153, 156, 164, 169, 178, 179, 181, 228, 347, 382, 410, 419, 524, 549. Praying machines, 382, 389. Preaching, 510, 511, 523. Presents, 422, 430, 517, 520, 539. Press, the. See Newspapers. Priests. See Bonzes, Shinto. Princes of the blood, 109, 116, 563 (note), 565, 590, 591, 608, 196 (note). Printing, 351, 492, 520, 548. Prisons, 165, 184, 568, 569, 572, 588. Processions, 139, 294, 348, 353, 464, 525, 545, 565, 592. Prostitutes, 139, 195, 405, 556, 572. Protestant Christians, 578. Proverbs, 146, 376, 437, 457, 498, 504-511, 553. Provinces, names of, 74, 601. Pruyn, Hon. Robert H., 401, 594, 595. Pseudo-mikado, 188. INDEX. 657 Pullman cars, 334. Punch, The Japan, 352. Puns, 364, 379, 465, 469, 471. Purgatory, 169, 1TO, 228. Purple, 46T, 499. Q. See Kiu, Kua, or Ka. Quauou. See Kuanon. Quarter-staff, 219. Qnartz, 603. See Crystal Quicksilver, 602-605. Quivers, 22T. R in ri sounds like dr. Rabbit or hare, 420, 495, 582. Races in Japan, 2T, 86. Radishes, 355, 409, 410, 501. Rai Sanyo, 155, 298. RaibiO, 570. Raiden, 484-486. RaikO, 491, 492. Railways, 343, 351, 361, 473, 514, 550, 565. Rain, 479, 5S9. Rain-coat, 90, 265. Ranks, 103, 237, 276, 321, 323, 324. Ranters, 163. Ratification of the treaties, 306, 312, 317. Rationalists, 52, 53, 58. Rats, 409, 449, 450. Rebellion. See Insurrections. Reception of Perry, 303, 304, 329, 347, 348. Reception at Washington, 324. Red tape, 349. Refreshments, 428, 431. See Diet, Dinner. Regalia of the Japanese sovereigns, 50, 58, 61, 122, 136, 139, 184. Regents, 79, 109, 110, 244, 266, 305. Relay towns, 264, 422. Relics, 40, 111 (note). Religion, 33, 34, 52, 61, SO, S3, 88, 89, 92, 95, 96- 100, 158-175, 300, 301, 323, 555, 561, 578. Remington rifles, 411. RenniO, 173. Rents of land, 585, 606. Representative government, 566, 574. Resemblances between Buddhism and Ro- man Christianity, 252. Reveuge, 135-139, 222, 474. Revenue, 109, 140, 273, 274, 275, 278, 598. See Taxes. Revivals of pure Shinto, 300; of ancient learning, 298 ; of Buddhism, 163. Rice, 30, 48, 49, 53, 104, 107, 143, 273, 278, 355, 372, 381, 409, 415, 418, 423, 470, 496, 509, 515, 523, 586, 605-607. Richardson, Mr., 359, 592. Riddles, 465. Riding, 366, 523, 529. ftifles, 311, 350, 513, 596. Rinnoji no miya, 285. RiO, 104, 425. 610. Rip Van Winkle myths, 498, 502, 503. RiuKiu. See Liu Kiu. Rivers of Japan, 20. Roads, 267, 283, 340, 353-362, 411, 412, 417, 418, 541-550, 608. See Railways. Robbers, 120, 140, 195, 389, 390, 546. RokugO River, 360. Roman Catholicism and Buddhism, resem- blances, 252. Roman letters, 591. ROnin, 223, 278, 307, 309, 315, 316, 373, 574. Roofs, 90, 286, 290, 382. See Thatch. Rooms, 205, 435. Roses, 505. Rosaries, beads, 165, 169, 252, 379, 383, 406, 426. Russians, 299, 331, 337, 348, 350, 485, 577. Rutgers College, 431, 533 (note), 563 (note). S, always sibilant, as s in sip. In combina- tion, z. See under J and Z. Sabae, 474, 531, 586. Sabbath, 426, 439. Sacrifices, human, 92 ; animals, 98. Sadamori, 188 (note). Sado, 22, 157, 283, 604. Sadowara, on map. See Miyazaki. Saddles, 427. Saga, 575. Sagami, 64, 70, 131, 132, 262, 573. Saghalin, 17, 299, 505, 600. SaigO Kichinosuke, 302, 312, 315. SaigO Yorimichi, 218, 563, 575, 577. Saikei, or SaikiO. See Kioto. Sailors, native, 246, 3S3, 493. Sailors, foreign, 347, 350, 493, 542. Sajima, 188 (note). Sakadori, 537. Sake, 31, 207, 208, 331, 357, 488. Sakurada Avenue, 307, 394. Salt, 97, 387, 442, 467, 470, 511, 603. Salt-making, 546. Sama, title, 39 (note), 237. Sameshima, 400. Samisen, 364, 408. Sam Patch, 548, 580. Samurai, 83, 106, 108, 278, 426, 574, 600. Sandals, 356, 380. Sandwich Islands, 579-581. Sauetomo, 148. SanjO Saueyoshi, 309, 313, 563. Sauke, 273, 397. Sanskrit, 162, 169, 245, 387, 440. Sapporo, 608. Saratoga, Cape, 329. Saris, 261. Sasaki Gouroku, 424, 513, 516, 537. 658 INDEX. Satow, Mr. Ernest, 26, 39, 96, 100, 298, 305 (note). Satsuraa, Prince of, 302, 592, 593. Satsuma, clan, 267, 269, 274, 276, 277, 300, 301, 302, 312, 313, 321, 571, 592, 593. Savatier's, Enumeratio, 23, 24. Sawa Nobuyoshi, 309. Sawing, 365. Sayouara, 359, 413, 418, 541. Scenery, 57, 82, 83, 91, 112, 118, 128, 154, 205, 418-425, 436, 437, 473, 474, 477, 478, 503, 514, 523, 537, 541-550. Schools, 370-374, 431-434, 523, 538, 561, 563 (note), 573. Science, 477, 478, 488. Scissors, 357. Scolding, 444, 497. Screens, 317, 364, 422, 523, 581, 562. Sculling, 33, 331, 332, 406. Sculpture. See Carving. Sea-god, 498. Seal of blood, 256, 285. Seasons, 25, 588, 590. Sea-weed, 25, 90, 494. Sects of Buddhism, 162, 163, 164, 175. Secular emperor, 140, 185. Sei-i Tai ShOgun, 142, 274, 312, 313. Seki. See Gates. Sekigahara, 222, 255, 266, 267, 268, 269, 278, 545. Semman. See Sanetomo. Semiramis, French man-of-war, 593. Sendai, 586. Seppuku, 156, 190, 221, 240, 272, 314, 611. Serpents. See Snakes. Servants, 342, 443-445. Servility, 255, 430. Sesamum Orientalis, 380. Seto uchi. See Inland Sea. Settsu, 62, 409. Shaka. See Buddha. Sheep, 606. Shells, 210, 406, 407, 459, 499. JShem Mon GakkO, 538. Incorporated with the Imperial College, which see. Shepherd, Colonel Charles Q.,401, 563. Shi. See under Ji. Shiba, 287, 288, 289, 290. Shibata Katsuiye, 230, 238, 239, 240, 241, 435, 537. Shidzuoka, 261, 284, 304, 547, 548. Shiga, 413, 414. Shigemori, 419. Shikken, 150. Shikoku, 113, 277, 586. Shimabara, 257. Shimadzu family. See Satsuma Clan. Shimadza Saburo, 312, 592. Shimoda, 348. Shimojo, Mr., 547. Shimonoseki, 135, 139, 311, 377, 392, 575, 593- 595. Shinagawa, 362. Shinano, 72, 267 (note), 573, 608. ShinnO, 187. Shinran, 170, 400, 538. Shin sect, 170, 173, 174, 233, 234. Shinto, 88 ; model of temple, 90 ; festivals, 92, 160, 251, 300, 301, 410, 411, 419 ; shrines, 600. Ships. See Naval. Shiro yama. See Hakuzan. ShOdO, 284. Shoes, 357. ShOguu, 65, 142, 156, 197, 273, 313. ShOgunate. See Bakufu. Shops, 356, 364, 365, 370, 378, 379, 546, 550. ShOyen, 141. Shrines, 71, 89, 436, 600. See Temples. Shu-ten dOji, 492, 493. Shntoku, 188. Si. See under Shi. Siam, 111, 246. Siberia, 26, 27, 364. Sidotte, Abbe, 262, 263. Silk, S3 (note), 607. Silver, 602-605, 608. Singing-girls. See Geisha. Single combats, 189, 218. Sitting posture, 31, 356, 365, 413, 421, 445. Six guards, 275. Slavery, 570. Slave-trade, 244, 248, 254, 566, 567. Sleep, 421, 423, 468, 472. Small-pox, 468, 470, 549. Smoking, 258, 347, 372, 421, 500, 501, 528, 532, 570. Snakes, 58, 389, 510, 525. Snow, 25, S3 (note), 124, 404, 413, 420, 459, 540 -545, 589. Snow-shoes, 421, 542. SO family, 242. Soap, 356, 546. Social customs, 32-34, 53, 93, 94, 105-107, 169, 170, 208-213, 222-224, 228, 435-440, 452-475, 556-561. Soil, 19, 20, 91, 296, 605-607. Soldiers, 366. Solomon, the Japanese, 500-502. Songs, 34, 47, 332, 401, 402, 432 (note), 454, 495, 541. Sosanoo, 45, 48, 49. Sovereigns, list of, 123. Soul, 460, 472. Southern dynasty, 188, 189, 192. Soy (shOyu), 208, 357, 455, 496. Spaniards. 250, 255, 258, 577. Sparrows, 223, 505, 527. Spear exercise, 433. INDEX. 659 Spears, 138, 219, 311, 420, 574. Spiders, 58, 493. Spies, 68, 69, 144, 296, 309. Spire, 381. Spiritual emperor, 140, 185. Sponge-cake, 258, 260, 428, 51T. Sports, 209, 350, 452^65. Sportsmen, 394, 397, 549. Springs, 21, 128. Stature, 470, 596. Steamboat, 414, 415, 597. Steamships, 328, 339, 347, 575, 597. Steatite, 603. Stirrups, 366, 457, 530. Stockings, 373, 434, 537. Stone Age, 29. Stonewall, iron-clad ram, 72, 362, 597. Stories, 35, 490-503. Storks, 24, 409, 420. Storms, 25, 178, 188, 479, 525, 589. Story-tellers, 423, 491. Stowaways, 328. Straw, 90, 358, 360, 426. Street-cries, 333, 427. Street-tumblers, 332. Students in America, 57, 329, 358, 522, 523, 563. Succession to the throne, 64, 110. Sucking breath, 211 (note), 222, 524^ Sugaru, 486. Sugawara, 109, 115, 116, 400. Suicide, 144, 156, 190, 221, 240, 315, 473, 556 (note). Suido, 188 (note). Sf.jin, 60-67. Sulphur, 21, 602-605. Sumida River, 131, 378, 482. Sumpu, 547 (note). See Shidztidka. Sunday, 260, 402, 426. Sunday-schools, 351, 426. Sun-goddess, 48. Sun-worship, 56, 97, 580. Superstition, 25, 466-468, 570. Surface of the country, 17-25, 63, C4, 218, 220, 411,412,596. Surgeons, 221, 306 (note), 375, 571 (note). Suruga, 64, 69, 131, 132, 230, 265, 284, 370, 374, 415, 547, 548, 573. Stmiga dai, 374, 599. Sutras, 203. Suwo, 250. Suzume, 47, 48, 53, 491. Swans, 397. Sweetmeat, 359, 422, 517, 548. Sweet-potatoes, 355, 517, 546. Sword-racks, 372, 415, 434, 550. Swords, 49, 69, 154, 155, 221-225, 366, 370, 374- 376, 509, 525. Symbolism, 50, 53, 160, 227, 425, 437, 474, 488, 487, 488, 581, 582, 607, 60S. T in combination, d. Tables, 260, 423, 424, 533, 541. Tablets, 289, 381, 383, 440. Tachibana hime, 70. Tachibana, 70. Tadamori, 118. TaikO, 237. See Hideyoshi. Taikun, 273 (note), 286, 287, 295, 304-367. Taira family, 109, 115-139, 188, 214, 215, 216, 229, 230, 406, 419, 617. Taka Island, 181. Takanawa, 362, 400. Takashimaya, Mr., 334. Takeda, 217. Takefu, 170. 419, 422, 423, 541. Takeuouchi, 79, 419 (note). Takiang, steamer, 593. Tales. See Folk-lore. Tamagushi, 46. Tametomo, 121, 122. Tamura, 28. Tancrede, French man-of-war, 593. Tanegashima, 248. Tanners. See Eta. Tartars, 35. Tartary, 176-181. Tatsu no kuchi, 177. Tattooing, 32, 512. Taxes, 63, 104, 106, 107, 140, 141, 151, 205, 217, 598, 606. Tayasu Kameuosuke, 564. Tea, 112, 337, 357, 360, 387, 3SS, 409, 410, 415, 471, 472, 542, 599. Tea-crop, 599. Tea-houses, 358, 359, 388, 523, 542. Teachers, 83, 109, 150, 204, 371, 527, 563, 577. Teeth, 32, 80, 210, 211 (note), 359, 382, 469, 507, 544. Telegraphs, 343, 350, 473, 545, 575, 60S. Temples, 61, 70, 79, 88, 90-97, 99, 131, 157, 173, 199, 204, 206, 228, 229, 232, 242, 245, 252, 284, 285, 237-290, 378-390, 406, 410, 411, 419, 438. Temnjin, 144 (note). Ten SbO Dai Jin. See Amaterasu. Tengu, 469, 487. Teujin, 116, 144 (note). TennO, 36, 39. Terashima Muuenori, 399. Terraces, 64, 90, 91, 417, 418. Thatched roofs, 89, 90, 212, 328, 420. Theatres, 94, 407, 515. Thieves, 140, 195. Three jewels. See Regalia. Thunder, 484, 486, 589. Tidal wave, 25, 348, 477, 486. Tiffin, 370. Tiger, 506, 509, 582. Tiger skins, 220. Tiles, 382, 394, 397, 436. 660 INDEX. Timber, 22, 418, 533. Time, 63, 113, 421, Tin, 603, 605. Titles, 103, 19T, 276, 321. Titsiugh, 207 (uotc). Toba, 123, 411, 412. Tobacco, 258, 500, 501, 570. See Smoking. Toge (mountain passes), 71, 72, 267 (note). TOji n,420, 512, 516,547. TOkaidO, 346, 348, 353-362, 404, 545-549, C01. TOkei ; another pronunciation of TOkiO, which see. Tokimasa, 129, 141, 147, 148. Tokimune, 157, 165, 176. TOkiO, 363-403, 550, 563. Tokiwa, 124, 545. Tokiyori, 149, 165. Tokonoma, 31, 219. Tokugawa, 67, 157, 270-274, 287-290, 294-296, 312, 313, 398, 547, 548, 564, 586. Toll, 360. Tombs of emperors, 62, 157. Tombs of shOguus, 284-290. Tombstones, 514. "Tommy," 401. Tomoye, 135 (note), 458. Tonegawa, 894. Tongue, 44, 511. Tops, 459. TOri, 366, 550, 563. Torii, 98, 252. Toronosqui. See Kato Kiyomasa. Tortoise, 390, 436, 481, 487, 498, 505, 525. Torture, 569. Tosa, 312, 313, 586. TOtOmi, 546. Tow-path, 426, 427. Toyotomi, 237. See Hideyoshi. Toys, 366, 379, 452-465. Tozama, 275. Trade-dollars, 407. Trades, 203-205, 279, 280, 355, 366, 600. Travels, 149, 175, 212, 405-424, 471, 509, 541- 550, 573. Treasury department, 103, 104, 598, 60S. Treasure-ship, 425, 472. Treaties, 304, 306, 312, 317, 348. Trees, sacred, 473, 474. Tsi. See under Chi. Tsugaru, 28, 608. Tsukiji, 362, 363, 550, 563. Tsukuba Kan, training-ship, 564, 597. Tsunetoki,149. Tsnruga, 76, 79, 416-419, 60S. Tsurngaoka, 131,148, 242, 404. Tsushima, 118, 176, 242. Tsutsumi, Mr., 527, 536. Turenne, Count, 573. Turnips, 227, 543. Twins, 468. Two-sworded men. See Samurai, Sioords. Tycoon. See Shogun, Tai-kun. Types of faces, 29, 30, 86, 87. Typhoon, 176, 178,181, 477, 525, 579, 580. U, pronounced as u in rule, or oo in 600?. Uchida, 320. Uguisu. See Cuckoo. Uji, 61. Ukemochi, 49, 419 (note). Umbrellas, 356, 435. United States, relations with Japan, 299, 303, 347, 400, 401, 577, 591, 593-595. University. See Imperial College. Unkei, 157. Uraga, 261, 329. Urashima, boy of, 498-500. Uriu, Mr.,320. Ushi toki mairi, 474, 475. Usurpation, 146, 148. See Bakufu. Uwajima, 317, 399, 518. Uyeno, 287, 306, 315. Uyesugi, 217. Uznme, 47, 48. V. There, is no v in Japanese. See under W. Van Reed, E., 592, 593. Van Valkenbergh, General, 401. Vasco da Gama, 247. Vegetables, 23, 49, 203, 357, 415, 470, 607. Vendetta. See Revenge. Venice of Japan, 240. See Ozaka. Venison, 390. Vermicelli, 422. Vices, ancient, 94. Vienna Exposition, 405 (note), 564, 565. Villages, 27, 28, 346, 351, 600, 600. Virtue, 94, 209, 371, 481, 555, 556, 583. Visitors, 430, 467, 468, 471. Volcanoes, 20, 21. Von Brandt, Minister, 100 (note), 247 (note). Votive tablets, 383. Vows, 199, 228. Wages, 355. Wakamatsu, 315, 366. Wakizashi. See Dirk. Walters, Mr., 262. Waui, 83. War, 197. Wash, 494. Washington, 524, 546. Watches, 334. Water, stealing, 63, 64. Water-courses, 63, 64, 91, 523. Watson, Mr. R. G., 567, 568. Wax, 3S8, 446. Wax-figures, 388. INDEX. 661 Wayside shrines, 88, 89, 198, 252, 541. Weasel, 471, 482. Weather probabilities, 447, 469. Weaving, 31, 33, 46, 49, 53, 546. Webster Isle, 329. Weddings, 438, 471, 472, 515. Whalebone, 458. Whales, 299. Wheat, 340, 607. Wheaton's "International Law," 399. Wheeled vehicles, 114, 212, 332, 333, 334. Wild fowl, 24, 132, 394, 420, 537. William the Conqueror, 585. Wind, 484, 589. Wind-imp, 483. Windows, 394, 448, 471. Winter, 25, 72 (note), 124, 404, 540, 545, 5S8, 590. Wirgmau, Mr. A. See Punch. Wistaria, 274. Wo. See under or 0. Woo. See under U. Wood-cutter, 390, 495, 503. Wolves, 24, 389, 540. Woman, 44, 75, 117 (note), 208, 210, 212, 213, 551, 561. See Female characters. " Woman's Great Study," 211, 212, 558. Wooing, 385, 523, 524. Wool, 606. Wrestling, 348, 433, 441, 442, 519. Writing, 91, 92, 113, 114, 153, 162, 194, 206, 212, 402. Wyoming, U. S. S., 593. X. For words beginning with x in Portu- guese books, or those copied therefrom, see under Shi. Xavier, 249, 250, 252, 412. Y. See also under E. Yagura (castle-towers), 414. Yakunin (business man, official), 421, 526. Yama-bushi, 206. Yamanouchi, 586. Yamaoka Jiro, 523. Yamashiro, 62. Yamato, 30, 57, 58, 65, 309, 523. Yamato-Dake no mikoto, 69, 72, 73, 419 (note), Yamato damashi, 318, 435, 571, 597. Yamazaki, 409. Yaehiki, 393, 394, 397, 398, 407, 427, 536, 563. Yasuke, 236. Yasutoki, 149. Yatabori,Mr.,548. Yawata, 410, 411. Year, divisions, 63. Years, critical in life, 472. Yedo, 264, 265, 307, 318. See Tokio. Yezo, 19, 26-35, 605, 607. Yodo, river, 112, 408-410. Yodo, town, 411. Yokohama, 327-352, 399, 589. Yokosuka, 262, 562. Yoriiye, 147, 148. Yorimasa, 581. Yoritomo, 125-144, 228, 241, 293, 323, 404, 458. Yoshida Kiyonari, Mr., 563 (note). Yoshida Shoin,305, 306. Yoshiuaka, 134. Yoshitomo, 117, 121, 123. Yoshitsuue, 34, 124, 143, 144, 206, 404, 458, 512. Yoshiye, 117. Yoshiwara, 362, 364, 555, 556. Yuri. See Mitsuoka. Z. See under J or S. Zempukuji, 400, 401. Zen sect, 162, 163. Zodiac signs, 382, 580, 611. Zozoji, 287, 288, 289, 290, 894. THE END. 14 DAY USE RETURN TO DESK FROM WHICH BORROWED LOAN DEPT. This book is due on the last date stamped below, or on the date to which renewed. Renewed books are subject to immediate recall. ; 3flov 1 57FHl F tEC'D UD ^ R 11963 REC'n j n 8Jlfi'fi/rr '**** *-/ EntJ DPT o o ^i j VfRH CVi ,' v REC'D i n UL(I 195/ **% L^ L.U DFP 1 1 '^'-l -II AAI ULO 1 1 DO 11 /\M frEC'D L D aPRTslJ 52 '- 'Df.f\~- ^Feb'SSS^l - r- I- X^ ^^ '- LD 21-100m-6,'56 (B9311slO)476 General Library University of California Berkeley TC 41719 M310477